Skip to main content

Full text of "Southern literary readings"

See other formats


,0^     s'^  \^  '/^   "C' 


^^  '"^  '^yi 


V- 


HE  SOUTH 
is  a  land  that 
has  known 
sorrows;  it  is 
a  land  that  has  broken 
the  ashen  crust  and 
moistened  it  with  its 
tears;  a  land  scarred  and 
riven  by  the  plowshare 
of  war  and  billowed  with 
the  graves  of  her  dead ; 
but  a  land  of  legend j  a 
land  of  song,  a  land  of 
hallowed  and  heroic 
memories. 


Edward  Ward  Carmack. 


SOUTHERN 

LITERARY 
READINGS 


Edited 
WITH   INTRODUCTION, 
NOTES,  BIOGRAPHICAL 
SKETCHES,   AND  SOME 
THOUGHT     QUESTIONS 

By 

LEONIDAS  WARREN  pAYNE,  Jr. 

A  djunct  Professor  of  English  in  the  University 
of  Texas 


RAND  McNALLY  &  COMPANY 

Chicago  New  York  London 


Copyright,  1913 
By  Leonid  AS  Warren  Payne,  Jr. 


Chicago 


.     /'7^ 


ACKNOWLEDGMENT 

All  rights  to  the  selections  named  in  the  following  list 
are  reserved  by  the  owners  of  the  copyright,  or  their  pub- 
lishers or  other  representatives,  from  whom  permission 
for  use  in  Southern  Literary  Readings  has  been  secured. 

James  Lane  Allen:  Earth  Shield  and  Earth  Festival,  from 
The  Bride  of  the  Mistletoe.  Copyright,  1909,  by  The  Macmillan 
Company,  Publishers.  Madison  Cawein:  The  Old  Water-mill; 
Zyps  of  Zirl;  from  Myth  and  Romance.  Copyright,  1899,  by  G.  P. 
Putnam's  Sons,  Publishers.  Seasons;  Sounds  and  Sights;  from  New 
Poems.  Grant  Richards,  Publisher,  1909.  William  Lawrence 
Chittenden:  The  Ranchman's  Ride;  Old  Fort  Phantom  Hill;  from 
Ranch  Verses.  Copyright,  1893,  by  G.  P.  Putnam's  Sons,  Publishers. 
Charles  Egbert  Craddock:  Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County 
Fair;  from  The  Mystery  of  Witch-face  Mountain,  and  Other  Stories. 
Copyright,  1895,  by  Mary  N.  Murfree.  Houghton,  Mifflin  &  Com- 
pany, Publishers.  Hilton  Ross  Greer:  A  Prairie  Prayer;  A  Mock- 
bird  Matinee;  from  A  Prairie  Prayer,  and  Other  Poems.  Copyright, 
19 1 2,  by  Sherman,  French  &  Company,  PubHshers.  Joel  Chandler 
Harris:  The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell,  from  Wally  Wander oon  and 
His  Story-telling  Machine.  Copyright,  1903,  by  Joel  Chandler  Harris 
and  S.  S.  McClure  Company.  McClure,  Phillips  &  Co.,  Publishers. 
Paul  Hamilton  Hayne:  Lyric  of  Action;  Aethra;  Great  Poets  and 
Small;  Poets;  My  Study;  To  Henry  W.  Longfellow;  The  Mocking- 
bird amid  Yellow  Jasmine;  from  Poems  of  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne, 
Copyright,  1882,  by  D.  Lothrop  &  Co.  Lothrop,  Lee  &  Shepard, 
sttocessors  to  D.  Lothrop  &  Co.,  Publishers.  O.  Henry:  The  Gift 
of  the  Magi.  Copyright,  1905,  by  Press  Publishing  Company. 
Copyright,  1906,  by  Doubleday,  Page  &  Company,  Publishers.  A 
Chaparral  Prince,  from  Heart  of  the  West.  Copyright,  1907,  by 
Doubleday,  Page  &  Company,  Publishers.  Sidney  Lanier:  Song 
of  the  Chattahoocliee;  A  Ballad  of  Trees  and  the  Master;  My 
Springs;  Stanzas  from  "Corn";  from  Poems  of  Sidney  Lanier. 
Copyright,  19 12,  by  Mary  D.  Lanier.  Charles  Scribner's  Sons, 
Publishers.  Three  Letters,  from  Letters  of  Sidney  Lanier.  Selections 
from  His  Correspondence,  1 866-1 881.  Copyright,  1899,  by  Mary 
Day  Lanier.  Charles  Scribner's  Sons,  PubHshers.  Samuel  Minturn 
Peck:  An  Alabama  Garden;  The  Grapevine  Swing;  from  Rings 
and  Love-knots.  Copyright,  1892,  by  Frederick  A.  Stokes  Company, 
Publishers.  Albert  Pike:  Every  Year,  from  General  Albert  Pike's 
Poems.    Edited  with  Introduction  by  His  Daughter,  Mrs.  Lilian  Pike 

{v\ 


vi  Acknowledgment 

Roome.  Copyright,  1899,  by  Mrs.  Roome  and  Fred  AUsopp,  Pub- 
lisher. Margaret  Junkin  Preston:  Gone  Forward;  The  Shade 
of  the  Trees;  from  Cartoons.  Copyright,  1875,  by  Roberts  Brothers, 
Publishers.  The  Color-bearer,  from  Old  Songs  and  New.  Copy- 
right, 1870,  by  J.  B.  Lippincott  Company,  Publishers.  James 
Ryder  Randall:  Maryland!  My  Maryland!  Pelham;  fromPoew^ 
of  James  Ryder  Randall.  Edited  by  Matthew  P.  Andrews.  Copy- 
right, 1910,  by  The  Tandy-Thomas  Co.,  Publishers.  Irwin  Russell: 
Christmas-night  in  the  Quarters;  Business  in  Mississippi;  Mahsr 
John;  Nebuchadnezzar;  from  Poems  by  Irwin  Russell.  Copyright, 
1888,  by  The  Century  Co.,  Publishers.  Abram  Joseph  Ryan:  The 
Conquered  Banner;  The  Sword  of  Robert  Lee;  from  Poems,  Patriotic, 
Religious,  Miscellaneous,  by  Abram  J.  Ryan.  Copyright,  1896,  by 
P.  J.  Kenedy  &  Sons,  Publishers.  Francis  Hopkinson  Smith:  The 
One-legged  Goose,  from  Colonel  Carter  of  Carter sville.  Copyright, 
1891,  by  F.  Hopkinson  Smith,  and  Houghton,  Mifflin  &  Company, 
Publishers.  Francis  Orray  Ticknor:  Little  Giffen,  from  The 
Poems  of  Francis  Orray  Ticknor.  Edited  and  Collected  by  His 
Granddaughter  Miss  Michelle  Cutliff  Ticknor.  Copyright,  191 1, 
by  The  Neale  Publishing  Company,  Publishers.  Henry  Timrod: 
The  Lily  Confidante;  Carolina;  Storm  and  Calm;  Ode  Sung  on  the 
Occasion  of  Decorating  the  Graves  of  the  Confederate  Dead;  from 
Poems  of  Henry  Timrod.  Copyright,  1899,  by  Miss  Kate  Lloyd. 
Used  by  special  permission  of  the  B.  F.  Johnson  Publishing  Com- 
pany, Richmond,  Va.,  authorized  publishers  of  Timrod's  poems. 
Stark  Young:  Gordia,  from  The  Blind  Man  at  the  Window,  and 
Other  Poems.  Copyright,  1906,  by  Stark  Young.  Grafton  Press.. 
Publishers. 


THE  PREFACE 

This  book  is  intended  primarily  to  fill  the  break  in 
reading  that  occurs  between  the  grammar  school  and  the 
first  year  of  the  high  school,  but  it  may  be  satisfactorily 
used  in  any  of  the  grades  from  the  seventh  to  the  eleventh. 
The  constant  aim  has  been  to  select  that  in  Southern 
literature  which  is  best  suited  to  the  interests  and  attain- 
ments of  young  readers  and  to  present  it  in  such  a  way  as 
to  increase  the  appreciation  of  our  girls  and  boys  of  the 
South  for  what  to  them,  by  virtue  of  its  origin,  means  so 
much;  and  also  to  give  most  suggestion  and  rehef  to  the 
teachers  of  reading  and  literature  in  our  Southern  schools. 
A  long  teaching  experience  in  the  public  schools  from 
grammar  grades  to  high  school,  in  a  normal  school,  and 
in  the  colleges  of  several  Southern  states,  has  given  the 
editor  an  insight  into  our  educational  conditions  and 
needs  which  has  enabled  him  in  a  measure  to  meet  the  re- 
quirements of  both  pupils  and  teachers  in  respect  to  the 
apparatus  necessary  in  a  textbook  intended  as  a  reader 
and  as  an  introduction  to  the  study  of  literature. 

For  the  fullness  of  the  notes  and  the  thought  questions 
no  apology  is  offered.  The  editor  is  well  aware  that 
modem  theoretical  pedagogy  has  tabooed  such  an  abun- 
dance of  critical  apparatus  for  schoolbooks;  but  having 
himself  been  through  the  grind  of  teaching  in  the  crowded 
public  schools  of  the  South,  he  knows  by  actual  experi- 
ence that  unless  immediate  helps  are  provided  the  bulk 
of  the  work  will  remain  undone.  Because  of  the  physical 
limitations  of  overtaxed  teachers  and  the  inadequate 
supply — nay,  total  absence — of  critical  material  and  refer- 
ence books  in  many  of  our  schools,  such  helps  are  not  only 
a  grateful  relief  but  an  absolute  necessity  if  anything  like 
satisfactory  work  is  to  be  done  in  interpretation.  The 
notes  and  questions,  placed  as  they  are  at  the  back  of  the 
book,  may  be  ignored  by  those  teachers  who  are  so  ade- 
quately equipped  or  so  fortunately  situated  as  to  need  no 

[vii] 


viii  The  Preface 

such  apparatus;  and  here  the  pupil  may  constilt  them  at 
will  for  information  and  suggestion.  But  for  the  majority 
of  our  teachers  the  safest  plan  will  be  to  make  study 
assignments  in  the  notes,  selecting  such  exercises  and 
questions  as  may  best  fit  the  needs  and  requirements  of 
the  special  group  of  pupils  in  the  several  grades  where  the 
book  may  be  used. 

The  material  is  arranged  in  a  loose  chronological  order 
according  to  authors,  some  attention  being  paid  to  variety 
in  subject-matter  and  literary  form.  It  has  been  thought 
unwise  to  group  the  material  according  to  types  of  litera- 
ture, for  two  reasons.  In  the  first  place,  the  author 
always  has  been  and  the  editor  believes  will  continue  to 
be  the  logical  unit  for  literary  study  in  the  schools,  and 
it  is  a  distinct  disadvantage  to  have  a  writer's  works 
scattered  here  and  there  throughout  the  book.  In  the 
second  place,  to  group  the  selections  by  types  or  kinds  of 
compositions  is  to  lose  the  opportunity  for  presenting  the 
historical  development  of  our  literature  as  a  whole,  and 
to  impair  the  knowledge  of  its  continuity  of  growth  and 
the  similarity  of  its  subject-matter  through  the  various 
periods.  Moreover,  comparative  study  in  literary  types 
may  be  almost  if  not  quite  as  readily  pursued  when  the 
material  is  arranged  chronologically  as  when  it  is  grouped 
by  types.  In  the  notes  frequent  suggestion  has  been 
made  for  comparative  study,  which  the  teacher  of  more 
advanced  pupils  may  carry  out  when  supplementary  work 
is  deemed  advisable. 

The  fifst  object  of  the  biographical  sketches  in  the  body 
of  the  reader  is  to  awaken  interest  in  the  writers  repre- 
sented in  its  pages.  No  effort  has  been  made  to  produce 
exhaustive  studies,  but  the  best  available  sources  of  in- 
formation have  been  carefully  consulted,  and  it  is  hoped 
that  the  main  facts  in  the  writers'  lives  as  here  presented 
may  arouse  a  desire  on  the  part  of  the  pupils  for  further 
reading  in  the  all-important  field  of  biography.  Such 
criticism  and  suggestion  are  given  as  will  elucidate  the 
selections  which  follow,  but  the  tendency  of  modem 
critical  methods  in  the  study  of  origins  and  sources  has 
been  avoided  as  undesirable  and  unsuitable  for  the  grade 
of  pupils  here  appealed  to.     The  pupils  should  be  required 


The  Preface  ix 

to  read  these  sketches  aloud  and  to  reproduce  their 
substance  without  actually  memorizing  details. 

Most  of  the  selections  have  been  given  in  their  entirety, 
for  one  of  the  chief  aims  of  the  book  is  to  make  possible 
the  study  of  the  productions  as  literary  units.  In  the 
several  instances  where  parts  from  longer  works  have  been 
used,  the  completeness  of  each  selection  as  a  literary  unit 
has  been  preserved.  In  only  one  instance  in  a  shorter 
work  has  this  principle  been  violated,  and  then  because 
of  conditions  imposed  with  the  granting  of  rights  of  pub- 
lication. Moreover,  the  texts  have  been  subjected  to 
critical  preparation,  preference  invariably  being  given  to 
the  most  authoritative  version;  and  no  changes  have 
been  made  in  the  material  except  where  obvious  error 
existed  or  where  the  interests  of  the  pupil  demanded  a 
slight  revision.  In  all  such  cases  mention  has  been  made 
of  the  variations  from  the  original  text. 

The  critical  apparatus  at  the  back  of  the  book  should  be 
used  judiciously,  the  teacher  determining  just  what  is 
best  in  individual  cases.  The  use  of  this  material  should 
by  no  means  be  allowed  to  render  the  teaching  of  litera- 
ture mechanical.  That  the  literature  itself  is  the  main 
object  should  constantly  be  borne  in  mind.  To  read  with 
clearness,  accuracy,  and  expression  the  poems  and  stories 
and  essays,  and  enjoy  their  intellectual,  emotional,  and 
esthetic  qualities,  is  the  highest  desideratum.  To  over- 
emphasize the  letter  is  to  deaden  the  spirit;  but  on  the 
other  hand,  to  neglect  the  letter  is  frequently  to  leave 
closed  all  avenues  of  approach  to  anything  like  an  appreci- 
ation of  the  production.  The  only  effectual  way  of  getting 
at  the  spirit  of  a  literary  production,  particularly  in  the 
earHer  stages  of  education,  is  through  knowledge  gained 
by  attention  to  the  letter.  It  is  absolutely  necessary, 
then,  to  study  words,  allusions,  thought  units,  and  the 
general  technical  elements  of  literary  construction.  The 
child  must  be  given  as  a  basis  of  knowledge  the  details  of 
literary  values  before  he  can  properly  perceive  or  estimate 
the  spirit  of  literary  art  as  a  whole. 

General  acknowledgments  must  here  be  made  of  indebt- 
edness to  the  well-known  works  on  Southern  literature, 
such  as  W.  M.  Baskervill's  Southern  Writers,  W.  P.  Trent's 


X  The  Preface 

Southern  Writers,  F.  V.  N.  Painter's  Poets  of  the  South, 
W.  L.  Weber's  The  Southern  Poets,  C.  W.  Hubner's  Rep- 
resentative Southern  Poets,  H.  J.  Stockard's  A  Study  of 
Southern  Poetry,  Carl  Holliday's  A  History  of  Southern 
Literature,  M.  J.  Moses's  The  Literature  of  the  South, 
The  Library  of  Southern  Literature  edited  by  E.  A.  Alder- 
man, J.  C.  Harris,  and  C.  W.  Kent,  and  The  South  in  the 
Making  of  the  Nation.  From  the  biographical  volimies 
of  the  last-named  work  the  editor  of  the  present  book  has 
literally  transcribed  here  and  there  in  the  biographical 
sketches  a  few  sentences  from  articles  prepared  but  not 
signed  by  him.  In  one  or  two  other  instances  he  has 
used,  with  slight  revision,  paragraphs  from  his  own  pub- 
lished articles.  In  all  other  cases  of  borrowing  or  quota- 
tion effort  has  been  made  to  give  credit  to  those  to  whom 
credit  is  due. 

Special  acknowledgments  for  the  use  of  their  poems 
are  to  be  made  to  Madison  Cawein,  William  Lawrence 
Chittenden,  and  Hilton  Ross  Greer;  to  Harry  Stillwell 
Edwards  for  permission  to  use  ''Shadow''  and  The  Vulture 
and  His  Shadow;  to  Julian  Harris  for  permission  to  use 
the  selection  from  his  father's  works;  to  Mrs.  Mary  Day 
Lanier  and  Henry  W.  Lanier  for  permission  to  use  selec- 
tions from  the  works  of  Sidney  Lanier  and  for  the  portrait 
of  the  poet ;  to  the'  family  of  Mrs.  Margaret  Junkin  Preston 
for  permission  to  use  selections  from  her  works;  and  to 
Stark  Young  for  permission  to  use  Texas  Heroes,  hitherto 
unpublished,  and  Gordia. 

The  editor  wishes  to  express  thanks  to  several  of  his 
colleagues  in  the  University  of  Texas  who  have  kindly 
read  parts  of  his  manuscript  and  made  occasional  sugges- 
tion as  to  material  to  be  used.  Thanks  are  due  also  to 
Misses  Nina  and  Maclovia  Hill,  of  the  Austin  High  School, 
for  aid  rendered  in  the  correction  of  proof. 

Ausiin,  Texas,  January,  iqij 


THE  TABLE   OF  CONTENTS 

The  Preface vii 

I.  Antebellum  Writers 

1.  FRANCIS  SCOTT  KEY— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) i 

2.  Biographical  Sketch I 

3.  The  Star-spangled  Banner 4 

2.  JOHN  JAMES  LA  FOREST  AUDUBON— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 6 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 6 

3.  The  Mocking-bird 9 

4.  The  Ruby-throated  Humming-bird 13 

3.  RICHARD  HENRY  WILDE— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch          17 

2.  Lament  of  the  Captive 18 

4.  WILLIAM  GILMORE  SIMMS— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 19 

2.  The  Partisans 21 

3.  The  Swamp  Fox 25 

4.  The  Grape-vine  Swing 28 

5.  EDGAR  ALLAN  POE— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 29 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 29 

3.  The  Gold  Bug 34 

4.  The  Haunted  Palace 78 

5.  The  Raven 79 

6.  The  Philosophy  of  Composition 86 

7.  The  Bells .  100 

8.  Annabel  Lee 104 

9.  -The  Masque  of  the  Red  Death 105 

6.  ALEXANDER  BEAUFORT  MEEK— 

I.     Biographical  Sketch 113 

2.^  Land  of  the  South 114 

4.     The  Mocking-bird 116 

7.  THEODORE  O'HARA— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 118 

2.  The  Bivouac  of  the  Dead 119 

8.  LAMAR,  PINKNEY,  AND  COOKE— 

1.  Biographical  Sketches 123 

2.  The  Daughter  of  Mendoza    ....           ...  126 

3.  A  Health 127 

4.  Florence  Vane 128 

[xi\ 


xii  Southern  Literary  Readings 

II.   War  Period  and  Reconstruction  Writers 

9.    ALBERT  PIKE— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 130 

2.  Every  Year 132 

10.  JOHN  REUBEN  THOMPSON— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 135 

2.  Music  in  Camp i37 

11.  FRANCIS  ORRAY  TICKNOR— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 140 

2.  Little  Giffen 142 

12.  HENRY  TIMROD— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) I44 

2.  Biographical  Sketch I44 

3.  The  Lily  Confidante 148 

4.  Storm  and  Calm 150 

5.  Carolina 151 

6.  Ode 154 

13.  JOHN  ESTEN  COOKE— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch i55 

2.  The  Death  of  Stonewall  Jackson 158 

14.  PAUL  HAMILTON  HAYNE— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 171 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 171 

3.  Lyric  of  Action i73 

4.  Aethra I74 

5.  Sonnets — Great  Poets  and  Small;  Poets;  My  Study; 

To  Henry  W.  Longfellow;  The  Mocking-bird  amid 

Yellow  Jasmine 175 

15.  JAMES  RYDER  RANDALL— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 178 

2.  Maryland!  My  Maryland! 180 

3.  Pelham 182 

16.  MARGARET  JUNKIN  PRESTON  — 

I..   Biographical  Sketch .184 

2.  Gone  Forward 187 

3.  The  Shade  of  the  Trees 188 

4.  The  Color-bearer 189 

17.  ABRAM  JOSEPH  RYAN— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 193 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 193 

3.  The  Conquered  Banner 194 

4.  The  Sword  of  Robert  Lee 196 


The  Table  of  Contents  xiii 

i8.     LUCIUS  QUINTUS  CINCINNATUS  LAMAR—     - 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 198 

2.  Biographical  Sketch .      .      .198 

3.  Eulogy  on  Charles  Sumner 201 

19.  SIDNEY  LANIER— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 209 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 209 

3.  Song  of  the  Chattahoochee 214 

4.  A  Ballad  of  Trees  and  the  Master 216 

5.  My  Springs 216 

6.  Stanzas  from  "  Corn " 218 

7.  Three  Letters 220 

III.  Recent  Writers 

20.  IRWIN  RUSSELL— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 227 

2.  Christmas-night  in  the  Quarters 230 

3.  Business  in  Mississippi 239 

4.  Mahsr  John 241 

5.  Nebuchadnezzar 243 

21.  HENRY  WOODFIN  GRADY— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 245 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 245 

3.  The  New  South  (Selection) 249 

4.  The  Farmer's  Home  (Selection) 252 

5.  The  Wounded  Soldier  (Selection) 255 

22.  JAMES  LANE  ALLEN  — 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 261 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 261 

3.  Earth  Shield  and  Earth  Festival 264 

33.    JOEL  CHANDLER  HARRIS— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 268 

2.  The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell 272 

24.  CHARLES  EGBERT  CRADDOCK— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 298 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 298 

3.  Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair   .      .      .301 

25.  FRANCIS  HOPKINSON  SMITH— 

1.  Portrait  {facing) 326 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 326 

3.  The  One-legged  Goose .328 

26.  STARK  YOUNG— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 334 

2.  Gordia 335 

3.  Texas  Heroes 342 


xiv  Southern  Literary  Readings 


27.    O 


HENRY— 


1.  Portrait  {facing) 343 

2.  Biographical  Sketch 343 

3.  The  Gift  of  the  Magi  . 345 

4.  A  Chaparral  Prince 351 

28.  HILTON  ROSS  GREER—  ' 

1 .  Biographical  Sketch 363 

2.  A  Prairie  Prayer 364 

3.  A  Mockbird  Matinee 366 

29.  WILLIAM  LAWRENCE  CHITTENDEN— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 369 

2.  The  Ranchman's  Ride 370 

3.  Old  Fort  Phantom  Hill 371 

30.  HARRY  STILLWELL  EDWARDS— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 374 

2.  "Shadow" 375 

3.  The  Vulture  and  His  Shadow 383 

31.  MADISON  CAWEIN— 

1.  Biographical  Sketch 385 

2.  The  Old  Water-mill 387 

3.  Seasons 391 

4.  Sounds  and  Sights 392 

5.  ZypsofZirl 393 

32.  SAMUEL  MINTURN  PECK— 

1.  Biographic^  Sketch 397 

2.  An  Alabama  Garden 398 

3.  The  Grapevine  Swing 399 

The  Notes 401 

A  Pronouncing  List  of  Proper  Names 486 


From  a  photograph  after  an  engraving 
FRANCIS  SCOTT  KEY 


FRANCIS  SCOTT  KEY 

Francis  Scott  Key,  author  of  The  Star-spangled  Banner, 
was  born  on  August  9,  1780,  at  Terra  Rubra,  the  ancestral 
home  of  his  progenitors,  near  Frederick,  Maryland.  He 
attended  school  in  and  near  Annapolis,  and  later  read  law 
in  the  office  of  the  Hon.  J.  T.  Chase  of  that  city.  There, 
too,  he  met  Miss  Mary  T.  Lloyd,  who  became  his  wife. 
He  began  the  practice  of  his  profession  at  Frederick,  but 
later  opened  offices  in  Washington,  making  his  residence 
in  Georgetown,  D.  C.  He  became  a  noted  lawyer,  his 
name  appearing  on  one  side  or  the  other  in  many  of  the 
most  famous  cases  in  the  courts  in  which  he  practiced. 
He  was  a  devout  Christian,  and  the  religious  element 
in  his  character  gave  rise  to  much  of  his  power  and  to 
much  of  the  confidence  bestowed  upon  him  by  his  neigh- 
bors, not  only  in  the  discharge  of  their  legal  matters  but 
in  all  the  private  relations  of  life.  With  this  religious 
instinct  may  be  associated  the  profound  sense  of  patriot- 
ism which  he  always  evinced. 

The  occasion  for  the  writing  of  the  famous  song  The 
Star-spangled  Banner  is  well  known,  and  the  story  of  its 
composition  often  has  been  told.  It  was  at  the  time  of 
the  War  of  18 12  between  England  and  the  United  States. 
Admiral  Cockbum  of  the  British  navy  had  landed  five 
thousand  soldiers,  marched  to  Washington,  and  there 
destroyed  the  new  capitol.  Some  straggling  soldiers 
afterward  entered  the  home  of  Dr.  William  Beans  at 
Upper  Marlboro,  about  sixteen  miles  southeast  of  Wash- 
ington, and  created  a  disturbance.  They  were  arrested 
and  thrown  into  jail  at  the  instigation  of  Dr.  Beans,  but 
one  of  them  escaped  and  made  an  exaggerated  report  of 
the  arrest  of  his  comrades  to  Admiral  Cockbum.  The 
admiral  ordered  a  squad  of  marines  to  arrest  Dr.  Beans 
and  bring  him  to  the  British  hnes.  The  doctor  was 
roughly  handled,  placed  in  irons,  and  without  a  hearing 
of  any  kind  thrown  into  the  hold  of  a  British  ship. 

1  [I] 


2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Mr.  Key,  as  a  lawyer  and  a  man  of  influence,  was 
urged  by  the  friends  of  Dr.  Beans  to  ask  permission  of 
our  government  to  go  to  the  British  fleet  under  a  flag 
of  truce  and  make  an  effort  to  secure  the  prisoner's 
release.  It  was  a  hazardous  and  disagreeable  undertaking, 
but  Mr.  Key  agreed  to  attempt  it,  and  in  company  with 
Colonel  John  Skinner,  the  regularly  authorized  United 
States  parole  agent,  he  set  sail  from  Baltimore  in  the 
Minden,  September  3,  18 14,  to  find  the  British  fleet 
somewhere  in  Chesapeake  Bay.  They  were  successful 
in  locating  Dr.  Beans  on  the  Surprise,  but  they  were 
informed  by  the  admiral  that  inasmuch  as  the  doctor 
had  cruelly  mistreated  and  caused  the  arrest  of  British 
soldiers,  his  punishment  would  be  severe;  other  officers 
even  hinted  that  he  would  be  hanged.  By  tactful  and 
careful  presentation  of  the  facts  in  the  case,  and  by 
pointing  out  the  great  services  Dr.  Beans  had  rendered 
to  wounded  soldiers,  British  as  well  as  American,  the 
envoys  persuaded  the  admiral  to  release  the  prisoner. 

But  now  a  new  turn  of  affairs  was  presented.  The 
British  admiral  informed  them  that  he  would  be  com- 
pelled to  detain  them  in  his  fleet  until  the  termination 
of  the  action  which  was  about  to  be  undertaken,  for  he 
was  unwilling  that  they  should  return  to  Baltimore  to 
tell  what  they  knew  about  the  British  forces  and  plans. 
Accordingly  the  Americans,  now  virtually  prisoners, 
remained  on  the  Surprise  for  about  a  week,  and  were 
then  transferred  to  their  own  vessel,  the  Minden,  which 
was  anchored  close  by,  where  the  prisoners  could  witness 
the  proposed  attack  and  capture  of  Baltimore. 

The  little  battery  on  Whetstone  Point,  Fort  McHenry, 
under  the  command  of  Major  Armistead,  was  the  focal 
point  of  the  British  attack.  The  fleet  fairly  rained  their 
heavy  bombs  on  the  fort,  but  Major  Armistead  withheld 
his  fire  until  the  ships  came  close  enough  for  his  small  guns 
to  do  effective  service,  and  then  he  answered  the  British 
in  a  way  to  make  them  beat  a  hasty  retreat.  The  fight 
continued  all  day  and  far  into  the  night.  The  spectacle 
as  viewed  from  the  anchored  ship  Minden  was  a  grand 
one,  but  to  the  little  band  of  American  watchers  the 
suspense  was  frightful. 


Francis  Scott  Key  j 

Francis  Scott  Key,  aglow  with  all  the  fervor  of  his 
religious  and  patriotic  soul,  could  not  rest,  as  did  his 
companions,  that  terrible  night.  He  watched  in  uncer- 
tain expectancy  until  the  coming  of  the  dawn,  straining 
his  eyes  to  catch  a  glimpse  of  the  flag  on  the  fort,  to  sat- 
isfy himself  that  the  battery  had  withstood  the  attack 
and  his  people  were  safe.  A  heavy  mist  had  risen  over 
the  harbor  and  for  a  time  it  shut  off  the  land  from  his 
anxious  gaze.  When  the  sun  finally  rose,  he  saw  dimly 
through  the  mist  that  enshrouded  the  fort  the  star- 
spangled  banner  still  waving  aloft,  and  with  a  heart 
overflowing  with  patriotic  emotion  he  wrote  down  on 
the  back  of  an  old  letter  the  first  draft  of  his  now 
famous  poem. 

The  British  admiral  informed  the  detained  Americans 
that  they  were  at  liberty  to  return  to  shore,  for  the 
attack  had  failed.  On  the  evening  of  this  day  after  the 
battle,  September  14,  18 14,  Key  wrote  out  the  full  draft 
of  his  poem.  The  words  were  published  the  next  day 
in  the  Baltimore  American,  and  printed  in  handbill  form 
to  be  scattered  broadcast  over  the  city.  In  a  single  day 
the  song  sprang  into  popularity  and  brought  its  author 
lasting  fame.  It  was  set  to  the  old  tune  of  "Anacrepn 
in  Heaven, "  by  Ferdinand  Durang,  a  Baltimore  musician, 
and  sung  upon  the  stage  of  Holiday-Street  Theater  that 
same  evening. 

Francis  Scott  Key  died  January  11,  1843,  i^^  Baltimore, 
and  was  buried  in  Mount  Olivet  Cemetery,  Frederick, 
Maryland.  A  beautiful  marble  monument  crowned  with 
a  bronze  statue  now  marks  his  grave,  and  many  patriotic 
Americans  will  in  the  years  to  come^  make  pilgrimage  to 
this  spot,  to  do  honor  to  the  author  of  The  Star-spangled 
Banner. 

(The  most  authoritative  biography  of  Francis  Scott  Key  is  the 
monograph  by  F.  S.  Key-Smith,  published  by  the  Key-Smith  Com- 
pany, Washington,  D.C.,  191 1.  The  material  for  our  sketch  is 
drawn  largely  from  this  monograph.) 


THE  STAR-SPANGLED  BANNER 

O  say!  can  you  see,  by  the  dawn's  early  light, 
What  so  proudly  we  hailed,  at  the  twilight's  last 
gleaming? 
Whose  broad  stripes  and  bright  stars  through  the  perilous 
fight, 
O'er  the  ramparts  we  watched,  were  so  gallantly 
streaming; 
5  And  the  rocket's  red  glare,  the  bombs  bursting  in  air, 
Gave  proof  through  the  night  that  our  flag  was  still  there ; 
O  say,  does  that  Star-spangled  Banner  yet  wave 
O'er  the  land  of  the  free  and  the  home  of  the  brave? 

On  that  shore,  dimly  seen  through  the  mists  of  the  deep, 
10     Where  the  foe's  Jiaughty  host  in  dread  silence  reposes. 

What  is  that  which  the  breeze,  o'er  the  towering  steep, 
As  it  fitfully  blows,  now  conceals,  now  discloses? 

Now  it  catches  the  gleam  of  the  morning's  first  beam. 

In  full  glory  reflected  now  shines  in  the  stream : 
15  'Tis  the  Star-spangled  Banner;  O  long  may  it  wave 

O'er  the  land  of  the  free  and  the  home  of  the  brave! 

And  where  are  the  foes  who  so  vauntingly  swore 

That  the  havoc  of  war  and  the  battle's  confusion, 
A  home  and  a  country  should  leave  us  no  more : 
20     Their  blood  has  washed  out  their  foul  footsteps'  pollution ; 
No  refuge  could  save  the  hireling  and  slave 
From  the  terror  of  flight  or  the  gloom  of  the  grave; 
And  the  Star-spangled  Banner  in  triumph  doth  wave 
O'er  the  land  of  the  free  and  the  home  of  the  brave! 

[4] 


The  Star-spangled  Banner  5 

O  thus  be  it  ever,  when  freemen  shall  stand 

Between  their  loved  homes  and  war's  desolation; 
Blest  with  victory  and  peace,  may  the  heav'n-rescued  land 
Praise  the  Power  that  hath  made  and  preserved  us  a 
nation ! 
Then  conquer  we  must,  when  our  cause  it  is  just, 
And  this  be  our  motto,  "In  God  is  our  trust"; 
And  the  Star-spangled  Banner  in  triumph  shall  wave 
O'er  the  land  of  the  free  and  the  home  of  the  brave! 


JOHN  JAMES  LA  FOREST  AUDUBON 

Definite  dates  in  the  life  of  Audubon  frequently  are 
hopelessly  confused  or  altogether  wanting,  but  from  the 
brief  account  given  in  the  Beacon  Biographies  of  Eminent 
Americans  by  John  Burroughs,  that  distinguished  naturalist 
of  our  own  day,  we  may  cull  the  more  important  facts. 
John  James  La  Forest  Audubon  was  bom  in  Mandeville, 
Louisiana,  presumably  May  4,  1780.  The  family  shortly 
after  this  date  moved  to  an  estate  of  theirs  on  Santo 
Domingo  Island  in  the  British  West  Indies ;  but  soon  there 
arose  an  insurrection  of  the  slaves,  among  the  results  of 
which  were  the  death  of  the  mother  and  the  flight  of  the 
father  and  son  to  New  Orleans.  The  father,  taking  the 
boy  with  him,  returned  to  his  native  country,  France. 

About  1797,  after  several  years  of  study  in  French 
schools,  young  Audubon  returned  to  America  and  took 
up  his  residence  on  Mill  Grove  Farm,  an  estate  near 
Philadelphia  belonging  to  his  father.  It  was  while  living 
here  that  he  met  Lucy  Bakewell,  the  attractive  daughter 
of  one  of  his  neighbors,  who  later  became  his  devoted  and 
self-sacrificing  wife.  He  again  went  to  France,  about  1806, 
and  studied  for  perhaps  two  years,  taking  drawing  lessons 
from  the  celebrated  French  artist  Jacques  Louis  David. 
Returning  to  America,  he  tried  for  about  ten  years  to 
make  money  by  various  business  ventures  in  New  York, 
Philadelphia,  Louisville,  and  other  places,  but  his  heart 
was  always  in  the  woods  with  the  wild  things,  and  he 
himself  there  far  too  often  for  the  success  of  his  business. 
In  1 8 10  he  met  Alexander  Wilson,  the  famous  American 
ornithologist,  and  siu-prised  this  expert  by  the  number 
and  quality  of  the  bird  drawings  he  had  already  made. 

Audubon  had  now  spent  all  his  patrimony  in  his  un- 
fortunate business  enterprises,  and  was  forced  to  resort 
for  a  livelihood  to  his  skill  as  a  draftsman.  He  began 
painting  portraits  at  five  dollars  each,  and  on  the  income 
from  this  source  he  was  soon  able  to  support  his  family, 

[6] 


From  a  photograph  after  an  eugravmg 
JOHN  JAMES  LA  FOREST  AUDUBON 


John  James  La  Forest  Audubon  7 

now  in  Louisville,  Kentucky.  Later  his  bird  pictures  and 
his  skill  as  a  taxidermist  secured  for  him  a  position  in  a 
museum  in  Cincinnati.  He  supplemented  the  precarious 
stipend  received  from  the  musetim  by  taking  pupils  in 
drawing.  Finally  he  determined  on  an  extensive  trip,  to 
gather  more  material  for  his  collection  of  bird  paintings. 
On  a  flatboat  he  went  down  the  Ohio  River  to  New  Orleans. 
Here  he  earned  some  money  by  painting,  and  he  soon  felt 
able  to  send  for  his  family  to  join  him. 

Audubon  now  decided  to  try  to  publish  his  collection 
of  bird  drawings  as  Wilson  had  done  before  him.  He  met 
with  discouragement  in  America,  but  with  undaunted 
courage  and  great  faith  in  himself  he  went  to  England. 
There  he  was  well  received  by  the  most  celebrated  men 
of  the  day.  He  found  a  publisher  who  was  willing  to 
undertake  his  work  on  The  Birds  of  America,  and  he  set 
about  securing  subscribers  to  the  expensive  folios  of 
his  life-size  bird  pictures.  He  visited  Cambridge  and 
Oxford,  and  was  cordially  received  at  both  universities. 
He  then  went  over  to  France,  seeking  more  subscribers. 

In  1829  Audubon  returned  to  America  to  prepare  more 
material  for  his  great  American  Ornithology.  He  finally 
went  to  Bayou  Sara  in  Mississippi,  where  his  faithful  wife 
had  for  some  time  been  teaching,  to  earn  a  livelihood  for 
their  family,"  and  together  they  made  their  way  to  New 
York  and  then  to  England,  to  attend  to  the  publication  of 
his  drawings.  In  order  to  get  more  material  for  both  the 
folios  and  the  text  of  the  bird  biographies  he  was  prepar- 
ing to  accompany  the  pictures,  Audubon  again  returned 
to  America.  He  spent  the  winter  in  Florida,  studjdng 
plants,  mammals,  and  birds,  and  writing  many  sketches. 
In  the  following  summer,  about  1832,  he  went  into  Maine 
and  Labrador,  still  tracking  the  denizens  of  field,  forest, 
and  air.  In  the  autumn,  a  return  journey  through  the 
larger  cities  led  on  down  to  Charleston,  South  CaroHna, 
where  the  Audubon  family  spent  the  winter  of  1833-4. 
Then  came  another  visit  to  England,  and  in  1836  a  return 
to  America  for  more  exploring  and  sketching.  This  was 
about  the  time  of  his  famous  trip  into  Texas  to  study  the 
fauna  of  the  great  Southwest,  and  to  visit  General  Sam 
Houston,  President  of  the  Republic  of  Texas.     One  more 


8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

journey  to  England  was  his  last.  In  1840,  after  the 
publication  of  the  fifth  and  last  volume  of  his  bird  biog- 
raphies, he  returned  to  New  York. 

The  great  work  of  his  life  was  the  production  of  the 
elephant  folios,  more  than  three  feet  long  and  two  feet  wide, 
comprising  life-size  pictures  of  one  thousand  fifty-five 
birds,  ranging  from  the  humming  birds  of  the  South  to  the 
great  bald  eagles  of  the  North.  These  volumes — four  in 
all — originally  cost  each  subscriber  one  thousand  dollars, 
but  they  are  now  worth  four  thousand  or  more  a  set.  The 
text  accompanying  them  consisted  of  five  volimies  called 
American  Ornithological  Biography,  the  whole  work  being 
usually  referred  to  as  The  Birds  of  America,  The  last 
work  undertaken  by  Audubon  was  the  Quadrupeds  and 
Biography  of  American  Quadrupeds,  his  sons  John  and 
Victor  doing  a  large  part  of  the  work,  particularly  in  the 
second  and  third  of  the  three  volumes.  The  last  years 
of  the  great  naturalist  were  passed  in  "Minnie's  Land," 
the  home  which  he  had  purchased  on  the  Hudson  River 
just  above  New  York,  and  which  is  now  known  as  Audubon 
Park.  His  mind  began  to  fail  in  1847,  ^^^  ^^  died  on 
January  27,  1851. 

The  chief  literary  qualities  of  Audubon's  style  are 
vividness  of  description,  lively  imagination,  intense 
enthusiasm,  and  an •  ardent  love  for  his  subject.  These 
excellences  partially  atone  for  the  occasional  faults  in 
sentence  structure,  the  frequent  lapses  in  the  use  of 
pronouns,  and  the  numerous  instances  of  vagueness  and 
illogicality.  Audubon  was  perhaps  more  of  an  artist  than 
a  scientist  in  the  strict  modem  sense  of  the  latter  term; 
but  he  has  so  combined  the  literature  of  knowledge  with 
that  of  power  as  to  make  a  distinct  place  for  himself  in 
letters  and  in  science,  as  well  as  in  art.  The  selections 
chosen  here,  fairly,  if  not  adequately,  represent  the  salient 
qualities  of  his  unique  literary-scientific  productions. 

(The  authoritative  biography  of  this  noted  ornithologist  is 
Audubon  and  His  Journals  by  his  granddaughter  Maria  R. 
Audubon;  but  the  most  readable  and  easily  accessible  short  life 
is  that  by  John  Burroughs  in  the  Beacon  Biographies  series.) 


THE   MOCKING-BIRD 

It  is  where  the  great  magnoHa  shoots  up  its  majestic 
trunk,  crowned  with  evergreen  leaves,  and  decorated  with 
a  thousand  beautiful  flowers  that  perfume  the  air  around ; 
where  the  forests  and  fields  are  adorned  with  blossoms 
of  every  hue;  where  the  golden  orange  ornaments  the  s 
gardens  and  the  groves;  where  bignonias  of  various  kinds 
interlace  their  climbing  stems  around  the  white-flowered 
stuartia,  and  mounting  still  higher,  cover  the  summits  of 
the  lofty  trees  around,  accompanied  with  innumerable 
vines  that  here  and  there  festoon  the  dense  foliage  of  the  lo 
magnificent  woods,  lending  to  the  vernal  breeze  a  slight 
portion  of  the  perfume  of  their  clustered  flowers ;  where  a 
genial  warmth  seldom  forsakes  the  atmosphere;  where 
berries  and  fruits  of  all  descriptions  are  met  with  at  every 
step; — in  a  word,  kind  reader,  it  is  where  Nature  seems  to  15 
have  paused,  as  she  passed  over  the  earth,  and  opening 
her  stores,  to  have  strewed  with  unsparing  hand  the  diver- 
sified seeds  from  which  have  sprung  all  the  beautiful  and 
splendid  forms  which  I  should  in  vain  attempt  to  describe, 
that  the  mocking-bird  should  have  fixed  its  abode,  there  20 
only  that  its  wondrous  song  should  be  heard. 

But  where  is  that  favoured  land?  It  is  in  that  great 
continent  to  whose  distant  shores  Europe  has  sent  forth 
her  adventurous  sons,  to  wrest  for  themselves  a  habita- 
tion from  the  wild  inhabitants  of  the  forest,  and  to  convert  25 
the  neglected  soil  into  fields  of  exuberant  fertility.  It  is, 
reader,  in  Louisiana  that  these  bounties  of  nature  are  in 
the  greatest  perfection.  It  is  there  that  you  should  listen 
to  the  love-song  of  the  mocking-bird,  as  I  at  this  moment 

[P] 


10  Southern  Literary  Readings 

80  do.  See  how  he  flies  round  his  mate,  with  motions  as  light 
as  those  of  the  butterfly !  His  tail  is  widely  expanded,  he 
mounts  in  the  air  to  a  small  distance,  describes  a  circle, 
and,  again  alighting,  approaches  his  beloved  one,  his  eyes 
gleaming  with  delight,  for  she  has  already  promised  to  be 

35  his  and  his  only.  His  beautiful  wings  are  gently  raised,  he 
bows  to  his  love,  and  again  bouncing  upwards,  opens  his 
bill,  and  pours  forth  his  melody,  full  of  exultation  at  the 
conquest  which  he  has  made. 

They  are  not  the  soft  sounds  of  the  flute  or  the  hautboy 

40  that  I  hear,  but  the  sweeter  notes  of  Nature's  own  music. 
The  mellowness  of  the  song,  the  varied  modulations  and 
gradations,  the  extent  of  its  compass,  the  great  brilliancy 
of  execution,  are  unrivalled.  There  is  probably  no  bird 
in  the  world  that  possesses  all  the  musical  qualifications 

45  of  this  king  of  song,  who  has  derived  all  from  Nature's  self. 
Yes,  reader,  all! 

No  sooner  has  he  again  alighted  near  his  mate  than,  as 
if  his  breast  was  about  to  be  rent  with  delight,  he  again 
pours  forth  his  notel  with  more  softness  and  richness  than 

50  before.  He  now  soars  higher,  glancing  around  with  a 
vigilant  eye,  to  assure  himself  that  none  has  witnessed  his 
bliss.  When  these  love-scenes  are  over,  he  dances  through 
the  air,  full  of  animation  and  delight,  and,  as  if  to  convince 
his  lovely  mate  that  to  enrich  her  hopes  he  has  much  more 

55  love  in  store,  he  that  moment  begins  anew,  and  imitates 
all  the  notes  which  Nature  has  imparted  to  the  other  song- 
sters of  the  grove. 

For  awhile,  each  long  day  and  pleasant  night  are  thus 
spent.     A  nest  is  to  be  prepared,  and  the  choice  of  a  place 

60  in  which  to  lay  it  is  to  become  a  matter  of  mutual  consid- 
eration. The  orange,  the  fig,  the  pear-tree  of  the  gardens 
are  inspected;  the  thick  briar  patches  are  also  visited. 
They  appear  all  so  well  suited  for  the  purpose  in  view,  and 


The  Mocking-Bird  ii 

so  well  do  the  birds  know  that  man  is  not  their  most 
dangerous  enemy,   that,  instead   of   retiring  from   him,  es 
they  at  length  fix  their  abode  in  his  vicinity,  perhaps  in  the 
nearest  tree  to  his  window.     Dried  twigs,  leaves,  grasses, 
cotton,  flax,  and  other  substances,  are  picked  up,  carried 
to  a  forked  branch,  and  there  arranged.     Five  eggs  are 
deposited  in  due  tirae,  when  the  male,  having  little  more  70 
to  do  than  to  sing  his  mate  to  repose,  attunes  his  pipe 
anew.     Every  now  and  then  he  spies  an  insect  on  the 
ground,  the  taste  of  which  he  is  sure  will  please  his  be- 
loved one.     He  drops  upon  it,  takes  it  in  his  bill,  beats  it 
against  the  earth,  and  flies  to  the  nest  to  feed  and  receive  75 
the  warm  thanks  of  his  devoted  female. 

When  a  fortnight  has  elapsed,  the  young  brood  demand 
all  their  care  and  attention.  No  cat,  no  vile  snake,  no 
dreaded  hawk,  is  likely  to  visit  their  habitation.  Indeed 
the  inmates  of  the  next  house  have  by  this  time  become  so 
quite  attached  to  the  lovely  pair  of  mocking-birds,  and 
take  pleasure  in  contributing  to  their  safety.  The 
dew-berries  from  the  fields,  and  many  kinds  of  fruit  from 
the  gardens,  mixed  with  insects,  supply  the  young  as  well 
as  the  parents  with  food.  The  brood  is  soon  seen  emerg-  ss 
ing  from  the  nest,  and  in  another  fortnight,  being  now 
able  to  fly  with  vigour,  and  to  provide  for  themselves,  they 
leave  the  parent  birds,  as  many  other  species  do. 

In  winter,  nearly  all  the  mocking-birds  approach  the 
farm-houses  and  plantations,  living  about  the  gardens  or  90 
outhouses.  They  are  then  frequently  seen  on  the  roofs, 
and  perched  on  the  chimney-tops ;  yet  they  always  appear 
full  of  animation.  Whilst  searching  for  food  on  the  ground, 
their  motions  are  light  and  elegant,  and  they  frequently 
open  their  wings  as  butterflies  do  when  basking  in  the  sun,  95 
moving  a  step  or  two,  and  again  throwing  out  their  wings. 


12  Southern  Literary  Readings 

When  the  weather  is  mild,  the  old  males  are  heard  singing 
with  as  much  spirit  as  during  the  spring  or  summer,  while 
the  younger  birds  are  busily  engaged  in  practising,  pre- 

100  paratory  to  the  love  season.  They  seldom  resort  to  the 
interior  of  the  forest  either  during  the  day  or  by  night, 
but  usually  roost  among  the  foliage  of  evergreens,  in  the 
immediate  vicinity  of  houses  in  Louisiana,  although  in  the 
Eastern  States  they  prefer  low  fir  trees. 

105  The  flight  of  the  mocking-bird  is  performed  by  short 
jerks  of  the  body  and  wings,  at  every  one  of  which  a  strong 
twitching  motion  of  the  tail  is  perceived.  This  motion  is 
still  more  apparent  while  the  bird  is  walking,  when  it  opens 
its  tail  like  a  fan  and  instantly   closes  it  again.    .    .    . 

110  When  travelling,  this  flight  is  only  a  little  prolonged,  as  the 
bird  goes  from  tree  to  tree,  or  at  most  across  a  field, 
scarcely,  if  ever,  rising  higher  than  the  top  of  the  forest. 
During  this  migration,  it  generally  resorts  to  the  highest 
parts  of  the  woods  near  water-courses,  utters  its  usual 

115  mournful  note,  and  roosts  in  these  places.  It  travels 
mostly  by  day. 

Few  hawks  attack  the  mocking-birds,  as  on  their 
approach,  however  sudden  it  may  be,  they  are  always 
ready   not   only   to    defend   themselves   vigorously   and 

120  with  undaunted  courage,  but  to  meet  the  aggressor  half 
way,  and  force  him  to  abandon  his  intention.  The  only 
hawk  that  occasionally  surprises  the  mocking-bird  is  the 
Falco  Starlen,  which  flies  low  with  great  swiftness,  and 
carries   the   bird   off   without   any    apparent    stoppage. 

125  Should  it  happen  that  the  ruffian  misses  his  prey,  the  mock- 
ing-bird in  turn  becomes  the  assailant,  and  pvirsues  the 
hawk  with  great  courage,  calling  in  the  mean  time  all 
the  birds  of  its  species  to  its  assistance;  and  although 
it  cannot  overtake  the  marauder,  the  alarm  created  by 

130  their  cries,  which  are  propagated  in  succession  among  all 


Tlie  Ruby-throated  Humming-Bird  ij 

the  birds  in  the  vicinity,  like  the  watchwords  of  sentinels 
on  duty,  prevents  him  from  succeeding  in  his  attempts. 
The  musical  powers  of  this  bird  have  often  been  taken 
notice  of  by  European  natiiralists,  and  persons  who  find 
pleasure  in  listening  to  the  song  of  different  birds  whilst  135 
in  confinement  or  at  large.  Some  of  these  persons  have 
described  the  notes  of  the  Nightingale  as  occasionally 
fully  equal  to  those  of  our  bird.  I  have  frequently  heard 
both  species,  in  confinement  and  in  the  wild  state,  and 
without  prejudice  have  no  hesitation  in  pronouncing  the  140 
notes  of  the  European  philomel  equal  to  those  of  a  sou- 
brette  of  taste,  which,  could  she  study  under  a  Mozart, 
might  perhaps  in  time  become  very  interesting  in  her 
way.  But  to  compare  her  essays  to  the  finished  talent 
of  the  mocking-bird  is,  in  my  opinion,  quite  absurd.  145 


THE   RUBY-THROATED   HUMMING-BIRD 

Where  is  the  person  who,  on  seeing  this  lovely  little 
creature  moving  on  humming  winglets  through  the  air, 
suspended  as  if  by  magic  in  it,  flitting  from  one  flower  to 
another,  with  motions  as  graceful  as  they  are  light  and 
airy,  pursuing  its  course  over  our  extensive  continent,  and  5 
yielding  new  delights  wherever  it  is  seen; — where  is  the 
person,  I  ask  of  you,  kind  reader,  who,  on  observing  this 
glittering  fragment  of  the  rainbow,  would  not  pause,  admire, 
and  instantly  turn  his  mind  with  reverence  toward  the 
Almighty  Creator,  the  wonders  of  whose  hand  we  at  every  10 
step  discover,  and  of  whose  sublime  conceptions  we  every- 
where observe  the  manifestations  in  his  admirable  system 
of  creation?  There  breathes  not  such  a  person;  so  kindly 
have  we  all  been  blessed  with  that  intuitive  and  noble 
feeling — admiration !  le 


14  Southern  Literary  Readings 

No  sooner  has  the  returning  sim  again  introduced  the 
vernal  season,  and  caused  millions  of  plants  to  expand  their 
leaves  and  blossoms  to  his  genial  beams,  than  the  little 
humming-bird  is  seen  advancing  on  fairy   wings,  care- 

20  fully  visiting  every  opening  flower-cup,  and,  like  a  curious 
florist,  removing  from  each  the  injurious  insects  that  other- 
wise would  ere  long  cause  their  beauteous  petals  to  droop 
and  decay.  Poised  in  the  air,  it  is  observed  peeping 
cautiously,  and  with  sparkling  eye,  into  their  innermost 

25  recesses,  whilst  the  ethereal  motions  of  its  pinions,  so 
rapid  and  so  light,  appear  to  fan  and  cool  the  flower, 
without  injuring  its  fragile  texture,  and  produce  a  delight- 
ful murmuring  sound,  well  adapted  for  lulling  the  insects 
to  repose.    Then  is  the  moment  for  the  humming-bird 

30  to  secure  them.  Its  long  delicate  bill  enters  the  cup  of  the 
flower,  and  the  protruded  double-tubed  tongue,  delicately 
sensible,  and  imbued  with  a  glutinous  saliva,  touches  each 
insect  in  succession,  and  draws  it  from  its  lurking  place, 
to  be  instantly  swallowed.    All  this  is  done  in  a  moment, 

35  and  the  bird,  as  it  leaves  the  flower,  sips  so  small  a  portion 

of  its  liquid  honey,  that  the  theft,  we  may  suppose,  is 

looked  upon  with  a  grateful  feeling  by  the  flower,  which  is 

thus  kindly  relieved  from  the  attacks  of  her  destroyers. 

The  prairies,  the  fields,  the  orchards  and  gardens,  nay, 

40  the  deepest  shades  of  the  forests,  are  all  visited  in  their 
turn,  and  everywhere  the  little  bird  meets  with  pleasure 
and  with  food.  Its  gorgeous  throat  in  beauty  and  bril- 
liancy baflies  all  competition.  Now  it  glows  with  a  fiery 
hue,  and  again  it  is  changed  to  the  deepest  velvety  black. 

45  The  upper  parts  of  its  delicate  body  are  of  resplendent 
changing  green;  and  it  throws  itself  through  the  air  with 
a  swiftness  and  vivacity  hardly  conceivable.  It  moves 
from  one  flower  to  another  like  a  gleam  of  light,  upwards, 
downwards,  to  the  right  and  to  the  left.     In  this  manner 


The  Ruby-throated  Humming-Bird  15 

it  searches  the  extreme  northern  portions  of  our  country,  so 
following  with  great  precaution  the  advances  of  the  sea- 
son, and  retreats  with  equal  care  at  the  approach  of 
autumn. 

I  wish  it  were  in  my  power  at  this  moment  to  impart  to 
you,  kind  reader,  the  pleastires  which  I  have  felt  whilst  55 
watching  the  movements,  and  viewing  the  manifestations 
of  feelings  displayed  by  a  single  pair  of  these  most  favourite 
little  creatures,  when  engaged  in  the  demonstration  of  their 
love  to  each  other: — how  the  male  swells  his  plumage  and 
throat,  and  dancing  on  the  wing,  whirls  around  the  deli-  eo 
cafe  female;  how  quickly  he  dives  towards  a  flower,  and 
returns  with  a  loaded  bill,  which  he  offers  to  her  to  whom 
alone  he  feels  desirous  of  being  united;  how  full  of  ecstasy 
he  seems  to  be  when  his  caresses  are  kindly  received;  how 
his  Httle  wings  fan  her,  as  they  fan  the  flowers,  and  he  es 
transfers  to  her  bill  the  insect  and  the  honey  which  he  has 
procured  with  a  view  to  please  her;  how  these  attentions 
are  received  with  apparent  satisfaction;  .  .  .  how,  then, 
the  courage  and  care  of  the  male  are  redoubled ;  how  he  even 
dares  to  give  chase  to  the  tyrant  fly-catcher,  and  hurries  70 
the  blue-bird  and  the  martin  to  their  boxes ;  and  how,  on 
sounding  pinions,  he  joyously  returns  to  the  side  of  his 
lovely  mate.     Reader,  all  these  proofs  of  the  sincerity, 
fidelity,  and  courage,  with  which  the  male  assures  his  mate 
of  the  care  he  will  take  of  her  while  [she  is]  sitting  on  75 
her  nest,  may  be  seen,  and  have  been  seen,  but  cannot 
be  portrayed  or  described. 

Could  you,  kind  reader,  cast  a  momentary  glance  on  the 
nest  of  the  humming-bird,  and  see,  as  I  have  seen,  the 
newly-hatched  pair  of  young,  Httle  larger  than  humble-  so 
bees,  naked,  blind,  and  so  feeble  as  scarcely  to  be  able  to 
raise  their  little  bills  to  receive  food  from  the  parents ;  and 
could  you  see  those  parents,  full  of  anxiety  and  fear,  passing 


1 6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

and  repassing  within  a  few  inches  of  your  face,  alighting 
85  on  a  twig  not  more  than  a  yard  from  your  body,  waiting 
the  result  of  your  unwelcome  visit  in  a  state  of  the  utmost 
despair, — you  could  not  fail  to  be  impressed  with  the 
deepest  pangs  which  parental  affection  feels  on  the  unex- 
pected death  of  a  cherished  child.  Then  how  pleasing  is  it, 
90  on  your  leaving  the  spot,  to  see  the  returning  hope  of  the 
parents,  when,  after  examining  the  nest,  they  find  their 
nurslings  untouched !  You  might  then  judge  how  pleasing 
it  is  to  a  mother  of  another  kind,  to  hear  the  physician  who 
has  attended  her  sick  child  assure  her  that  the  crisis  is 
95  over,  and  that  her  babe  is  saved.  These  are  the  scenes 
best  fitted  to  enable  us  to  partake  of  sorrow  and  joy,  and 
to  determine  every  one  who  views  them  to  make  it  his 
study  to  contribute  to  the  happiness  of  others,  and  to 
refrain  from  wantonly  or  maliciously  giving  them  pain. 


RICHARD  HENRY  WILDE 

Though  bom  in  Dublin,  Ireland,  in  1789,  and  brought 
to  America  when  he  was  a  lad  about  eight  years  of  age, 
Richard  Henry  Wilde  always  has  been  considered  an 
American  and  a  Southerner.  Baltimore  was  his  home 
for  the  first  few  years  after  his  arrival  in  this  country, 
but  it  was  in  Augusta,  Georgia,  that  he  began  life  on  his 
own  responsibility.  On  the  death  of  his  father  in  1802 
he  went  alone  to  this  city,  where  he  secured  work  as  a 
drygoods  clerk.  Later  he  took  up  the  study  of  law  and 
at  the  age  of  twenty  years  he  was  admitted  to  the  bar. 
Soon  afterward  he  entered  politics,  and  before  he  was 
twenty-five  he  was  elected  to  several  state  offices.  He  had 
barely  reached  the  constitutional  age  for  admission  into  the 
National  House  of  Representatives — namely,  twenty-five 
years — when  he  was  sent  to  Congress.  He  failed  of  reelec- 
tion in  18 1 6,  however,  and  retired  to  the  private  practice 
of  his  profession.  He  served  again  in  1828,  retaining 
his  seat  for  eight  years;  but  having  lost  his  prestige  in 
politics  by  opposing  Jackson,  he  failed  of  reelection  in 
1834,  and  decided  to  go  abroad  for  recreation  and  study. 

He  spent  most  of  his  time  in  Florence,  collecting  material 
for  works  on  thclives  of  the  Italian  poets  Tasso  and  Dante. 
He  published  a  two-volume  life  of  Tasso  in  1842,  but  he 
never  completed  his  proposed  life  of  Dante.  Poetry 
always  had  been  to  him  a  source  of  mental  pleasure 
and  activity,  and  for  years  he  had  been  busy  writing 
original  poems  and  translating  many  foreign  ones,  par- 
ticularly from  the  works  of  his  favorite  Italian  poets. 
The  most  famous  of  all  his  works  is  the  lyric  found  in  an 
unfinished  epic  poem  dealing  with  incidents  of  the  Semi- 
nole War  in  Florida.  It  is  variously  known  as  Stanzas, 
Lament  of  the  Captive,  or,  from  its  first  line,  "My  life 
is  like  the  summer  rose. " 

On  his  return  to  America,  Wilde  settled  in  New  Orleans, 
to  engage  in  the  practice  of  his  profession.     In  1842  he  was 

2  [17] 


i8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

made  professor  of  Constitutional  Law  in  the  University 
of  Louisiana,  now  Tulane  University,  and  he  continued 
to  practice  and  lecture  until  his  death,  which  occurred 
September  lo,  1847. 


LAMENT  OF  THE  CAPTIVE 

My  life  is  like  the  simimer  rose, 
That  opens  to  the  morning  sky ; 

And  ere  the  shades  of  evening  close, 
Is  scattered  on  the  ground — to  die : 

Yet,  on  that  rose's  humble  bed 

The  softest  dews  of  night  are  shed ; 
As  if  she  wept  such  waste  to  see : 
But  none  shall  drop  a  tear  for  me ! 

My  life  is  like  the  autumn  leaf, 

That  trembles  in  the  moon's  pale  ray; 

Its  hold  ifi  frail,  its  date  is  brief — 
Restless,  and  soon  to  pass  away: 

Yet,  when  that  leaf  shall  fall  and  fade, 

The  parent  tree  will  mourn  its  shade ; 
The  wind  bewail  the  leafless  tree : 
But  none  shall  breathe  a  sigh  for  me ! 

My  life  is  like  the  print,  which  feet 
Have  left  on  Tampa's  desert  strand ; 

•Soon  as  the  rising  tide  shall  beat. 

Their  track  will  vanish  from  the  sand : 

Yet,  as  if  grieving  to  efface 

All  vestige  of  the  human  race, 

On  that  lone  shore  loud  moans  the  sea : 
But  none  shall  thus  lament  for  me ! 


WILLIAM   GILMORE  SIMMS 

Aside  from  Edgar  Allan  Poe,  the  most  versatile  and 
prolific  as  well  as  the  most  influential  man  in  Southern 
literature  before  the  Civil  War  was  William  Gilmore  Simms. 
He  was  bom  in  Charleston,  South  Carolina,  April  17,  1806. 
His  mother  died  when  he  was  about  two  years  old,  and 
his  father,  almost  crazed  by  sorrow  and  business  reverses, 
wandered  away  from  home,  leaving  the  boy  to  be  brought 
up  by  his  maternal  grandmother. 

The  family  was  now  living  in  poverty,  and  young 
Simms  received  only  a  meager  scholastic  training  in 
the  Charleston  schools.  But  he  educated  himself  by 
wide  reading  and  developed  his  talents  by  covering  reams 
of  paper  with  his  rimes,  war  stories,  and  other  kinds  of 
writing,  and  by  studying  life  in  the  hard  school  of  daily 
experience  among  men.  For  a  time  the  boy  was  appren- 
ticed to  a  druggist,  but  we  find  him  at  the  age  of  eighteen 
years  beginning  the  study  of  law.  Law  was  not  to  be 
his  life  work,  however,  for  he  cared  more  for  writing 
poetry,  book  reviews,  and  romances  than  he  did  for 
arguing  cases  before  courts  and  juries. 

In  1826  he  married  Miss  Anna  M.  Giles,  of  Charleston, 
and  the  year  following  published  his  first  volimie  of 
lyric  poetry.  About  this  time  he  became  editor  of  the 
Charleston  City  Gazette,  and  entered  upon  that  career 
of  journalism  and  creative  writing  which  was  to  cease 
only  with  his  death  in  1870.  He  began  to  produce  his 
long  line  of  romances  about  1833,  his  first  notable  book 
being  Guy  Rivers:  a  Tale  of  Georgia,  published  in  New 
York  in  1834.  In  1835  this  was  followed  by  The  Yemasee: 
a  Romance  of  South  Carolina,  the  most  popular  book  that 
Simms  ever  wrote.  The  Partisan:  a  Tale  of  the  Revolution, 
full  of  lively  action  and  romantic  adventure,  stands  as  a 
close  second  to  The  Yemasee  in  popularity,  and  is  a  book 
to  thrill  and  delight  the  heart  of  every  normal  boy. 

It    is   impossible   here   to  follow  Simms  through  all 


20  Southern  Literary  Readings 

his  literary,  political,  and  military  career.  Suffice  it  to 
say  that  he  was  a  full-blooded  and  warm-hearted  South- 
erner, who  took  part  in  every  conflict  that  his  section 
passed  through.  He  published  nearly  a  hundred  books, 
and  tried  his  hand  at  almost  every  conceivable  kind  of 
writing.  In  fact,  he  wrote  too  much  and  too  rapidly 
to  give  his  work  that  polish  and  finish  of  style  essential 
to  literary  masterpieces.  He  had  a  fertile  imagination 
and  could  turn  out  hundreds  of  pages  of  manuscript 
in  a  few  hours.  He  rarely  corrected  or  revised  his  first 
drafts,  and  hence  his  works  are  full  of  faults  due  to  haste 
and  over-confidence.  But  under  the  heat  of  imagination 
he  could  write  wonderfully  interesting  tales;  and  his 
conceptions  of  character,  his  descriptions  of  nature,  and 
his  intensely  dramatic  situations  are  not  altogether 
lacking  in  truth,  verisimilitude,  and  power. 

In  1836,  his  wife  having  died,  Simms  married  for  the 
second  time,  the  lady  who  now  became  his  wife  being 
Miss  Chevilette  Roach,  an  heiress.  At  their  beautifid 
home  called  "Woodlands'*  near  Midway,  South  Carolina, 
they  lived  in  true  Southern  fashion,  constantly  enter- 
taining their  many  friends  and  distinguished  visitors. 

Simms  has  suffered  from  neglect  in  recent  years,  but 
he  will  always  hold  &,  large  place  in  the  history  of  Southern 
literature,  even  if  his  works  are  little  read  to-day.  He 
has  done  good  and  valiant  service  in  preserving  the  his- 
tory and  scenery  of  his  state  and  of  the  nation,  and  the 
influence  of  his  life  will  not  soon  pass  away.  He  was 
perhaps  greater  as  a  man  than  as  a  writer,  and  like 
Samuel  Johnson  in  English  literature  he  will,  as  the  years 
pass  by,  come  to  be  more  valued  as  a  true  representative 
of  his  people  than  as  an  author. 

He  wrote  a  great  deal  of  mediocre  poetry,  publishing 
in  all  eighteen  volumes  of  verse ;  the  mass  of  his  poetical 
compositions  will  be  consigned  to  oblivion,  but  a  few  of 
his  better  poems  have  lasted  and  The  Swamp  Fox,  The 
Lost  Pleiad,  and  The  Grape-vine  Swing  will  long  keep  his 
name  fresh  in  the  minds  of  readers  of  American  poetry. 

(W.  P.  Trent's  Life  of  William  Gilmore  Simms  is  the  standard 
biography  of  this  author.) 


THE   PARTISANS 
From  "The  Partisan:  A  Romance  of  the  Revolution" 

We  are  again  in  the  precincts  of  the  Ashley.  These  old 
woods  about  Dorchester  deserve  to  be  famous.  There  is 
not  a  wagon  track,  not  a  defile,  not  a  clearing,  not  a  traverse 
of  these  plains,  which  has  not  been  consecrated  by  the 
strife  for  liberty;  the  close  strife — the  desperate  struggle;  a 
the  contest,  unrelaxing,  unyielding  to  the  last,  save  only 
with  death  or  conquest.  These  old  trees  have  looked 
down  upon  blood  and  battles ;  the  thick  array  and  the  soli- 
tary combat  between  single  foes,  needing  no  other  wit- 
nesses. What  tales  might  they  not  tell  us !  The  sands  lo 
have  drunk  deeply  of  holy  and  hallowed  blood — blood 
that  gave  them  value  and  a  name,  and  made  for  them  a 
place  in  all  hiiman  recollection.  The  grass  here  has  been 
beaten  down,  in  successive  seasons,  by  heavy  feet — by 
conflicting  horsemen — by  driving  and  recoiling  artillery,  is 
Its  deep  green  has  been  dyed  with  a  yet  deeper  and  a  darker 
stain — the  outpourings  of  the  invader's  veins,  mingling 
with  the  generous  streams  flowing  from  bosoms  that  had 
but  one  hope,  but  one  purpose — the  unpolluted  freedom 
and  security  of  home;  the  purity  of  the  threshold,  the  20 
sweet  repose  of  the  domestic  hearth  from  the  intrusion  of 
hostile  feet; — the  only  objects  for  which  men  may  brave 
the  stormy  and  the  brutal  strife,  and  still  keep  the  "white- 
ness .of  their  souls." 

The  Carolinian  well  knows  these  hallowed  places;  for  25 
every  acre  has  its  tradition  in  this   neighbourhood.     He 
rides  beneath  the  thick  oaks,  whose  branches  have  covered 
regiments,  and  looks  up  to  them  with  heedful  veneration. 

[21] 


22  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Well  he  remembers  the  old  defile  at  the  entrance  just  above 

80  Dorchester  village,  where  a  red  clay  hill  rises  abruptly, 
breaking  pleasantly  the  dead  level  of  country  all  around  it. 
The  rugged  limbs  and  trunk  of  a  huge  oak,  which  hung 
above  its  brow  and  has  been  but  recently  overthrown, 
was  itself  an  historian.     It  was  notorious  in  tradition  as 

35 the  "gallows  oak";  its  limbs  being  employed  by  both 
parties,  as  they  severally  obtained  the  ascendency,  for 
the  purposes  of  summary  execution.  Famous,  indeed,  was 
all  the  partisan  warfare  in  this  neighbourhood,  from  the 
time  of  its  commencement,  with  our  story,  in  1780,  to 

40  the  day  when,  hopeless  of  their  object,  the  troops  of  the 
invader  withdrew  to  their  crowded  vessels,  flying  from  the 
land  they  had  vainly  struggled  to  subdue.  You  should 
hear  the  old  housewives  dilate  upon  these  transactions. 
You  should  hear  them  paint  the  disasters,  the  depression 

45  of  the  Carolinians !  how  their  chief  city  was  besieged  and 
taken;  their  little  army  dispersed  or  cut  to  pieces;  and 
how  the  invader  marched  over  the  country,  and  called  it 
his.  Anon  they  would  show  you  the  little  gathering  in 
the  swamp — the  small  scouting  squad  timidly  stealing  forth 

50  into  the  plain,  and  contenting  itself  with  cutting  off  a 
foraging  party  or  a  baggage  wagon,  or  rescuing  a  dis- 
consolate group  of  captives  on  their  way  to  the  city  and 
the  prison  ships.  Soon,  emboldened  by  success,  the  little 
squad, is  increased  by  numbers,  and  aims  at  larger  game. 

55  Under  some  such  leader  as  Colonel  Washington,  you  should 
see  them,  anon,  well  mounted,  coursing  along  the  Ashley 
river  road,  by  the  peep  of  day,  well  skilled  in  the  manage- 
ment of  their  steeds,  whose  high  necks  beautifully,  arch 
under  the  curb,  while,  in  obedience  to  the  rider's  will,  they 

60  plunge  fearlessly  through  brake  and  through  brier,  over 
the  fallen  tree,  and  into  the  suspicious  water.  Heedless 
of  all  things  but  the  proper  achievement  of  their  bold 


The  Partisans  23 

adventure,  the  warriors  go  onward,  while  the  broad-swords 
flash  in  the  sunlight,  and  the  trumpet  cheers  them  with  a 
tone  of  victory.  65 

And  goodHer  still  is  the  sight,  when,  turning  the  narrow 
lane,  thick-fringed  with  the  scrubby  oak  and  the  pleasant 
myrtle,  you  behold  them  come  suddenly  to  the  encounter 
with  the  hostile  invaders.  How  they  hurrah,  and  rush  to 
the  charge  with  a  mad  emotion  that  the  steed  partakes —  70 
his  ears  erect,  and  his  nostrils  distended,  while  his  eyeballs 
start  forward,  and  grow  red  with  the  straining  effort; 
then, — how  the  riders  bear  down  all  before  them,  and  with 
swords  shooting  out  from  their  cheeks,  make  nothing  of 
the  upraised  bayonets  and  pointed  spear,  but  striking  in,  75 
flank  and  front,  carry  confusion  wherever  they  go — ^while 
the  hot  sands  drink  in  the  life-blood  of  friend  and  foe, 
streaming  through  a  thousand  wounds. 

Hear  them  tell  of  these,  and  of  the  ''Game  Cock," 
Simiter;  how,  always  ready  for  fight,  with  a  valour  which  so 
was  too  frequently  rashness,  he  would  rush  into  the 
hostile  ranks,  and,  with  his  powerful  frame  and  sweeping 
sabre,  would  single  out  for  inveterate  strife  his  own 
particular  enemy. 

Then,  of  the  subtle  "Swamp  Fox,"  Marion,  who,  slen-ss 
der  of  form,  and  having  but  little  confidence  in  his  own 
physical  prowess,  was  never  seen  to  use  his  sword  in  battle; 
gaining  by  stratagem  and  unexpected  enterprise  those 
advantages  which  his  usual  inferiority  of  force  would 
never  have  permitted  him  to  gain  otherwise.     They  will  90 
tell  you  of  his  conduct  and  his  coolness;  of  his  ability, 
with  small  means,  to  consimimate  leading  objects — the 
best  proof  of  military  talent;  and  of  his  wonderful  com- 
mand of  his  men — how  they  would  do  his  will,  though  it 
led  to  the  most  perilous  adventure,  with  as  much  alacrity  95 
as  if  they  were  going  to  a  banquet;  of  the  men  themselves, 


24-  Southern  Literary  Readings 

though  in  rags,  almost  starving,  and  exposed  to  all  changes 
of  the  weather,  how  cheerfully,  in  the  fastness  of  the  swamp, 
they  would  sing  their  rude  song  about  the  capacity  of 

100  their  leader  and  their  devotion  to  his  person,  in  some 
such  strain  as  that  which  follows,  and  which  we  owe  to 
brave  and  generous  George  Dennison! 

George  Dennison  was  himself  a  follower  of  Marion.     He 
belonged  to  the  race  of  troubadours,  though  living  too  late 

105  for  the  sort  of  life  which  they  enjoyed  and  for  the  fame 
which  crowned  their  equally  eccentric  lives  and  ballads. 
He  sang  for  the  partisans,  the  gallant  feat  even  in  the 
moment  when  performed,  and  taught  to  the  hearts  of  a 
rude  cavalry  the  lurking  hope  of  remembrance  in  song 

no  when  they  themselves  should  never  hear.  In  the  deep 
thickets  of  the  wood,  in  the  wild  recesses  of  the  swamp, 
when  the  day's  march  was  over,  when  the  sharp  passage 
at  arms  was  ended,  whether  in  flight  or  victory, — his 
ballads,  mostly  extempore,  cheered  the  dull  hours  and  the 

115  drowsy  bivouac,  while  his  rough  but  martial  lyrics  inspired 
the  audacious  charge,  and  prompted  the  bold  enterprise 
and  the  emulous  achievement.  Ah!  brave  and  generous 
George  Dennison,  we  shall  borrow  of  the  songs  of  thy 
making.    We  shall  prolong  for  other  ears  the  echoes  of  thy 

120  lively  lays,  and  the  legends  which  we  owe  to  thee,  who  art 
thyself  unknown.  For  verily,  thou  hadst  the  heart  and 
courage  of  a  true  and  gallant  partisan;  and  thou  couldst 
sing  with  the  natural  voice  of  a  warm  and  passionate  poet ; 
and  thou  couldst  share  the  sufferings,  and  soothe  the 

125  sorrows  of  a  comrade,  with  the  loyalty  of  a  knightly 
friendship;  and  thou  couldst  love  with  all  the  cender 
sweetness  that  lies  in  the  heart  of  woman;  and  thou 
couldst  cling  in  fight  to  thy  enemy,  with  the  anger  of  a 
loving  hate;   and  thou  didst  not  love  life  too  much  for 

130  honor;  and  thou  didst  not  fear  death  so  much  but  thou 


The  Swamp  Fox  25 

couldst  brave  him  with  a  laugh  and  a  song,  even  in  the 
crossing  of  the  spears!  Verily,  George  Dennison,  I  will 
remember  thee,  and  preserve  thy  rude  ballads,  made  by 
thee  for  thy  comrades'  ears  in  the  swamps  of  Carolina,  so 
that  other  ears  shall  hear  them,  who  knew  thee  not.  135 
Thou  shalt  tell  them  now,  of  the  life  led  by  thee  and  thy 
comrades  for  long  seasons,  when  thou  hast  followed  the 
fortunes  of  the  famous  Swamp  Fox: 


THE  SWAMP  FOX 

I 
We  follow  where  the  Swamp  Fox  guides, 

His  friends  and  merry  men  are  we; 
And  when  the  troop  of  Tarleton  rides, 

We  burrow  in  the  cypress  tree. 
The  turfy  hammock  is  our  bed. 

Our  home  is  in  the  red-deer's  den, 
Our  roof,  the  tree-top  overhead, 

For  we  are  wild  and  hunted  men. 

II 

We  fly  by  day,  and  shun  its  Hght, 

But,  prompt  to  strike  the  sudden  blow, 
We  mount,  and  start  with  early  night. 

And  through  the  forest  track  our  foe. 
And  soon  he  hears  our  chargers  leap, 

The  flashing  sabre  blinds  his  eyes, 
And  ere  he  drives  away  his  sleep 

And  rushes  from  his  camp,  he  dies. 

Ill 
Free  bridle-bit,  good  gallant  steed. 
That  will  not  ask  a  kind  caress, 


26  Southern  Literary  Readings 

To  swim  the  Santee  at  our  need, 
When  on  his  heels  the  f  oemen  press — 

The  true  heart  and  the  ready  hand, 
The  spirit,  stubborn  to  be  free — 

The  twisted  bore,  the  smiting  brand— 
And  we  are  Marion's  men,  you  see. 

IV 

Now  light  the  fire,  and  cook  the  meal, 

The  last,  perhaps,  that  we  shall  taste; 
I  hear  the  Swamp  Fox  round  us  steal. 

And  that 's  a  sign  we  move  in  haste. 
He  whistles  to  the  scouts,  and  hark ! 

You  hear  his  order  calm  and  low — 
Come,  wave  your  torch  across  the  dark. 

And  let  us  see  the  boys  that  go. 

V 

We  may  not  see  their  forms  again, 

God  help  'em,  should  they  find  the  strife ! 
For  they  are  strong  and  fearless  men, 

And  make  no  coward  terms  for  life : 
They  '11  fight  as  long  as  Marion  bids. 

And  when  he  speaks  the  word  to  shy. 
Then — not  till  then — they  turn  their  steeds. 

Through  thickening  shade  and  swamp  to  fly. 

VI 

Now  stir  the  fire,  and  lie  at  ease, 

The  scouts  are  gone,  and  on  the  brush 
I  see  the  colonel  bend  his  knees. 

To  take  his  slumbers  too — but  hush! 
He's  praying,  comrades:  'tis  not  strange; 

The  man  that 's  fighting  day  by  day. 
May  well,  when  night  comes,  take  a  change. 

And  down  upon  his  knees  to  pray. 


The  Swamp  Fox  2y 

VII 

Break  up  that  hoecake,  boys,  and  hand 

The  sly  and  silent  jug  that's  there; 
I  love  not  it  should  idly  stand, 

When  Marion's  men  have  need  of  cheer. 
'Tis  seldom  that  our  luck  affords 

A  stuff  like  this  we  just  have  quaffed, 
And  dry  potatoes  on  our  boards  i 

May  always  call  for  such  a  draught. 

VIII 

Now  pile  the  brush  and  roll  the  log: 

Hard  pillow,  but  a  soldier's  head, 
That 's  half  the  time  in  brake  and  bog, 

Must  never  think  of  softer  bed.  < 

The  owl  is  hooting  to  the  night, 

The  cooter  crawling  o'er  the  bank. 
And  in  that  pond  the  plashing  light, 

Tells  where  the  alligator  sank. 

IX 

What — 'tis  the  signal!  start  so  soon,  i 

And  through  the  Santee  swamp  so  deep, 
Without  the  aid  of  friendly  moon. 

And  we.  Heaven  help  us,  half  asleep ! 
But  courage,  comrades !  Marion  leads. 

The  Swamp  Fox  takes  us  out  to-night ;  : 

So  clear  your  swords,  and  spur  your  steeds. 

There's  goodly  chance,  I  think,  of  fight. 

X 

We  follow  where  the  Swamp  Fox  guides, 
We  leave  the  swamp  and  cypress  tree, 

Otir  spurs  are  in  oiu*  coursers'  sides,  3 

And  ready  for  the  strife  are  we — 


28  Southern  Literary  Readings 

The  tory  camp  is  now  in  sight, 
And  there  he  cowers  within  his  den — 

He  hears  oiir  shout,  he  dreads  the  fight, 
He  fears,  and  flies  from  Marion's  men. 


THE  GRAPE-VINE  SWING 

Lithe  and  long  as  the  serpent  train, 

Springing  and  cHnging  from  tree  to  tree, 
Now  darting  upward,  now  down  again, 

With  a  twist  and  a  twirl  that  are  strange  to  see : 
6  Never  took  serpent  a  deadlier  hold. 

Never  the  cougar  a  wilder  spring, 
Strangling  the  oak  with  the  boa's  fold, 

Spanning  the  beech  with  the  condor's  wing. 

Yet  no  foe  that  we  fear  to  seek — 
10  The  boy  leaps  wild  to  thy  rude  embrace 

Thy  bulging  arms  bear  as  soft  a  cheek 

As  ever  on  lover's  breast  found  place: 
On  thy  waving  train  is  a  playful  hold 
Thou  shalt  never  to  lighter  grasp  persuade; 
16  While  a  maiden  sits  in  thy  drooping  fold. 

And  swings  and  sings  in  the  noonday  shade ! 

Oh !  giant  strange  of  our  southern  woods, 
I  dream  of  thee  still  in  the  well-known  spot. 

Though  our  vessel  strains  o  'er  the  ocean  floods, 
20  And  the  northern  forest  beholds  thee  not; 

I  think  of  thee  still  with  a  sweet  regret. 
As  the  cordage  yields  to  my  playful  grasp — 

Dost  thou  spring  and  cling  in  our  woodlands  yet? 
Does  the  maiden  still  swing  in  thy  giant  clasp? 


From  a  rare  lithograph  portrait  made  in  185Q  by  F.  J.  Fisher, 
now  in  possession  of  the  Westmoreland  Club,  Richmond,  Va. 

EDGAR  ALLA"^[  POE 


EDGAR  ALLAN  POE 

Edgar  Allan  Poe,  though  descended  on  his  father's  side 
from  a  distinguished  Maryland  family,  once  called  himself 
a  Bostonian  because  he  was  bom  in  the  city  of  Boston. 
His  father,  David  Poe,  was  educated  for  the  law,  but 
a  predilection  for  the  stage  led  him  to  join  a  traveling 
theatrical  troupe  before  he  had  built  up  a  practice. 
In  this  troupe  he  met  Mrs.  C.  D.  Hopkins,  an  actress  of 
English  extraction,  whose  maiden  name  was  Elizabeth 
Arnold.  Shortly  after  the  death  of  Mr.  Hopkins,  who  was 
manager  of  the  company,  David  Poe  married  the  widow. 
Of  the  three  children — two  boys  and  a  girl — born  to  David 
and  EHzabeth  Arnold  Poe,  Edgar  was  the  second  son. 

The  life  of  these  strolling  actors  was  a  hard  one.  The 
family  was  forced  to  travel  from  city  to  city  in  order  to 
earn  a  livelihood  which  was  at  best  precarious.  It  seems 
that  the  mother  was  depended  upon  to  support  the 
family,  for  David  Poe  was  not  a  successful  actor.  Mrs. 
Poe  was  filling  an  engagement  in  Boston  at  the  time  of 
Edgar's  birth,  January  19,  1809.  Her  husband  died  about 
1 8 1  o,  and  in  1 8 1 1  she  found  herself  in  the  city  of  Richmond, 
Virginia,  helpless  and  stricken  with  illness.  An  appeal 
in  the  Richmond  newspapers  brought  such  material  relief 
as  could  be  offered;  but  Mrs.  Poe  was  beyond  human  aid, 
and  within  a  few  days  she  died.  The  children,  thus 
left  alone,  were  cared  for  by  various  persons.  Edgar  had 
attracted  the  attention  of  Mrs.  John  Allan,  the  wife  of  a 
well-to-do  tobacco  merchant,  and  he  was  taken  into  her 
childless  home  and  rechristened  Edgar  Allan  Poe. 

The  boy  was  an  extremely  bright  and  handsome  child, 
and  his  precocity  attracted  much  attention.  Mr.  and 
Mrs.  Allan  became  devotedly  attached  to  their  ward  and 
lavished  on  him  all  that  partiality  could  suggest  or  wealth 
supply.  In  1 8 1 5  Mr.  Allan  moved  temporarily  to  England, 
to  establish  there  a  branch  house  for  his  firm.  Edgar, 
who  accompanied  his  foster  parents,  attended  an  English 

[29] 


^0  Southern  Literary  Readings 

boarding  school  near  London.  In  the  story  of  William 
Wilson  Poe  gives  many  reminiscences  of  his  school  life 
there.  After  five  years  in  England,  the  Allans  returned 
to  Richmond,  and  Edgar  was  placed  in  a  private  school. 
In  1826  he  was  sent  to  the  University  of  Virginia.  Here 
he  made  a  brilliant  record  in  the  languages  and  in  mathe- 
matics, but  he  indulged  in  drinking  and  gambling  and  was 
removed  from  the  university  within  a  year. 

Then  began  the  period  of  wandering  and  unhappiness 
brought  about  by  his  perverse  disposition.  Mr.  Allan, 
whose  patience  had  already  been  sorely  tried,  took  Poe 
into  his  office,  feeling  it  would  be  better  for  the  boy  to 
earn  his  own  living;  whereupon  Poe,  who  was  now  about 
eighteen  years  old,  left  home  to  seek  his  fortune  in  Boston. 
Here  he  succeeded  in  getting  a  publisher  for  his  first 
slender  voltime  of  verses,  Tamerlane  and  Other  Poems,  in 
1827,  but  little  is  known  of  his  movements  during  the 
time  he  was  in  Boston. 

The  next  we  hear  of  Poe,  he  has  enlisted,  under  the 
assumed  name  of  Edgar  A.  Perry,  as  a  private  in  the 
United  States  Army.  He  remained  in  the  army  for 
nearly  two  years,  being  promoted  to  the  post  of  sergeant 
major.  Part  of  the  time  he  was  stationed  at  the  arsenal 
of  Fort  Moultrie,  on  an  island  in  Charleston  Harbor. 
Here  he  gained  the  local  color  for  his  famous  story 
written  some  years  later,  The  Gold  Bug.  Poe  now 
began  to  feel  the  folly  of  his  breach  with  his  foster  parents, 
and  on  hearing  that  Mrs.  Allan  was  critically  ill  he 
made  application  for  a  permit  to  visit  Richmond,  in 
order  that  he  might  see  her  before  her  death.  A  partial 
reconciliation  followed  between  him  and  Mr.  Allan,  who 
secured  Poe's  release  from  the  army,  and  with  the  aid 
of  influential  friends  obtained  for  him  an  appointment  to 
the  United  States  Military  Academy  at  West  Point.  But 
the  perversity  of  the  young  man's  nattire  again  asserted 
itself,  and  in  less  than  a  year  he  began  to  tire  of  life  at 
West  Point.  He  deliberately  neglected  his  duties  until  he 
had  acciimulated  demerits  enough  to  cause  his  dismissal. 

Before  he  entered  West  Point,  another  edition  of  his 
poems,  containing  some  new  matter,  had  been  published; 
and  in  1831  still  another  was  brought  out.     This  volume 


Edgar  Allan  Poe  ji 

contained  the  first  draft  of  some  of  Poe's  most  famous 
poems,  notably  To  Helen  and  IsrafeL 

Mr.  Allan  had  married  again  by  this  time,  and  Poe, 
finding  that  he  had  no  longer  any  hope  of  a  reconciliation 
with  his  foster  parent,  now  turned  to  his  father's  relatives 
for  help  and  sympathy.  He  made  various  attempts  to 
secure  emplo3ntnent,  but  was  unsuccessful.  In  1833  he 
won  with  his  MS.  Found  in  a  Bottle  the  hundred-dollar 
prize  ofi^ered  by  the  Baltimore  Saturday  Visitor  for  the  best 
short  story  submitted.  Poe  sent  in  several  stories  and 
poems,  and  won  two  prizes,  the  second  being  fifty  dollars 
for  the  best  poem;  but  the  judges  refused  to  give  both 
prizes  to  one  competitor. 

It  was  at  this  period  of  his  life  that  Poe's  love  for  his 
cousin  Virginia  Clemm  sprang  up.  She  was  a  beautiful 
girl  twelve  or  thirteen  years  of  age  at  the  time,  and  Poe 
desired  even  then  to  make  her  his  wife.  In  1836,  when 
he  had  secured  regular  employment  as  editor  of  the 
Southern  Literary  Messenger  of  Richmond,  Mrs.  Clemm 
moved  to  that  city,  and  Poe  and  Virginia  were  manied, 
the  latter  being  then  not  quite  fourteen  years  old.  Poe 
had  a  fixed  salary  now,  and  his  success  seemed  assiu*ed. 
His  articles,  stories,  and  poems  were  attracting  wide 
notice,  and  the  circulation  of  the  Messenger  was  rapidly 
increasing.  But  in  1 83  7 ,  perhaps  on  account  of  his  irregular 
habits,  he  retired  from  the  editorship  which  he  had  so 
acceptably  filled  for  a  year  or  more. 

Other  editorial  schemes  were  now  tried.  Poe  went 
first  to  New  York,  then  to  Philadelphia,  and  did  some 
literary  hack  work.  In  1839  he  obtained  an  editorial 
position  on  Burton's  Gentleman's  Magazine,  but  within  a 
year  he  severed  his  connection  with  this  periodical.  .  He 
published  in  1839  a  volume  of  short  stories  called  Tales 
of  the  Grotesque  and  Arabesque.  This  volimie  brought 
him  no  money,  but  it  broadened  his  fame.  In  1841  he 
became  editor  of  Graham's  Magazine,  and  within  a  few 
months  the  circulation  of  this  periodical  increased  from 
five  thousand  to  thirty-seven  thousand.  Poe  was  now 
publishing  some  of  his  most  original  short  stories,  such  as 
The  Murders  in  the  Rue  Morgue,  The  Masque  0}  the  Red 
Death,  and  others. 


^2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

In  1842  the  erratic  editor  of  Graham's  Magazine  was 
supplanted  by  R.  W.  Griswold.  The  story  goes  that  Poe 
disappeared  for  a  few  days,  as  was  his  peculiar  custom, 
and  when  he  returned  to  the  office  he  found  Griswold 
seated  in  the  editorial  chair.  Without  waiting  for 
explanations,  he  turned  on  his  heel  and  left  the  office. 
Poe,  however,  continued  to  be  a  contributor  to  this  peri- 
odical, and  was  on  friendly  terms  with  the  owner. 

Other  ventures  in  editorial  work  and  original  schemes 
for  founding  an  independent  magazine  occupied  Poe  at 
this  time,  but  he  seems  never  to  have  been  able  to  put  his 
plans  into  operation  or  to  get  on  in  the  world.  He  gained 
wide  fame  through  The  Raven  j  which  was  published  in 
1845,  ^^d  ^  ^6W  edition  of  his  verses  with  this  poem  lead- 
ing in  the  title  was  issued  in  the  fall  of  the  same  year. 
The  next  year,  he  took  up  his  residence  in  the  famous 
cottage  at  Fordham,  near  New  York.  Here  he  tried  to 
make  a  living  by  his  contributions  to  various  magazines, 
but  he  was  continually  yielding  to  his  taste  for  drink 
and  the  use  of  opium.  His  health  failed,  and  the  whole 
family  was  for  a  time  dependent  upon  public  charity. 

In  1847  his  young  wife  died.  From  this  time  on  to 
the  end  of  his  life,  Poe  seems  to  have  been  a  broken- 
hearted and  hopeless  man.  Once  or  twice  he  made  a  real 
effort  to  throw  off  the  terrible  gloom  and  the  distressing 
habits  which  had  gained  such  a  grip  on  him.  His  genius 
had  not  yet  been  exhausted,  for  he  produced  in  these 
last  years  some  of  his  most  exquisite  lyric  poems,  such 
as  Ulalume,  The  Bells,  and  Annabel  Lee.  He  was  unable 
to  make  a  living,  however.  He  tried  to  earn  something 
by  lecturing,  but  he  failed  to  attract  an  audience  in  New 
York.  He  then  went  South,  and  here  he  met  with  more 
success.  At  Richmond  his  friends  rallied  to  his  support, 
and  in  a  benefit  lecture  he  realized  about  fifteen  hundred 
dollars.  He  intended  to  return  to  New  York,  where  Mrs. 
Clemm  was  anxiously  waiting  to  hear  from  him  and  learn 
his  plans,  but  he  never  reached  that  city.  Mystery  hangs 
about  his  last  days.  No  one  knows  what  happened  to 
him  after  he  left  Richmond  on  September  30, 1849.  When 
his  friends  found  him  three  days  later,  he  was  lying 
unconscious  in  a  saloon  which  had  been  used  as  one  of 


Edgar  Allan  Poe  jj 

the  ward  polling  places  in  a  city  election  at  Baltimore. 
The  physician  who  attended  him,  and  had  him  taken 
to  Washington  Hospital,  testified  that  Poe  was  not  drunk 
but  drugged.  The  theory  now  generally  accepted  is  that 
he  fell  into  the  hands  of  a  corrupt  electioneering  gang, 
was  drugged  and  robbed,  and  then  carried  around  from 
polling  place  to  polling  place  and  made  to  vote  under 
false  names.  On  Sunday  morning,  October  7,  1849,  "the 
ill-starred  poet  passed  quietly  away. 

Such  was  the  life  of  the  strangest  and  most  unfortu- 
nate of  all  American  men  of  letters.  There  are  those 
who  condemn  Poe  as  an  ingrate,  a  degenerate,  a  repro- 
bate; but  those  more  charitably  inclined  consider  him  an 
unfortunate  son  of  genius  who  was  unable,  from  his  very 
nature,  to  control  his  actions.  That  he  was  unreliable, 
erratic,  intemperate,  his  most  ardent  admirers  will  not 
deny.  That  he  was  dishonest,  immoral,  or  licentious,  his 
enemies  will  hesitate  to  affirm.  That  he  was  his  own 
worst  enemy,  all  will  readily  admit.  His  life  is  one  to 
point  a  moral. 

Poe's  life  story  attracts  us  both  because  of  its  mystery 
and  because  of  its  pathos.  As  to  his  literary  power,  there 
is  but  one  opinion.  Abroad  he  is  generally  considered 
the  greatest  of  American  poets,  and  there  are  many  in 
our  own  country  who  accept  this  judgment  without  ques- 
tion. His  poetry  has  in  it  a  quality  of  mystery  and 
illusiveness,  a  peculiar  beauty  of  harmony  and  rhythm, 
a  haunting  weirdness  of  melody,  that  make  it  a  distinct 
and  original  type;  his  critical  works,  though  many  of 
them  were  written  as  mere  ** pot-boilers,"  have  won  con- 
sideration among  scholars ;  he  is  given  credit  for  creating 
the  modem  detective  or  ratiocinative  story;  and  as  a 
writer  of  tales  of  mystery  and  horror  he  is  acknowledged 
to  be  without  a  peer. 

"(There  are  many  books  and  essays  on  Poe,  but  the  authoritative 
biography  is  that  by  George  E.  Woodberry,  published  in  two 
volumes,  in  1909.) 


THE  GOLD  BUG 

"What  ho!  what  ho!  this  fellow  is  dancing  mad! 
He  hath  been  bitten  by  the  Tarantula." 

— All  in  the  Wrong. 

Many  years  ago,  I  contracted  an  intimacy  with  a  Mr. 
William  Legrand.  He  was  of  an  ancient  Huguenot  family, 
and  had  once  been  wealthy;  but  a  series  of  misfortunes 
had  reduced  him  to  want.    To  avoid  the  mortification 

5  consequent  upon  his  disasters,  he  left  New  Orleans,  the 
city  of  his  forefathers,  and  took  up  his  residence  at 
Sullivan's  Island,  near  Charleston,  South  Carolina. 

This  island  is  a  very  singular  one.  It  consists  of  little 
else  than  the  sea  sand,  and  is  about  three  miles  long.     Its 

10  breadth  at  no  point  exceeds  a  quarter  of  a  mile.  It  is 
separated  from  the  main-land  by  a  scarcely  perceptible 
creek,  oozing  its  way  through  a  wilderness  of  reeds  and 
slime,  a  favorite  resort  of  the  marsh-hen.  The  vegeta- 
tion, as  might  be  supposed,  is  scant,  or  at  least  dwarfish.  No 

15  trees  of  any  magnitude  are  to  be  seen.  Near  the  western 
extremity,  where  Fort  Moultrie  stands,  and  where  are  some 
miserable  frame  buildings,  tenanted  during  summer  by  the 
fugitives  from  Charleston  dust  and  fever,  may  be  found, 
indeed,  the  bristly  palmetto ;  but  the  whole  island,  with  the 

20  exception  of  this  western  point,  and  a  line  of  hard  white 
beach  on  the  seacoast,  is  covered  with  a  dense  under- 
growth of  the  sweet  myrtle,  so  much  prized  by  the  horti- 
culturists of  England.  The  shrub  here  often  attains  the 
height  of  fifteen  or  twenty  feet,  and  forms  an  almost 

25  impenetrable  coppice,  btirdening  the  air  with  its  fragrance. 

In  the  utmost  recesses  of  this  coppice,  not  far  from  the 

eastern  or  more  remote  end  of  the  island,  Legrand  had 

l34] 


The  Cold  Bug  jj 

built  himself  a  small  hut,  which  he  occupied  when  I  first, 
by  mere  accident,  made  his  acquaintance.  This  soon 
ripened  into  friendship — for  there  was  much  in  the  recluse  30 
to  excite  interest  and  esteem.  I  found  him  well  educated, 
with  unusual  powers  of  mind,  but  infected  with  misan- 
thropy, and  subject  to  perverse  moods  of  alternate 
enthusiasm  and  melancholy.  He  had  with  him  many 
books,  but  rarely  employed  them.  His  chief  amusements  35 
were  gunning  and  fishing,  or  sauntering  along  the  beach  and 
through  the  myrtles,  in  quest  of  shells  or  entomological 
specimens; — his  collection  of  the  latter  might  have  been 
envied  by  a  Swammerdamm.  In  these  excursions  he  was 
usually  accompanied  by  an  old  negro,  called  Jupiter,  who  40 
had  been  manumitted  before  the  reverses  of  the  family, 
but  who  could  be  induced,  neither  by  threats  nor  by  prom- 
ises, to  abandon  what  he  considered  his  right  of  attendance 
upon  the  footsteps  of  his  young  ''Massa  Will."  It  is  not 
improbable  that  the  relatives  of  Legrand,  conceiving  him  45 
to  be  somewhat  unsettled  in  intellect,  had  contrived  to 
instil  this  obstinacy  into  Jupiter,  with  a  view  to  the  super- 
vision and  guardianship  of  the  wanderer. 

The  winters  in  the  latitude  of  Sullivan's  Island  are 
seldom  very  severe,  and  in  the  fall  of  the  year  it  is  a  rare  50 
event  indeed  when  a  fire  is  considered  necessary.     About 
the  middle  of  October,  18 — ,  there  occurred,  however,  a 
day  of  remarkable  chilliness.     Just  before  sunset  I  scram- 
bled my  way  through  the  evergreens  to  the  hut  of  my 
friend,  whom  I  had  not  visited  for  several  weeks — my  55 
residence  being  at  that  time  in  Charleston,  a  distance  of 
nine  miles  from  the  island,  while  the  facilities  of  passage 
and  re-passage  were  very  far  behind  those  of  the  present 
day.     Upon  reaching  the  hut  I  rapped,  as  was  my  custom, 
and,  getting  no  reply,  sought  for  the  key  where  I  knew  eo 
it  was  secreted,  unlocked  the  door  and  went  in.     A  fine 


36  Southern  Literary  Readings 

fire  was  blazing  upon  the  hearth.  It  was  a  novelty,  and 
by  no  means  an  tmgratefiil  one.  I  threw  off  an  overcoat, 
took  an  armchair  by  the   crackling  logs,  and  awaited 

65  patiently  the  arrival  of  my  hosts. 

Soon  after  dark  they  arrived,  and  gave  me  a  most  cor- 
dial welcome.  Jupiter,  grinning  from  ear  to  ear,  bustled 
about  to  prepare  some  marsh-hens  for  supper.  Legrand 
was  in  one  of  his  fits — how  else  shall  I  term  them? — 

70  of  enthusiasm.  He  had  found  an  unknown  bivalve, 
forming  a  new  genus,  and,  more  than  this,  he  had  htmted 
down  and  secured,  with  Jupiter's  assistance,  a  scarahceus 
which  he  believed  to  be  totally  new,  but  in  respect  to 
which  he  wished  to  have  my  opinion  on  the  morrow. 

75  "And  why  not  to-night?"  I  asked,  rubbing  my  hands 
over  the  blaze. 

"Ah,  if  I  had  only  known  you  were  here ! "  said  Legrand, 
"but  it's  so  long  since  I  saw  you;  and  how  could  I  foresee 
that  you  would  pay  me  a  visit  this  very  night  of  all  others  ? 

so  As  I  was  coming  home  I  met  Lieutenant  G ,  from  the 

fort,  and,  very  foolishly,  I  lent  him  the  bug;  so  it  will  be 
impossible  for  you  to  see  it  until  the  morning.  Stay  here 
to-night,  and  I  will  send  Jup  down  for  it  at  sunrise.  It  is 
the  loveliest  thing  in  creation!" 

85     "What?— sunrise?" 

"Nonsense!  no! — the  bug.  It  is  of  a  brilliant  gold 
color — about  the  size  of  a  large  hickory-nut — with  two  jet 
black  spots  near  one  extremity  of  the  back,  and  another, 
somewhat  longer,  at  the  other.     The  antennae  are — " 

90  "Dey  aint  no  tin  in  him,  Massa  Will,  I  keep  a  tellin 
on  you,"  here  interrupted  Jupiter;  "de  bug  is  a  goole- 
bug,  solid,  ebery  bit  of  him,  inside  and  all,  sep  him  wing — 
neber  feel  half  so  hebby  a  bug  in  my  life." 

"Well,  suppose  it  is,  Jup,"  replied  Legrand,  somewhat 

95  more  earnestly,  it  seemed  to  me,  than  the  case  demanded, 


The  Gold  Bug  J7 

"is  that  any  reason  for  your  letting  the  birds  bum?  The 
color" — here  he  turned  to  me — "is  really  almost  enough 
to  warrant  Jupiter's  idea.  You  never  saw  a  more  bril- 
liant metallic  lustre  than  the  scales  emit — but  of  this  you 
cannot  judge  till  to-morrow.  In  the  mean  time  I  can  give  loo 
you  some  idea  of  the  shape."  Saying  this,  he  seated  him- 
self at  a  small  table,  on  which  were  a  pen  and  ink,  but  no 
paper.    He  looked  for  some  in  a  drawer,  but  found  none. 

"Never  mind,"  said  he  at  length,  "this  will  answer"; 
and  he  drew  from  his  waistcoat  pocket  a  scrap  of  what  105 
I  took  to  be  very  dirty  foolscap,  and  made  upon  it  a  rough 
drawing  with  the  pen.    While  he  did  this,  I  retained  my  seat 
by  the  fire,  for  I  was  still  chilly.     When  the  design  was  com- 
plete, he  handed  it  to  me  without  rising.    As  I  received 
it,  a  low  growl  was  heard,  succeeded  by  a  scratching  at  no 
the  door.    Jupiter  opened  it,  and  a  large  Newfoundland, 
belonging  to  Legrand,  rushed  in,  leaped  upon  my  shoulders, 
and  loaded  me  with  caresses,  tor  I  had  shown  him  much 
attention  during  previous  visits.    When  his  gambols  were 
over,  I  looked  at  the  paper,  and,  to  speak  the  truth,  found  us 
myself  not  a  little  puzzled  at  what  my  friend  had  depicted. 

"Well!"  I  said,  after  contemplating  it  for  some  min- 
utes, "this  is  a  strange  scarabcBUs,  I  must  confess;  new  to 
me:  never  saw  anything  like  it  before — unless  it  was  a 
skull,  or  a  death's-head,  which  it  more  nearly  resembles  120 
than  anything  else  that  has  come  under  my  observation." 

"A  death's-head!"  echoed  Legrand — "Oh — yes — ^well, 
it  has  something  of  that  appearance  upon  paper,  no  doubt. 
The  two  upper  black  spots  look  like  eyes,  eh?  and  the 
longer  one  at  the  bottom  like  a  mouth — and  then  the  125 
shape  of  the  whole  is  oval." 

"Perhaps  so,"  said  I;  "but,  Legrand,  I  fear  you  are 
no  artist.  I  must  wait  until  I  see  the  beetle  itself,  if  I  am 
to  form  any  idea  of  its  personal  appearance." 


j8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

130  "Well,  I  don't  know,"  said  he,  a  little  nettled,  "I  draw 
tolerably — should  do  it  at  least — have  had  good  masters, 
and  flatter  myself  that  I  am  not  quite  a  blockhead." 

"But,  my  dear  fellow,  you  are  joking  then,"  said  I, 
"this  is  a  very  passable  skull, — indeed,  I  may  say  that  it 

135  is  a  very  excellent  skull,  according  to  the  vulgar  notions 
about  such  specimens  of  physiology — and  your  scarahceus 
must  be  the  queerest  scarahceus  in  the  world  if  it  resembles 
it.  Why,  we  may  get  up  a  very  thrilling  bit  of  super- 
stition upon  this  hint.     I  presume  you  will  call  the  bug 

m  scUrabceus  caput  hominis,  or  something  of  that  kind — 
there  are  many  similar  titles  in  the  Natural  Histories. 
But  where  are  the  antennae  you  spoke  of  ? " 

"The  antenncef'  said  Legrand,  who  seemed  to  be  getting 
unaccoimtably  warm  upon  the  subject;  "I  am  sure  you 

H5must  see  the  antennce.     I  made  them  as  distinct  as  they 
are  in  the  original  insect,  and  I  presume  that  is  sufficient. " 
"Well,  well,"  I  said,  "perhaps  you  have — still  I  don't 
see  them";  and  I  handed  him  the  paper  without  addi- 
tional remark,  not  wishing  to  ruffle  his  temper;  but  I  was 

150 much  surprised  at  the  turn  affairs  had  taken;  his  ill 
humor  puzzled  me — and,  as  for  the  drawing  of  the  beetle, 
there  were  positively  no  antennce  visible,  .and  the  whole 
did  bear  a  very  close  resemblance  to  the  ordinary  cuts 
of  a  death's-head. 

155  He  received  the  paper  very  peevishly,  and  was  about 
to  cnmiple  it,  apparently  to  throw  it  in  the  fire,  when  a 
casual  glance  at  the  design  seemed  suddenly  to  rivet  his 
attention.  In  an  instant  his  face  grew  violently  red — in 
another  as  excessively  pale.     For  some  minutes  he  contin- 

160  ued  to  scrutinize  the  drawing  minutely  where  he  sat.  At 
length  he  arose,  took  a  candle  from  the  table,  and  pro- 
ceeded to  seat  himself  upon  a  sea-chest  in  the  farthest 
corner  of  the  room.     Here  again  he  made  an  anxious 


The  Gold  Bug  ^0 

examination  of  the  paper;  turning  it  in  all  directions. 
He  said  nothing,  however,  and  his  conduct  greatly  aston-  i65 
ished  me;  yet  I  thought  it  prudent  not  to  exacerbate 
the  growing  moodiness  of  his  temper  by  any  comment. 
Presently  he  took  from  his  coat  pocket  a  wallet,  placed  the 
paper  carefidly  in  it,  and  deposited  both  in  a  writing-desk, 
which  he  locked.  He  now  grew  more  composed  in  his  no 
demeanor;  but  his  original  air  of  enthusiasm  had  quite 
disappeared.  Yet  he  seemed  not  so  much  sulky  as  ab- 
stracted. As  the  evening  wore  away  he  became  more  and 
more  absorbed  in  revery,  from  which  no  sallies  of  mine 
could  arouse  him.  It  had  been  my  intention  to  pass  the  175 
night  at  the  hut,  as  I  had  frequently  done  before,  but,  seeing 
my  host  in  this  mood,  I  deemed  it  proper  to  take  leave. 
He  did  not  press  me  to  remain,  but,  as  I  departed,  he 
shook  my  hand  with  even  more  than  his  usual  cordiality. 

It  was  about  a  month  after  this  (and  during  the  interval  iso 
I  had  seen  nothing  of  Legrand)  when  I  received  a  visit, 
at  Charleston,  from  his  man,  Jupiter.     I  had  never  seen 
the  good  old  negro  look  so  dispirited,  and  I  feared  that 
some  serious  disaster  had  befallen  my  friend. 

**Well,  Jup,"  said  I,  ''what  is  the  matter  now? — howiss 
is  your  master?" 

"Why,  to  speak  de  troof,  massa,  him  not  so  berry  well 
as  mought  be." 

'*  Not  well !     I  am  truly  sorry  to  hear  it.     What  does  he 
complain  of?"  190 

"Dar!  dat's  it! — him  neber  plain  of  notin — but  him 
berry  sick  for  all  dat," 

''Very  sick,  Jupiter! — why  didn't  you  say  so  at  once? 
Is  he  confined  to  bed?" 

"No,  dat  he  aint! — he  aint  find  nowhar — dat's  just  195 
whar  de  shoe  pinch — my  mind  is  got  to  be  berry  hebby 
bout  poor  Massa  Will . ' ' 


40  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"Jupiter,  I  should  like  to  understand  what  it  is  you  are 
talking  about.     You  say  your  master  is  sick.     Hasn't  he 
200 told  you  what  ails  him?" 

"Why,  massa,  taint  worf  while  for  to  git  mad  bout  de 

matter — Massa  Will  say  noffin  at  all  aint  de  matter  wid 

him — but  den  what  make  him  go  about  looking  dis  here 

way,  wid  he  head  down  and  he  soldiers  up,  and  as  white 

205  as  a  gose?    And  den  he  keep  a  syphon  all  de  time — " 

"Keeps  a  what,  Jupiter?" 

* '  Keeps  a  syphon  wid  de  figgurs  on  de  slate — de  queerest 

figgurs  I  ebber  did  see.     Ise  gittin  to  be  skeered,  I  tell  you. 

Hab  for  to  keep  mighty  tight  eye  pon  him  noovers.     Tod- 

210  der  day  he  gib  me  slip  fore  de  sun  up,  and  was  gone  de 

whole  ob  de  blessed  day.     I  had  a  big  stick  ready  cut  for 

to  gib  him  good  beating  when  he  did  come — but  Ise  sich  a 

fool  dat  I  hadn't  de  heart  arter  all — he  look  so  berry 

poorly." 

216     "Eh? — what? — ah  yes! — upon  the  whole  I  think  you 

had  better  not  be  too  severe  with  the  poor  fellow  — don't 

flog  him,  Jupiter — he  can't  very  well  stand  it — but  can 

you  form  no  idea  of  what  has  occasioned  this  illness,  or 

rather  this  change  of  conduct  ?    Has  anything  unpleasant 

220 happened  since  I  saw  you?" 

"No,  massa,  dey  aint  bin  noffin  onpleasant  since  den — 
'twas /of^  den  I'm  feared — 'twas  de  berry  day  you  was 
dare." 

"How?  what  do  you  mean?" 
225     "Why,  massa,  I  mean  de  bug — dare  now." 
-      "The  what?" 

"De  bug — I'm  berry  sartain  dat  Massa  Will  bin  bit 
somewhere  bout  de  head  by  dat  goole-bug." 

"And    what    cause    have    you,    Jupiter,    for    such   a 
230  supposition?" 

"Claws  enuff,  massa,  and  mouff  too.     I  nebber  did  see 


The  Gold  Bug  41 

sich  a  bug — he  kick  and  he  bite  ebery  ting  what  cum  near 
him.  Massa  Will  cotch  him  fuss,  but  had  for  to  let  him 
go  gin  mighty  quick,  I  tell  you — den  was  de  time  he  must 
ha  got  de  bite.  I  didn't  like  de  look  ob  de  bug  mouff,  235 
myself,  no  how,  so  I  wouldn't  take  hold  ob  him  wid  my 
finger,  but  I  cotch  him  wid  a  piece  ob  paper  dat  I  found. 
I  rap  him  up  in  de  paper  and  stuff  piece  ob  it  in  he  mouff — 
dat  was  de  way." 

"And  you  think,  then,  that  your  master  was   really  240 
bitten  by  the  beetle,  and  that  the  bite  made  him  sick?" 

"I  don't  tink  noffin  about  it — I  nose  it.  What  make 
him  dream  bout  de  goole  so  much,  if  taint  cause  he  bit  by 
de  goole-bug?    Ise  heerd  bout  dem  goole-bugs  fore  dis." 

"But  how  do  you  know  he  dreams  about  gold? "  245 

"  How  I  know?  why,  cause  he  talk  about  it  in  he  sleep — 
dat's  how  I  nose." 

"Well,  Jup,  perhaps  you  are  right;  but  to  what  fortunate 
circumstance  am  I  to  attribute  the  honor  of  a  visit  from 
you  to-day?"  250 

' '  What  de  matter,  massa  ? '  * 

"Did  you  bring  any  message  from  Mr.  Legrand?" 

"No,  massa,  I  bring  dis  here  pissel";  and  here  Jupiter 
handed  me  a  note  which  ran  thus : 

"My  Dear  ,  255 

"Why  have  I  not  seen  you  for  so  long  a  time?  I  hope  you  have 
not  been  so  foolish  as  to  take  offense  at  any  little  brusquerie  of 
mine;   but  no,  that  is  improbable. 

"Since  I  saw  you  I  have  had  great  cause  for  anxiety.     I  have 
something  to  tell  you,  yet  scarcely  know  how  to  tell  it,  or  whether  260 
I  should  tell  it  at  all. 

"I  have  not  been  quite  well  for  some  days  past,  and  poor  old 
Jup  annoys  me,  almost  beyond  endurance,  by  his  well-meant  atten- 
tions. Would  you  believe  it? — he  had  prepared  a  huge  stick,  the 
other  day,  with  which  to  chastise  me  for  giving  him  the  slip,  and  265 
spending  the  day,  solus,  among  the  hills  on  the  main-land.  I  verily 
believe  that  my  ill  looks  alone  saved  me  a  flogging. 


^  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"I  have  made  no  addition  to  my  cabinet  since  we  met. 
"If  you  can,  in  any  way,  make  it  convenient,  come  over  with 
270  Jupiter.    Do  come.     I  wish  to  see  you  to-night^  upon  business  of 
importance.     I  assure  you  that  it  is  of  the  highest  importance. 

"Ever  yours, 

"William  Legrand." 

There  was  something  in  the  tone  of  this  note  which  gave 
275  me  great  uneasiness.  Its  whole  style  differed  materially 
from  that  of  Legrand.  What  could  he  be  dreaming  of? 
What  new  crotchet  possessed  his  excitable  brain?  What 
"business  of  the  highest  importance"  could  he  possibly 
have  to  transact?  Jupiter's  account  of  him  boded  no 
280  good.  I  dreaded  lest  the  continued  pressure  of  misfortune 
had,  at  length,  fairly  unsettled  the  reason  of  my  friend. 
Without  a  moment's  hesitation,  therefore,  I  prepared  to 
accompany  the  negro. 

Upon  reaching  the  wharf,  I  noticed  a  scythe  and  three 
285  spades,  all  apparently  new,  lying  in  the  bottom  of  the  boat 
in  which  we  were  to  embark. 

*' What  is  the  meaning  of  all  this,  Jup? "  I  inquired. 
"Him  S3^e,  massa,  and  spade." 
"Very  true;  but  what  are  they  doing  here?" 
290     "Him  de  syfe  and  de  spade  what  Massa  Will  sis  pon  my 
buying  for  him  in  de  town,  and  de  debbil's  own  lot  of 
money  I  had  to  gib  for  em." 

"But  what,  in  the  name  of  all  that  is  mysterious,  is 
your  'Massa  Will'  going  to  do  with  sc3rthes  and  spades?" 
295     "Dat's  more  dan  I  know,  and  I  blieve  'tis  more  dan 
he  know,  too.     But  it's  all  cum  ob  de  bug." 

Finding  that  no  satisfaction  was  to  be  obtained  of 

Jupiter,  whose  whole  intellect  seemed  to  be  absorbed  by 

"de  bug,"  I  now  stepped  into  the  boat  and  made  sail. 

300  With  a  fair  and  strong  breeze  we  soon  ran  into  the  little 

cove  to  the  northward  of  Fort  Moultrie,  and  a  walk  of 


The  Gold  Bug  4J 

some  two  miles  brought  us  to  the  hut.  It  was  about 
three  in  the  afternoon  when  we  arrived.  Legrand  had 
been  awaiting  us  in  eager  expectation.  He  grasped  my 
hand  with  a  nervous  empressement,  which  alarmed  me  and  305 
strengthened  the  suspicions  already  entertained.  His 
countenance  was  pale  even  to  ghastliness,  and  his  deep-set 
eyes  glared  with  unnatural  lustre.  After  some  inquiries 
respecting  his  health,  I  asked  him,  not  knowing  what 
better  to  say,  if  he  had  yet  obtained  the  scarahcBus  from  310 
Lieutenant  G . 

"Oh,  yes,"  he  replied,  coloring  violently,  **I  got  it  from 
him  the  next  morning.  Nothing  should  tempt  me  to  part 
with  that  scarahcBUs.  Do  you  know  that  Jupiter  is  quite 
right  about  it ! "  315 

"  In  what  way  ? "  I  asked,  with  a  sad  foreboding  at  heart. 

"In  supposing  it  to  be  a  bug  of  real  gold.'*  He  said  this 
with  an  air  of  profound  seriousness,  and  I  felt  inexpressibly 
shocked. 

"This  bug  is  to  make  my  fortune,"  he  continued,  with  320 
a  triumphant  smile,  "to  reinstate  me  in  my  family  pos- 
sessions. Is  it  any  wonder,  then,  that  I  prize  it?  Since 
Fortune  has  thought  fit  to  bestow  it  upon  me,  I  have  only 
to  use  it  properly  and  I  shall  arrive  at  the  gold  of  which  it 
is  the  index.     Jupiter,  bring  me  that  scarabceus! "  325 

"What!  de  bug,  massa?  I 'd  rudder  not  go  fer  trubble 
dat  bug — you  mus  git  him  for  your  own  self."  Hereupon 
Legrand  arose,  with  a  grave  and  stately  air,  and  brought 
me  the  beetle  from  a  glass  case  in  which  it  was  enclosed. 
It  was  a  beautiful  scarabceus,  and,  at  that  time,  unknown  330 
to  naturalists — of  course  a  great  prize  in  a  scientific  point 
of  view.  There  were  two  round,  black  spots  near  one 
extremity  of  the  back,  and  a  long  one  near  the  other.  The 
scales  were  exceedingly  hard  and  glossy,  with  all  the 
appearance  of  burnished  gold.     The  weight  of  the  insect  335 


44  Southern  Literary  Readings 

was  very  remarkable,  and,  taking  all  things  into  consider- 
ation, I  coiild  hardly  blame  Jupiter  for  his  opinion  respect- 
ing it ;  but  what  to  make  of  Legrand's  agreement  with  that 
opinion,  I  could  not,  for  the  life  of  me,  tell. 
340  "I  sent  for  you,"  said  he,  in  a  grandiloquent  tone,  when 
I  had  completed  my  examination  of  the  beetle,  **  I  sent  for 
you,  that  I  might  have  your  counsel  and  assistance  in 
furthering  the  views  of  Fate  and  of  the  bug — " 

"Mydear  Legrand,"  I  cried,  interrupting  him,  "you  are 
345  certainly  unwell,  and  had  better  use  some  little  precau- 
tions.   You  shall  go  to  bed,  and  I  will  remain  with  you  a 
few  days,  until  you  get  over  this.    You  are  feverish  and  — ' ' 

"Feel  my  piilse,"  said  he. 

I  felt  it,  and,  to  say  the  truth,  found  not  the  slightest 
350  indication  of  fever. 

"But  you  may  be  ill,  and  yet  have  no  fever.  Allow 
me  this  once  to  prescribe  for  you.  In  the  first  place,  go 
to  bed.     In  the  next — " 

"You  are  mistaken,"  he  interposed,  "I  am  as  well  as  I 

355  can  expect  to  be  under  the  excitement  which  I  suffer.     If 

you  really  wish  me  well,  you  will  relieve  this  excitement." 

"And  how  is  this  to  be  done?" 

"Very  easily.  Jupiter  and  myself  are  going  upon  an 
expedition  into  the  hills,  upon  the  main-land,  and,ln  this 
360  expedition,  we  shall  need  the  aid  of  some  person  in  whom 
we  can  confide.  You  are  the  only  one  we  can  trust. 
Whether  we  succeed  or  fail,  the  excitement  which  you  now 
perceive  in  me  will  be  equally  allayed." 

"I  am  anxious  to  oblige  you  in  any  way,"  I  replied; 
365  "but  do  you  mean  to  say  that  this  infernal  beetle  has  any 
connection  with  your  expedition  into  the  hills?" 

"It  has." 

"Then,  Legrand,  I  can  become  a  party  to  no  such 
absurd  proceeding." 


The  Gold  Bug  45 

'*I  am  sorry — very  sorry — for  we  shall  have  to  try  it  370 
by  ourselves." 

"Try  it  by  yourselves!  The  man  is  stirely  mad! — but 
stay — how  long  do  you  propose  to  be  absent?" 

"Probably  all  night.  We  shall  start  immediately,  and 
be  back,  at  all  events,  by  simrise."  375 

"And  will  you  promise  me,  upon  your  honor,  that  when 
this  freak  of  yours  is  over,  and  the  bug  business  settled 
to  your  satisfaction,  you  will  then  return  home  and  follow 
my  advice  implicitly,  as  that  of  your  physician?" 

"Yes;  I  promise;  and  now  let  us  be  off,  for  we  have  no  aso 
time  to  lose." 

With  a  heavy  heart  I  accompanied  my  friend.  We 
started  about  four  o'clock — Legrand,  Jupiter,  the  dog,  and 
myself.  Jupiter  had  with  him  the  scythe  and  spades  — the 
whole  of  which  he  insisted  upon  carrying,  more  through  m 
fear,  it  seemed  to  me,  of  trusting  either  of  the  implements 
within  reach  of  his  master,  than  from  any  excess  of  indus- 
try or  complaisance.  His  demeanor  was  dogged  in  the 
extreme,  and  "dat  deuced  bug"  were  the  sole  words  which 
escaped  his  lips  during  the  journey.  For  my  own  part,  1 390 
had  charge  of  a  couple  of  dark  lanterns,  while  Legrand 
contented  himself  with  the  scarahceusy  which  he  carried 
attached  to  the  end  of  a  bit  of  whip-cord;  twirling  it  to 
and  fro,  with  the  air  of  a  conjurer,  as  he  went.  When  I 
observed  this  last,  plain  evidence  of  my  friend's  aberration  395 
of  mind,  I  could  scarcely  refrain  from  tears.  I  thought  it 
best,  however,  to  himior  his  fancy,  at  least  for  the  present, 
or  until  I  could  adopt  some  more  energetic  measures  with 
a  chance  of  success.  In  the  mean  time  I  endeavored,  but 
all  in  vain,  to  sound  him  in  regard  to  the  object  of  the  400 
expedition.  Having  succeeded  in  inducing  me  to  accom- 
pany him,  he  seemed  unwilHng  to  hold  conversation 
upon  any  topic  of  minor  importance,   and  to  all  my 


46  Southern  Literary  Readings 

questions  vouchsafed  no  other  reply  than  "we  shall  see!" 

406  We  crossed  the  creek  at  the  head  of  the  island  by  means 
of  a  skiff,  and,  ascending  the  high  grounds  on  the  shore  of 
the  main-land,  proceeded  in  a  northwesterly  direction, 
through  a  tract  of  country  excessively  wild  and  deso- 
late, where  no  trace  of  a  human  footstep  was  to  be  seen. 

4ioLegrand  led  the  way  with  decision;  pausing  only  for  an 
instant,  here  and  there,  to  consult  what  appeared  to  be 
certain  landmarks  of  his  own  contrivance  upon  a  former 
occasion. 

In  this  manner  we  journeyed  for  about  two  hours,  and 

416  the  sun  was  just  setting  when  we  entered  a  region  infinitely 
more  dreary  than  any  yet  seen.  It  was  a  species  of  table- 
land, near  the  summit  of  an  almost  inaccessible  hill, 
densely  wooded  from  base  to  pinnacle,  and  interspersed 
with  huge  crags  that  appeared  to  lie  loosely  upon  the  soil, 

420  and  in  many  cases  were  prevented  from  precipitating 
themselves  into  the  valleys  below  merely  by  the  support 
of  the  trees  against  which  they  reclined.  Deep  ravines, 
in  various  direction^,  gave  an  air  of  still  sterner  solemnity 
to  the  scene. 

425  The  natural  platform  to  which  we  had  clambered  was 
thickly  overgrown  with  brambles,  through  which  we  soon 
discovered  that  it  would  have  been  impossible  to  force 
our  way  but  for  the  scythe ;  and  Jupiter,  by  direction  of  his 
master,  proceeded  to  clear  for  us  a  path  to  the  foot  of  an 

430  enormously  tall  tulip-tree,  which  stood,  with  some  eight  or 
ten  oaks,  upon  the  level,  and  far  surpassed  them  all,  and 
all  other  trees  which  I  had  then  ever  seen,  in  the  beauty 
of  its  foliage  and  form,  in  the  wide  spread  of  its  branches, 
and  in  the  general  majesty  of  its  appearance.    When  we 

435  reached  this  tree,  Legrand  turned  to  Jupiter,  and  asked 
him  if  he  thought  he  could  climb  it.  The  old  man  seemed  a 
little  staggered  by  the  question,  and  for  some  moments  made 


The  Gold  Bug  4^ 

no  reply.  At  length  he  approached  the  huge  trunk,  walked 
slowly  around  it,  and  examined  it  with  minute  attention. 
When  he  Had  completed  his  scrutiny,  he  merely  said:       440 

"Yes,  massa,  Jup  climb  any  tree  he  ebber  see  in  he  life." 

"Then  up  with  you  as  soon  as  possible,  for  it  will  soon 
be  too  dark  to  see  what  we  are  about." 

"How  far  mus  go  up,  massa?"  inquired  Jupiter. 

"Get  up  the  main  trunk  first,  and  then  I  will  tell  you  445 
which  way  to  go — and  here — stop!  take  this  beetle  with 
you." 

"De  bug,  Massa  Will! — de  goole-bug!"  cried  the  negro, 
drawing  back  in  dismay — "what  for  mus  tote  de  bug  way 
up  de  tree?"  450 

"If  you  are  afraid,  Jup,  a  great  big  negro  like  you,  to 
take  hold  of  a  harmless  little  dead  beetle,  why,  you  can 
carry  it  up  by  this  string — but,  if  you  do  not  take  it  up 
with  you  in  some  way,  I  shall  be  under  the  necessity  of 
breaking  your  head  with  this  shovel — "  455 

"What  de  matter  now,  massa?"  said  Jup,  evidently 
shamed  into  compliance;  "always  want  fur  to  raise  fuss 
wid  old  nigger.  Was  only  funnin  anyhow.  Me  feered  de 
bug!  what  I  keer  for  de  bug?"  Here  he  took  cautiously 
hold  of  the  extreme  end  of  the  string,  and,  maintaining  46o 
the  insect  as  far  from  his  person  as  circumstances  would 
permit,  prepared  to  ascend  the  tree. 

In  youth,  the  tulip-tree,  or  Liriodendron  Tulipifera,  the 
most  magnificent  of  American  foresters,  has  a  trunk  pecu- 
liarly smooth,  and  often  rises  to  a  great  height  without  465 
lateral  branches;  but,  in  its  riper  age,  the  bark  becomes 
gnarled  and  uneven,  while  many  short  limbs  make  their 
appearance  on  the  stem.  Thus  the  difficulty  of  ascension, 
in  the  present  case,  lay  more  in  semblance  than  in  reality. 
Embracing  the  huge  cylinder,  as  closely  as  possible,  with  470 
his  arms  and  knees,  seizing  with  his  hands  some  projections 


48  Southern  Literary  Readings 

and  resting  his  naked  toes  upon  others,  Jupiter,  after  one 
or  two  narrow  escapes  from  falling,  at  length  wriggled 
himself  into  the  first  great  fork,  and  seemed  to  consider 
475  the  whole  business  as  virtually  accomplished.    The  risk 
of  the  achievement  was,  in  fact,  now  over,  although  the 
climber  was  some  sixty  or  seventy  feet  from  the  ground. 
"Which  way  mus  go  now,  Massa  Will?"  he  asked. 
"Keep  up  the  largest  branch, — the  one  on  this  side," 
480  said  Legrand.     The  negro  obeyed  him  promptly,   and 
apparently  with  but  little  trouble;  ascending  higher  and 
higher,  until  no  glimpse  of  his  squat  figure  could  be 
obtained  through  the  dense  foliage  which  enveloped  it. 
Presently  his  voice  was  heard  in  a  sort  of  halloo. 
485     '  *  How  much  f udder  is  got  for  go  ? " 

"How  high  up  are  you?"  asked  Legrand. 
"Ebber  so  fur,"  replied  the  negro;  "can  see  de  sky  fru 
de  top  ob  de  tree." 

"  Never  mind  the  sky,  but  attend  to  what  I  say.     Look 
490  down  the  trunk  and  count  the  limbs  below  you  on  this 
side.     How  many  lifnbs  have  you  passed  ? " 

"One,  two,  tree,  four,  fibe  —  I  done  pass  fibe  big  limb, 
massa,  pon  dis  side." 

"Then  go  one  limb  higher." 
495     In  a  few  minutes  the  voice  was  heard  again,  announcing 
that  the  seventh  limb  was  attained. 

"Now,  Jup,"  cried  Legrand,  evidently  much  excited, 
"  I  want  you  to  work  your  way  out  upon  that  limb  as  far 
as  you  can.  If  you  see  anything  strange,  let  me  know." 
500  By  this  time  what  little  doubt  I  might  have  entertained 
of  my  poor  friend's  insanity  was  put  finally  at  rest.  I  had 
no  alternative  but  to  conclude  him  stricken  with  lunacy, 
and  I  became  seriously  anxious  about  getting  him 
home.  While  I  was  pondering  upon  what  was  best  to  be 
flos  done,  Jupiter's  voice  was  again  heard. 


The  Gold  Bug  4g 

**Mos  feerd  for  to  ventur  pon  dis  limb  berry  far — 'tis 
dead  limb  putty  much  all  de  way." 

"Did  you  say  it  was  a  dead  limb,  Jupiter?"  cried 
Legrand,  in  a  quavering  voice. 

"Yes,  massa,  him  dead  as  de  door-nail — done  up  for 510 
sartin — done  departed  dis  here  life." 

"What  in  the  name  of  heaven  shall  I  do?"  asked 
Legrand,  seemingly  in  the  greatest  distress. 

"Do ! "  said  I,  glad  of  an  opportunity  to  interpose  a  word, 
"why,  come  home  and  go  to  bed.    Come  now! — that's  a 515 
fine  fellow.     It 's  getting  late,  and,  besides,  you  remember 
your  promise," 

"Jupiter,"  criea  he,  without  heeding  me  in  the  least, 
"do  you  hear  me ? ' 

"Yes,  Massa  Will,  hear  you  ebber  so  plain."  520 

"Try  the  wood  well,  then,  with  your  knife,  and  see  if 
you  think  it  very  rotten." 

"  Him  rotten,  massa,  sure  nuif , "  replied  the  negro  in  a  few 
moments,  * '  but  not  so  berry  rotten  as  mought  be.  Mought 
ventur  out  leetle  way  pon  de  limb  by  myself,  dat's  true."  525 

"By  yourself ! — what  do  you  mean ? ' ' 

"Why,  I  mean  de  bug.  'Tis  berry  hebby  bug.  Spose 
I  drop  him  down  fuss,  and  den  de  limb  won't  break  wid 
just  de  weight  ob  one  nigger." 

"You  infernal  scoundrel!"  cried  Legrand,  apparently 530 
much  relieved,  "what  do  you  mean  by  telling  me  such 
nonsense  as  that  ?    As  sure  as  you  let  that  beetle  fall,  I  '11 
break  your  neck.    Look  here,  Jupiter !  do  you  hear  me  ?  *  * 

"Yes,  massa,  needn't  hollo  at  poor  nigger  dat  style." 

"Well!  now  Hsten! — if  you  will  venture  out  on  the  limb  535 
as  far  as  you  think  safe,  and  not  let  go  the  beetle,  I  '11  make 
you  a  present  of  a  silver  dollar  as  soon  as  you  get  down." 

"I'm  gwine,  Massa  Will — deed  I  is,"  replied  the  negro 
very  promptly — "mos  out  to  the  eend  now." 
4 


^0  Southern  Literary  Readings 

640     '* Out  to  the  end!''  here  fairly  screamed  Legrand,  "do  you 
say  you  are  out  to  the  end  of  that  limb  ? " 
'    * '  Soon  be  to  de  eend,  massa, — o-o-o-o-oh !    Lor-a-marcy ! 
what  is  dis  here  pon  de  tree? " 

"Well!"  cried  Legrand,  highly  delighted,  "what  is  it?" 
545     "Why,  taint  noffin  but  a  skull — somebody  bin  lef  him 
head  up  de  tree,  and  de  crows  done  gobble  ebery  bit  ob  de 
meat  off." 

"A  skull,  you  say! — very  well! — how  is  it  fastened  to 
the  limb? — what  holds  it  on?" 
550     "Sure  nuff,  massa;  mus  look.     Why,  dis  berry  curous 
sarcumstance,  pon  my  word — dare's  a  great  big  nail  in 
de  skull,  what  fastens  ob  it  on  to  de  tree." 

"Well  now,  Jupiter,  do  exactly  as  I  tell  you — do  you 
hear?" 
555     "Yes,  massa." 

"Pay  attention,  then! — find  the  left  eye  of  the  skull." 

" Hum !  hoo !  dat  's  good !  why,  dar  aint  no  eye  lef  at  all." 

"Curse  your  stupidity!  do  you  know  your  right  hand 

from  your  lef t  ? " 

660     "Yes,  I  nose  dat — nose  all  bout  dat — 'tis  my  lef  hand 

what  I  chops  de  wood  wid." 

"To  be  sure!  you  are  left-handed;  and  your  left  eye  is 
on  the  same  side  as  your  left  hand.     Now,  I  suppose,  you 
can  find  the  left  eye  of  the  skull,  or  the  place  where  the  left 
665  eye  has  been.     Have  you  found  it  ? " 

Here  was  a  long  pause.    At  length  the  negro  asked: 
"  Is  de  lef  eye  of  de  skull  pon  de  same  side  as  de  lef  hand 
of  de  skull,  too  ?  cause  de  skiill  ain't  got  not  a  bit  ob  a  hand 
at  all — nebber  mind!    I  got  de  lef  eye  now — here  de  lef 
570  eye !  what  mus  do  wid  it  ? " 

"Let  the  beetle  drop  through  it,  as  far  as  the  string  will 
reach — but  be  careful  and  not  let  go  your  hold  of  the 
string." 


The  Gold  Bug  51 

**A11  dat  done,  Massa  Will;  mighty  easy  ting  for  to  put 
de  bug  fru  de  hole — look  out  for  him  dar  below!"  575 

During  this  colloquy  no  portion  of  Jupiter's  person  could 
be  seen;  but  the  beetle,  which  he  had  suffered  to  descend, 
was  now  visible  at  the  end  of  the  string,  and  glistened, 
like  a  globe  of  burnished  gold,  in  the  last  rays  of  the  setting 
sun,  some  of  which  still  faintly  illumined  the  eminence  sso 
upon  which  we  stood.  The  scarahcBus  hung  quite  clear 
of  any  branches,  and,  if  allowed  to  fall,  would  have  fallen 
at  our  feet.  Legrand  immediately  took  the  scythe,  and 
cleared  with  it  a  circular  space,  three  or  four  yards  in 
diameter,  just  beneath  the  insect,  and,  having  accomplished  sss 
this,  ordered  Jupiter  to  let  go  the  string  and  come  down 
from  the  tree. 

Driving  a  peg,  with  great  nicety,  into  the  ground,  at 
the  precise  spot  where  the  beetle  fell,  my  friend  now 
produced  from  his  pocket  a  tape-measure.  Fastening  one  590 
end  of  this  at  that  point  of  the  trunk  of  the  tree  which  was 
nearest  the  peg,  he  unrolled  it  till  it  reached  the  peg,  and 
thence  farther  unrolled  it,  in  the  direction  already  estab- 
lished by  the  two  points  of  the  tree  and  the  peg,  for  the 
distance  of  fifty  feet — ^Jupiter  clearing  away  the  brambles  595 
with  the  scythe.  At  the  spot  thus  attained  a  second  peg 
was  driven,  and  about  this,  as  a  centre,  a  rude  circle,  about 
four  feet  in  diameter,  described.  Taking  now  a  spade 
himself,  and  giving  one  to  Jupiter  and  one  to  me,  Legrand 
begged  us  to  set  about  digging  as  quickly  as  possible.  eoo 

To  speak  the  truth,  I  had  no  especial  relish  for  such 
amusement  at  any  time,  and,  at  that  particular  moment, 
would  most  willingly  have  declined  it ;  for  the  night  was 
coming  on,  and  I  felt  much  fatigued  with  the  exercise  already 
taken ;  but  I  saw  no  mode  of  escape,  and  was  fearful  of  605 
disturbing  my  poor  friend's  equanimity  by  a  refusal. 
Could  I  have  depended,  indeed,  upon  Jupiter's  aid,  I  would 


52  Southern  Literary  Readings 

have  had  no  hesitation  in  attempting  to  get  the  lunatic 
home  by  force ;  but  I  was  too  well  assured  of  the  old  negro's 

610  disposition  to  hope  that  he  would  assist  me,  under  any 
circumstances,  in  a  personal  contest  with  his  master.  I 
made  no  doubt  that  the  latter  had  been  infected  with  some 
of  the  innumerable  Southern  superstitions  about  money 
buried,  and  that  his  fantasy  had  received  confirmation 

615  by  the  finding  of  the  scarabcBus,  or,  perhaps,  by  Jupiter's 
obstinacy  in  maintaining  it  to  be  "a  bug  of  real  gold."  A 
mind  disposed  to  lunacy  would  readily  be  led  away  by 
such  suggestions,  especially  if  chiming  in  with  favorite 
preconceived  ideas;  and  then  I  called  to  mind  the  poor 

620 fellow's  speech  about  the  beetle's  being  "the  index  of  his 
fortune."  Upon  the  whole,  I  was  sadly  vexed  and  puzzled, 
but  at  length  I  concluded  to  make  a  virtue  of  necessity — 
to  dig  with  a  good  will,  and  thus  the  sooner  to  convince 
the  visionary,  by  ocular  demonstration,  of  the  fallacy  of 

625  the  opinions  he  entertained. 

The  lanterns  having  been  lit,  we  all  fell  to  work  with 
a  zeal  worthy  a  more  rational  cause;  and,  as  the  glare 
fell  upon  our  persons  and  implements,  I  could  not  help 
thinking  how  picturesque  a  group  we  composed,  and  how 

630  strange  and  suspicious  our  labors  must  have  appeared  to 
any  interloper  who,  by  chance,  might  have  stumbled  upon 
our  whereabouts. 

We  dug  very  steadily  for  two  hours.  Little  was  said; 
and  our  chief  embarrassment  lay  in  the  yelpings  of  the  dog, 

635  who  took  exceeding  interest  in  our  proceedings.  He,  at 
length,  became  so  obstreperous,  that  we  grew  fearful  of  his 
giving  the  alarm  to  some  stragglers  in  the  vicinity;  or, 
rather,  this  was  the  apprehension  of  Legrand;  for  myself, 
I  should  have  rejoiced  at  any  interruption  which  might 

640  have  enabled  me  to  get  the  wanderer  home.  The  noise 
was,  at  length,  very  effectually  silenced  by  Jupiter,  who, 


The  Gold  Bug  53 

getting  out  of  the  hole  with  a  dogged  air  of  dehberation, 
tied  the  brute's  mouth  up  with  one  of  his  suspenders,  and 
then  returned,  with  a  grave  chuckle,  to  his  task. 

When  the  time  mentioned  had  expired,  we  had  reached  645 
a  depth  of  five  feet,  and  yet  no  signs  of  any  treasure 
became  manifest.    A  general  pause  ensued,  and  I  began  to 
hope  that  the  farce  was  at  an  end.     Legrand,  however, 
although  evidently  much  disconcerted,  wiped  his  brow 
thoughtfully  and  recommenced.     We  had  excavated  the  eso 
entire  circle  of  four  feet  diameter,  and  now  we  slightly 
enlarged  the  limit,  and  went  to  the  farther  depth  of  two 
feet.    Still  nothing  appeared.    The  gold-seeker,  whom  I 
sincerely  pitied,  at  length  clambered  from  the  pit,  with  the 
bitterest  disappointment  imprinted  upon  every  feature,  655 
and  proceeded,   slowly  and  reluctantly,   to  put  on  his 
coat,  which  he  had  thrown  off  at  the  beginning  of  his 
labor.     In  the  mean  time  I  made  no  remark.    Jupiter,  at  a 
signal  from  his  master,  began  to  gather  up  his  tools.     This 
done,  and  the  dog  having  been  unmuzzled,  we  turned  in  m 
profound  silence  towards  home. 

We  had  taken,  perhaps,  a  dozen  steps  in  this  direction, 
when,  with  a  loud  oath,  Legrand  strode  up  to  Jupiter,  and 
seized  him  by  the  collar.     The  astonished  negro  opened  his 
eyes  and  mouth  to  the  fullest  extent,  let  fall  the  spades,  and  ees 
fell  upon  his  knees. 

"You  scoundrel,"  said  Legrand,  hissing  out  the  syllables 
from  between  his  clenched  teeth,  "you  infernal  black 
villain! — speak,  I  tell  you! — answer  me  this  instant, 
without  prevarication! — which — which  is  your  left  eye?"  67o 

"Oh,  my,  Massa  Will!  aint  dis  here  my  lef  eye  for 
sartain?"  roared  the  terrified  Jupiter,  placing  his  hand 
upon  his  right  organ  of  vision,  and  holding  it  there  with 
a  desperate  pertinacity,  as  if  in  immediate  dread  of  his 
master's  attempt  at  a  gouge.  675 


54  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"I    thought    so! — I    knew    it!    hurrah!"    vociferated 

Legrand,  letting  the  negro  go,  and  executing  a  series  of 

curvets  and  caracoles,  much  to  the  astonishment  of  his 

valet,  who,  arising  from  his  knees,  looked  mutely  from  his 

680  master  to  myself,  and  then  from  myself  to  his  master. 

"Come!  we  must  go  back,"  said  the  latter,  **the  game's 
not  up  yet " ;  and  he  again  led  the  way  to  the  tulip-tree. 

''Jupiter,"  said  he,  when  we  reached  its  foot,  "come 
here!  was  the  skull  nailed  to  the  limb  with  the  face  out- 
685  ward,  or  with  the  face  to  the  limb?" 

"De  face  was  out,  massa,  so  dat  de  crows  could  get  at 
de  eyes  good,  widout  any  trouble." 

"Well,  then,  was  it  this  eye  or  that  through  which 
you  dropped  the  beetle?" — here  Legrand  touched  each 
690  of  Jupiter's  eyes. 

"  'Twas  dis  eye,  massa — de  lef  eye — jis  as  you  tell  me," 
and  here  it  was  his  right  eye  that  the  negro  indicated. 

"That  will  do — we  must  try  it  again." 

Here  my  friend,  about  whose  madness  I  now  saw,  or 
695  fancied  that  I  saw,  certain  indications  of  method,  removed 
the  peg  which  marked  the  spot  where  the  beetle  fell,  to  a 
spot  about  three  inches  to  the  westward  of  its  former 
position.  Taking,  now,  the  tape-measure  from  the  nearest 
point  of  the  trunk  to  the  peg,  as  before,  and  continuing 
700  the  extension  in  a  straight  line  to  the  distance  of  fifty 
feet,  a  spot  was  indicated,  removed,  by  several  yards,  from 
the  point  at  which  we  had  been  digging. 

Around  the  new  position  a  circle,  somewhat  larger  than 
in  the  former  instance,  was  now  described,  and  we  again 
705  set  to  work  with  the  spades.  I  was  dreadfully  weary,  but, 
scarcely  understanding  what  had  occasioned  the  change  in 
my  thoughts,  I  felt  no  longer  any  great  aversion  from  the 
labor  imposed.  I  had  become  most  unaccountably  inter- 
ested — nay,  even  excited.     Perhaps  there  was  something, 


The  Gold  Bug  55 

amid  all  the  extravagant  demeanor  of  Legrand — some  air  710 
of  forethought,  or  of  deliberation,  which  impressed  me. 
I  dug  eagerly,  and  now  and  then  caught  myself  actually 
looking,  with  something  that  very  much  resembled  expec- 
tation, for  the  fancied  treasure,  the  vision  of  which  had 
demented  my  unforttinate  companion.     At  a  period  when  715 
such  vagaries  of  thought  most  fully  possessed  me,  and  when 
we  had  been  at  work  perhaps  an  hour  and  a  half,  we  were 
again  interrupted  by  the  violent  howlings  of  the  dog.     His 
uneasiness,  in  the  first  instance,  had  been  evidently  but 
the  result  of  playfulness  or  caprice,  but  he  now  assumed  720 
a  bitter  and  serious  tone.     Upon  Jupiter's  again  attempting 
to  muzzle  him,  he  made  ftirious  resistance,  and,  leaping  into 
the  hole,  tore  up  the  mould  frantically  with  his  claws.     In 
a  few  seconds  he  had  uncovered  a  mass  of  human  bones, 
forming  two  complete  skeletons,  intermingled  with  several  725 
buttons  of  metal,  and  what  appeared  to  be  the  dust  of 
decayed  woollen.    One  or  two  strokes  of  a  spade  upturned 
the  blade  of  a  large  Spanish  knife,  and,  as  we  dug  far- 
ther, three  or  four  loose  pieces  of  gold  and  silver  coin  came 

to   light.  730 

At  the  sight  of  these  the  joy  of  Jupiter  could  scarcely  be 
restrained,  but  the  countenance  of  his  master  wore  an  air 
of  extreme  disappointment.  He  urged  us,  however,  to 
continue  our  exertions,  and  the  words  were  hardly  uttered 
when  I  sttimbled  and  fell  forward,  having  caught  the  toe  of  735 
my  boot  in  a  large  ring  of  iron  that  lay  half -buried  in  the 
loose  earth. 

We  now  worked  in  earnest,  and  never  did  I  pass  ten  min- 
utes of  more  intense  excitement.  During  this  interval 
we  had  fairly  unearthed  an  oblong  chest  of  wood,  which,  740 
from  its  perfect  preservation  and  wonderful  hardness,  had 
plainly  been  subjected  to  some  mineralizing  process  — 
perhaps  that  of  the  bichloride  of  mercury.     This  box  was 


^6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

three  feet  and  a  half  long,  three  feet  broad,  and  two  and 

745  a  half  feet  deep.  It  was  firmly  secured  by  bands  of 
wrought  iron,  riveted,  and  forming  a  kind  of  trellis-work 
over  the  whole.  On  each  side  of  the  chest,  near  the  top, 
were  three  rings  of  iron — six  in  all — by  means  of  which  a 
firm  hold  could  be  obtained  by  six  persons.     Our  utmost 

750  united  endeavors  served  only  to  disturb  the  coffer  very 
slightly  in  its  bed.  We  at  once  saw  the  impossibility  of 
removing  so  great  a  weight.  Luckily,  the  sole  fastenings 
of  the  lid  consisted  of  two  sliding  bolts.  These  we  drew 
back — trembling  and  panting  with  anxiety.    In  an  instant, 

755  a  treasure  of  incalculable  value  lay  gleaming  before  us.  As 
the  rays  of  the  lanterns  fell  within  the  pit,  there  flashed 
upwards,  from  a  confused  heap  of  gold  and  of  jewels,  a  glow 
and  a  glare  that  absolutely  dazzled  our  eyes. 

I  shall  not  pretend  to  describe  the  feelings  with  which 

760 1  gazed.  Amazement  was,  of  course,  predominant. 
Legrand  appeared  exhausted  with  excitement,  and  spoke 
very  few  words.  Jupiter's  countenance  wore,  for  some 
minutes,  as  deadly  a  pallor  as  it  is  possible,  in  the  nature  of 
things,  for  any  negro's  visage  to  assume.    He  seemed  stupe- 

765fied — thunder-stricken.  Presently  he  fell  upon  his  knees 
in  the  pit,  and,  burying  his  naked  arms  up  to  the  elbows 
in  gold,  let  them  there  remain,  as  if  enjoying  the  luxtiry  of 
a  bath.  At  length,  with  a  deep  sigh,  he  exclaimed,  as  if 
in  a  soliloquy : 

770  **And  dis  all  cum  ob  de  goole-bug!  de  putty  goole-bug! 
de  poor  little  goole-bug,  what  I  boosed  in  dat  sabage  kind 
ob  style !  Aint  you  ashamed  ob  yourself,  nigger? — ansv/er 
me  dat!" 

It  became  necessary,  at  last,  that  I  should  arouse  both 

775  master  and  valet  to  the  expediency  of  removing  the 
treasure.  It  was  growing  late,  and  it  behooved  us  to  make 
exertion,  that  we  might  get  everything  housed  before 


The  Gold  Bug  57 

daylight.  It  was  difficult  to  say  what  should  be  done,  and 
much  time  was  spent  in  deliberation — so  confused  were 
the  ideas  of  all.  We  finally  lightened  the  box  by  removing  tso 
two  thirds  of  its  contents,  when  we  were  enabled,  with  some 
trouble,  to  raise  it  from  the  hole.  The  articles  taken  out 
were  deposited  among  the  brambles,  and  the  dog  left  to 
guard  them,  with  strict  orders  from  Jupiter  neither,  upon 
any  pretence,  to  stir  from  the  spot,  nor  to  open  his  mouth  785 
until  our  return.  We  then  hurriedly  made  for  home  with 
the  chest;  reaching  the  hut  in  safety,  but  after  excessive 
toil,  at  one  o'clock  in  the  morning.  Worn  out  as  we  were, 
it  was  not  in  human  nature  to  do  more  just  now.  We 
rested  until  two,  and  had  supper;  starting  for  the  hills  im-  790 
mediately  afterwards,  armed  with  three  stout  sacks,  which 
by  good  luck  were  upon  the  premises.  A  little  before 
four  we  arrived  at  the  pit,  divided  the  remainder  of  the 
booty,  as  equally  as  might  be,  among  us,  and,  leaving  the 
holes  unfilled,  again  set  out  for  the  hut,  at  which,  for  795 
the  second  time,  we  deposited  our  golden  burdens,  just  as 
,  the  first  streaks  of  the  dawn  gleamed  from  over  the  tree- 
tops  in  the  east. 

We  were  now  thoroughly  broken  down ;  but  the  intense 
excitement  of  the  time  denied  us  repose.     After  an  unquiet  sco 
slumber  of  some  three  or  four  hours'  duration,  we  arose, 
as  if  by  preconcert,  to  make  examination  of  our  treasure. 

The  chest  had  been  full  to  the  brim,  and  we  spent  the 
whole  day,  and  the  greater  part  of  the  next  night,  in  a 
scrutiny  of  its  contents.  There  had  been  nothing  like  order  sos 
or  arrangement.  Everything  had  been  heaped  in  promis- 
cuously. Having  assorted  all  with  care,  we  found  our- 
selves possessed  of  even  vaster  wealth  than  we  had  at  first 
supposed.  In  coin  there  was  rather  more  than  four  hun- 
dred and  fifty  thousand  dollars :  estimating  the  value  of  sio 
the  pieces,   as  accurately  as  we  could,  by  the  tables  of 


§8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

the  period.  There  was  not  a  particle  of  silver.  All  was 
gold  of  antique  date  and  of  great  variety :  French,  Spanish, 
and  German  money,  with  a  few  English  guineas,  and 

815  some  counters,  of  which  we  had  never  seen  specimens 
before.  There  were  several  very  large  and  heavy  coins, 
so  worn  that  we  could  make  nothing  of  their  inscriptions. 
There  was  no  American  money.  The  value  of  the  jewels 
we   found   more   difficulty   in   estimating.    There   were 

820  diamonds — some  of  them  exceedingly  large  and  fine — a 
hundred  and  ten  in  all,  and  not  one  of  them  small ;  eighteen 
rubies  of  remarkable  brilliancy;  three  hundred  and  ten 
emeralds,  all  very  beautiful;  and  twenty-one  sapphires, 
with  an  opal.     These  stones  had  all  been  broken  from  their 

825  settings  and  thrown  loose  in  the  chest.  The  settings 
themselves,  which  we  picked  out  from  among  the  other 
gold,  appeared  to  have  been  beaten  up  with  hammers, 
as  if  to  prevent  identification.  Besides  all  this,  there  was 
a  vast  quantity  of  solid  gold  ornaments :  nearly  two  hun- 

83odred  massive  finger  and  ear  rings;  rich  chains — thirty 
of  these,  if  I  remembes ;  eighty-three  very  large  and  heavy 
crucifixes;  five  gold  censers  of  great  value;  a  prodigious 
golden  punch-bowl,  ornamented  with  richly  chased  vine- 
leaves  and  Bacchanalian  figures;  with  two  sword-handles 

835  exquisitely  embossed,  and  many  other  smaller  articles 
which  I  cannot  recollect.  The  weight  of  these  valuables 
exceeded  three  hundred  and  fifty  pounds  avoirdupois; 
and  in  this  estimate  I  have  not  included  one  hundred  and 
ninety-seven  superb  gold  watches;  three  of  the  number 

840  being  worth  each  five  hundred  dollars,  if  one.     Many  of 

them  were  very  old,  and  as  time-keepers  valueless,  the 

works  having  suffered  more  or  less  from  corrosion;  but  all 

were  richly  jewelled  and  in  cases  of  great  worth.     We 

-  estimated  the  entire  contents  of  the  chest,  that  night,  at 

845  a  million  and  a  half  of  dollars;  and,  upon  the  subsequent 


The  Gold  Bug  ^g 

disposal  of  the  trinkets  and  jewels  -(a  few  being  retained 
for  our  own  use) ,  it  was  found  that  we  had  greatly  under- 
valued the  treasure. 

When,  at  length,  we  had  concluded  our  examination, 
and  the  intense  excitement  of  the  time  had  in  some  measure  sso 
subsided,  Legrand,  who  saw  that  I  was  dying  with  impa- 
tience for  a  solution  of  this  most  extraordinary  riddle,- 
entered  into  a  full  detail  of  all  the  circimistances  connected 
with  it. 

**You  remember,"  said  he,  *'the  night  when  I  handed  sss 
you  the  rough  sketch  I  had  made  of  the  scarabcBus.     You 
recollect  also,  that  I  became  quite  vexed  at  you  for  insisting 
that  my  drawing  resembled  a  death's-head.     When  you 
first  made  this  assertion  I  thought  you  were  jesting;  but 
afterwards  I  called  to  mind  the  peculiar  spots  on  the  back  m 
of  the  insect,  and  admitted  to  myself  that  your  remark 
had  some  little  foundation  in  fact.     Still,  the  sneer  at  my 
graphic  powers  irritated  me — for  I  am  considered  a  good 
artist — and,  therefore,  when  you  handed  me  the  scrap  of 
parchment,  I  was  about  to  crumple  it  up  and  throw  itses 
angrily  into  the  fire." 

"The  scrap  of  paper  you  mean,"  said  I. 

*'No:  it  had  much  of  the  appearance  of  paper,  and  at 
first  I  supposed  it  to  be  such,  but  when  I  came  to  draw  upon 
it,  I  discovered  it,  at  once,  to  be  a  piece  of  very  thinsTo 
parchment.  It  was  quite  dirty,  you  remember.  Well, 
as  I  was  in  the  very  act  of  crumpling  it  up,  my  glance  fell 
upon  the  sketch  at  which  you  had  been  looking,  and  you 
may  imagine  my  astonishment  when  I  perceived,  in  fact, 
the  figure  of  a  death's-head  just  where,  it  seemed  to  me,  875 
I  had  made  the  drawing  of  the  beetle.  For  a  moment  I 
was  too  much  amazed  to  think  with  accuracy.  I  knew 
that  my  design  was  very  different  in  detail  from  this  — 
although  there  was  a  certain  similarity  in  general  outline. 


6o  Southern  Literary  Readings 

880  Presently  I  took  a  candle  and,  seating  myself  at  the  other 
end  of  the  room,  proceeded  to  scrutinize  the  parchment 
more  closely.  Upon  turning  it  over,  I  saw  my  own  sketch 
upon  the  reverse,  just  as  I  had  made  it.  My  first  idea, 
now,  was  mere  surprise  at  the  really  remarkable  similarity 

885  of  outline — at  the  singular  coincidence  involved  in  the 
fact  that,  unknown  to  me,  there  should  have  been  a  skull 
upon  the  other  side  of  the  parchment,  immediately  beneath 
my  figure  of  the  scarabcBus,  and  that  this  skull,  not  only  in 
outline,  but  in  size,  should  so  closely  resemble  my  drawing. 

890 1  say  the  singularity  of  this  coincidence  absolutely  stupefied 
me  for  a  time.  This  is  the  usual  effect  of  such  coincidences. 
The  mind  struggles  to  establish  a  connection — a  sequence 
of  cause  and  effect — and,  being  unable  to  do  so,  suffers  a 
species  of  temporary  paralysis.     But,  when  I  recovered 

895  from  this  stupor,  there  dawned  upon  me  gradually  a 
conviction  which  startled  me  even  far  more  than  the 
coincidence.  I  began  distinctly,  positively,  to  remember 
that  there  had  been  no  drawing  on  the  parchment  when  I 
made  my  sketch  of  th«  scarahceus.     I  became  perfectly  cer- 

900  tain  of  this ;  for  I  recollected  turning  up  first  one  side  and 
then  the  other,  in  search  of  the  cleanest  spot.  Had  the 
skull  been  then  there,  of  course  I  could  not  have  failed  to 
notice  it.  Here  was  indeed  a  mystery  which  I  felt  it 
impossible  to  explain;   but,  even  at  that  early  moment, 

905  there  seemed  to  glimmer,  faintly,  within  the  most  remote 
and  secret  chambers  of  my  intellect,  a  glow-worm-like 
conception  of  that  truth  which  last  night's  adventure 
brought  to  so  magnificent  a  demonstration.  I  arose  at 
once,  and,  putting  the  parchment  securely  away,  dismissed 

910  all  farther  reflection  until  I  should  be  alone. 

"When  you  had  gone,  and  when  Jupiter  was  fast 
asleep,  I  betook  myself  to  a  more  methodical  investigation 
of  the  affair.     In  the  first  place  I  considered  the  manner 


The  Gold  Bug  6i 

in  which  the  parchment  had  come  into  my  possession. 
The  spot  where  we  discovered  the  scarahcEus  was  on  the  915 
coast  of  the  main-land,  about  a  mile  eastward  of  the  island, 
and  but  a  short  distance  above  high-water  mark.  Upon 
my  taking  hold  of  it,  it  gave  me  a  sharp  bite,  which 
caused  me  to  let  it  drop,  Jupiter,  with  his  accustomed 
caution,  before  seizing  the  insect, 'which  had  flown  towards  920 
him,  looked  about  him  for  a  leaf,  or  something  of  that 
nature,  by  which  to  take  hold  of  it.  It  was  at  this 
moment  that  his  eyes,  and  mine  also,  fell  upon  the  scrap 
of  parchment,  which  I  then  supposed  to  be  paper.  It 
was  lying  half -buried  in  the  sand,  a  comer  sticking  up.  925 
Near  the  spot  where  we  found  it,  I  observed  the  remnants 
of  the  hull  of  what  appeared  to  have  been  a  ship's  long 
boat.  The  wreck  seemed  to  have  been  there  for  a  very 
great  while;  for  the  resemblance  to  boat  timbers  could 
scarcely  be  traced.  930 

"Well,  Jupiter  picked  up  the  parchment,  wrapped  the 
beetle  in  it,  and  gave  it  to  me.    Soon  afterwards  we  turned 

to  go  home,  and  on  the  way  met  Lieutenant  G .     I 

showed  him  the  insect,  and  he  begged  me  to  let  him  take 
it  to  the  fort.  On  my  consenting,  he  thrust  it  forthwith  935 
into  his  waistcoat  pocket,  without  the  parchment  in  which 
it  had  been  wrapped,  and  which  I  had  continued  to  hold 
in  my  hand  during  his  inspection.  Perhaps  he  dreaded  my 
changing  my  mind,  and  thought  it  best  to  make  sure  of 
the  prize  at  once — you  know  how  enthusiastic  he  is  on  all  940 
subjects  connected  with  Natural  History.  At  the  same 
time,  without  being  conscious  of  it,  I  must  have  deposited 
the  parchment  in  my  own  pocket. 

"You  remember  that  when  I  went  to  the  table,  for  the 
purpose  of  making  a  sketch  of  the  beetle,  I  found  no  paper  945 
where  it  was  usually  kept.     I  looked  in  the  drawer,  and 
found  none  there.     I  searched  my  pockets,  hoping  to  find 


62  Southern  Literary  Readings 

an  old  letter,  and  then  my  hand  fell  upon  the  parchment. 
I  thus  detail  the  precise  mode  in  which  it  came  into 

950 my  possession;. for  the  circumstances  impressed  me  with 
peculiar  force. 

'*  No  doubt  you  will  think  me  fanciful— but  I  had  already 
established  a  kind  of  connection.  I  had  put  together  two 
links  of  a  great  chain.     There  was  a  boat  lying  on  a  sea- 

955  coast,  and  not  far  from  the  boat  was  a  parchment — not  a 
paper — with  a  skull  depicted  on  it.  You  will,  of  course^ 
ask  'where  is  the  connection?'  I  reply  that  the  skull,  or 
death's-head,  is  the  well-known  emblem  of  the  pirate. 
The  flag  of  the  death's-head  is  hoisted  in  all  engagements. 

960  "I  have  said  that  the  scrap  was  parchment,  and  not 
paper.  Parchment  is  durable  —  almost  imperishable. 
Matters  of  little  moment  are  rarely  consigned  to  parch- 
ment ;  since,  for  the  mere  ordinary  purposes  of  drawing  or 
writing,  it  is  not  nearly  so  well  adapted  as  paper.     This 

965  reflection  suggested  some  meaning — some  relevancy — in 
the  death's-head.  I  did  not  fail  to  observe,  also,  the 
jorm  of  the  parchment.  Although  one  of  its  comers  had 
been,  by  some  accident,  destroyed,  it  could  be  seen  that 
the  original  form  was  oblong.     It  was  just  such  a  slip, 

970  indeed,  as  might  have  been  chosen  for  a  memorandum — for 
a  record  of  something  to  be  long  remembered  and  carefully 
preserved." 

"But,"  I  interposed,  "you  say  that  the  skull  was  not 
upon  the  parchment  when  you  made  the  drawing  of  the 

975  beetle.  How  then  do  you  trace  any  connection  between 
the  boat  and  the  skull — since  this  latter,  according  to  your 
own  admission,  must  have  been  designed  at  some  period 
subsequent  to  your  sketching  the  scarabceusf" 

"Ah,  hereupon  turns  the  whole  mystery;  although  the 

980  secret,  at  this  point,  I  had  comparatively  little  difficulty 
in  solving.     My  steps  were  sure,  and  could  afford  but  a 


The  Gold  Bug  63 

single  result.  I  reasoned,  for  example,  thus:  ^When  I 
drew  the  scarabcBus,  there  was  no  skull  apparent  on  the 
parchment.  When  I  had  completed  the  drawing  I  gave 
it  to  you,  and  observed  you  narrowly  until  you  returned  it.  935 
You,  therefore,  did  not  design  the  skull,  and  no  one  else 
was  present  to  do  it.  Then  it  was  not  done  by  himian 
agency.    And  nevertheless  it  was  done. 

''At  this  stage  of  my  reflections  I  endeavored  to  remem- 
ber, and  did  remember,   with  entire  distinctness,  every  990 
incident  which  occurred  about  the  period  in  question.    The 
weather  was  chilly  (O  rare  and  happy  accident!)  and  a 
fire  was  blazing  on  the  hearth.     I  was  heated  with  exer- 
cise and  sat  near  the  table.     You,  however,  had  drawn  a 
chair  close  to  the  chimney.     Just  as  I  placed  the  parch-  995 
ment  in  your  hand,  and  as  you  were  in  the  act  of  inspecting 
it.  Wolf,  the  Newfoundland,  entered,  and  leaped  upon 
your  shoulders.     With  your  left  hand  you  caressed  him 
and  kept  him  off,  while  your  right,  holding  the  parchment, 
was  permitted  to  fall  listlessly  between  your  knees,  and  1000 
in  close  proximity  to  the  fire.     At  one  moment  I  thought 
the  blaze  had  caught  it,  and  was  about  to  caution  you,  but, 
before  I  could  speak,  you  had  withdrawn  it,  and  were 
engaged  in  its  examination.    When  I  considered  all  these 
particulars,  I  doubted  not  for  a  moment  that  heat  had  1005 
been  the  agent  in  bringing  to  light,  on  the  parchment, 
the  skull  which  I  saw  designed  on  it.     You  are  well  aware 
that  chemical  preparations  exist,  and  have  existed  time 
out  of  mind,  by  means  of  which  it  is  possible  to  write  on 
either  paper  or  vellum,  so  that  the  characters  shall  become  1010 
visible  only  when  subjected  to  the  action  of  fire.     Zaffre, 
digested  in  aqua  regia,  and  diluted  with  four  times  its 
weight  of  water,  is  sometimes  employed ;  a  green  tint  results. 
The  regulus  of  cobalt,  dissolved  in  spirit  of  nitre,  gives  a 
red.    These  colors  disappear  at  longer  or  shorter  intervals  1015 


64  Southern  Literary  Readings 

after  the  material  written  upon  cools,  but  again  become 
apparent  upon  the  re-application  of  heat. 

"I  now  scrutinized  the  death's-head  with  care.  Its 
outer  edges — the  edges  of  the  drawing  nearest  the  edge 

1020  of  the  vellum — were  far  more  distinct  than  the  others.  It 
was  clear  that  the  action  of  the  caloric  had  been  imperfect 
or  unequal.  I  immediately  kindled  a  fire,  and  subjected 
every  portion  of  the  parchment  to  a  glowing  heat.  At 
first,  the  only  effect  was  the  strengthening  of  the  faint 

1025 lines  in  the  skull;  but,  on  persevering  in  the  experiment, 
there  became  visible,  at  the  corner  of  the  slip,  diagonally 
opposite  to  the  spot  in  which  the  death's-head  was 
delineated,  the  figure  of  what  I  at  first  supposed  to  be 
a  goat.    A  closer  scrutiny,  however,  satisfied  me  that  it 

1030  was  intended  for  a  kid." 

"  Ha !  ha ! "  said  I,  "  to  be  sure  I  have  no  right  to  laugh  at 
you — a  million  and  a  half  of  money  is  too  serious  a  matter 
for  mirth — but  you  are  not  about  to  establish  a  third  Hnk 
in  your  chain:  you  will  not  find  any  especial  connection 

1035 between  your  pirates  and  a  goat;  pirates,  you  know,  have 
nothing  to  do  with  goats ;  they  appertain  to  the  farming 
interest." 

"But  I  have  just  said  that  the  figure  was  not  that  of  a 
goat." 

1040     "Well,  a  kid,  then — pretty  much  the  same  thing." 

"Pretty  much,  but  not  altogether,"  said  Legrand. 
"You  may  have  heard  of  one  Captain  Kidd.  I  at  once 
looked  upon  the  figure  of  the  animal  as  a  kind  of  punning 
or  hieroglyphical  signature.     I  say  signature,  because  its 

1045  position  on  the  vellum  suggested  this  idea.  The  death's- 
head  at  the  corner  diagonally  opposite  had,  in  the  same 
manner,  the  air  of  a  stamp,  or  seal.  But  I  was  sorely  put 
out  by  the  absence  of  all  else — of  the  body  to  my  imagined 
instrument — of  the  text  for  my  context." 


The  Gold  Bug  65 

"I  presume  you  expected  to  find  a  letter  between  the  1050 
stamp  and  the  signature." 

"Something  of  that  kind.    The  fact  is,  I  felt  irresistibly 
impressed  with  a  presentiment  of  some  vast  good  fortune 
impending.     I  can  scarcely  say  why.     Perhaps,  after  all, 
it  was  rather  a  desire  than  an  actual  belief; — but  do  you  1055 
know  that  Jupiter's  silly  words,  about  the  bug  being  of 
solid  gold,  had  a  remarkable  effect  on  my  fancy?    And 
then  the  series  of  accidents  and  coincidences — these  were 
so  very  extraordinary.     Do  you  observe  how  mere  an 
accident  it  was  that  these  events  should  have  occurred  on  loeo 
the  sole  day  of  all  the  year  in  which  it  has  been,  or  may  be, 
sufficiently  cool  for  fire,  and  that  without  the  fire,  or  with- 
out the  intervention  of  the  dog  at  the  precise  moment  in 
which  he  appeared,  I  should  never  have  become  aware 
of  the  death's-head,  and  so  never  the  possessor  of  theioes 
treasure?" 

''But  proceed — I  am  all  impatience." 

''Well;  you  have  heard,  of  course,  the  many  stories 
current — the  thousand  vague  rumors  afloat  about  money 
buried,  somewhere  on  the  Atlantic  coast,  by  Kidd  and  his  1070 
associates.  These  rumors  must  have  had  some  foundation 
in  fact.  And  that  the  rumors  have  existed  so  long  and 
so  continuously,  could  have  resulted,  it  appeared  to  me, 
only  from  the  circumstance  of  the  buried  treasure  still 
remaining  entombed.  Had  Kidd  concealed  his  plunder  1075 
for  a  time,  and  afterwards  reclaimed  it,  the  rumors  would 
scarcely  have  reached  us  in  their  present  unvarying  form. 
You  will  observe  that  the  stories  told  are  all  about  money- 
seekers,  not  about  money-finders.  Had  the  pirate 
recovered  his  money,  there  the  affair  would  have  dropped,  loso 
It  seemed  to  me  that  some  accident — say  the  loss  of  a 
memorandum  indicating  its  locality — had  deprived  him 
of  the  means  of  recovering  it,  and  that  this  accident  had 


66  Southern  Literary  Readings 

become  known  to  his  followers,  who  otherwise  might  never 

1085  have  heard  that  treasure  had  been  concealed  at  all,  and 
who,  busying  themselves  in  vain,  because  unguided, 
attempts  to  regain  it,  had  given  first  birth,  and  then 
universal  currency,  to  the  reports  which  are  now  so 
common.    Have  you  ever  heard  of  any  important  treasure 

1090 being  unearthed  along  the  coast?" 
"Never." 

"But  that  Kidd's  acomiulations  were  immense  is  well 
known.  I  took  it  for  granted,  therefore,  that  the  earth 
still  held  them;  and  you  will  scarcely  be  surprised  when  I 

1095  tell  you  that  I  felt  a  hope,  nearly  amounting  to  certainty, 
that  the  parchment  so  strangely  found  involved  a  lost 
record  of  the  place  of  deposit." 
"But  how  did  you  proceed?" 
"I  held  the  vellum  again  to  the  fire,  after  increasing  the 

1100  heat,  but  nothing  appeared.  I  now  thought  it  possible 
that  the  coating  of  dirt  might  have  something  to  do  with 
the  failure;  so  I  carefully  rinsed  the  parchment  by  pouring 
warm  water  over  it,  and,  having  done  this,  I  placed  it  in  a 
tin  pan,  with  the  skull  downwards,  and  put  the  pan  upon  a 

1105  furnace  of  lighted  charcoal.  In  a  few  minutes,  the  pan 
having  become  thoroughly  heated,  I  removed  the  slip, 
and,  to  my  inexpressible  joy,  found  it  spotted,  in  several 
places,  with  what  appeared  to  be  figures  arranged  in  lines. 
Again  I  placed  it  in  the  pan,  and  suffered  it  to  remain 

1110  another  minute.  Upon  taking  it  off,  the  whole  was  just 
as  you  see  it  now." 

Here  Legrand,  having  reheated  the  parchment,  sub- 
mitted it  to  my  inspection.  The  following  characters  were 
rudely  traced,  in  a  red  tint,  between  the  death's-head  and 

1115  the  goat :  — 

S3ttt305))6*;4826)4t)4);8o6*;48t8l[6o))85;;]8*;:r8t83 
(88)5*t;46(;88*96*?;8)*t(;485);5n2:*t(;4956*2(5*— :4)81[8 


The  Gold  Bug  6y 

*;4o69285)  ;)6t8)4t  ;i  (l9 148081  ;8 :8ti  148185  ;4)485t5288o6* 
8i(t9;48;(88;4(t?34;48)4t;i6i;:i88;t?; 

"But,"  said  I,  returning  him  the  sHp,  "I  am  as  much  in  1120 
the  dark  as  ever.    Were  all  the  jewels  of  Golconda  awaiting 
me  upon  my  solution  of  this  enigma,  I  am  quite  sure  that 
I  should  be  unable  to  earn  them." 

"And  yet,"  said  Legrand,  "the  solution  is  by  no  means 
so  difficult  as  you  might  be  led  to  imagine  from  the  first  112s 
hasty  inspection  of  the  characters.  These  characters, 
as  any  one  might  readily  guess,  form  a  cipher — that  is 
to  say,  they  convey  a  meaning;  but  then,  from  what  is 
known  of  Kidd,  I  could  not  suppose  him  capable  of  con- 
structing any  of  the  more  abstruse  cryptographs.  I  made  1130 
up  my  mind,  at  once,  that  this  was  of  a  simple  species — 
such,  however,  as  would  appear  to  the  crude  intellect  of 
the  sailor,  absolutely  insoluble  without  the  key." 

"And  you  really  solved  it?" 

"Readily;  I  have  solved  others  of  an  abstruseness  ten  1135 
thousand  times  greater.  Circumstances,  and  a  certain 
bias  of  mind,  have  led  me  to  take  interest  in  such  riddles, 
and  it  may  well  be  doubted  whether  human  ingenuity  can 
construct  an  enigma  of  the  kind  which  human  ingenuity 
may  not,  by  proper  application,  resolve.  In  fact,  having  1140 
once  established  connected  and  legible  characters,!  scarcely 
gave  a  thought  to  the  mere  difficulty  of  developing  their 
import. 

"In  the  present  case — indeed  in  all  cases  of  secret 
writing — the  first  question  regards  the  language  of  theius 
cipher;  for  the  principles  of  solution,  so  far,  especially  as 
the  more  simple  ciphers  are  concerned,  depend  on,  and 
are  varied  by,  the  genius  of  the  particular  idiom.  In  gen- 
eral, there  is  no  alternative  but  experiment  (directed  by 
probabilities)  of  every  tongue  known  to  him  who  attempts  1150 
the  solution,  until  the  true  one  be  attained.     But,  with 


68 


Southern  Literary  Readings 


the  cipher  now  before  us,  all  difficulty  is  removed  by  the 
signature.  The  pun  upon  the  word  *Kidd'  is  appreciable 
in  no  other  language  than  the  English.     But  for  this  con- 

1155  sideration  I  should  have  begun  my  attempts  with  the 
Spanish  and  French,  as  the  tongues  in  which  a  secret  of 
this  kind  would  most  naturally  have  been  written  by  a 
pirate  of  the  Spanish  main.  As  it  was,  I  assumed  the 
cryptograph  to  be  English. 

1160  ''You  observe  there  are  no  divisions  between  the  words. 
Had  there  been  divisions,  the  task  would  have  been  com- 
paratively easy.  In  such  case  I  should  have  commenced 
with  a  collation  and  analysis  of  the  shorter  words,  and, 
had  a  word  of  a  single  letter  occurred,  as  is  most  likely 

1165  (a  or  /,  for  example) ,  I  should  have  considered  the  solution 
as  assured.  But,  there  being  no  division,  my  first  step  was 
to  ascertain  the  predominant  letters,  as  well  as  the  least 
frequent.     Counting  all,  I  constructed  a  table  thus: 


Of  the  character  8  there  are 


4 

X) 

5 
6 

( 

ti 

o 

92 


33 
26 

19 
16 

13 
12 
II 

10 — Not  given  by  Poe,  but 

Q  found  in  the  crypto- 

^         graph,  and  inserted 

6         to  make    the   table 

complete, 

4 
3 
2 
I 


The  Gold  Bug  6g 

"Now,  in  English,  the  letter  which  most  frequently 
occurs  is  e.  Afterwards,  the  succession  runs  thusmss 
aoidhnrstuycfglmwhkpqxz.  E  predominates, 
however,  so  remarkably  that  an  individual  sentence  of  any 
length  is  rarely  seen,  in  which  it  is  not  the  prevailing 
character. 

"Here,  then,  we  have,  in  the  very  beginning,  the  ground- 1190 
work  for  something  more  than  a  mere  guess.     The  general 
use  which  may  be  made  of  the  table  is  obvious — but,  in 
this  particular  cipher,  we  shall  only  very  partially  require 
its  aid.     As  our  predominant  character  is  8,  we  will  com- 
mence by  assuming  it  as  the  e  of  the  natural  alphabet.  1195 
To  verify  the  supposition,  let  us  observe  if  the  8  be  seen 
often  in  couples — for  e  is  doubled  with  great  frequency  in 
English — in  such  words,  for  example,  as  'meet,'  'fleet,' 
'speed,'  'seen,'  'been,'  'agree,'  etc.     In  the  present  instance 
we  see  it  doubled  no  less  than  five  times,  although  the  1200 
cryptograph  is  brief. 

"Let  us  assume  8,  then,  as  e.  Now,  of  all  words  in  the 
language,  'the'  is  most  usual ;  let  us  see,  therefore,  whether 
there  are  not  repetitions  of  any  three  characters,  in  the 
same  order  of  collocation,  the  last  of  them  being  8.  If  we  1205 
discover  repetitions  of  such  letters,  so  arranged,  they 
will  most  probably  represent  the  word  'the.'  On  inspec- 
tion, we  find  no  less  than  seven  such  arrangements,  the 
characters  being  148 .  We  may,  therefore,  assume  that  the 
semicolon  represents  t,  that  4  represents  h,  and  that  8  1210 
represents  e — the  last  being  now  well  confirmed.  Thus 
a  great  step  has  been  taken. 

"But,  having  established  a  single  word,  we  are  enabled 
to  establish  a  vastly  important  point;  that  is  to  say, 
several  commencements  and  terminations  of  other  words.  1215 
Let  us  refer,  for  example,  to  the  last  instance  but  one,  in 
which  the  combination  148  occurs — not  far  from  the  end 


"JO  Southern  Literary  Readings 

of  the  cipher.  We  know  that  the  semicolon  immediately 
ensuing  is  the  commencement  of  a  word,  and,  of  the  six 
1220  characters  succeeding  this  'the,'  we  are  cognizant  of  no  less 
than  five.  Let  us  set  these  characters  down,  thus,  by  the 
letters  we  know  them  to  represent,  leaving  a  space  for  the 
unknown  ^ — 

t  eeth. 

1225  ' '  Here  we  are  enabled,  at  once,  to  discard  the  'tk, '  as  form- 
ing no  portion  of  the  word  commencing  with  the  first  t\ 
since,  by  experiment  of  the  entire  alphabet  for  a  letter 
adapted  to  the  vacancy,  we  perceive  that  no  word  can  be 
formed  of  which  this  th  can  be  a  part.    We  are  thus 

1230  narrowed  into 

t  ee, 

and,  going  through  the  alphabet,  if  necessary,  as  before, 
we  arrive  at  the  word  'tree,'  as  the  sole  possible  reading. 
We  thus  gain  another  letter,  r ,  represented  by  (,  with  the 

1235  words  'the  tree'  in  juxtaposition. 

"Looking  beyond  these  words,  for  a  short  distance,  we 
again  see  the  combinartion  148,  and  employ  it  by  way  of 
termination  to  what  immediately  precedes.  We  have  thus 
this  arrangement: 

1240  ■   the  tree  ;4(t?34  the, 

or,  substituting  the  natural  letters,  where  known,  it  reads 
thus: 

the  tree  thr J  ?3h  the. 

"Now,  if,  in  place  of  the  unknown  characters,  we  leave 
1245 blank  spaces,  or  substitute  dots,  we  read  thus: 

the  tree  thr . . .  h  the, 

when  the  word  'through'  makes  itself  evident  at  once.     But 
this  discovery  gives  us  three  new  letters,  o,  u,  and  g,  repre- 
sented by  t,  ?  and  3. 
1250     "Looking  now,  narrowly,  through  the  cipher  for  com- 


The  Gold  Bug  yi 

binations  of  known  characters,  we  find,  not  very  far  from 
the  beginning,  this  arrangement : 

83(88,  or  egree, 
which,  plainly,  is  the  conclusion  of  the  word  'degree,' 
and  gives  us  another  letter,  d,  represented  by  f.  1253 

"Four  letters  beyond  the  word  'degree,'  we  perceive  the 
combination, 

;46(;88*. 
* 'Translating  the  known  characters,  and  representing 
the  unknown  by  dots,  as  before,  we  read  thus :  1260 

th .  rtee . 
an    arrangement    immediately    suggestive    of    the    word 
'thirteen,'  and  again  furnishing  us  with  two  new  characters, 
i  and  n,  represented  by  6  and  *. 

"Referring,  now,  to  the  beginning  of  the  cryptograph,  1265 
we  find  the  combination 

S3ttt. 
"Translating,  as  before,  we  obtain 
.  good, 
which  assures  us  that  the  first  letter  is  A  and  that  the  1270 
first  two  words  are  'A  good. ' 

"To  avoid  confusion,  it  is  now  time  that  we  arrange  our 
key,  as  far  as  discovered,  in  a  tabular  form.  It  will 
stand  thus : 

1275 


S  re 

presen 

ts  a 

t 

d 

8 

e 

3 

g 

4 

h 

6 

i 

* 

n 

\ 

0 

( 

r 

» 

t 

J2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

1285  "We  have,  therefore,  no  less  than  ten  of  the  most 
important  letters  represented,  and  it  will  be  unnecessary 
to  proceed  with  the  details  of  the  solution.  I  have  said 
enough  to  convince  you  that  ciphers  of  this  nature  are 
readily  soluble,  and  to  give  you  some  insight  into  the 

mo  rationale  of  their  development.  But  be  assured  that  the 
specimen  before  us  appertains  to  the  very  simplest  species 
of  cryptograph.  It  now  only  remains  to  give  you  the 
full  translation  of  the  characters  upon  the  parchment, 
as  unriddled.    Here  it  is : 

1295  "  'A  good  glass  in  the  bishop's  hostel  in  the  deviVs  seat 
twenty-one  degrees  and  thirteen  minutes  northeast  and  by 
north  main  branch  seventh  limb  east  side  shoot  from  the  left 
eye  of  the  death's-head  a  bee-line  from  the  tree  through  the 
shot  fifty  feet  out.' " 

1300  "But,"  said  I,  "the  enigma  seems  still  in  as  bad  a  con- 
dition as  ever.  How  is  it  possible  to  extort  a  meaning 
from  all  this  jargon  about  'devil's  seats,'  'death's-heads,' 
and  'bishop's  hotels'?" 

"I  confess,"  replie4  Legrand,   "that  the  matter  still 

1305  wears  a  serious  aspect,   when  regarded  with  a  casual 
glance.     My  first  endeavor  was  to  divide  the  sentence 
into  the  natural  division  intended  by  the  cryptographist." 
"You  mean,  to  punctuate  it?" 
"Something  of  that  kind." 

1310     "But  how  was  it  possible  to  effect  this ? " 

"I  reflected  that  it  had  been  a  point  with  the  writer 
to  run  his  words  together  without  division,  so  as  to  increase 
the  difficulty  of  solution.  Now,  a  not  over-acute  man, 
in  pursuing  such  an  object,  would  be  nearly  certain  to 

1315  overdo  the  matter.  When,  in  the  course  of  his  composi- 
tion, he  arrived  at  a  break  in  his  subject  which  would 
naturally  require  a  pause,  or  a  point,  he  would  be  exceed- 
ingly apt  to  run  his  characters,  at  this  place,  more  than 


The  Gold  Bug  7J 

usually  close  together.     If  you  will  observe  the  MS.,  in 
the  present  instance,  you  will  easily  detect  five  such  cases  1320 
of  unusual  crowding.     Acting  on  this  hint,  I  made  the 
division  thus : 

"  'A  good  glass  in  the  Bishop's  hostel  in  the  DeviVs  seat — 
twenty-one  degrees  and  thirteen  minutes — north-east  and  by 
north — main  branch  seventh  limb  east  side — shoot  from  thems 
left  eye  of  the  death's-head — a  bee-line  from  the  tree  through 
the  shot  fifty  feet  out. ' ' ' 

"Even  this  division,"  said  I,  "leaves  me  still  in  the 
dark." 

"  It  left  me  also  in  the  dark,"  replied  Legrand,  "  for  a  few  1330 
days;  during  which  I  made  diligent  inquiry,  in  the  neigh- 
borhood of  Sullivan's  Island,  for  any  building  which  went 
by  the  name  of  the  'Bishop's  Hotel';  for,  of  cotirse,  I 
dropped  the  obsolete  word  'hostel.'     Gaining  no  informa- 
tion on  the  subject,  I  was  on  the  point  of  extending  my  1335 
sphere  of  search,  and  proceeding  in  a  more  systematic 
manner,  when  one  morning,  it  entered  into  my  head,  quite 
suddenly,  that  this  'Bishop's  Hostel'  might  have  some 
reference  to  an  old  family,  of  the  name  of  Bessop,  which, 
time  out  of  mind,  had  held  possession  of  an  ancient  manor- 1340 
house,  about  four  miles  to  the  northward  of  the  island.     I 
accordingly  went  over  to  the  plantation,  and  re-instituted 
my  inquiries  among  the  older  negroes  of  the  place.     At 
length  one  of  the  most  aged  of  the  women  said  that  she 
had  heard  of  such  a  place  as  Bessop' s  Castle,  and  thought  1345 
that  she  could  guide  me  to  it,  but  that  it  was  not  a  castle, 
nor  a  tavern,  but  a  high  rock. 

"  I  offered  to  pay  her  well  for  her  trouble,  and,  after  some 
demur,  she  consented  to  accompany  me  to  the  spot.     We 
found  it  without  much  difficulty,  when,  dismissing  her,  1350 
I  proceeded  to  examine  the  place.     The  'castle'  consisted 
of  an  irregular  assemblage  of  cHffs  and  rocks — one  of  the 


74  Southern  Literary  Readings 

latter  being  quite  remarkable  for  its  height  as  well  as  for 
its  insulated  and  artificial  appearance.     I  clambered  to 

1355  its  apex,  and  then  felt  much  at  a  loss  as  to  what  should  be 
next  done. 

"While  I  was  busied  in  reflection,  my  eyes  fell  on  a 
narrow  ledge  in  the  eastern  face  of  the  rock,  perhaps  a  yard 
below  the  summit  upon  which  I  stood.    This  ledge  projected 

1360  about  eighteen  inches,  and  was  not  more  than  a  foot  wide, 
while  a  niche  in  the  cliff  just  above  it  gave  it  a  rude  resem- 
blance to  one  of  the  hollow-backed  chairs  used  by  our 
ancestors.  I  made  no  doubt  that  here  was  the  'devil's 
seat'  alluded  to  in  the  MS.,  and  now  I  seemed  to  grasp 

1365  the  full  secret  of  the  riddle. 

"The  'good  glass,'  I  knew,  could  have  reference  to 
nothing  but  a  telescope;  for  the  word  'glass'  is  rarely 
employed  in  any  other  sense  by  seamen.  Now  here,  I  at 
once  saw,  was  a  telescope  to  be  used,  and  a  definite  point 

1370  of  view,  admitting  no  variation,  from  which  to  use  it.  Nor 
did  I  hesitate  to  believe  that  the  phrases,  'twenty-one 
degrees  and  thirteen. minutes,'  and  'north-east  and  by 
north,'  were  intended  as  directions  for  the  levelling  of  the 
glass.     Greatly  excited  by  these  discoveries,   I  hurried 

1375  home,  procured  a  telescope,  and  returned  to  the  rock. 

"  I  let  myself  down  to  the  ledge,  and  found  that  it  was 
impossible  to  retain  a  seat  on  it  unless  in  one  particular 
position.  This  fact  confirmed  my  preconceived  idea.  I 
proceeded  to  use  the  glass.     Of  course,-  the  'twenty-one 

1380  degrees  and  thirteen  minutes'  could  allude  to  nothing  but 
elevation  above  the  visible  horizon,  since  the  horizontal 
direction  was  clearly  indicated  by  the  words,  'north-east 
and  by  north.'  This  latter  direction  I  at  once  established 
by  means  of  a  pocket-compass ;  then,  pointing  the  glass  as 

1385  nearly  at  an  angle  of  twenty-one  degrees  of  elevation  as  I 
could  do  it  by  guess,  I  moved  it  cautiously  up  or  down, 


The  Gold  Bug  y^ 

until  my  attention  was  arrested  by  a  circular  rift  or 
opening  in  the  foliage  of  a  large  tree  that  overtopped 
its  fellows  in  the  distance.  In  the  centre  of  this  rift  I 
perceived  a  white  spot,  but  could  not,  at  first,  distinguish  1390 
what  it  was.  Adjusting  the  focus  of  the  telescope,  I  again 
looked,  and  now  made  it  out  to  be  a  human  skull. 

"On  this  discovery  I  was  so  sanguine  as  to  consider  the 
enigma  solved;  for  the  phrase,  'main  branch,  seventh  limb, 
east  side,'  could  refer  only  to  the  position  of  the  skiillisos 
on  the  tree,  while  'shoot  from  the  left  eye  of  the  death's- 
head'  admitted,  also,  of  but  one  interpretation,  in  regard 
to  a  search  for  buried  treastire.  I  perceived  that  the  design 
was  to  drop  a  bullet  from  the  left  eye  of  the  skull,  and  that 
a  bee-line,  or,  in  other  words,  a  straight  line,  drawn  fromuoo 
the  nearest  point  of  the  trunk  through  'the  shot'  (or  the 
spot  where  the  bullet  fell),  and  thence  extended  to  a 
distance  of  fifty  feet,  would  indicate  a  definite  point — and 
beneath  this  point  I  thought  it  at  least  possible  that  a 
deposit  of  value  lay  concealed."  1405 

"All  this,"  I  said,  "is  exceedingly  clear,  and,  although 
ingenious,  still  simple  and  explicit.  When  you  left  the 
Bishop's  Hotel,  what  then?" 

"Why,  having  carefully  taken  the  bearings  of  the  tree, 
I  turned  homewards.  The  instant  that  I  left  the  'Devil's  1410 
seat,'  however,  the  circular  rift  vanished;  nor  could  I  get 
a  glimpse  of  it  afterwards,  turn  as  I  would.  What  seems 
to  me  the  chief  ingenuity  in  this  whole  business,  is  the  fact 
(for  repeated  experiment  has  convinced  me  it  is  a  fact) 
that  the  circular  opening  in  question  is  visible  from  no  1415 
other  attainable  point  of  view  than  that  afforded  by  the 
narrow  ledge  on  the  face  of  the  rock. 

"In  this  expedition  to  the  'Bishop's  Hotel'  I  had  been 
attended  by  Jupiter,  who  had  no  doubt  observed,  for  some 
weeks  past,  the  abstraction  of  my  demeanor,  and  took  1420 


y6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

especial  care  not  to  leave  me  alone.  But  on  the  next  day, 
getting  up  very  early,  I  contrived  to  give  him  the  slip,  and 
went  into  the  hills  in  search  of  the  tree.  After  much  toil 
I  found  it.     When  I  came  home  at  night  my  valet  proposed 

1425  to  give  me  a  flogging.  With  the  rest  of  the  adventure  I 
believe  you  are  as  well  acquainted  as  myself." 

"I  suppose,"  said  I,  "you  missed  the  spot  in  the  first 
attempt  at  digging,  through  Jupiter's  stupidity  in  letting 
the  bug  fall  through  the  right  instead  of  through  the  left 

1430 eye  of  the  skull." 

"Precisely.  This  mistake  made  a  difference  of  about 
two  inches  and  a  half  in  the  'shot' — that  is  to  say,  in  the 
position  of  the  peg  nearest  the  tree;  and  had  the  treasure 
been  beneath  the  'shot,'  the  error  would  have  been  of  little 

1435 moment;  but  the  'shot,'  together  with  the  nearest  point  of 
the  tree,  were  merely  two  points  for  the  establishment  of 
a  line  of  direction;  of  course  the  error,  however  trivial  in 
the  beginning,  increased  as  we  proceeded  with  the  line,  and 
by  the  time  we  had  gone  fifty  feet,  threw  us  quite  off  the 

1440  scent.  But  for  my  defep-seated  convictions  that  treasure 
was  here  somewhere  actually  buried,  we  might  have  had 
all  our  labor  in  vain." 

"I  presume  the  fancy  of  the  skull — of  letting  fall  a  bullet 
through  the  skull's  eye — was  suggested  to  Kidd  by  the 

1445  piratical  flag.  No  doubt  he  felt  a  kind  of  poetical  con- 
sistency in  recovering  his  money  through  this  ominous 
insigniimi." 

"Perhaps  so;  still,  I  can  not  help  thinking  that  common- 
sense  had  quite  as  much  to  do  with  the  matter  as  poetical 

1450 consistency.  To  be  visible  from  the  Devil's  seat,  it  was 
necessary  that  the  object,  if  small,  should  be  white;  and 
there  is  nothing  like  your  human  skull  for  retaining  and 
even  increasing  its  whiteness  under  exposure  to  all  vicis- 
situdes of  weather." 


The  Gold  Bug  yy 

"But  your  grandiloquence,  and  your  conduct  in  swing-  uss 
ing  the  beetl? — how  excessively  odd!     I  was  sure  you 
were  mad.    And  why  did  you  insist  on  letting  fall  the 
bug,  instead  of  a  bullet,  from  the  skull?" 

"Why,  to  be  frank,  I  felt  somewhat  annoyed  by  your 
evident  suspicions  touching  my  sanity,  and  so  resolved  to  neo 
punish  you  quietly,  in  my  own  way,  by  a  little  bit  of  sober 
mystification.  For  this  reason  I  swung  the  beetle,  and  for 
this  reason  I  let  it  fall  from  the  tree.  An  observation  of 
yours  about  its  great  weight  suggested  the  latter  idea." 

"Yes,  I  perceive;  and  now  there  is  only  one  point  which  iies 
puzzles  me.    What  are  we  to  make  of  the  skeletons  found 
in  the  hole?" 

"That  is  a  question  that  I  am  no  more  able  to  answer 
than  yourself.  There  seems,  however,  only  one  plausible 
way  of  accounting  for  them — and  yet  it  is  dreadful  to  1470 
believe  in  such  atrocity  as  my  suggestion  would  imply.  It 
is  clear  that  Kidd — if  Kidd  indeed  secreted  this  treasure, 
which  I  doubt  not — it  is  clear  that  he  must  have  had 
assistance  in  the  labor.  But  the  worst  of  this  labor  con- 
cluded, he  may  have  thought  it  expedient  to  remove  all  147s 
participants  in  his  secret.  Perhaps  a  couple  of  blows  with 
a  mattock  were  sufficient,  while  his  coadjutors  were  busy 
in  the  pit;  perhaps  it  required  a  dozen — who  shall  tell?" 


y8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

THE  HAUNTED   PALACE 

In  the  greenest  of  our  valleys 

By  good  angels  tenanted, 
Once  a  fair  and  stately  palace — 

Radiant  palace — reared  its  head. 
In  the  monarch  Thought's  dominion, 

It  stood  there ; 
Never  seraph  spread  a  pinion 

Over  fabric  half  so  fair ! 

Banners  yellow,  glorious,  golden. 

On  its  roof  did  float  and  flow 
(This — all  this — was  in  the  olden 

Time  long  ago), 
And  every  gentle  air  that  dallied, 

In  that  sweet  day, 
Along  the  ramparts  plumed  and  pallid, 

A  winged  odor  went  away. 

Wanderers  in  that  happy  valley 

Through  two  luminous  windows  saw 
Spirits  moving  musically. 

To  a  toe's  well-tuned  law. 
Round  about  a  throne  where,  sitting, 

Porphyrogene, 
In  state  his  glory  well  befitting, 

The  ruler  of  the  realm  was  seen. 

And  all  with  pearl  and  ruby  glowing 

Was  the  fair  palace  door. 
Through  which  came  flowing,  flowing,  flowing, 

And  sparkling  evermore. 


The  Raven  yg 

A  troop  of  Echoes,  whose  sweet  duty 

Was  but  to  sing, 
In  voices  of  surpassing  beauty, 

The  yA\j  and  wisdom  of  their  king. 

But  evil  things,  in  robes  of  sorrow. 

Assailed  the  monarch's  high  estate ; 
(Ah,  let  us  mourn,  for  never  morrow 

Shall  dawn  upon  him  desolate ! ) 
And  round  about  his  home  the  glory 

That  blushed  and  bloomed. 
Is  but  a  dim-remembered  story 

Of  the  old  time  entombed. 

And  travellers  now  within  that  valley 

Through  the  red-litten  windows  see 
Vast  forms  that  move  fantastically 

To  a  discordant  melody; 
While,  like  a  ghastly  rapid  river, 

Through  the  pale  door 
A  hideous  throng  rush  out  forever, 

And  laugh — but  smile  no  more. 


THE  RAVEN 

Once  upon  a  midnight  dreary,  while  I  pondered,  weak 

and  weary. 
Over  many  a  quaint  and  curious  volume  of  forgotten 

lore, — 
While  I  nodded,  nearly  napping,  suddenly  there  came 

a  tapping, 
As  of  some  one  gently  rapping,  rapping  at  my  chamber 

door. 


8o  Southern  Literary  Readings 

3*"Tis  some  visitor,"  I  muttered,  "tapping  at  my  cham- 
ber door: 

Only  this  and  nothing  more." 

Ah,  distinctly  I  remember  it  was  in  the  bleak  December, 
And  each  separate  dying  ember  wrought  its  ghost  upon 

the  floor. 
Eagerly  I  wished  the  morrow; — vainly  I  had  sought  to 

borrow 
10  From  my  books  surcease  of  sorrow — sorrow  for  the  lost 

Lenore, 
For  the  rare  and  radiant  maiden  whom  the  angels  name 

Lenore: 

Nameless  here  for  evermore. 

And  the  silken  sad  uncertain  rustling  of  each  purple 

curtain 
Thrilled  me — filled  me  with  fantastic  terrors  never  felt 

before;  , 

15  So  that  now,  to  still  the  beating  of  my  heart,  I  stood 

repeating 
*"Tis  some  visitor  entreating  entrance  at  my  chamber 

door. 
Some  late  visitor  entreating  entrance  at  my  chamber 

door :, 

This  it  is  and  nothing  more." 

Presently   my  soul    grew  stronger;    hesitating   then   no 

longer, 
20  "Sir,"    said    I,    "or   Madam,   truly   your   forgiveness   I 

implore ; 
But  the  fact  is  I  was  napping,  and  so  gently  you  came 

rapping. 


The  Raven  8i 

And  so  faintly  you  came  tapping,  tapping  at  my  chamber 

door, 
That  I  scarce  was  sure  I  heard  you" — here  I  opened  wide 

the  door: — 

Darkness  there  and  nothing  more. 

Deep   into   that   darkness   peering,    long  I   stood   there  25 

wondering,  fearing, 
Doubting,  dreaming  dreams  no  mortal  ever  dared  to  dream 

before; 
But  the  silence  was  unbroken,  and  the  stillness  gave  no 

token, 
And  the  only  word  there  spoken  was  the  whispered  word, 

"Lenore?" 
This  I  whispered,  and  an  echo  murmured  back  the  word, 

"Lenore": 

Merely  this  and  nothing  more,      30 

Back  into  the  chamber  turning,  all  my  soul  within  me 

burning, 
Soon  again  I   heard  a  tapping  somewhat  louder  than 

before. 
"Surely,"  said  I,  "surely  that  is  something  at  my  window 

lattice; 
Let  me  see,   then,   what  thereat  is,   and  this  mystery 

explore; 
Let  my  heart  be  still  a  moment  and  this  mystery  explore :  35 
'Tis  the  wind  and  nothing  more!" 

Open  here  I  flimg  the  shutter,  when,  with  many  a  flirt  and 

flutter. 
In  there  stepped  a  stately  Raven  of  the  saintly  days  of 

yore. 


82  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Not  the  least  obeisance  made  he;  not  a  minute  stopped 
or  stayed  he; 
40  But,  with  mien  of  lord  or  lady,  perched  above  my  chamber 
door. 
Perched  upon  a  bust  of  Pallas  just  above  my  chamber 
door: 

Perched,  and  sat,  and  nothing  more. 

Then  this  ebony  bird  beguiling  my  sad  fancy  into  smiling 

By  the  grave  and  stern  decorum  of  the  countenance  it 

wore, — 

46  "Though  thy  crest  be  shorn  and  shaven,  thou,"  I  said, 

"art  sure  no  craven. 

Ghastly  grim  and  ancient  Raven  wandering  from  the 

Nightly  shore : 
Tell  me  what  thy  lordly  name  is  on  the  Night's  Plutonian 
shore!" 

Quoth  the  Raven,  "Nevermore." 
• 

Much  I  marvelled  this  ungainly  fowl  to  hear  discourse  so 

plainly, 

50  Though  its  answer  little  meaning — little  relevancy  bore; 

For  we  cannot  help  agreeing  that  no  living  human  being 

Ever  yet  was  blessed  with  seeing  bird  above  his  chamber 

door, 
Bird  or  beast  upon  the  sculptured  bust  above  his  chamber 
door, 

With  such  name  as  "Nevermore." 

55  But  the  Raven,  sitting  lonely  on  the  placid  bust,  spoke 
only 
That  one  word,  as  if  his  soul  in  that  one  word  he  did 
outpour. 


The  Raven  83 

Nothing  further  then  he  uttered,  not  a  feather  then  he 

fluttered, 
Till    I    scarcely   more   than   muttered, — "Other   friends 

have  flown  before; 
On  the  morrow  he  will  leave  me,  as  my  Hopes  have  flown 

before." 

Then  the  bird  said,  ** Nevermore."      eo 

Startled  at  the  stillness  broken  by  reply  so  aptly  spoken, 
"Doubtless,"  said  I,  "what  it  utters  is  its  only  stock  and 

store. 
Caught  from  some  unhappy  master  whom  unmerciful 

Disaster 
Followed  fast  and  followed  faster  till  his  songs  one  burden 

bore: 
Till  the  dirges  of  his  Hope  that  melancholy  burden  bore  es 

Of  '  Never — nevermore. ' ' ' 

But  the  Raven  still  beguiling  all  my  fancy  into  smiling, 
Straight  I  wheeled  a  cushioned  seat  in  front  of  bird  and 

bust  and  door; 
Then,  upon  the  velvet  sinking,  I  betook  myself  to  linking 
Fancy  unto  fancy,  thinking  what  this  ominous  bird  of  70 

yore. 
What  this  grim,  ungainly,  ghastly,  gaunt,  and  ominous 

bird  of  yore 

Meant  in  croaking  "Nevermore." 

This  I  sat  engaged  in  guessing,  but  no  syllable  expressing 
To  the  fowl  whose  fiery  eyes  now  burned  into  my  bosom's 

core; 
This  and  more  I  sat  divining,   with  my  head  at  ease  75 

reclining 


84  Southern  Literary  Readings 

On  the  cushion's  velvet  Hning  that  the  lamp-light  gloated 
o  'er, 

But  whose  velvet  violet  lining  with  the  lamp-light  gloat- 
ing o'er 

She  shall  press,  ah,  nevermore ! 


Then,  methought,  the  air  grew  denser,  perfurhed  from  an 

unseen  censer 
80  Swung  by  seraphim  whose  foot-falls  tinkled  on  the  tufted 

floor. 
"Wretch,"  I  cried,  "thy  God  hath  lent  thee— by  these 

angels  he  hath  sent  thee 
Respite — respite   and   nepenthe  from  thy  memories  of 

Lenore ! 
Quaff,  oh  quaff  this  kind  nepenthe,  and  forget  this  lost 

Lenore!" 

Quoth  the  Raven,  "Nevermore." 

• 
85  "Prophet!"  said  I,  "thing  of  evil!  prophet  still,  if  bird 
or  devil ! 
Whether  Tempter  sent,  or  whether  tempest  tossed  thee 

here  ashore. 
Desolate  yet  all  undaunted,  on  this  desert  land  enchanted — 
On  this  home  by  Horror  haunted — tell  me  truly,  I  implore: 
Is  there — is  there  balm  in  Gilead? — tell  me — tell  me, 
I  implore!" 
90  Quoth  the  Raven,  "Nevermore." 

"Prophet!"  said  I,  "thing  of  evil — prophet  still,  if  bird 

or  devil ! 
By  that  Heaven  that  bends  above  us,  by  that  God  we 

both  adore. 


The  Raven  85 

Tell  this  soul  with  sorrow  laden  if,  within  the  distant 

Aidenn, 
It  shall  clasp  a  sainted  maiden  whom  the  angels  name 

Lenore : 
Clasp  a  rare  and  radiant  maiden  whom  the  angels  name  95 

Lenore!" 

Quoth  the  Raven,  "Nevermore." 


"Be  that  word  our  sign  of  parting,  bird  or  fiend!"   I 

shrieked,  upstarting: 
"Get  thee  back  into  the  tempest  and  the  Night's  Plutonian 

shore ! 
Leave  no  black  plume  as  a  token  of  that  lie  thy  soul 

hath  spoken ! 
Leave  my  loneliness  unbroken !  quit  the  bust  above  my  100 

door! 
Take  thy  beak  from  out  my  heart,  and  take  thy  form 

from  off  my  door!" 

Quoth  the  Raven,  "Nevermore." 

And  the  Raven,   never  flitting,   still  is  sitting,   still  is 

sitting 
On  the  pallid  bust  of  Pallas  just   above  my  chamber 

door; 
And  his  eyes  have  all  the  seeming  of  a  demon's  that  is  105 

dreaming, 
And  the  lamp-light  o'er  him  streaming  throws  his  shadow 

on  the  floor: 
And  my  soul  from  out  that  shadow  that  lies  floating  on 

the  floor 

Shall  be  lifted — nevermore! 


86  Southern  Literary  Readings 

THE   PHILOSOPHY  OF   COMPOSITION 

Charles  Dickens,  in  a  note  now  lying  before  me,  alluding 
to  an  examination  I  once  made  of  the  mechanism  of 
"Barnaby  Rudge,"  says — "By  the  way,  are  you  aware 
that    Godwin   wrote    his    'Caleb    Williams'    backwards? 

5  He  first  involved  his  hero  in  a  web  of  difficulties,  forming 
the  second  volume,  and  then,  for  the  first,  cast  about 
him  for  some  mode  of  accounting  for  what  had  been 
done." 

I   cannot   think  this  the  precise  mode  of   procedure 

10  on  the  part  of  Godwin — and  indeed  what  he  himself 
acknowledges  is  not  altogether  in  accordance  with  Mr. 
Dickens's  idea;  but  the  author  of  "Caleb  Williams" 
was  too  good  an  artist  not  to  perceive  the  advantage  deriv- 
able from  at  least  a  somewhat  similar  process.     Nothing 

15  is  more  clear  than  that  every  plot,  worth  the  name,  must 
be  elaborated  to  its  denouement  before  anything  be 
attempted  with  the  pen.  It  is  only  with  the  denouement 
constantly  in  view  thafwe  can  give  a  plot  its  indispensable 
air  of  consequence,  or  causation,  by  making  the  incidents, 

20  and  especially  the  tone  of  all  points,  tend  to  the  develop- 
ment of  the  intention. 

There  is  a  radical  error,  I  think,  in  the  usual  mode  of 
constructing  a  story.  Either  history  affords  a  thesis,  or 
one  is  suggested  by  an  incident  of  the  day,  or,  at  best,  the 

25  author  sets  himself  to  work  in  the  combination  of  striking 
events  to  form  merely  the  basis  of  his  narrative,  designing, 
generally,  to  fill  in  with  description,  dialogue,  or  authorial 
comment  whatever  crevices  of  fact  or  action  may  from 
page  to  page  render  themselves  apparent. 

30  I  prefer  commencing  with  the  consideration  of  an 
efect.  Keeping  originality  always  in  view — for  he  is  false 
to  himself  who  ventures  to  dispense  with  so  obvious 


The  Philosophy  of  Composition  8y 

and  so  easily  attainable  a  source  of  interest — I  say  to 
myself,  in  the  first  place, — "Of  the  innumerable  effects, 
or  impressions,  of  which  the  heart,  the  intellect,  or  (more  35 
generally)  the  soul  is  susceptible,  what  one  shall  I,  on  the 
present  occasion,  select?"  Having  chosen  a  novel,  first, 
and  secondly  a  vivid  effect,  I  consider  whether  it  can  be 
best  wrought  by  incident  or  tone — whether  by  ordinary 
incidents  and  peculiar  tone,  or  the  converse,  or  by  pecu-  40 
liarity  both  of  incident  and  tone — afterward  looking  about 
me  (or  rather  within)  for  such  combinations  of  event,  or 
tone,  as  shall  best  aid  me  in  the  construction  of  the  effect. 

I  have  often  thought  how  interesting  a  magazine  paper 
might  be  written  by  an  author  who  would —  that  is  to  say,  45 
who  could — detail,  step  by  step,  the  processes  by  which 
any  one  of  his  compositions  attained  its  ultimate  point  of 
completion.  Why  such  a  paper  has  never  been  given  to 
the  world,  I  am  much  at  a  loss  to  say;  but,  perhaps,  the 
authorial  vanity  has  had  more  to  do  with  the  omission  50 
than  any  one  other  cause.  Most  writers — poets  in  es- 
pecial— prefer  having  it  understood  that  they  compose  by 
a  species  of  fine  frenzy — an  ecstatic  intuition;  and  would 
positively  shudder  at  letting  the  public  take  a  peep 
behind  the  scenes  at  the  elaborate  and  vacillating  crudi-  55 
ties  of  thought,  at  the  true  purposes  seized  only  at  the  last 
moment,  at  the  innumerable  glimpses  of  idea  that  arrived 
not  at  the  maturity  of  full  view,  at  the  fully  matured 
fancies  discarded  in  despair  as  unmanageable,  at  the 
cautious  selections  and  rejections,  at  the  painful  erasures  eo 
and  interpolations — in  a  word,  at  the  wheels  and  pinions, 
the  tackle  for  scene-shifting,  the  step-ladders  and  demon- 
traps,  the  cock's  feathers,  the  red  paint  and  the  black 
patches,  which  in  ninety-nine  cases  out  of  the  hundred 
constitute  the  properties  of  the  literary  histrio.  es 

I  am  aware,  on  the  other  hand,  that  the  case  is  by  no 


88  Southern  Literary  Readings 

means  common  in  which  an  author  is  at  all  in  condition 
to  retrace  the  steps  by  which  his  conclusions  have  been 
attained.     In   general,    suggestions,    having   arisen   pell- 

70  mell,  are  pursued  and  forgotten  in  a  similar  manner. 

For  my  own  part,  I  have  neither  sympathy  with  the 

repugnance  alluded  to,  nor  at  any  time  the  least  difficulty 

in  recalling  to  mind  the  progressive  steps  of  any  of  my 

compositions;  and,  since  the  interest  of  an  analysis,  or 

75  reconstruction,  such  as  I  have  considered  a  desideratum^ 
is  quite  independent  of  any  real  or  fancied  interest  in  the 
thing  analyzed,  it  will  not  be  regarded  as  a  breach  of 
decorum  on  my  part  to  show  the  modus  operandi  by  which 
some  one  of  my  own  works  was  put  together.     I  select 

80  "The  Raven"  as  most  generally  known.  It  is  my  design 
to  render  it  manifest  that  no  one  point  in  its  composition 
is  referable  either  to  accident  or  intuition;  that  the  work 
proceeded,  step  by  step,  to  its  completion  with  the  pre- 
cision and  rigid  consequence  of  a  mathematical  problem. 

85     Let  us  dismiss,  as  irrelevant  to  the  poem  per  se,  the 
circumstance — or  say  "the  necessity — which  in  the  first 
place  gave  rise  to  the  intention  of  composing  a  poem  that 
should  suit  at  once  the  popular  and  the  critical  taste. 
We  commence,  then,  with  this  intention. 

90  The  initial  consideration  was  that  of  extent.  If  any 
literary  work  is  too  long  to  be  read  at  one  sitting,  we 
must  be  content  to  dispense  with  the  immensely  impor- 
tant effect  derivable  from  unity  of  impression;  for,  if  two 
sittings  be  required,  the  affairs  of  the  world  interfere, 

95  and  everything  like  totality  is  at  once  destroyed.  But 
since,  ceteris  paribus,  no  poet  can  afford  to  dispense  with 
anything  that  may  advance  his  design,  it  but  remains  to 
be  seen  whether  there  is,  in  extent,  any  advantage  to 
counterbalance  the  loss  of  unity  which  attends  it.  Here 
100 1  say  no,  at  once.     What  we  term  a  long  poem  is,  in  fact, 


The  Philosophy  of  Composition  8g 

merely  a  succession  of  brief  ones — that  is  to  say,  of  brief 
poetical  effects.  It  is  needless  to  demonstrate  that  a  poem 
is  such,  only  inasmuch  as  it  intensely  excites,  by  elevating, 
the  soul ;  and  all  intense  excitements  are,  through  a  psychal 
necessity,  brief.  For  this  reason,  at  least  one  half  of  the  105 
"Paradise  Lost"  is  essentially  prose — a  succession  of 
poetical  excitements  interspersed,  inevitably,  with  corre- 
sponding depressions — the  whole  being  deprived,  through 
the  extremeness  of  its  length,  of  the  vastly  important 
artistic  element,  totality,  or  unity,  of  effect.  no 

It  appears  evident,  then,  that  there  is  a  distinct  limit, 
as  regards  length,  to  all  works  of  literary  art — the  limit 
of  a  single  sitting;  and  that,  although  in  certain  classes  of 
prose  composition,  such  as  "Robinson  Crusoe"  (demand- 
ing no  unity) ,  this  limit  may  be  advantageously  over- 115 
passed,  it  can  never  properly  be  overpassed  in  a  poem. 
Within  this  limit,  the  extent  of  a  poem  may  be  made  to 
bear  mathematical  relation  to  its  merit — in  other  words, 
to  the  excitement  or  elevation — again,  in  other  words,  to 
the  degree  of  the  true  poetical  effect  which  it  is  capable  120 
of  inducing ;  for  it  is  clear  that  the  brevity  must  be  in  direct 
ratio  of  the  intensity  of  the  intended  effect : — this,  with  one 
proviso — that  a  certain  degree  of  duration  is  absolutely 
requisite  for  the  production  of  any  effect  at  all. 

Holding  in  view  these  considerations,  as  well  as  that  125 
degree  of  excitement  which  I  deemed  not  above  the  popu- 
lar while  not  below  the  critical  taste,  I  reached  at  once 
what  I  conceived  the  proper  length  for  my  intended  poem — 
a  length  of  about  one  hundred  lines.  It  is,  in  fact,  a 
hundred  and  eight.  130 

My  next  thought  concerned  the  choice  of  an  impres- 
sion, or  effect,  to  be  conveyed:  and  here  I  may  as  well 
observe  that,  throughout  the  construction,  I  kept  steadily 
in  view  the  design  of   rendering  the    work    universally 


go  Southern  Literary  Readings 

135  appreciable.  I  should  be  carried  too  far  out  of  my  immedi- 
ate topic  were  I  to  demonstrate  a  point  upon  which  I  have 
repeatedly  insisted,  and  which  with  the  poetical  stands 
not  in  the  slightest  need  of  demonstration — the  point,  I 
mean,  that  Beauty  is  the  sole  legitimate  province  of  the 

140  poem.  A  few  words,  however,  in  elucidation  of  my  real 
meaning,  which  some  of  my  friends  have  evinced  a  disposi- 
tion to  misrepresent.  That  pleasure  which  is  at  once  the 
most  intense,  the  most  elevating,  and  the  most  pure,  is, 
I  believe,  found  in  the  contemplation  of  the  beautiful. 

145  When,  indeed,  men  speak  of  Beauty,  they  mean,  precisely, 
not  a  quahty,  as  is  supposed,  but  an  effect;  they  refer,  in 
short,  just  to  that  intense  and  pure  elevation  of  soul — not 
of  intellect,  or  of  heart — upon  which  I  have  commented, 
and  which  is  experienced  in  consequence  of  contemplating 

150  "the  beautiful."  Now  I  designate  Beauty  as  the  province 
of  the  poem,  merely  because  it  is  an  obvious  rule  of  Art 
that  effects  should  be  made  to  spring  from  direct  causes — 
that  objects  should  be  attained  through  means  best 
adapted  for  their  attainment — no  one  as  yet  having  been 

155  weak  enough  to  deny  that  the  peculiar  elevation  alluded  to 
is  most  readily  attained  in  the  poem.  Now  the  object, 
Truth,  or  the  satisfaction  of  the  intellect,  and  the  object. 
Passion,  or  the  excitement  of  the  heart,  are,  although 
attainable  to  a  certain  extent  in  poetry,  far  more  readily 

160  attainable  in  prose.  Truth,  in  fact,  demands  a  precision, 
and  Passion  a  homeliness  (the  truly  passionate  will  com- 
prehend me),  which  are  absolutely  antagonistic  to  that 
Beauty  which,  I  maintain,  is  the  excitement,  or  pleasur- 
able elevation,  of  the  soul.     It  by  no  means  follows  from 

165  anything  here  said  that  passion,  or  even  truth,  may  not 
be  introduced,  and  even  profitably  introduced,  into  a 
poem — for  they  may  serve  in  elucidation,  or  aid  the 
general   effect,   as   do   discords  in  music,   by   contrast; 


The  Philosophy  of  Composition  gi 

but  the  true  artist  will  always  contrive,  first,  to  tone  them 
into  proper  subservience  to  the  predominant  aim,  and,  m 
secondly,  to  enveil  them,  as  far  as  possible,  in  that  Beauty 
which  is  the  atmosphere  and  the  essence  of  the  poem. 

Regarding,  then,  Beauty  as  my  province,  my  next  ques- 
tion referred  to  the  tone  of  its  highest  manifestation ;  and 
all  experience  has  shown  that  this  tone  is  one  of  sadness,  m 
Beauty  of  whatever  kind,  in  its  supreme  development, 
invariably  excites  the  sensitive  soul  to  tears.  Melancholy 
is  thus  the  most  legitimate  of  all  the  poetical  tones. 

The  length,  the  province,  and  the  tone,   being  thus 
determined,    I    betook    myself    to    ordinary    induction,  iso 
with  the  view  of  obtaining  some  artistic  piquancy  which 
might  serve  me  as  a  key-note  in  the  construction  of  the 
poem — some  pivot  upon  which  the  whole  structure  might 
turn.     In  carefully  thinking  over  all  the  usual  artistic 
effects — or  more  properly  points,  in  the  theatrical  sense —  m 
I  did  not  fail  to  perceive  immediately  that  no  one  had  been 
so  universally  employed  as  that  of  the  refrain.    The  uni- 
versality of  its  employment  sufficed  to  assure  me  of  its 
intrinsic  value,  and  spared  me  the  necessity  of  submitting 
it  to  analysis.     I  considered  it,  however,  with  regard  to  190 
its  susceptibility  of  improvement,  and  soon  saw  it  to  be 
in  a  primitive  condition.     As  commonly  used,  the  refrain, 
or  burden,  not  only  is  limited  to  lyric  verse,  but  depends 
for  its  impression  upon  the  force  of  monotone — both  in 
sound  and  thought.     The  pleasure  is  deduced  solely  from  195 
the  sense  of  identity — of  repetition.     I  resolved  to  diver- 
sify, and  so  heighten,  the  effect,  by  adhering,  in  general, 
to  the  monotone  of  sound,  while  I  continually  varied  that 
of  thought:  that  is  to   say,    I   determined   to   produce 
continuously  novel  effects,  by  the  variation  of  the  appli-  200 
cation  of  the  refrain — the  refrain  itself  remaining,  for  the 
most  part,  unvaried. 


Q2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

These  points  being  settled,  I  next  bethought  me  of  the 
nature  of  my  refrain.     Since  its  appHcation  was  to  be 

205  repeatedly  varied,  it  was  clear  that  the  refrain  itself  must 
be  brief,  for  there  would  have  been  an  insurmountable 
difficulty  in  frequent  variations  of  application  in  any 
sentence  of  length.  In  proportion  to  the  brevity  of  the 
sentence,  would,  of  course,  be  the  facihty  of  the  variation. 

210  This  led  me  at  once  to  a  single  word  as  the  best  refrain. 

The  question  now  arose  as  to  the  character  of  the  word. 

Having  made-up  my  mind  to  a  refrain,  the  division  of  the 

poem  into  stanzas,  was,  of  course,  a  corollary :  the  refrain 

forming  the  close  to  each  stanza.     That  such  a  close,  to 

215  have  force,  must  be  sonorous  and  susceptible  of  pro- 
tracted emphasis,  admitted  no  doubt;  and  these  consid- 
erations inevitably  led  me  to  the  long  o  as  the  most 
sonorous  vowel,  in  connection  with  r  as  the  most  producible 
consonant. 

220  The  sound  of  the  refrain  being  thus  determined,  it 
became  necessary  to  select  a  word  embodying  this  sound 
and  at  the  same  time  m  the  fullest  possible  keeping  with 
that  melancholy  which  I  had  predetermined  as  the  tone 
of  the  poem.     In  such  a  search  it  would  have  been  abso- 

225lutely  impossible  to  overlook  the  word  "Nevermore." 
In  fact,  it  was  the  very  first  which  presented  itself. 

The  next  desideratum  was  a  pretext  for  the  continuous 
use  of  the  one  word  ''nevermore."  In  observing  the 
difficulty  which  I  at  once  found  in  inventing  a  sufficiently 

230  plausible  reason  for  its  continuous  repetition,  I  did  not  fail 
to  perceive  that  this  difficulty  arose  solely  from  the  pre- 
assumption  that  the  word  was  to  be  so  continuously 
or  monotonously  spoken  by  a  human  being;  I  did  not  fail 
to  perceive,  in  short,  that  the  difficulty  lay  in  the  recon- 

235  ciliation  of  this  monotony  with  the  exercise  of  reason  on 
the  part  of  the  creature  repeating  the  word.     Here,  then, 


The  Philosophy  of  Composition  pj 

immediately  arose  the  idea  of  a  won-reasoning  creature 
capable  of  speech ;  and,  very  naturally,  a  parrot,  in  the  first 
instance,  suggested  itself,  but  was  superseded  forthwith  by 
a  Raven  as  equally  capable  of  speech,  and  infinitely  more  240 
in  keeping  with  the  intended  tone. 

I  had  now  gone  so  far  as  the  conception  of  a  Raven — 
the  bird  of  ill-omen — monotonously  repeating  the  word, 
"Nevermore,"  at  the  conclusion  of  each  stanza,  in  a  poem 
of  melancholy  tone,  and  in  length  about  one  hundred  245 
lines.  Now,  never  losing  sight  of  the  object  supremeness, 
or  perfection,  at  all  points,  I  asked  myself — "Of  all 
melancholy  topics,  what,  according  to  the  universal  under- 
standing of  mankind,  is  the  most  melancholy?"  Death — 
was  the  obvious  reply.  *  *  And  when, ' '  I  said,  ' '  is  this  most  250 
melancholy  of  topics  most  poetical?"  From  what  I  have 
already  explained  at  some  length,  the  answer  here  also 
is  obvious — "When  it  most  closely  allies  itself  to  Beauty; 
the  death,  then,  of  a  beautiful  woman  is,  unquestionably, 
the  most  poetical  topic  in  the,  world — and  equally  is  it  255 
beyond  doubt  that  the  lips  best  suited  for  such  a  topic  are 
those  of  a  bereaved  lover." 

I  had  now  to  combine  the  two  ideas,  of  a  lover  lamenting 
his  deceased  mistress  and  a  Raven  continuously  repeating 
the  word  "Nevermore."  I  had  to  combine  these,  bear- 260 
ing  in  mind  my  design  of  varying  at  every  turn  the  appli- 
cation of  the  word  repeated ;  but  the  only  intelligible  mode 
of  such  combination  is  that  of  imagining  the  Raven  employ- 
ing the  word  in  answer  to  the  queries  of  the  lover.  And 
here  it  was  that  I  saw  at  once  the  opportunity  afforded  for  265 
the  effect  on  which  I  had  been  depending — that  is  to  say, 
the  effect  of  the  variation  of  application.  I  saw  that  I  could 
make  the  first  query  propounded  by  the  lover — the  first 
query  to  which  the  Raven  should  reply  "Nevermore" — 
that  I  could  make  this  first  query  a  commonplace  one,  the  270 


04  Southern  Literary  Readings 

second  less  so,  the  third  still  less,  and  so  on,  until  at 
length  the  lover,  startled  from  his  original  nonchalance  by 
the  melancholy  character  of  the  word  itself,  by  its  frequent 
repetition  and  by  a  consideration  of  the  ominous  repu- 

275  tation  of  the  fowl  that  uttered  it,  is  at  length  excited  to 
superstition,  and  wildly  propounds  queries  of  a  far  different 
character — queries  whose  solution  he  has  passionately 
at  heart — propounds  them  half  in  superstition  and  half 
in  that  species  of  despair  which  delights  in  self-torture — 

280  propounds  them,  not  altogether  because  he  believes  in 
the  prophetic  or  demoniac  character  of  the  bird  (which, 
reason  assures  him,  is  merely  repeating  a  lesson  learned  by 
rote),  but  because  he  experiences  a  frenzied  pleasure  in  so 
modelling  his  questions  as  to  receive  from  the  expected 

285  "Nevermore"  the  most  delicious  because  the  most  intol- 
erable of  sorrow.  Perceiving  the  opportunity  thus  af- 
forded me — or,  more  strictly,  thus  forced  upon  me  in  the 
progress  of  the  construction — I  first  established  in  mind 
the  climax,  or  concluding  query — that  query  to  which 

290 "  Nevermore "  should  be  in  the  last  place  an  answer — 
that  query  in  reply  to  which  this  word  "Nevermore" 
should  involve  the  utmost  conceivable  amount  of  sorrow 
and  despair. 

Here  then  the  poem  may  be  said  to  have  its  beginning — 

295  at  the  end,  where  all  works  of  art  should  begin;  for  it 
was  here,  at  this  point  of  my  preconsiderations,  that  I 
first  put  pen  to  paper  in  the  composition  of  the  stanza: — 

"Prophet!"  said  I,  "thing  of  evil — prophet  still,  if  bird  or  devil! 
By  that  Heaven  that  bends  above  us,  by  that  God  we  both  adore, 
300  Tell  this  soul  with  sorrow  laden  if,  within  the  distant  Aidenn, 
It  shall  clasp  a  sainted  maiden  whom  the  angels  name  Lenore: 
Clasp  a  rare  and  radiant  maiden  whom  the  angels  name  Lenore!" 

Quoth  the  Raven,  "Nevermore." 

I  composed  this  stanza,  at  this  point,  first,  that  by 


The  Philosophy  of  Composition  P5 

establishing  the  climax  I  might  the  better  vary  and  gradu-  305 
ate,  as  regards  seriousness  and  importance,  the  preceding 
queries  of  the  lover,  and,  secondly,  that  I  might  defi- 
nitely settle  the  rhythm,  the  metre,  and  the  length  and 
general  arrangement  of  the  stanza,  as  well  as  graduate  the 
stanzas  which  were  to  precede  so  that  none  of  them  might  310 
surpass  this  in  rhythmical  effect.  Had  I  been  able,  in 
the  subsequent  composition,  to  construct  more  vigorous 
stanzas,  I  should,  without  scruple,  have  purposely  enfeebled 
them,  so  as  not  to  interfere  with  the  climacteric  effect. 

And  here  I  may  as  well  say  a  few  words  of  the  versifi-  ais 
cation.     My  first  object  (as  usual)  was  originality.     The 
extent  to  which  this  has  been  neglected,  in  versification, 
is  one  of  the  most  unaccountable  things  in  the  world. 
Admitting  that  there  is  little  possibility  of  variety  in  mere 
rhythm,  it  is  still  clear  that  the  possible  varieties  of  metre  320 
and  stanza  are  absolutely  infinite — and  yet,  for  centuries, 
no  man,  in  verse,  has  ever  done,  or  ever  seemed  to  think 
of  doing,  an  original  thing.     The  fact  is,  that  originality 
(unless  in  minds  of  very  unusual  force)  is  by  no  means  a 
matter,  as  some  suppose,  of  impulse  or  intuition.     In  325 
general,  to  be  found,  it  must  be  elaborately  sought,  and, 
although  a  positive  merit  of  the  highest  class,  demands  in 
its  attainment  less  of  invention  than  negation. 

Of  course,  I  pretend  to  no  originality  in  either  the 
rhythm  or  metre  of  the  ' '  Raven. ' '  The  former  is  trochaic,  330 
the  latter  is  octameter  acatalectic,  alternating  with 
heptameter  catalectic  repeated  in  the  refrain  of  the  fifth 
verse,  and  terminating  with  tetrameter  catalectic.  Less 
pedantically — the  feet  employed  throughout  (trochees) 
consist  of  a  long  syllable  followed  by  a  short ;  the  first  line  335 
of  the  stanza  consists  of  eight  of  these  feet,  the  second  of 
seven  and  a  half  (in  effect  two-thirds),  the  third  of  eight, 
the  fourth  of  seven  and  a  half,  the  fifth  the  same,  the  sixth 


g6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

three  and  a  half.     Now,  each  of  these  lines,  taken  individ- 

340  ually,  has  been  employed  before,  and  what  originality  the 
** Raven"  has  is  in  their  combination  into  stanza;  nothing 
even  remotely  approaching  this  combination  has  ever 
been  attempted.  The  effect  of  this  originality  of  com- 
bination is  aided  by  other  unusual  and  some  altogether 

345  novel  effects,  arising  from  an  extension  of  the  application 
of  the  principles  of  rhyme  and  alliteration. 

The  next  point  to  be  considered  was  the  mode  of  bringing 
together  the  lover  and  the  Raven ;  and  the  first  branch  of 
this  consideration  was  the  locale.     For  this  the  most  natural 

350  suggestion  might  seem  to  be  a  forest,  or  the  fields;  but  it 
has  always  appeared  to  me  that  a  close  circumscription  of 
space  is  absolutely  necessary  to  the  effect  of  insulated 
incident : — it  has  the  force  of  a  frame  to  a  picture.  It  has 
an  indisputable  moral  power  in  keeping  concentrated  the 

355  attention,  and,  of  course,  must  not  be  confounded  with 
mere  unity  of  place. 

I  determined,  then,  to  place  the  lover  in  his  chamber — 
in  a  chamber  rendered  Sacred  to  him  by  memories  of  her 
who  had  frequented  it.     The  room  is   represented   as 

360  richly  furnished — this  in  mere  pursuance  of  the  ideas  I 
have  already  explained  on  the  subject  of  Beauty,  as  the 
sole  true  poetical  thesis. 

The  locale  being  thus  determined,  I  had  now  to  introduce 
the  bird,  and  the  thought  of  introducing  him  through  the 

365  window  was  inevitable.  The  idea  of  making  the  lover  sup- 
pose in  the  first  instance  that  the  flapping  of  the  wings 
of  the  bird  against  the  shutter  is  a  "tapping"  at  the  door, 
originated  in  a  wish  to  increase,  by  prolonging,  the  reader's 
curiosity,  and  in  a  desire  to  admit  the  incidental  effect 

370  arising  from  the  lover's  throwing  open  the  door,  finding 
all  dark,  and  thence  adopting  the  half -fancy  that  it  was  the 
spirit  of  his  mistress  that  knocked. 


The  Philosophy  of  Composition  gy 

I  made  the  night  tempestuous,  first,  to  account  for  the 
Raven's  seeking  admission,  and  secondly,  for  the  effect 
of    contrast    with    the    (physical)    serenity    within    the  375 
chamber. 

I  made  the  bird  alight  on  the  bust  of  Pallas,  also  for  the 
effect  of  contrast  between  the  marble  and  the  plumage — 
it  being  understood  that  the  bust  was  absolutely  suggested 
by  the  bird ;  the  bust  of  Pallas  being'  chosen,  first,  as  38o 
most  in  keeping  with  the  scholarship  of  the  lover,  and, 
secondly,  for  the  sonorousness  of  the  word,  Pallas,  itself. 

About  the  middle  of  the  poem,  also,  I  have  availed 
myself  of  the  force  of  contrast  with  a  view  of  deepening 
the  ultimate  impression.  For  example,  an  air  of  the  fan-  sss 
tastic,  approaching  as  nearly  to  the  ludicrous  as  was 
admissible,  is  given  to  the  Raven's  entrance.  He  comes 
in  "with  many  a  flirt  and  flutter." 

Not  the  least  obeisance  made  he;  not  a  minute  stopped  or  stayed  he ; 
But,  with  mien  of  lord  or  lady,  perched  above  my  chamber  door.      390 

In  the  two  stanzas  which  follow,  the  design  is  more 
obviously  carried  out: — 

Then  this  ebony  bird  beguiling  my  sad  fancy  into  smiling 
By  the  grave  and  stern  decorum  of  the  countenance  it  wore, — 
"Though  thy  crest  he  shorn  and  shaven,  thou,"  said  I,  "art  sure  no  sds 

craven. 
Ghastly  grim  and  ancient  Raven  wandering  from  the  Nightly  shore  • 
Tell  me  what  thy  lordly  name  is  on  the  Night's  Plutonian  shore!" 

Quoth  the  raven  "Nevermore." 

Much  I  marvelled  this  ungainly  fowl  to  hear  discourse  so  plainly, 
Though  its  answer  little  meaning — little  relevancy  bore;  400 

For  we  cannot  help  agreeing  that  no  living  human  being 
Ever  yet  was  blessed  with  seeing  bird  above  his  chamber  door, 
Bird  or  beast  upon  the  sculptured  bust  above  his  chamber  door. 

With  such  name  as  "Nevermore," 

The  effect  of  the  denouement  being  thus  provided  for,  405 
7 


g8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

I  immediately  drop  the  fantastic  for  a  tone  of  the  most 
profound  seriousness : — this  tone  commencing  in  the  stanza 
directly  following  the  one  last  quoted,  with  the  line, 

But  the  Raven,  sitting  lonely  on  the  placid  bust,  spoke  only,  etc. 

410  From  this  epoch  the  lover  no  longer  j  est s — no  longer  sees 
anything  even  of  the  fantastic  in  the  Raven's  demeanor. 
He  speaks  of  him  as  a  "grim,  ungainly,  ghastly,  gaunt, 
and  ominous  bird  of  yore,"  and  feels  the  "fiery  eyes" 
burning  into  his   "bosom's    core."     This  revolution  of 

415  thought,  or  fancy,  on  the  lover's  part,  is  intended  to  in- 
duce a  similar  one  on  the  part  of  the  reader — to  bring  the 
mind  into  a  proper  frame  for  the  denouement,  which  is 
now  brought  about  as  rapidly  and  as  directly  as  possible. 
With  the  denouement  proper — with  the  Raven's  reply, 

420  "Nevermore,"  to  the  lover's  final  demand  if  he  shall  meet 
his  mistress  in  another  world — the  poem,  in  its  obvious 
phase,  that  of  a  simple  narrative,  may  be  said  to  have  its 
completion.  So  far,  everything  is  within  the  limits  of  the 
accountable,   of  the  re'kl.    A  raven,  having  learned  by 

425 rote  the  single  word  "Nevermore,"  and  having  escaped 
from  the  custody  of  its  owner,  is  driven  at  midnight 
through  the  violence  of  a  storm  to  seek  admission  at  a 
window  from  which  a  light  still  gleams- — the  chamber- 
window  of  a  student,   occupied  half  in  poring  over  a 

430  volume,  half  in  dreaming  of  a  beloved  mistress  deceased. 
The  casement  being  thrown  open  at  the  fluttering  of  the 
bird's  wings,  the  bird  itself  perches  on  the  most  con- 
venient seat  out  of  the  immediate  reach  of  the  student, 
who,  amused  by  the  incident  and  the  oddity  of  the  visitor's 

435  demeanor,  demands  of  it,  in  jest  and  without  looking  for 
a  reply,  its  name.  The  raven  addressed,  answers  with  its 
customary  word, ' '  Nevermore ' ' —  a  word  which  finds  imme- 
diate echo  in  the  melancholy  heart  of  the  student,  who. 


The  Philosophy  of  Composition  '     gg 

giving  utterance  aloud  to  certain  thoughts  suggested  by 
the  occasion,  is  again  startled  by  the  fowl's  repetition  of  440 
**  Nevermore."  The  student  now  guesses  the  state  of  the 
case,  but  is  impelled,  as  I  have  before  explained,  by  the 
human  thirst  for  self-torture,  and  in  part  by  superstition, 
to  propound  such  queries  to  the  bird  as  will  bring  him, 
the  lover,  the  most  of  the  luxury  of  sorrow,  through  the  445 
anticipated  answer ''Nevermore."  With  the  indulgence, 
to  the  extreme,  of  this  self-torture,  the  narration,  in  what 
I  have  termed  its  first  or  obvious  phase,  has  a  natural 
termination,  and  so  far  there  has  been  no  overstepping  of 
the  limits  of  the  real.  450 

But  in  subjects  so  handled,  however  skilfully,  or  with 
however  vivid  an  array  of  incident,  there  is  always  a 
certain  hardness  or  nakedness,  which  repels  the  artisti- 
cal  eye.     Two  things  are  invariably  required :  first,  some 
amount  of  complexity,  or  more  properly,  adaptation ;   and  455 
secondly,  some  amount  of  suggestiveness,  some  under- 
current, however  indefinite,  of  meaning.     It  is  this  latter, 
in  especial,  which  imparts  to  a  work  of  art  so  much  of  that 
richness  (to  borrow  from  colloquy  a  forcible  term)  which 
we  are  too  fond  of  confounding  with  the  ideal.     It  is  the  46o 
excess  of  the  suggested  meaning — it  is  the  rendering  this    " 
the  upper  instead  of  the  under  current  of  the  theme — 
which  turns  into  prose  (and  that  of  the  very  flattest  kind) 
the  so-called  poetry  of  the  so-called  transcendentalists. 

Holding  these  opinions,  I  added  the  two  concluding  465 
stanzas  of  the  poem — their  suggestiveness  being  thus 
made  to  pervade  all  the  narrative  which  has  preceded  them. 
The  under-current  of  meaning  is  rendered  first  apparent  in 
the  lines — 

"Take  thy  beak  from  out  my  heart,  and  take  thy  form  from  off  my  470 
door!" 

Quoth  the  Raven,  "Nevermore!" 


100  Southern  Literary  Readings 

It  will  be  observed  that  the  words,  "from  out  my 
heart,"  involve  the  first  metaphorical  expression  in  the 
poem.     They,  with  the   answer,   "Nevermore,"   dispose 

475  the  mind  to  seek  a  moral  in  all  that  has  been  previously 
narrated.  The  reader  begins  now  to  regard  the  Raven 
as  emblematical — but  it  is  not  until  the  very  last  line  of 
the  very  last  stanza  that  the  intention  of  making  him  em- 
blematical of  Mournful  and  Never-ending  Remembrance  is 

iso  permitted  distinctly  to  be  seen: — 

And  the  Raven,  never  flitting,  still  is  sitting,  still  is  sitting 
On  the  pallid  bust  of  Pallas  just  above  my  chamber  door; 
And  his  eyes  have  all  the  seeming  of  a  demon's  that  is  dreaming. 
And  the  lamp-light  o  'er  him  streaming  throws  his  shadow  on  the  floor ; 
»85  And  my  soul  from  out  that  shadoiv  that  lies  floating  on  the  floor 

Shall  be  lifted — nevermore. 


THE  BELLS 

I 
Hear  the  sledges  with  the  bells. 
Silver  bells! 
What  a  world  of  merriment  their  melody  foretells ! 
How  they  tinkle,  tinkle,  tinkle. 

In  the  icy  air  of  night ! 
While  the  stars,  that  oversprinkle 
All  the  heavens,  seem  to  twinkle 
With  a  crystalline  delight ; 
Keeping  time,  time,  time. 
In  a  sort  of  Runic  rhyme. 
To  the  tintinnabulation  that  so  musically  wells 
From  the  bells,  bells,  bells,  bells, 
Bells,  bells,  bells— 
From  the  jingling  and  the  tinkling  of  the  bells. 


The  Bells  loi 

II 
Hear  the  mellow  wedding  bells 
Golden  bells! 
What  a  world  of  happiness  their  harmony  foretells! 
Through  the  balmy  air  of  night 
How  they  ring  out  their  delight ! 
From  the  molten-golden  notes, 

And  all  in  tune, 
What  a  liquid  ditty  floats 
To  the  turtle-dove  that  listens,  while  she  gloats 
On  the  moon ! 
Oh,  from  out  the  sounding  cells, 
What  a  gush  of  euphony  voluminously  wells ! 
How  it  swells ! 
How  it  dwells 
On  the  Future !  how  it  tells 
Of  the  rapture  that  impels 
To  the  swinging  and  the  ringing 

Of  the  bells,  bells,  bells. 
Of  the  bells,  bells,  bells,  bells, 
Bells,  bells,  bells — 
To  the  rhyming  and  the  chiming  of  the  bells !  i 

III 
Hear  the  loud  alarum  bells. 
Brazen  bells ! 
What  a  tale  of  terror,  now,  their  turbulency  tells ! 
In  the  startled  ear  of  night 

How  they  scream  out  their  affright !  < 

Too  much  horrified  to  speak, 
They  can  only  shriek,  shriek. 
Out  of  tune. 
In  a  clamorous  appealing  to  the  mercy  of  the  fire. 
In  a  mad  expostulation  with  the  deaf  and  frantic  fire,     4 


102  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Leaping  higher,  higher,  higher, 
With  a  desperate  desire. 
And  a  resolute  endeavor 
Now — now  to  sit  or  never, 
60  By  the  side  of  the  pale-faced  moon. 

Oh,  the  bells,  bells,  bells! 
What  a  tale  their  terror  tells 
Of  Despair ! 
How  they  clang,  and  clash,  and  roar! 
55  What  a  horror  they  outpour 

On  the  bosom  of  the  palpitating  air ! 
Yet  the  ear  it  fully  knows. 
By  the  twanging, 
And  the  clanging, 
60  How  the  danger  ebbs  and  flows ; 

Yet  the  ear  distinctly  tells, 
In  the  jangling 
And  the  wrangling. 
How  the  danger  sinks  and  swells, — 
65     By  the  sinking  or  the  swelling  in  the  anger  of  the  bells, 
Of  the  bells. 
Of  the  bells,  bells,  bells,  bells. 
Bells,  bells,  bells — 
In  the  clamor  and  the  clanging  of  the  bells ! 

IV 

70  Hear  the  tolling  of  the  bells. 

Iron  bells ! 
What  a  world  of  solemn  thought  their  monody  compels ! 
In  the  silence  of  the  night. 
How  we  shiver  with  affright 
75  At  the  melancholy  menace  of  their  tone ! 

For  every  sound  that  floats 
From  the  rust  within  their  throats 
Is  a  groan. 


The  Bells  103 

And  the  people — ah,  the  people, 

They  that  dwell  up  in  the  steeple,  so 

All  alone, 
And  who  tolling,  tolling,  tolling. 

In  that  muffled  monotone. 
Feel  a  glory  in  so  rolling 

On  the  human  heart  a  stone —  85 

They  are  neither  man  nor  woman, 
They  are  neither  brute  nor  human 
They  are  Ghouls : 
And  their  king  it  is  who  tolls ; 
And  he  rolls,  rolls,  rolls,  90 

Rolls 
A  psean  from  the  bells ; 
And  his  merry  bosom  swells 
With  the  paean  of  the  bells. 
And  he  dances,  and  he  yells;  95 

Keeping  time,  time,  time, 
In  a  sort  of  Runic  rhyme. 
To  the  pasan  of  the  bells, 
Of  the  bells: 
Keeping  time,  time,  time,  100 

In  a  sort  of  Runic  rhyme. 

To  the  throbbing  of  the  bells, 
Of  the  bells,  bells,  bells — 

To  the  sobbing  of  the  bells; 
Keeping  time,  time,  time,  loe 

As  he  knells,  knells,  knells, 
In  a  happy  Runic  rhyme. 

To  the  rolling  of  the  bells. 
Of  the  bells,  bells,  bells, 

To  the  tolling  of  the  bells,  no 

Of  the  bells,  bells,  bells,  bells. 
Bells,  bells,  bells — 
To  the  moaning  and  the  groaning  of  the  bells. 


104  Southern  Literary  Readings 

ANNABEL  LEE 

It  was  many  and  many  a  year  ago, 

In  a  kingdom  by  the  sea, 
That  a  maiden  there  Hved  whom  you  may  know 

By  the  name  of  Annabel  Lee ; 
And  this  maiden  she  hved  with  no  other  thought 

Than  to  love  and  be  loved  by  me. 

I.  was  a  child  and  she  was  a  child, 

In  this  kingdom  by  the  sea, 
But  we  loved  with  a  love  that  was  more  than  love, 

I  and  my  Annabel  Lee ; 
With  a  love  that  the  winged  seraphs  of  heaven 

Coveted  her  and  me. 

And  this  was  the  reason  that,  long  ago, 

In  this  kingdom  by  the  sea, 
A  wind  blew  out  of  a  cloud,  chilling 

My  beautiful  Annabel  Lee ; 
So  that  her  high-boA  kinsmen  came 

And  bore  her  away  from  me, 
To  shut  her  up  in  a  sepulchre 

In  this  kingdom  by  the  sea. 

The  angels,  not  half  so  happy  in  heaven. 

Went  envying  her  and  me;  — 
Yes !  that  was  the  reason  (as  all  men  know, 

In  this  kingdom  by  the  sea) 
That  the  wind  came  out  of  the  cloud  by  night, 

Chilling  and  killing  my  Annabel  Lee. 

But  our  love  it  was  stronger  by  far  than  the  love 

Of  those  who  were  older  than  we. 

Of  many  far  wiser  than  we ; 
And  neither  the  angels  in  heaven  above, 


The  Masque  of  the  Red  Death  105 

Nor  the  demons  down  under  the  sea, 
Can  ever  dissever  my  soul  from  the  soul 
Of  the  beautiful  Annabel  Lee : 

For  the  moon  never  beams,  without  bringing  me  dreams 

Of  the  beautiful  Annabel  Lee ;  35 

And  the  stars  never  rise,  but  I  feel  the  bright  eyes 

Of  the  beautiful  Annabel  Lee ; 
And  so,  all  the  night-tide,  I  lie  down  by  the  side 
Of  my  darling — my  darling — my  life  and  my  bride, 

In  her  sepulchre  there  by  the  sea,  40 

In  her  tomb  by  the  sounding  sea. 


THE  MASQUE  OF  THE  RED  DEATH 

The  ''Red  Death"  had  long  devastated  the  country. 
No  pestilence  had  ever  been  so  fatal,  or  so  hideous.  Blood 
was  its  avatar  and  its  seal — the  redness  and  the  horror  of 
blood.  There  were  sharp  pains,  and  sudden  dizziness, 
and  then  profuse  bleeding  at  the  pores,  with  dissolution.  5 
The  scarlet  stains  upon  the  body,  and  especially  upon 
the  face,  of  the  victim  were  the  pest  ban  which  shut  him 
out  from  the  aid  and  from  the  sympathy  of  his  fellow-men. 
And  the  whole  seizure,  progress,  and  termination  of  the 
disease  were  the  incidents  of  half  an  hour.  10 

But  the  Prince  Prospero  was  happy  and  dauntless  and 
sagacious.  When  his  dominions  were  half  depopulated, 
he  summoned  to  his  presence  a  thousand  hale  and  light- 
hearted  friends  from  among  the  knights  and  dames  of 
his  court,  and  with  these  retired  to  the  deep  seclusion  15 
of  one  of  his  castellated  abbeys.  This  was  an  extensive 
and  magnificent  structure,  the  creation  of  the  Prince's 
own  eccentric  yet  august  taste.    A  strong  and  lofty  wall 


io6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

girdled  it  in.     This  wall  had  gates  of  iron.     The  courtiers, 

20  having  entered,  brought  furnaces  and  massy  hammers, 
and  welded  the  bolts.  They  resolved  to  leave  means 
neither  of  ingress  nor  egress  to  the  sudden  impulses  of 
despair  or  of  frenzy  from  within.  The  abbey  was  amply 
provisioned.     With  such  precautions  the  courtiers  might 

25  bid  defiance  to  contagion.  The  external  world  could  take 
care  of  itself.  In  the  mean  time  it  was  folly  to  grieve, 
or  to  think.  The  Prince  had  provided  all  the  appliances 
of  pleasure.  The're  were  buffoons,  there  were  impro- 
visatori,  there  were  ballet-dancers,  there  were  musicians, 

30  there  was  Beauty,  there  was  wine.  All  these  and  security 
were  within.     Without  was  the  "Red  Death. " 

It  was  toward  the  close  of  the  fifth  or  sixth  month 
of  his  seclusion,  and  while  the  pestilence  raged  most 
furiously  abroad,  that  the  Prince  Prospero  entertained 

35  his  thousand  friends  at  a  masked  ball  of  the  most  unusual 
magnificence. 

It  was  a  voluptuous  scene,  that  masquerade.  But 
first  let  me  tell  of  the  rboms  in  which  it  was  held.  There 
were  seven — an  imperial  suite.     In  many  palaces,  how- 

40  ever,  such  suites  form  a  long  and  straight  vista,  while 
the  folding  doors  slide  back  nearly  to  the  walls  on  either 
hand,  so  that  the  view  of  the  whole  extent  is  scarcely  im- 
peded. Here  the  case  was  very  different,  as  might  have 
been  expected  from  the  Prince's  love  of  the  bizarre.     The 

45  apartments  were  so  irregularly  disposed  that  the  vision 
embraced  but  little  more  than  one  at  a  time.  There 
was  a  sharp  turn  at  every  twenty  or  thirty  yards,  and  at 
each  turn  a  novel  effect.  To  the  right  and  left,  in  the 
middle  of  each  wall,  a  tall  and  narrow  Gothic  window 

50  looked  out  upon  a  closed  corridor  which  pursued  the 
windings  of  the  suite.  These  windows  were  of  stained 
glass,  whose  color  varied  in  accordance  with  the  prevailing 


The  Masque  of  the  Red  Death  loy 

hue  of  the  decorations  of  the  chamber  into  which  it 
opened.     That  at  the  eastern  extremity  was  hung,  for 
example,  in  blue — and  vividly  blue  were  its  windows.  55 
The  second  chamber  was  purple  in  its  ornaments  and 
tapestries,  and  here  the  panes  were  purple.     The  third 
was  green  throughout,  and  so  were  the  casements.     The 
fourth  was  furnished  and  lighted  with  orange,  the  fifth 
with  white,  the  sixth  with  violet.     The  seventh  apart- eo 
ment  was  closely  shrouded  in  black  velvet  tapestries  that 
hung  all  over  the  ceiling  and  down  the  walls,  falling  in 
heavy  folds  upon  a  carpet  of  the  same  material  and  hue. 
But,  in  this  chamber  only,  the  color  of  the  windows  failed 
to  correspond  with  the  decorations.     The  panes  here  were  65 
scarlet — a  deep  blood-color.    Now  in  no  one  of  the  seven 
apartments  was  there  any  lamp  or  candelabrum,  amid 
the  profusion  of  golden  ornaments  that  lay  scattered  to 
and  fro  or  depended  from  the  roof.     There  was  no  light 
of  any  kind  emanating  from  lamp  or  candle  within  the  70 
suite  of  chambers.     But  in  the  corridors  that  followed  the 
suite  there  stood,   opposite  to  each  window,   a  heavy 
tripod,  bearing  a  brazier  of  fire,  that  projected  its  rays 
through  the  tinted  glass  and  so  glaringly  illumined  the 
room.     And  thus  were  produced  a  multitude  of  gaudy  and  75 
fantastic  appearances.     But    in   the    western  or   black 
chamber  the  effect  of  the  firelight  that  streamed  upon 
the  dark  hangings  through  the  blood-tinted  panes  was 
ghastly  in  the  extreme,  and  produced  so  wild  a  look  upon 
the  countenances  of  those  who  entered  that  there  were  so 
few  of  the  company  bold  enough  to  set  foot  within  its 
precincts  at  all. 

It  was  in  this  apartment,  also,  that  there  stood  against 
the  western  wall  a  gigantic  clock  of  ebony.     Its  pendulum 
swung  to  and  fro  with  a  dull,  heavy,  monotonous  clang;  ss 
and  when  the  minute-hand  made  the  circuit  of  the  face, 


io8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

and  the  hour  was  to  be  stricken,  there  came  from  the 
brazen  lungs  of  the  clock  a  sound  which  was  clear  and  loud 
and  deep  and  exceedingly  musical,  but  of  so  peculiar  a  note 

90  and  emphasis  that,  at  each  lapse  of  an  hour,  the  musicians 
of  the  orchestra  were  constrained  to  pause,  momentarily, 
in  their  performance,  to  hearken  to  the  sound;  and  thus 
the  waltzers  perforce  ceased  their  evolutions;  and  there 
was  a  brief  disconcert  of  the  whole  gay  company;  and, 

95  while  the  chimes  of  the  clock  yet  rang,  it  was  observed 
that  the  giddiest  grew  pale,  and  the  more  aged  and  sedate 
passed  their  hands  over  their  brows  as  if  in  confused 
revery  or  meditation.  But  when  the  echoes  had  fully 
ceased,  a  light  laughter  at  once  pervaded  the  assembly; 

100  the  musicians  looked  at  each  other  and  smiled  as  if  at  their 
own  nervousness  and  folly,  and  made  whispering  vows, 
each  to  the  other,  that  the  next  chiming  of  the  clock  should 
produce  in  them  no  similar  emotion;  and  then,  after  the 
lapse  of  sixty  minutes  (which  embrace  three  thousand 

105  and  six  hundred  seconds  of  the  Time  that  flies)  there 
came  yet  another  chiming  of  the  clock,  and  then  were 
the  same  disconcert  and  tremulousness  and  meditation 
as  before. 

But,  in  spite  of  these  things,  it  was  a  gay  and  mag- 
no  nificent  revel.  The  tastes  of  the  Prince  were  peculiar. 
He  had  a  fine  eye  for  colors  and  effects.  He  disregarded 
the  decora  of  mere  fashion.  His  plans  were  bold  and  fiery, 
and  his  conceptions  glowed  with  barbaric  lustre.  There 
are  some  who  would  have  thought  him  mad.     His  followers 

115  felt  that  he  was  not.  It  was  necessary  to  hear  and  see 
and  touch  him  to  be  sure  that  he  was  not. 

He  had  directed,  in  great  part,  the  movable  embel- 
lishments of  the  seven  chambers,  upon  occasion  of  this 
great  fete;  and  it  was  his  own  guiding  taste  which  had 

120  given  character  to  the  masqueraders.     Be  sure  they  were 


The  Masque  of  the  Red  Death  log 

grotesque.  There  were  much  glare  and  gHtter  and  piquancy 
and  phantasm — much  of  what  has  been  since  seen  in 
Hernani.  There  were  arabesque  figures  with  unsuited 
limbs  and  appointments.  There  were  delirious  fancies 
such  as  the  madman  fashions.  There  was  much  of  the  12s 
beautiful,  much  of  the  wanton,  much  of  the  bizarre, 
something  of  the  terrible,  and  not  a  little  of  that  which 
might  have  excited  disgust.  To  and  fro  in  the  seven 
chambers  there  stalked,  in  fact,  a  multitude  of  dreams. 
And  these — the  dreams — writhed  in  and  about,  taking  130 
hue  from  the  rooms,  and  causing  the  wild  music  of  the 
orchestra  to  seem  as  the  echo  of  their  steps.  And,  anon, 
there  strikes  the  ebony  clock  which  stands  in  the  hall 
of  the  velvet.  And  then,  for  a  moment,  all  is  still,  and 
all  is  silent  save  the  voice  of  the  clock.  The  dreams  are  135 
stiff -frozen  as  they  stand.  But  the  echoes  of  the  chime 
die  away — they  have  endured  but  an  instant — and  a  light, 
half -subdued  laughter  floats  after  them  as  they  depart. 
And  now  again  the  music  swells,  and  the  dreams  live,  and 
writhe  to  and  fro  more  merrily  than  ever,  taking  hue  from  140 
the  many  tinted  windows  through  which  stream  the  rays 
from  the  tripods.  But  to  the  chamber  which  lies  most 
v/estwardly  of  the  seven,  there  are  now  none  of  the  maskers 
who  venture ;  for  the  night  is  waning  away,  and  there  flows 
a  ruddier  light  through  the  blood-colored  panes ;  and  the  145 
blackness  of  the  sable  drapery  appals ;  and  to  him  whose 
foot  falls  upon  the  sable  carpet,  there  comes  from  the 
near  clock  of  ebony  a  muffled  peal  more  solemnly  emphatic 
than  any  which  reaches  their  ears  who  indulge  in  the  more 
remote  gayeties  of  the  other  apartments.  150 

But  these  other  apartments  were  densely  crowded,  and 
in  them  beat  feverishly  the  heart  of  life.  And  the  revel 
went  whirlingly  on,  until  at  length  there  commenced  the 
sounding  of  midnight  upon  the  clock.     And  then  the  music 


no  Southern  Literary  Readings 

155  ceased,  as  I  have  told;  and  the  evolutions  of  the  waltzers 
were  quieted;  and  there  was  an  uneasy  cessation  of  all 
things  as  before.  But  now  there  were  twelve  strokes  to 
be  sounded  by  the  bell  of  the  clock;  and  thus  it  happened, 
perhaps,  that  more  of  thought  crept,  with  more  of  time, 

160  into  the  meditations  of  the  thoughtful  among  those  who 
revelled.  And  thus  too  it  happened,  perhaps,  that  before 
the  last  echoes  of  the  last  chime  had  utterly  sunk  into 
silence,  there  were  many  individuals  in  the  crowd  who 
had  found  leisure  to  become  aware  of  the  presence  of  a 

165  masked  figure  which  had  arrested  the  attention  of  no  single 
individual  before.  And  the  rumor  of  this  new  presence 
having  spread  itself  whisperingly  around,  there  arose  at 
length  from  the  whole  company  a  buzz,  or  murmur,  expres- 
sive of  disapprobation   and   surprise — then,  finally,   of 

170  terror,  of  horror,  and  of  disgust. 

In  an  assembly  of  phantasms  such  as  I  have  painted,  it 
may  well  be  supposed  that  no  ordinary  appearance  could 
have  excited  such  seijsation.  In  truth  the  masquerade 
license  of  the  night  was  nearly  unlimited;  but  the  figure 

175  in  question  had  out-Heroded  Herod,  and  gone  beyond  the 
bounds  of  even  the  Prince's  indefinite  decorum.  There 
are  chords  in  the  hearts  of  the  most  reckless  which  cannot 
be  touched  without  emotion.  Even  with  the  utterly 
lost,  to  whom  life  and  death  are  equally  jests,  there  are 

180  matters  of  which  no  jest  can  be  made.  The  whole  com- 
pany, indeed,  seemed  now  deeply  to  feel  that  in  the  cos- 
tume and  bearing  of  the  stranger  neither  wit  not  propriety 
existed.  The  figure  was  tall  and  gaunt,  and  shrouded 
from  head  to  foot  in  the  habiliments  of  the  grave.     The 

185  mask  which  concealed  the  visage  was  made  so  nearly  to 
resemble  the  countenance  of  a  stiffened  corpse  that  the 
closest  scrutiny  must  have  had  difficulty  in  detecting  the 
cheat.     And  yet  all  this  might  have  been  endured,  if  not 


.    The  Masque  of  the  Red  Death  iii 

approved,  by  the  mad  revellers  around.     But  the  mummer 
had  gone  so  far  as  to  assume  the  type  of  the  Red  Death,  iqo 
His  vesture  was  dabbled  in  blood — and  his  broad  brow, 
with  all  the  features  of  the  face,  was  besprinkled  with 
the  scarlet  horror. 

When  the  eyes  of  Prince  Prospero  fell  upon  this  spectral 
image  (which  with  a  slow  and  solemn  movement,  as  if  more  195 
fully  to  sustain  its  role,  stalked  to  and  fro  among  the 
waltzers)  he  was  seen  to  be  convulsed,  in  the  first  moment, 
with  a  strong  shudder  either  of  terror  or  distaste;  but,  in 
the  next,  his  brow  reddened  with  rage. 

"Who  dares?"    he  demanded  hoarsely  of    the  cour-200 
tiers  who  stood  near  him, — "who  dares  insult  us  with  this 
blasphemous  mockery?    Seize  him  and  unmask  him — 
that  we  may  know  whom  we  have  to  hang  at  sunrise, 
from  the  battlements!" 

It  was  in  the  eastern  or  blue  chamber  in  which  stood  205 
the  Prince  Prospero  as  he  uttered  these  words.     They 
rang  throughout  the  seven  rooms  loudly  and  clearly — 
for  the  Prince  was  a  bold  and  robust  man,  and  the  music 
had  become  hushed  at  the  waving  of  his  hand. 

It  was  in  the  blue  room  where  stood  the  Prince,  with  210 
a  group  of  pale  courtiers  by  his  side.     At  first,  as  he 
spoke,  there  was  a  slight  rushing  movement  of  this  group 
in  the  direction  of  the  intruder,  who  at  the  moment  was 
also  near  at  hand,  and  now,  with  deliberate  and  stately 
step,  made  closer  approach  to  the  speaker.     But  from  a  215 
certain  nameless  awe  with  which  the  mad  assumptions 
of  the  mummer  had  inspired  the  whole  party,  there  were 
found  none  who  put  forth  hand  to  seize  him;  so  that, 
unimpeded,  he  passed  within  a  yard  of  the  Prince's  per- 
son; and,  while  the  vast  assembly,  as  if  with  one  impulse,  220 
shrank  from  the  centres  of  the  rooms  to  the  walls,  he  made 
his  way  uninterruptedly,  but  with  the  same  solemn  and 


112  Southern  Literary  Readings 

measured  step  which  had  distinguished  him  from  the  first, 
through  the  blue  chamber  to  the  purple — through  the 

225  purple  to  the  green — through  the  green  to  the  orange — 
through  this  again  to  the  white — and  even  thence  to  the 
violet,  ere  a  decided  movement  had  been  made  to  arrest 
him.  It  was  then,  however,  that  the  Prince  Prospero, 
maddening  with  rage  and  the  shame  of  his  own  momentary 

230  cowardice,  rushed  hurriedly  through  the  six  chambers, 
while  none  followed  him  on  account  of  a  deadly  terror 
that  had  seized  upon  all.  He  bore  aloft  a  drawn  dagger, 
and  had  approached,  in  rapid  impetuosity,  to  within  three 
or  four  feet  of  the  retreating  figure,  when  the  latter,  having 

235  attained  the  extremity  of  the  velvet  apartment,  turned 
suddenly  and  confronted  his  pursuer.  There  was  a  sharp 
cry — and  the  dagger  dropped  gleaming  upon  the  sable 
carpet,  upon  which,  instantly  afterwards,  fell  prostrate 
in   death  the   Prince   Prospero.     Then,   summoning  the 

240  wild  courage  of  despair,  a  throng  of  the  revellers  at  once 
threw  themselves  into  the  black  apartment,  and,  seizing 
the  mummer,  whose  tall  figure  stood  erect  and  motionless 
within  the  shadow  of  the  ebony  clock,  gasped  in  unutter- 
able horror  at  finding  the  grave  cerements  and  corpse-like 

245  mask,  which  they  handled  with  so  violent  a  rudeness,  unten- 
anted by  any  tangible  form. 

And  now  was  acknowledged  the  presence  of  the  Red 
Death.  He  had  come  like  a  thief  in  the  night.  And 
one  by  one  dropped  the  revellers  in  the  blood-bedewed 

250  halls  of  their  revel,  and  died  each  in  the  despairing  posture 
of  his  fall.  And  the  life  of  the  ebony  clock  went  out  with 
that  of  the  last  of  the  gay.  And  the  flames  of  the  tripods 
expired.  And  Darkness  and  Decay  and  the  Red  Death 
held  illimitable  dominion  over  all. 


ALEXANDER  BEAUFORT  MEEK 

Once  famous  as  judge,  editor,  lawmaker,  historian, 
orator,  to-day  Alexander  Beaufort  Meek  is  remembered 
chiefly — we  might  almost  say  wholly — by  a  small  sheaf 
of  lyric  poems.  He  was  born  in  Columbia,  South  Carolina, 
July  17,  1 8 14;  but  when  he  was  only  five  years  of  age  his 
father  moved  to  Tuscaloosa,  Alabama,  so  Meek  is  usually 
recognized  as  an  Alabamian.  He  entered  the  University 
of  Alabama  in  the  first  year  of  its  history,  1 83 1 ,  and  two 
years  later,  with  the  highest  honors,  completed  the  course 
of  the  initial  graduating  class.  He  then  studied  law  in 
the  University  of  Georgia,  and  began  the  practice  of  his 
profession  in  Tuscaloosa  in  1835.  He  was  made  Attorney- 
general  of  Alabama  in  1836  to  fill  a  temporary  vacancy; 
and  in  1842  was  appointed  Judge  of  Probate  in  Tuscaloosa 
County  for  an  unexpired  term.  Three  years  later  he  was 
made  Assistant  Secretary  of  the  United  States  Treasury. 
He  remained  in  Washington  only  two  years,  however, 
removing  in  1847  to  Mobile,  Alabama,  where  he  lived  until 
shortly  before  his  death.  Meek  took  a  prominent  part  in 
state  politics,  being  elected  twice  to  the  State  Legislature. 
He  was  author  of  the  bill  providing  for  a  system  of  free 
public  schools  for  the  state.  Though  living  during  the 
time  of  the  Civil  War,  Meek  took  little  part  in  it  except 
when  he  could  aid  the  cause  with  his  pen.  After  the 
war  he  moved  to  Columbus,  Mississippi,  where  he  died, 
November  30,  1865. 

During  all  these  busy  years  Judge  Meek  kept  up  inter- 
mittently his  connection  with  the  literary  life  of  his  section. 
Early  in  his  career  he  was  the  editor  of  the  Flag  of  the  Union 
and  the  Southron  at  Tuscaloosa,  and  when  he  removed 
to  Mobile  he  became  an  associate  editor  of  the  Register, 
one  of  the  oldest  of  the  Alabama  daily  papers.  He  kept 
up  a  literary  correspondence  with  William  Gilmore  Simms, 
and  also  contributed  to  some  of  the  magazines  fostered 
by  that  indefatigable  editor.     Besides,  Meek  published  a 

8  [113] 


114  Southern  Literary  Readings 

volume  of  prose  sketches  and  orations  and  two  volumes 
of  poetry,  Red  Eagle  (1855),  a  romantic  poem  on  Weather- 
ford,  the  noted  Creek  chieftain,  and  Songs  and  Poem's  oj 
the  South  (1857).  In  the  poem  Red  Eagle  occurs  the 
beautiful  blue-bird  song,  supposed  to  be  sung  by  an  Indian 
maiden  to  her  lover^  but  it  is  in  the  volume  last  named  that 
the  best  of  Meek's  poetry  is  to  be  found,  the  most  notable 
single  poems  being  The  Mocking-bird  and  Land  of  the 
South. 

(The  best  essays  on  Meek  are  those  by  Charles  Hunter  Ross 
in  the  Sewanee  Review,  August,  1896,  and  Peter  J.  Hamilton  in 
The  Library  of  Southern  Literature,  Vol.  VIII.) 


LAND   OP  THE  SOUTH 

I 
Land  of  the  South! — imperial  land! — 

How  proud  thy  mountains  rise!  — 
How  sweet  thy  scenes  on  every  hand  1 
.    How  fair  ihy  covering  skies ! 
But  not  for  this, —  oh,  not  for  these, 

I  love  thy  fields  to  roam, — 
Thou  hast  a  dearer  spell  for  me, — 

Thou  art  my  native  home ! 

II 
Thy  rivers  roll  their  liquid  wealth, 

Unequalled  to  the  sea, — 
Thy  hills  and  valleys  bloom  with  health, 

And  green  with  verdure  be ! 
But  not  for  thy  proud  ocean  streams, 

Not  for  thine  azure  dome, — 
Sweet,  sunny  South!  —  I  cling  to  thee, — 

Thou  art  my  native  home  1 


Land  of  the  South  115 

III 
I  've  stood  beneath  Italia's  clime, 

Beloved  of  tale  and  song, — 
On  Helvyn's  hills,  proud  and  sublime, 

Where  nature's  wonders  throng;  2c 

By  Tempe's  classic  sunlit  streams, 

Where  gods,  of  old,  did  roam, — . 
But  ne'er  have  found  so  fair  a  land 

As  thou — my  native  home! 

IV 

And  thou  hast  prouder  glories  too  25 

Than  nature  ever  gave, — 
Peace  sheds  o'er  thee  her  genial  dew. 

And  Freedom's  pinions  wave, — 
Fair  science  flings  her  pearls  around. 

Religion  lifts  her  dome, —  30 

These,  these  endear  thee  to  my  heart,— 

My  own,  loved  native  home ! 

V 

And  "heaven's  best  gift  to  man"  is  thine, — 

God  bless  thy  rosy  girls !  — 
Like  sylvan  flowers,  they  sweetly  shine, —  35 

Their  hearts  are  pure  as  pearls ! 
And  grace  and  goodness  circle  them, 

Where'er  their  footsteps  roam, — 
How  can  I,  then,  whilst  loving  them, 

Not  love  my  native  home !  40 

VI 

Land  of  the  South! — imperial  land! — 

Then  here  's  a  health  to  thee, — 
Long  as  thy  mountain  barriers  stand, 

May 'st  thou  be  blest  and  free  I 


ii6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

May  dark  dissension's  banner  ne'er 
Wave  o'er  thy  fertile  loam, — 

But  should  it  come,  there 's  one  will  die 
To  save  his  native  home. 


THE   MOCKING-BIRD 

From  the  vale,  what  music  ringing, 

Fills  the  bosom  of  the  night, 
On  the  sense,  entranced,  flinging 
Spells  of  witchery  and  delight ! 
O'er  magnolia,  lime,  and  cedar. 
From  yon  locust-top  it  swells, 
Like  the  chant  of  serenader. 
Or  the  rhymes  of  silver  bells ! 
Listen !  dearest,  listen  to  it ! 

Sweeter  sounds  were  never  neard ! 
'T  is  the  song  of  that  wild  poet  — 
Mime  and  minstrel — mocking-bird. 

See  him,  swinging  in  his  glory, 

On  yon  topmost  bending  limb ! 
Carolling  his  amorous  story, 

Like  some  wild  crusader's  hymn ! 
Now  it  faints  in  tones  delicious 
As  the  first  low  vow  of  love ! 
Now  it  bursts  in  swells  capricious, 
All  the  moonlit  vale  above ! 
Listen !  dearest,  listen  to  it ! 

Sweeter  sounds  were  never  heard ! 
'T  is  the  song  of  that  wild  poet  — 
Mime  and  minstrel — mocking-bird. 


The  Mocking-bird  iif 

Why  is 't  thus  this  sylvan  Petrarch 

Pours  all  night  his  serenade? 
'T  is  for  some  proud  woodland  Laura, 

His  sad  sonnets  all  are  made ! 
But  he  changes  now  his  measure — ■ 

Gladness  bubbling  from  his  mouth  — 
Jest,  and  gibe,  and  mimic  pleasure — 
Winged  Anacreon  of  the  South ! 
Listen !  dearest,  listen  to  it ! 

Sweeter  sounds  were  never  heard ! 
'T  is  the  song  of  that  wild  poet  — 
Mime  and  minstrel — mocking-bird. 

Bird  of  music,  wit,  and  gladness, 

Troubadour  of  sunny  climes, 
Disen chanter  of  all  sadness, — 

Would  thine  art  were  in  my  rhymes. 
O'er  the  heart  that 's  beating  by  me, 

I  would  weave  a  spell  divine ; 
Is  there  aught  she  could  deny  me. 
Drinking  in  such  strains  as  thine  ? 
Listen!  dearest,  listen  to  it! 

Sweeter  sounds  were  never  heard' 
'T  is  the  song  of  that  wild  poet — 
Mime  and  minstrel — mocking-bird. 


THEODORE  O'HARA 

Theodore  O'Hara  was  born  at  Danville,  Kentucky, 
February  ii,  1820.  He  was  of  Irish  parentage,  his  father 
being  a  political  exile  from  Ireland.  O'Hara  received  a 
fairly  good  classical  education  at  St.  Joseph's  College,  in 
Bardstown,  Kentucky,  and  afterward  read  law  and  was 
admitted  to  the  bar.  In  1846  he  was  made  captain  of  a 
company  being  raised  for  the  war  with  Mexico.  He  was 
promoted  to  the  rank  of  major  for  conspicuous  gallantry 
in  several  battles  of  this  war. 

It  was  in  this  period  that  he  wrote  The  Bivouac  of  the 
Dead,  the  poem  that  made  him  famous.  The  battle  of 
Buena  Vista  was  fought  in  1847,  between  the  American 
forces  under  General  Zachary  Taylor  and  the  Mexicans 
under  General  Santa  Anna.  Two  noted  regiments,  one 
from  Mississippi  under  the  command  of  Colonel  Jefferson 
Davis,  and  the  other  from  Kentucky,  bore  the  brunt  of 
the  attack  of  the  vastly  superior  Mexican  forces.  The 
Americans  won  a  decisive  victory,  but  many  of  the  brave 
Mississippians  and  Kentuckians  fell.  When  the  bodies 
of  the  Kentucky  soldiers  were  sent  to  their  native  state 
for  burial,  O'Hara  wrote  this  magnificent  elegy  in  com- 
memoration of  their  valor,  and  the  poem  at  once  sprang 
into  wide  popularity.  It  has  appeared  in  practically  every 
considerable  collection  of  verse  published  in  this  country 
within  the  past  half  century.  O'Hara's  poetical  genius 
was  limited  to  a  single  note.  He  wrote  one  other  poem  of 
an  elegiac  nature — The  Old  Pioneer — composed  in  exactly 
the  same  meter  and  tone  as  The  Bivouac  of  the  Dead,  but 
he  did  little  or  nothing  else  worthy  to  be  remembered. 

Between  the  period  of  the  Mexican  War  and  the  Civil 
War,  O'Hara  made  some  effort  to  practice  law,  but  he  was 
of  too  restless  a  nature  to  succeed.  He  joined  Lopez 
in  the  latter's  attempt  to  liberate  Cuba,  and  was  also 
interested  in  Walker's  ill-fated  expedition  into  Central 
America.     In  the  meantime  he  was  engaged  with  some 

[118] 


The  Bivouac  of  the  Dead  iig 

success  in  editorial  work  on  several  newspapers,  among 
them  the  Mobile  Register,  the  Yeoman  of  Frankfort, 
Kentucky,  and  the  Louisville  Times. 

At  the  opening  of  the  Civil  War  he  was  commissioned 
colonel  of  the  Twelfth  Alabama  Regiment,  and  he  later 
served  on  the  staffs  of  Generals  Albert  Sidney  Johnston 
and  John  C.  Breckenridge.  After  the  war  O'Hara  engaged 
in  the  cotton  business  in  Columbus,  Georgia,  but  he  lost 
all  he  had  in  a  fire  and  retired  to  a  small  place  across  the 
Chattahoochee  in  Alabama,  where  he  died,  June  6,  1867. 
Some  years  later,  the  Legislature  of  Kentucky  appro- 
priated money  to  remove  his  body  to  Frankfort  and  place 
it  beside  the  remains  of  the  soldiers  whose  valor  he  had 
so  nobly  embalmed  in  his  one  great  poem. 


THE  BIVOUAC  OF  THE   DEAD 

The  muffled  drum's  sad  roll  has  beat 

The  soldier's  last  tattoo ; 
No  more  on  Life's  parade  shall  meet 

That  brave  and  fallen  few. 
On  Fame's  eternal  camping  ground 

Their  silent  tents  are  spread. 
And  Glory  guards,  with  solemn  round, 

The  bivouac  of  the  dead. 

No  rumor  of  the  foe's  advance 

Now  swells  upon  the  wind; 
No  troubled  thought  at  midnight  haunts 

Of  loved  ones  left  behind ; 
No  vision  of  the  morrow's  strife 

The  warrior's  dream  alarms ; 
No  braying  horn  nor  screaming  fife 

At  dawn  shall  call  to  arms. 


120  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Their  shivered  swords  are  red  with  rust ; 

Their  pluraed  heads  are  bowed; 
Their  haughty  banner,  trailed  in  dust, 

Is  now  their  martial  shroud. 
And  plenteous  funeral  tears  have  washed 

The  red  stains  from  each  brow. 
And  the  proud  forms,  by  battle  gashed, 

Are  free  from  anguish  now. 

The  neighing  troop,  the  flashing  blade, 

The  bugle's  stirring  blast, 
The  charge,  the  dreadful  cannonade. 

The  din  and  shout,  are  past; 
Nor  war's  wild  note,  nor  glory's  peal, 

Shall  thrill  with  fierce  delight 
Those  breasts  that  nevermore  may  feel 

The  rapture  of  the  fight. 

Like  the  fierce  northern  hurricane 

That  sweeps  his  great  plateau, 
Flushed  with 'the  triumph  yet  to  gain, 

Came  down  the  serried  foe. 
Who  heard  the  thunder  of  the  fray 

Break  o'er  the  field  beneath, 
Knew  well  the  watchword  of  that  day 

Was  "Victory  or  Death." 

Long  had  the  doubtful  conflict  raged 

O'er  all  that  stricken  plain, 
For  never  fiercer  fight  had  waged 

The  vengeful  blood  of  Spain; 
And  still  the  storm  of  battle  blew, 

Still  swelled  the  gory  tide ; 
Not  long,  our  stout  old  chieftain  knew, 

Such  odds  his  strength  could  bide. 


The  Bivouac  of  the  Dead  121 

'Twas  in  that  hour  his  stern  command 

Called  to  a  martyr's  grave 
The  flower  of  his  beloved  land 

The  nation's  flag  to  save. 
By  rivers  of  their  fathers'  gore 

His  first-bom  laurels  grew, 
And  well  he  deemed  the  sons  would  pour 

Their  lives  for  glory  too. 

Full  many  a  norther's  breath  has  swept, 

O'er  Angostura's  plain, — 
And  long  the  pitying  sky  has  wept 

Above  its  mouldered  slain. 
The  raven's  scream  or  eagle's  flight 

Or  shepherd's  pensive  lay. 
Alone  awakes  each  sullen  height 

That  frowned  o'er  that  dread  fray. 

Sons  of  the  Dark  and  Bloody  ground, 

Ye  must  not  slumber  there. 
Where  stranger  steps  and  tongues  resound 

Along  the  heedless  air. 
Your  own  proud  land's  heroic  soil 

Shall  be  your  fitter  grave : 
She  claims  from  war  his  richest  spoil — 

The  ashes  of  her  brave. 

Thus  'neath  their  parent  turf  they  rest, 

Far  from  the  gory  field 
Borne  to  a  Spartan  mother's  breast 

On  many  a  bloody  shield ; 
The  sunshine  of  their  native  sky 

Smiles  sadly  on  them  here. 
And  kindred  eyes  and  hearts  watch  by 

The  heroes'  sepulchre. 


122  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Rest  on,  embalmed  and  sainted  dead ! 

Dear  as  the  blood  ye  gave, 
No  impious  footstep  here  shall  tread 

The  herbage  of  your  grave; 
Nor  shall  your  story  be  forgot, 

While  Fame  her  record  keeps, 
Or  Honor  points  the  hallowed  spot 

Where  Valor  pr'oudly  sleeps. 

Yon  marble  minstrel's  voiceless  stone 

In  deathless  song  shall  tell. 
When  many  a  vanished  age  hath  flown, 

The  story  how  ye  fell ; 
Nor  wreck,  nor  change,  nor  winter's  blight, 

Nor  Time's  remorseless  doom, 
Shall  dim  one  ray  of  glory's  light 

That  gilds  your  deathless  tomb. 


LAMAR,  PINKNEY,  AND  COOKE 

Mirabeau  Buonaparte  Lamar,  Edward  Coote  Pinkney, 
and  Philip  Pendleton  Cooke  are  three  Southerners  of 
ante-bellum  days  who  may  be  grouped  together  because 
each  is  best  remembered  for  a  single  poem  of  sentiment — 
Lamar  for  The  Daughter  of  Mendoza,  Pinkney  for  A  Healthy 
and  Cooke  for  Florence  Vane. 

Mirabeau  Buonaparte  Lamar,  born  in  Louisville,  Georgia, 
August  1 6,  1798,  won  enduring  fame  as  a  patriot,  states- 
man, and  poet  in  Texas  and  therefore  is  generally  known 
as  a  Texan.  He  received  a  common-school  education  in 
Georgia  and  began  life  as  a  bus:^ness  man;  but  being  a 
great  reader  and  student,  he  soon  turned  his  attention 
to  journalism,  becoming  for  a  time  the  editor  of  the 
Columbus  (Georgia)  Enquirer,  a  paper  which  still  enjoys 
a  wide  circulation  in  west  Georgia  and  east  Alabama.  In 
1835  Lamar  removed  to  Texas  and  took  part  in  the  war 
which  led  to  its  independence,  entering  the  service  as  a 
private.  In  the  battle  of  San  Jacinto,  having  been 
raised  to  the  rank  of  colonel,  he  won  fame  as  leader  of 
the  cavalry  division  which  put  the  Mexicans  to  rout  and 
captured  their  general,  Santa  Anna.  Judge  A.  W.  Terrell 
of  Austin,  Texas,  who  saw  Lamar  about  1835,  says: 
"His  long,  jet-black  hair  was  tinged  with  gray;  he  was  of 
dark  complexion  and  about  five  feet  ten  inches  tall, 
with  broad  shoulders,  deep  chest,  symmetrical  limbs,  and 
under  his  high  forehead  blue  eyes  looked  out  in  calm  repose. 
His  clean-cut,  handsome  features  spoke  of  high  resolve 
and  indomitable  will."  Speaking  of  his  rapid  rise  to  posi- 
tions of  trust.  Judge  Terrell  further  says:  "Within  ten 
days  [after  the  battle  of  San  Jacinto]  Lamar  was  made 
Secretary  of  War;  in  four  weeks  the  cabinet  appointed 
him  Commander-in-chief  of  the  Army ;  in  four  months  he 
was  elected  Vice-president  of  the  Republic;  and  in  three 
years.  President  without  opposition.     No  private  soldier 

[123] 


124  Southern  Literary  Readings 

ever  rose  so  rapidly  from  the  ranks  to  the  supreme  author- 
ity through  so  many  important  offices,  mihtary  and  civil." 
After  the  admission  of  Texas  into  the  Union,  President 
Lamar  was  appointed  successively  to  diplomatic  posts 
in  the  Argentine  Republic  and  in  Nicaragua  and  Costa 
Rica.  In  1857  he  published  his  Verse  Memorials,  a 
volume  of  fairly  good  poetry;  but  he  is  better  known 
through  his  single  poem,  The  Daughter  of  Mendoza, 
written  about  1858,  while  he  was  minister  to  Nicaragua 
and  Costa  Rica.  For  a  fuller  description  of  this  poem 
see  the  notes  on  page  424. 

President  Lamar  died  December  19,  1859,  and  was 
buried  at  Richmond,  Texas,  his  home.  He  was  a  very 
methodical  and  industrious  man,  and  he  amassed  a  large 
collection  of  valuable  manuscripts  of  his  own  private  com- 
positions and  public  documents,  and  of  the  diaries  and 
memoirs  of  other  early  settlers  in  Texas.  These  valuable 
papers  are  now  to  be  found  in  the  State  Library  at  Austin, 
Texas. 

Edward  Coote  Pinkney,  son  of  William  Pinkney,  the 
famous  orator  and  statesman,  was  born  in  London,  Octo- 
ber I,  1802,  while  his  father  was  United  States  minister  to 
the  court  of  St.  James.  The  family  returned  to  America 
in  1804,  but  again  went  to  London  in  1806,  and  Edward 
was  about  nine  years  old  when  he  was  finally  brought  to 
America  and  put  in  school  at  Baltimore.  At  fourteen 
he  entered  the  United  States  navy  as  a  midshipman,  serv- 
ing for  eight  years,  during  which  time  he  traveled  exten- 
sively. Resigning  from  the  navy  in  1822,  he  prepared  for 
the  practice  of  law,  and  two  years  later  was  admitted  to 
the  bar.  Like  many  another  Southern  lawyer,  he  preferred 
literature  to  law,  and  he  presently  became  editor  of 
the  Marylander.  His  health  gave  way,  however,  and 
on  April  3,  1827,  less  than  a  year  after  he  assumed  his 
editorial  position,  he  died.  In  his  short  life  he  wrote 
a  considerable  volume  of  poetry,  all  of  which  is  above 
mediocrity;  but  it  is  on  A  Health  that  his  fame  chiefly 
rests  so  far  as  the  general  public  is  concerned.  English 
critics  have  admired  this  poem;  and  Edgar  Allan  Poe 
reprinted  it  in  his  essay  on  The  Poetic  Principle,  saying: 


Lamar,  Pinkney,  and  Cooke  12^ 

"The  poem  just  cited  is  especially  beautiful;  but  the 
poetic  elevation  which  it  induces  we  must  refer  chiefly  to 
our  sympathy  in  the  poet's  enthusiasm.  We  pardon  his 
hyperboles  for  the  evident  earnestness  with  which  they 
are  uttered. "  For  further  comment  on  this  poem  see  the 
notes,  page  425. 

Philip  Pendleton  Cooke,  an  elder  brother  of  the  novelist 
John  Esten  Cooke,  was  born  in  Martinsburg,  Virginia, 
October  26,  18 16.  He  was  educated  at  Princeton  College 
and  later  took  up  the  study  of  law.  But  he  never  rose  to 
eminence  in  his  profession,  for  it  is  said  that  he  was  too 
fond  of  hunting  and  of  writing  poetry  and  novels  ever 
to  make  a  great  success  at  the  law.  His  novels  were 
fairly  popular  in  their  day,  but  they  are  no  longer  remem- 
bered; his  poetry,  however,  has  met  with  more  lasting 
favor.  The  best  of  all  his  productions,  according  to  popu- 
lar estimation,  is  the  sentimental  ballad  here  reprinted. 
Cooke  was  a  very  modest  man  and  took  his  popularity 
modestly  and  unaffectedly.  He  did  not  have  the  energy 
or  ambition  to  do  great  work,  and  what  he  did  was  thrown 
off  without  excessive  labor  or  hard  study.  In  1847  his 
single  volume  of  poetry,  Froissart  Ballads  and  Other  Poems, 
appeared.  Some  of  the  ballads  are  long  and  somewhat 
tiresome,  but  the  short  poems  of  a  sad  and  pathetic  turn, 
like  Florence  Vane  and  Young  Rosalie  Lee,  are  well  worthy 
of  the  fame  which  has  been  accorded  them.  An  historical 
note  on  the  first-named  of  these  poems  will  be  found  in 
the  notes  of  this  volume,  page  426. 

Cooke  died  January  20,  1850,  from  an  attack  of  pneu- 
monia brought  on  by  exposure  during  a  hunting  trip. 


THE  DAUGHTER  OF  MENDOZA 

O  lend  to  me,  sweet  nightingale, 

Your  music  by  the  fountains  1 
And  lend  to  me  your  cadences, 

O  river  of  the  mountains ! 
That  I  may  sing  my  gay  brunette, 
A  diamond  spark  in  coral  set. 
Gem  for  a  prince's  coronet  — 

The  daughter  of  Mendoza. 

How  brilliant  is  the  morning  star ! 

The  evening  star,  how  tender ! 
The  light  of  both  is  in  her  eye, 

Their  softness  and  their  splendor. 
But  for  the  lash  that  shades  their  light , 
They  were  too  dazzling  for  the  sight ; 
And  when  she  shuts  them,  all  is  night — 

The  daughter  of  Mendoza. 

O !  ever  bright  and  beauteous  one, 

Bewildering  and  beguiling, 
The  lute  is  in  thy  silvery  tone. 

The  rainbow  in  thy  smiling. 
And  thine  is,  too,  o'er  hill  and  dell. 
The  bounding  of  the  young  gazelle. 
The  arrow's  flight  and  ocean's  swell  — 

Sweet  daughter  of  Mendoza! 

What  though,  perchance,  we  meet  no  more  ? 
What  though  too  soon  we  sever  ? 

[126] 


A  Health  127 

Thy  form  will  float  like  emerald  light, 

Before  my  vision  ever. 
For  who  can  see  and  then  forget 
The  glories  of  my  gay  brunette  ?  so 

Thou  art  too  bright  a  star  to  set — 

Sweet  daughter  of  Mendoza ! 


A  HEALTH 

I  fill  this  cup  to  one  made  up  of  loveliness  alone, 
A  woman,  of  her  gentle  sex  the  seeming  paragon; 
To  whom  the  better  elements  and  kindly  stars  have  given 
A  form  so  fair  that,  hke  the  air,  'tis  less  of  earth  than 
heaven. 

Her  every  tone  is  music's  own,  like  those  of  morning  birds,  s 
And  something  more  than  melody  dwells  ever  in  her  words ; 
The  coinage  of  her  heart  are  they,  and  from  her  lips  each 

flows 
As  one  may  see  the  burthened  bee  forth  issue  from  the  rose. 

Affections  are  as  thoughts  to  her,  the  measures  of  her 

hours ; 
Her  feelings  have  the  fragrancy,  the  freshness  of  young  10 

flowers ; 
And  lovely  passions,  changing  oft,  so  fill  her,  she  appears 
The  image  of  themselves  by  turns — the  idol  of  past  years! 

Of  her  bright  face  one  glance  will  trace  a  picture  on  the 

brain. 
And  of  her  voice  in  echoing  hearts  a  sound  must  long 

remain, 


128  Southern  Literary  Readings 

15  But  memory  such  a.s  mine  of  her  so  very  much  endears, 
When  death  is  nigh,  my  latest  sigh  will  not  be  life's  but 

hers. 
I  filled  this  cup  to  one  made  up  of  loveliness  alone, 
A  woman,  of  her  gentle  sex  the  seeming  paragon — 
Her  health !  and  would  on  earth  there  stood  some  more  of 
such  a  frame, 
20  That  life  might  be  all  poetry,  and  weariness  a  name. 


FLORENCE  VANE 

I  loved  thee  long  and  dearly, 

Florence  Vane ; 
My  life's  bright  dream  and  early 

Hath  come  again; 
I  renew  in  my  fond  vision, 

My  heart's  dear  pain  — 
My  hope,  g,nd  thy  derision, 

Florence  Vane. 

The  ruin  lone  and  hoary, 

The  ruin  old. 
Where  thou  did'st  hark  my  story 

At  even  told  — 
That  spot,  the  hues  Elysian 

Of  sky  and  plain, 
I  treasure  in  my  vision, 

Florence  Vane. 

Thou  wast  lovelier  than  the  roses 

In  their  prime ; 
Thy  voice  excelled  the  closes 

Of  sweetest  rhyme. 


Florence  Vane  I2g 

Thy  heart  was  as  a  river 

Without  a  main — 
Would  I  had  loved  thee  never, 

Florence  Vane ! 

But  fairest,  coldest  wonder ! 

Thy  glorious  clay 
Lieth  the  green  sod  under — 

Alas  the  day ! 
And  it  boots  not  to  remember 

Thy  disdain — 
To  quicken  love's  pale  ember, 

Florence  Vane. 

The  lilies  of  the  valley, 

By  young  graves  weep, 
The  pansies  love  to  dally 

Where  maidens  sleep. 
May  their  bloom,  in  beauty  vying, 

Never  wane, 
Where  thine  earthly  part  is  lying, 

Florence  Vane! 


ALBERT  PIKE 

Though  bom  in  Boston,  in  1809,  and  reared  and  educated 
in  New  England,  Albert  Pike  is  known  distinctly  as  a 
Southerner,  for  he  spent  almost  sixty  years  of  his  life 
in  Southern  states  and  during  those  years  devoted  his 
talents  to  the  South.  He  worked  his  way  upward,  direct- 
ing his  own  career  from  early  youth,  when  he  was  left 
an  orphan,  and  earning  the  money  with  which  to  pay  for 
his  education.  In  183 1  he  left  his  native  state  and  started 
for  the  West,  to  seek  his  fortune. 

The  destination  that  he  had  in  mind  was  the  Pacific 
Coast,  but  after  wandering  here  and  there,  he  finally 
stopped  at  Fort  Smith,  Arkansas,  and  determined  to  cast 
his  lot  with  the  people  of  this  new  middle-west  country. 
Here  he  at  first  supported  himself  by  teaching,  devoting 
his  free  time  to  writing.  Having  attracted  attention  by 
his  contributions  to  the  Little  Rock  Advocate,  Pike  was 
presently  invited  to  become  associate  editor  of  that  paper. 
He  gave  up  his  position  as  teacher  at  Fort  Smith,  and 
began  to  learn  the  newspaper  business  from  the  ground 
up,  setting  type,  managing  the  circulation,  and  writing 
editorials.  But  his  was  a  large  and  restless  spirit,  and 
soon  he  turned  to  new  spheres  of  activity.  After  studying 
law  by  himself  for  a  time,  he  was  admitted  without 
examination  to  practice  in  the  Arkansas  courts.  Later 
he  decided  to  change  his  practice  to  the  Louisiana  courts, 
and  this  necessitated  his  reviewing  his  Latin  and  French 
studies  in  order  to  be  able  to  interpret  the  Louisiana  law. 
In  a  short  time  he  removed  to  New  Orleans,  where  he 
practiced  successfully  for  several  years. 

In  his  youth  Pike  had  written  much  poetry  —  some  of  it 
classic  in  quality  as  well  as  in  subject  matter.  In  183 1 
he  published  his  Hymns  to  the  Gods,  and  a  few  years  later 
Christopher  North,  editor  of  Blackwood's  Magazine, 
recognizing  the  worth  of  these  poems  and  praising  them 
highly,    republished    them   in   his   periodical.     In    1834 

[130] 


Albert  Pike  iji 

Prose  Sketches  and  Poems  appeared  and,  shortly  afterward, 
Ariel,  an  imaginative  long  poem,  said  to  have  been  written 
on  the  prairie  while  the  poet's  horse  was  grazing  by  his 
side.  The  famous  Ode  to  the  Mocking-bird  was  written 
in  this  same  year,  but  not  published  until  1836;  it  was 
republished  in  Blackwood's  Magazine  in  1840.  A  final 
volume  of  collected  poems,  Nugce,  was  published  for 
private  circulation  in  1854. 

In  the  meantime  Pike  had  won  fame  and  fortune  as  a 
lawyer,  as  a  man  of  affairs,  as  a  leader  in  fraternal  orders, 
and  as  a  soldier.  When  the  Mexican  War  broke  out 
in  1846  he  organized  and  became  captain  of  a  cavalry 
troop,  serving  brilliantly  under  General  Taylor.  At  the 
opening  of  the  Civil  War  he  joined  the  Confederate  army 
and  was  commissioned  brigadier-general.  Resigning  from 
the  army,  he  later  became  a  judge  of  the  supreme  court 
of  Arkansas. 

After  the  war.  General  Pike  practiced  law  in  Memphis, 
Tennessee,  and  for  a  time  was  editor-in-chief  of  the 
Memphis  Appeal.  In  1868  he  sold  his  interest  in  this 
paper  and  moved  to  Washington,  D.  C,  where,  except  for 
a  brief  residence  in  Alexandria,  Virginia,  he  remained  until 
his  death  in  1891. 

General  Pike  early  became  interested  in  the  work  of  the 
fraternal  orders,  and  was  a  leading  Oddfellow  and  Mason. 
He  wrote  many  books  and  delivered  many  lectures  on 
masonic  subjects,  and  was  recognized  as  the  most  distin- 
guished Mason  in  America.  He  held  the  highest  offices 
within  the  gift  of  the  order,  being  for  thirty-two  years 
Grand  Commander  of  the  Scottish  Rite  Masons. 

As  a  poet  General  Pike  has  not  taken  high  rank,  but  a 
few  of  his  poems,  notably  the  Ode  to  the  Mocking-bird,  Ode 
to  Spring,  Every '"Year,  and  his  fiery  war  song  Dixie,  will 
long  be  cherished  by  lovers  of  poetry.  He  had  the  fire  and 
imagination  requisite  for  the  production  of  great  poetry, 
but  he  was  lacking  in  the  sense  for  perfect  form  and 
compact  structure,  and  so  even  the  best  of  his  poems  are 
marred  by  diffuseness  and  weakness. 

(The  authoritative  sketch  of  General  Pike's  Hfe,  by  his  daughter, 
Mrs.  LilHan  Pike  Roome,  is  to  be  found  in  the  complete  edition  of 
his  Poems,  published  in  1900.) 


EVERY  YEAR 

Life  is  a  count  of  losses, 

Every  year; 
For  the  weak  are  heavier  crosses, 

Every  year; 
Lost  Springs  with  sobs  replying 
Unto  weary  Autumn's  sighing, 
While  those  we  love  are  dying. 

Every  year. 

It  is  growing  darker,  colder, 

Every  year; 
As  the  heart  and  soul  grow  older, 

Every  year; 
I  care  not  now  for  dancing, 
Or  for  eyes  with  passion  glancing. 
Love  is  less  and  less  entrancing. 

Every  year. 

The  days  have  less  of  gladness. 

Every  year; 
The  nights  more  weight  of  sadness, 

Every  year; 
Fair  Springs  no  longer  charm  us, 
The  winds  and  weather  harm  us, 
The  threats  of  Death  alarm  us, 

Every  year. 

There  come  new  cares  and  sorrows, 
Every  year; 

[132] 


Every  Year  ijj 

Dark  days  and  darker  morrows, 

Every  year; 
The  ghosts  of  dead  loves  haunt  us, 
The  ghosts  of  changed  friends  taunt  us, 
And  disappointments  daunt  us, 

Every  year. 

Of  the  loves  and  sorrows  blended, 

Every  year; 
Of  the  charms  of  friendship  ended, 

Every  year ; 
Of  the  ties  that  still  might  bind  me, 
Until  Time  to  Death  resigned  me, 
My  infirmities  remind  me, 

Every  year. 

Ah!  how  sad  to  look  before  us, 

Every  year; 
While  the  cloud  grows  darker  o'er  us. 

Every  year ; 
When  we  see  the  blossoms  faded. 
That  to  bloom  we  might  have  aided, 
And  immortal  garlands  braided. 

Every  year. 

To  the  Past  go  more  dead  faces. 

Every  year ; 
As  the  loved  leave  vacant  places. 

Every  year ; 
Everywhere  the  sad  eyes  meet  us, 
In  the  evening's  dusk  they  greet  us. 
And  to  come  to  them  entreat  us, 

Every  year. 


134  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"You  are  growing  old,"  they  tell  us, 

"Every  year; 
You  are  more  alone,"  they  tell  us, 

"Every  year; 
You  can  win  no  new  affection. 
You  have  only  recollection, 
Deeper  sorrow  and  dejection, 

Every  year." 

The  shores  of  life  are  shifting, 

Every  year; 
And  we  are  seaward  drifting, 

Every  year; 
Old  places,  changing,  fret  us. 
The  living  more  forget  us. 
There  are  fewer  to  regret  us. 

Every  year. 

But  the  truer  life  draws  nigher. 

Every  "y  ear; 
And  its  morning  star  climbs  higher. 

Every  year; 
Earth's  hold  on  us  grows  slighter, 
And  the  heavy  burden  lighter, 
And  the  Dawn  Immortal  brighter. 

Every  year. 


JOHN  REUBEN  THOMPSON 

John  Reuben  Thompson  won  more  distinction  as  an 
editor  and  professional  journaHst  than  as  an  original  or 
creative  writer.  He  was  one  of  the  leading  literary  spirits 
of  his  day;  yet  he  never  was  able  to  set  himself  steadily 
to  any  creative  work  that  was  worthy  of  his  ability,  his 
fine  literary  taste,  and  his  broad  knowledge  and  attain- 
ments. He  was  quick  to  discover  and  encourage  literary 
gifts  possessed  by  others,  and  assisted  many  of  his  con- 
temporaries in  the  South  to  the  attainment  of  that  fame 
which  he  himself  never  won. 

He  was  born  in  Richmond,  Virginia,  October  23,  1823. 
Having  received  his  preliminary  education  in  Connecticut, 
he  entered  the  law  department  of  the  University  of 
Virginia  and  was  graduated  in  1844.  He  began  the 
practice  of  his  profession  in  his  native  city,  but  in  1847 
he  abandoned  law  for  journalism,  having  accepted  the 
editorship  of  the  Sotithern  Literary  Messenger,  a  journal 
of  which  Poe  had  been  editor  for  a  time,  and  which  had 
attained  a  high  position  among  the  periodicals  of  the 
day.  It  is  generally  acknowledged  that  to  Thompson 
is  due  the  credit  of  making  the  Messenger,  during  his 
long  incumbency  as  editor,  not  only  the  chief  literary 
organ  of  the  South  but  one  of  the  two  or  three  most 
influential  magazines  in  America.  In  1854  Thompson 
went  to  Europe,  where  he  met  many  distinguished  literary 
people — Macaulay,  Thackeray,  Dickens,  the  Brownings, 
and  Bulwer  Lytton ;  he  became  particularly  intimate  with 
Macaulay  and  Thackeray,  and  it  is  said  that  for  the 
latter  he  wrote  one  chapter  of  The  Virginians.  After  his 
return  to  America  he  earned  an  enviable  reputation  as  a 
lecturer,  his  most  popular  and  often-repeated  lecture  being 
"The  Life  and  Genius  of  Edgar  Allan  Poe." 

In  i860  Thompson  gave  up  his  position  on  the  Messenger 
to  accept  a  more  lucrative  position  on  the  Southern  Field 
and  Fireside,  published  in  Augusta,  Georgia.     Within  a 

[135] 


1^6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

year  the  Civil  War  broke  out,  and  practically  all  literary  and 
journalistic  activity  was  at  once  suspended.  Thompson 
returned  to  Virginia  to  take  part  in  the  conflict,  but  ill 
health  prevented  him  from  entering  into  active  military 
service.  He  became  Assistant  Secretary  of  the  Common- 
wealth, wrote  vigorous  articles  for  the  press,  composed 
many  stirring  war  poems,  and  in  every  way  possible 
aided  the  Southern  cause.  In  1864  he  went  to  England 
to  assume  the  editorship  of  the  Index,  a  journal  published 
in  London  to  arouse  interest  in  the  Confederacy.  His 
articles  in  this  paper  at  once  attracted  attention.  Here 
also  he  renewed  his  association  with  the  literary  people 
whom  he  had  met  on-  his  previous  visit  and  made  the 
acquaintance  of  many  other  prominent  persons,  among 
them  Carlyle  and  Tennyson,  with  both  of  whom  he 
became  intimate. 

Returning  to  America  in  1866,  he  again  entered  upon 
his  journalistic  work,  contributing  reviews  and  criticism 
to  various  periodicals.  Eventually  he  was  invited  by 
William  Cullen  Bryant  to  join  the  literary  staff  of  the 
New  York  Evening  Post.  He  did  notable  work  for  this 
paper  for  several  years,  but  his  health  finally  became  so 
impaired  that  he  was  induced  to  seek  relief  in  a  drier 
climate.  He  went  to  Colorado  in  1873,  but  soon  realizing 
that  his  days  were  numbered,  he  returned  to  his  work 
after  a  few  weeks.  He  died  in  New  York,  April  30,  1873, 
and  was  buried  in  his  native  city,  Richmond,  Virginia. 

Thompson  wrote  a  number  of  good  war  poems,  among 
them  Ashley,  The  Battle  Rainbow,  The  Burial  of  Latane, 
and  The  Death  of  Stuart — the  last-named  being  aptly 
characterized  by  Margaret  Junkin  Preston  as  a  "ringing 
ballad"  which  ** sends  the  bold  Stuart  riding  down  the 
years."  But  by  far  the  most  popular  of  his  productions  is 
Music  in  Camp. 


MUSIC  IN  CAMP 

Two  armies  covered  hill  and  plain, 
Where  Rappahannock's  waters 

Ran  deeply  crimsoned  with  the  stain 
Of  battle's  recent  slaughters. 

The  summer  clouds  lay  pitched  like  tents 

In  meads  of  heavenly  azure ; 
And  each  dread  gun  of  the  elements 

Slept  in  its  hid  embrasure. 

The  breeze  so  softly  blew,  it  made 

No  forest  leaf  to  quiver, 
And  the  smoke  of  the  random  cannonade 

Rolled  slowly  from  the  river. 

And  now,  where  circling  hills  looked  down 

With  cannon  grimly  planted, 
O'er  listless  camp  and  silent  town 

The  golden  sunset  slanted. 

When  on  the  fervid  air  there  came 
A  strain,  now  rich,  now  tender; 

The  music  seemed  itself  aflame 
With  day's  departing  splendor. 

A  Federal  band,  which,  eve  and  morn. 
Played  measures  brave  and  nimble, 

Had  just  struck  up,  with  flute  and  horn 
And  lively  clash  of  cymbal. 

[137] 


Ij8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Down  flocked  the  soldiers  to  the  banks, 
Till,  margined  by  its  pebbles. 

One  wooded  shore  was  blue  with  "Yanks," 
And  one  was  gray  with  ''Rebels." 

Then  all  was  still,  and  then  the  band, 
With  movement  light  and  tricksy. 

Made  stream  and  forest,  hill  and  strand. 
Reverberate  with  "Dixie." 

The  conscious  stream  with  burnished  glow 
Went  proudly  o'er  its  pebbles, 

But  thrilled  throughout  its  deepest  flow 
With  yelling  of  the  Rebels. 

Again  a  pause,  and  then  again 
The  trumpets  pealed  sonorous. 

And  "Yankee  Doodle"  was  the  strain 
To  which  the  shore  gave  chorus. 

The  laughing  ripple  shoreward  flew. 
To  kiss  the  shining  pebbles ; 

Loud  shrieked  the  swarming  Boys  in  Blue 
Defiance  to  the  Rebels. 

And  yet  once  more  the  bugle  sang 

Above  the  stormy  riot ; 
No  shout  upon  the  evening  rang — 

There  reigned  a  holy  quiet. 

The  sad,  slow  stream  its  noiseless  flood 
Poured  o'er  the  glistening  pebbles; 

All  silent  now  the  Yankees  stood. 
And  silent  stood  the  Rebels. 


Music  in  Camp  139 

No  unresponsive  soul  had  heard 

That  plaintive  note's  appealing, 
So  deeply  "Home,  Sweet  Home"  had  stirred 
The  hidden  founts  of  feeling. 

Or  Blue  or  Gray,  the  soldier  sees 

As  by  the  wand  of  fairy, 
The  cottage  'neath  the  live-oak  trees, 

The  cabin  by  the  prairie. 

Or  cold  or  warm,  his  native  skies 

Bend  in  their  beauty  o'er  him; 
Seen  through  the  tear-mist  in  his  eyes, 

His  loved  ones  stand  before  him. 

As  fades  the  iris  after  rain 

In  April's  tearful  weather, 
The  vision  vanished  as  the  strain 

And  daylight  died  together. 

But  memory,  waked  by  Music's  art. 

Expressed  in  simplest  numbers. 
Subdues  the  sternest  Yankee's  heart, 

Made  light  the  Rebel's  slumbers. 

And  fair  the  form  of  Music  shines. 

That  bright,  celestial  creature. 
Who  still,  'mid  war's  embattled  lines, 

Gave  this  one  touch  of  Nature. 


FRANCIS   ORRAY  TICKNOR 

Dr.  Orray  Ticknor  and  Harriot  Coolidge,  the  parents 
of  Dr.  Francis  Orray  Ticknor  the  poet,  came  from 
Connecticut  and  settled  near  Savannah,  Georgia,  in  1815. 
Shortly  afterward  they  moved  to  Fortville  in  Jones 
County,  in  the  central  part  of  the  state,  and  here  their 
three  children,  of  whom  Francis  Orray  was  the  youngest, 
were  born.  The  date  of  Francis's  birth  was  November  13 , 
1822,  and  five  months  later  the  father  died.  The  widow 
moved  with  her  three  young  children  to  Columbus, 
Georgia,  in  order  to  give  her  family  better  advantages. 
Here  the  children  grew  up  and  attended  school.  At  an 
early  age  Francis  was  sent  to  college  in  Massachusetts, 
and  then  given  a  good  medical  education  in  New  York 
and  Philadelphia  institutions. 

'After  graduation,  young  Dr.  Ticknor  spent  a  year  with 
his  mother's  people  in  Norwich,  Connecticut,  studyingunder 
the  tutelage  of  the  best  physician  of  the  town.  He  then 
returned  to  Georgia,  settling  in  Lumpkin  County  to  prac- 
tice his  profession.  He  married  Rosalie  Nelson,  daughter 
of  Major  Thomas  M.  Nelson  of  Virginia,  then  living  in 
Columbus,  Georgia.  Three  years  after  his  marriage. 
Dr.  Ticknor  moved  with  his  family  to  an  estate  seven 
miles  from  Columbus,  and  here  he  soon  became  a  sort  of 
Good  Samaritan  in  his  community,  riding  far  and  near 
to  relieve  suffering,  and  devoting  himself  unselfishly  to  the 
needs  of  his  people.  He  named  his  home  Torch  Hill,  and 
it  became,  as  it  were,  a  beacon  light  of  hope  and  relief  to 
the  distressed  of  all  classes  in  the  neighborhood. 

He  was  passionately  fond  of  flowers,  and  prided  himself 
on  having  the  finest  rose  garden  to  be  found  in  his  state. 
He  loved  his  orchards  and  his  fields  of  cotton  and  corn 
as  well,  and  he  wrote  for  the  newspapers  a  number  of 
articles  on  horticulture  and  kindred  subjects.  In  his 
leisure,  either  for  his  own  or  his  friends'  pleasure,  he  wrote 
occasional  poems.     These  were  mere  fugitive  pieces,  for 

[140] 


Francis  Or  ray  Ticknor  141 

the  most  part,  for  he  had  no  idea  of  publishing  any  of 
them  and  no  thought  of  producing  anything  of  per- 
manent value.  After  his  verses  had  served  the  purpose 
of  pleasing  his  friends,  he  usually  destroyed  the  manu- 
scripts; but  his  wife,  setting  a  higher  value  on  these 
ephemeral  productions,  saved  such  scraps  of  the  doc- 
tor's writing  as  she  could  collect,  many  of  his  poems  being 
scattered  here  and  there  in  the  neighborhood,  written 
on  prescription  blanks  and  odd  fragments  of  paper  while 
he  was  watching  by  his  patients. 

Much  of  Dr.  Ticknor's  poetry  found  its  way  into  jour- 
nals and  newspapers,  however,  and  won  for  him  a  some- 
what wider  and  more  appreciative  audience.  During 
the  Civil  War,  when  the  good  physician  was  devoting 
himself  to  the  service  of  his  sick  and  wounded  fellow 
countrymen,  his  poetic  faculty  seems  to  have  been  quick- 
ened into  a  finer  productivity,  gaining  notably  in  power; 
and  some  of  the  poems  written  in  those  years  are  now 
among  the  most  highly  prized  lyrics  in  our  war  literature. 
The  Virginians  of  the  Valley  is  one  of  his  best-known  songs, 
but  Little  Gijffen  is  beyond  question  his  strongest  and  most 
original  poem.  Many  others  of  his  songs  deserve  and  have 
latterly  received  high  praise,  but  his  poems  as  a  whole 
have  not  been  widely  read.  In  fact,  until  recently 
they  have  not  been  accessible  to  the  public  in  any  large 
way.  Five  years  after  Dr.  Ticknor's  death,  in  1874,  an 
incomplete  volume  of  his  poems  was  pubhshed,  edited  by 
Miss  Kate  Roland  and  having  an  appreciative  introduction 
by  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne,  a  warm  friend  and  admirer  of 
the  poet-physician.  In  191 1  an  enlarged  edition  with 
additional  biographical  material  from  authoritative  sources 
was  published,  edited  by  Miss  Michelle  CutlifE  Ticknor,  the 
poet's  grand-daughter. 


LITTLE  GIFFEN 

Out  of  the  focal  and  foremost  fire, 
Out  of  the  hospital  walls  as  dire, 
Smitten  of  grape-shot  and  gangrene, . 
(Eighteenth  battle,  and  he  sixteen !) 
Specter!  such  as  you  seldom  see, 
Little  Giffen,  of  Tennessee ! 

"Take  him  and  welcome!"  the  surgeons  said: 

Little  the  doctor  can  help  the  dead ! 

So  we  took  him,  and  brought  him  where 

The  balm  was  sweet  in  the  summer  air; 

And  we  laid  him  down  on  a  wholesome  bed— 

Utter  Lazarus,  heel  to  head ! 

And  we  watched  the  war  with  abated  breath. 
Skeleton  boy  against  skeleton  death. 
Months  of  torture,  how  many  such? 
Weary  weeks  of  the  stick  and  crutch ; 
And  still  a  glint  of  the  steel-blue  eye 
Told  of  a  spirit  that  wouldn't  die. 

And  didn't.     Nay,  more!  in  death's  despite 
The  crippled  skeleton  learned  to  write. 
"Dear  Mother,"  at  first,  of  course;  and  then, 
"Dear  Captain,"  inquiring  about  the  men. 
Captain's  answer:  "Of  eighty  and  five, 
Giffen  and  I  are  left  alive." 

Word  of  gloom  from  the  war,  one  day; 
Johnston  pressed  at  the  front,  they  say. 

[142] 


Little  Giffen  14J 

Little  Giffen  was  up  and  away; 

A  tear — his  first — as  he  bade  good-by, 

Dimmed  the  gHnt  of  his  steel-blue  eye. 

* '  I  '11  write,  if  spared ! ' '    There  was  news  of  the  fight ;  30 

But  none  of  Giffen.     He  did  not  write. 

I  sometimes  fancy  that  were  I  king 

Of  the  princely  knights  of  the  Golden  Ring, 

With  the  song  of  the  minstrel  in  mine  ear, 

And  the  tender  legend  that  trembles  here.  35 

I  'd  give  the  best  on  his  bended  knee, 

The  whitest  soul  of  my  chivalry. 

For  "Little  Giffen,"  of  Tennessee. 


HENRY  TIMROD 

Time  has  dealt  both  harshly  and  kindly  with  Henry 
Timrod.  During  his  life  this  young  South  Carolinian 
suffered  perhaps  more  than  any  one  of  his  long-suffering 
fellow  poets  of  the  Civil  War  and  Reconstruction  periods, 
but  gradually  his  fame  has  expanded  until  now  he  is  uni- 
versally recognized  as  one  of  the  four  or  five  major  poets 
of  the  South,  being  placed  second  only  to  Lanier  and  Poe. 
His  work  at  times  undoubtedly  reaches  a  higher  level  than 
that  of  his  lifelong  friend,  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne,  and  the 
actual  product  of  his  thirty-seven  years  of  ill-starred, 
poverty-stricken,  diseased-haunted  life,  though  but  an 
indication  of  what  he  might  have  accomplished  under 
more  favorable  circumstances,  yet  gives  him  the  right  to 
an  honorable  place  among  the  song-crowned  sons  of 
America. 

Like  Paul  Hayne,  Henry  Timrod  came  of  an  excellent 
family,  who  in  Revolutionary  times  had  settled  in  the 
aristocratic  and  culttired  city  of  Charleston,  South  Caro- 
lina. There  was  less  than  a  month's  difference  between 
the  natal  days  of  the  two  poets,  Timrod  being  bom  on 
December  8,  1829,  and  Hayne  on  January  i,  1830.  The 
boys  became  acquainted  while  attending  the  same  private 
school  in  Charleston,  where  they  sat  together  for  a  time 
and  became  intimate  cronies. 

Although  Timrod  is  described  as  a  shy  and  timid  youth, 
slow  of  speech  while  quick  to  learn,  he  was  a  thoroughly 
likable  lad,  and  was  a  general  favorite  among  his  play- 
mates. He  took  an  active  part  in  all  outdoor  sports 
and  games,  even  in  fighting,  and  he  was  fond  of  getting 
away  from  the  city  to  take  long  rambles  in  the  woods. 

When  he  was  about  seventeen  years  old  Timrod  entered 
the  University  of  Georgia  with  bright  prospects.  He  made 
a  fairly  good  record  as  a  student,  especially  in  the  liter- 
ary and  classic  branches,  but  he  spent  much  of  his  time 
in  verse-making.     His  education  was  cut  short  through 

U44] 


}(^'!-i^l..Si 


W 


From  a  portrait  in  the  possession  of  the  Charleston 
Library  Society.     Courtesy  of  the  trustees 

HENRY  TIMROD 


Henry  Timrod  14^ 

lack  of  financial  means,  however,  and  he  left  college 
without  a  degree.  This  was  the  first  great  disappoint- 
ment of  his  life. 

Returning  to  Charleston,  he  entered  the  ofiice  of  the 
Honorable  J.  L.  Petigru,  one  of  the  best-known  lawyers 
of  the  city,  to  prepare  for  a  professional  career;  but  he 
soon  found  law  work  distasteful  and  his  preceptor  uncon- 
genial, and  so  he  went  out  to  earn  his  livelihood  by  tutor- 
ing in  private  families.  Aspiring  to  a  professorship  in  the 
classics,  Timrod  read  diligently  to  prepare  himself  for  this 
work.  But  he  was  born  under  an  unlucky  star,  it  seems, 
for  he  was  always  approaching  very  near  to,  but  never 
quite  realizing,  his  most  cherished  desires.  He  found  no 
suitable  opening  for  a  successful  teaching  career,  so  for 
about  ten  years  he  toiled  on  at  private  tutoring  here  and 
there,  wherever  he  found  work. 

All  this  time  poetry  was  his  constant  companion  and 
consolation.  He  contributed  both  prose  and  verse  to 
Southern  literary  journals,  such  as  Russell's  Magazine 
and  the  Southern  Literary  Messenger.  He  published  a 
small  volume  of  poems  in  i860,  and  as  Hayne  said,  *'a 
better  first  volume  of  the  kind  has  seldom  appeared  any- 
where."  In  this  volume  were  The  Lily  Confidante ,  A 
Vision  of  Poesy,  and  other  worthy  efforts.  The  book  was 
well  received  by  the  reviewers,  but  there  could  not  have 
been  in  the  whole  history  of  our  country,  perhaps,  a  more 
unpropitious  moment  for  the  publication  of  a  volume  of 
purely  nature  and  personal  lyrics.  The  people  were  in  no 
mood  to  read  love  songs  or  disquisitions  on  the  nature  of 
poesy.  Again  we  find  disappointment  and  failure  Timrod's 
portion,  for  there  were  few  buyers  of  his  modest  volume, 
and  consequently  no  material  returns  to  the  impecunious 
young  author. 

But  hope  smiled  anew,  and  Timrod  threw  himself 
with  intense  zeal  into  the  approaching  struggle  between 
the  sections.  He  was  too  frail  physically  to  bear  arrq^  or 
undergo  the  hardships  of  military  life,  but  he  went  to  the 
front  as  a  war  correspondent  for  the  Charleston  Mercury, 
and  was  continually  helping  the  Southern  cause  by  com- 
posing the  fiery  war  songs  which  gave  him  such  wide  fame 
in  those  years  of  struggle  and  which  won  for  him  a  place 

10 


146  Southern  Literary  Readings 

in  the  foremost  rank  of  our  war  poets.  His  Ethnogenesis, 
written  in  February,  1861,  on  the  birth  of  the  Southern 
Confederacy  at  Montgomery,  Alabama,  is  a  magnificent 
ode,  and  except  for  the  fact  that  it  celebrates  a  ''lost 
cause ' '  there  is  no  doubt  that  long  ago  it  would  have  been 
crowned  as  one  of  the  supreme  productions  of  our  nation 
in  this  kind  of  poetry.  By  far  the  best-known  and  m.ost 
highly  praised  of  Timrod's  longer  poems.  The  Cotton  Boll, 
was  written  about  the  same  time.  Though  more  strictly 
a  nature  poem,  it  concludes  with  a  strong  patriotic  appeal, 
and  is  sometimes  classed  as  a  war  poem.  His  Carolina 
and  A  Cry  to  Arms  are  fiery  war  songs.  These  poems,  and 
many  others  like  them,  were  widely  circulated  and  enthu- 
siastically received  all  over  the  South.  So  prominent  had 
Timrod  become  as  a  representative  Southern  poet  that  in 
1862  his  friends  proposed  to  bring  out  an  illustrated  edition 
of  his  poems  in  England,  the  artist  Vizetelli,  then  war  cor- 
respondent of  the  London  Illustrated  News,  promising  to 
supply  the  engravings.  But  in  the  stress  of  the  war  period 
the  project  fell  through,  and  again,  on  the  very  verge  of 
apparent  success,  our  poet  met  his  old  foes,  misfortune  and 
disappointment . 

Early  in  1864  Timrod  accepted  an  editorial  position 
on  the  South  Carolinidn  of  Columbia,  South  Carolina,  and 
with  this  prospect  for  permanent  employment  he  married 
Miss  Kate  Goodwin,  an  English  girl.  This  lady  was 
the  ideal  of  many  of  his  poetic  fancies  and  the  heroine 
of  some  of  his  best  love  poems.  The  long  poem  Katie, 
which  celebrates  the  beauty  and  charm  of  Miss  Goodwin, 
is  full  of  exquisite  imagery  and  fine  descriptive  passages. 

Little  more  than  a  year  of  happiness  was  vouchsafed 
him.  On  December  24,  1864,  was  bom  to  him  a  son,  the 
"Little  Willie"  whom  he  mourns  in  a  pathetic  lyric  in  less 
than  a  year  after  the  child's  birth.  After  the  death  of 
his  son  the  poet  lost  much  of  his  hopefulness  and  buoyancy. 
General  Sherman's  army  had  destroyed  the  beautiful  city 
of  Columbia  almost  exactly  one  year  after  the  date  of 
Timrod's  marriage,  and  there  was  nothing  left  to  him  but 
poverty  and  distress  from  that  time  on  to  the  .end 
of  his  life.  He  tried  to  bear  up  bravely,  and  in  a  letter 
to  his  friend  Hayne  in  1866  he  humorously  refers  to  the 


Henry  Timrod  14^ 

gradual  sale  of  what  little  furniture  and  silverware  that 
had  been  saved  from  the  wreck,  to  meet  the  bare  neces- 
sities of  existence.  ''We  have — let  me  see — yes,  we  have 
eaten  two  silver  pitchers,  one  or  two  dozen  silver  forks, 
several  sofas,  innumerable  chairs,  and  a  huge  bedstead." 
He  continued  his  work  on  the  Carolinian, — the  paper  had 
now  been  moved  to  Charleston, — but  in  a  letter  to  Hayne 
he  stated  that  for  four  months  he  had  not  received  a  dollar 
,  of  his  promised  salary. 

One  brief  respite  came  before  the  end,  when  in  the 
summer  of  1867  Timrod,  by  the  advice  of  his  physicians 
and  at  the  urgent  solicitation  of  his  old  friend,  went  for 
two  visits  of  about  one  month  each  to  Copse  Hill,  the  home 
of  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne,  who  was  now  living  in  the  pine 
barrens  of  Georgia  about  sixteen  miles  from  Augusta. 
Hayne  writes  sympathetically  of  their  comradeship  dur- 
ing these  visits,  both  in  his  introductory  memoir  in  the 
1873  edition  of  Timrod's  poems  and  in  his  beautiful 
reminiscences  of  the  poet  in  Under  the  Pine  and  By  the  Grave 
of  Henry  Timrod.  From  this  visit,  though  greatly  revived 
in  spirits  and  apparently  in  health  also,  Timrod  returned 
home  to  die.  On  September  thirteenth  he  wrote  to  Hayne 
that  he  had  suffered  a  severe  hemorrhage  from  the  lungs, 
and  this  was  speedily  followed  by  others,  still  more  severe. 
He  died  October  7,  1867. 

Since  the  publication,  by  the  Timrod  Memorial  Society, 
of  his  poems  (in  1889),  Timrod's  grave  in  Trinity 
Church  Cemetery,  Columbia,  which  for  many  years 
remained  unmarked,  and  for  many  more  was  marked 
only  by  a  small  shaft  erected  by  a  few  of  his  admirers, 
has  been  crowned  with  a  huge  bowlder  of  gray  granite. 
Historians  of  American  literature  have  been  drawn  to 
give  more  prominence  to  Timrod's  work,  and  what  is 
quite  as  gratifying,  his  poetry  is  being  read  and  studied 
more  and  more  every  year. 

(For  appreciations  of  Timrod  see  the  Introduction  to  the 
Memorial  Volume  of  his  Poems  and  the  essay  by  Charles  Hunter 
Ross  in  the  Quarterly  Review  of  the  Methodist  Episcopal  Church 
South,  January,  1893.) 


THE   LILY  CONFIDANTE 

Lily!  lady  of  the  garden! 

Let  me  press  my  lip  to  thine ! 
Love  must  tell  its  story,  Lily ! 

Listen  thou  to  mine. 

Two  I  choose  to  know  the  secret  — • 
Thee,  and  yonder  wordless  flute; 

Dragons  watch  me,  tender  Lily, 
And  thou  must  be  mute. 

There 's  a  maiden,  and  her  name  is  . . 

Hist !  was  that  a  rose-leaf  fell  ? 
See,  the  rose  is  listening,  Lily, 

And  the  rose  may  tell. 

Lily-browed  and  lily-hearted, 

She  is  very  dear  to  me ; 
Lovely?  yes,  if  being  lovely 

Is — resembling  thee. 

Six  to  half  a  score  of  summers 

Make  the  sweetest  of  the  "teens" — 

Not  too  young  to  guess,  dear  Lily, 
What  a  lover  means. 

Laughing  girl,  and  thoughtful  woman, 

I  am  puzzled  how  to  woo — 
Shall  I  praise  or  pique  her,  Lily  ? 
-  Tell  me  what  to  do. 

[148] 


The  Lily  Confidante  i4g 

"Silly  lover,  if  thy  Lily  25 

Like  her  sister  lilies  be, 
Thou  must  woo,  if  thou  wouldst  wear  her, 

With  a  simple  plea. 

"Love  's  the  lover's  only  magic, 

Truth  the  very  subtlest  art ;  30 

Love  that  feigns,  and  lips  that  flatter, 

Win  no  modest  heart. 

* '  Like  the  dewdrop  in  my  bosom. 

Be  thy  guileless  language,  youth; 
Falsehood  buyeth  falsehood  only,  ss 

Truth  must  purchase  truth. 

"As  thou  talkest  at  the  fireside, 

With  the  little  children  by  — 
As  thou  prayest  in  the  darkness, 

When  thy  God  is  nigh —  40 

"With  a  speech  as  chaste  and  gentle. 

And  such  meanings  as  become 
Ear  of  child,  or  ear  of  angel, 

Speak,  or  be  thou  dumb. 

"Woo  her  thus,  and  she  shall  give  thee  45 

Of  her  heart  the  sinless  whole, 
All  the  girl  within  her  bosom. 

And  her  woman's  soul." 


1^0  Southern  Literary  Readings 

STORM  AND  CALM 

Sweet  are  these  kisses  of  the  South, 
As  dropped  from  woman's  rosiest  mouth, 
And  tenderer  are  those  azure  skies 
Than  this  world's  tenderest  pair  of  eyes ! 

But  ah !  beneath  such  influence 
Thought  is  too  often  lost  in  Sense; 
And  Action,  faltering  as  we  thrill, 
Sinks  in  the  unnerved  arms  of  Will. 

Awake,  thou  stormy  North,  and  blast 
The  subtle  spells  around  us  cast ; 
Beat  from  our  limbs  these  flowery  chains 
With  the  sharp  scourges  of  thy  rains ! 

Bring  with  thee  from  thy  Polar  cave* 
All  the  wild  songs  of  wind  and  wave. 
Of  toppling  berg  and  grinding  floe, 
And  the  dread  avalanche  of  snow ! 

Wrap  us  in  Arctic  night  and  clouds ! 
Yell  like  a  fiend  amid  the  shrouds 
Of  some  slow-sinking  vessel,  when 
He  hears  the  shrieks  of  drowning  men ! 

Blend  in  thy  mighty  voice  whate'er 
Of  danger,  terror,  and  despair 
Thou  hast  encountered  in  thy  sweep 
Across  the  land  and  o'er  the  deep. 

i  Pour  in  our  ears  all  notes  of  woe, 

That,  as  these  very  moments  flow. 
Rise  like  a  harsh  discordant  psalm, 
While  we  lie  here  in  tropic  calm. 


Carolina  151 

Sting  our  weak  hearts  with  bitter  shame, 
Bear  us  along  with  thee  Hke  flame ; 
And  prove  that  even  to  destroy- 
More  God-Hke  may  be  than  to  toy 
And  rust  or  rot  in  idle  joy ! 


CAROLINA 
I 

The  despot  treads  thy  sacred  sands, 
Thy  pines  give  shelter  to  his  bands. 
Thy  sons  stand  by  with  idle  hands, 

Carolina ! 
He  breathes  at  ease  thy  airs  of  balm. 
He  scorns  the  lances  of  thy  palm ; 
Oh !  who  shall  break  thy  craven  calm, 

Carolina ! 
Thy  ancient  fame  is  growing  dim, 
A  spot  is  on  thy  garment's  rim ; 
Give  to  the  winds  thy  battle  h5min, 

Carolina ! 

II 
Call  on  thy  children  of  the  hill, 
Wake  swamp  and  river,  coast  and  rill. 
Rouse  all  thy  strength  and  all  thy  skill, 

Carolina ! 
Cite  wealth  and  science,  trade  and  art. 
Touch  with  thy  fire  the  cautious  mart, 
And  pour  thee  through  the  people's  heart, 

Carolina ! 
Till  even  the  coward  spurns  his  fears, 
And  all  thy  fields  and  fens  and  meres 
Shall  bristle  like  thy  palm  with  spears, 

Carolina! 


1^2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

III 
Hold  up  the  glories  of  thy  dead; 
Say  how  thy  elder  children  bled, 
And  point  to  Eutaw's  battle-bed, 

Carolina ! 
Tell  how  the  patriot's  soul  was  tried, 
And  what  his  dauntless  breast  defied; 
How  Rutledge  ruled  and  Laurens  died, 

Carolina ! 
Cry!  till  thy  summons,  heard  at  last, 
Shall  fall  like  Marion's  bugle-blast 
Re-echoed  from  the  haunted  Past, 
Carolina ! 

IV 

I  hear  a  murmur  as  of  waves 

That  grope  their  way  through  sunless  caves. 

Like  bodies  struggling  in  their  graves, 

Carolina ! 
And  now  it  deepens ;  slow  and  grand 
It  swells,  as,  rolling  to  the  land, 
An  ocean  broke  upon  thy  strand, 

Carolina! 
Shout !  let  it  reach  the  startled  Huns ! 
And  roar  with  all  thy  festal  guns ! 
It  is  the  answer  of  thy  sons, 

Carolina ! 

v 

They  will  not  wait  to  hear  thee  call ; 
I  From  Sachem's  Head  to  Sumter's  wall 

Resounds  the  voice  of  hut  and  hall, 

Carolina ! 
No !  thou  hast  not  a  stain,  they  say, 
Or  none  save  what  the  battle-day 


Carolina  i^j 

Shall  wash  in  seas  of  blood  away, 

Carolina ! 
Thy  skirts  indeed  the  foe  may  part, 
Thy  robe  be  pierced  with  sword  and  dart, 
They  shall  not  touch  thy  noble  heart, 

Carolina ! 

VI 

Ere  thou  shalt  own  the  tyrant's  thrall 
Ten  times  ten  thousand  men  must  fall ; 
Thy  corpse  may  hearken  to  his  call, 

Carolina ! 
When,  by  thy  bier,  in  mournful  throngs 
The  women  chant  thy  mortal  wrongs, 
'Twill  be  their  own  funereal  songs, 

Carolina ! 
From  thy  dead  breast  by  ruffians  trod 
No  helpless  child  shall  look  to  God ; 
All  shall  be  safe  beneath  thy  sod, 
Carolina ! 

VII 

Girt  with  such  wills  to  do  and  bear. 
Assured  in  right,  and  mailed  in  prayer, 
Thou  wilt  not  bow  thee  to  despair, 

Carolina ! 
Throw  thy  bold  banner  to  the  breeze ! 
Front  with  thy  ranks  the  threatening  seas 
Like  thine  own  proud  armorial  trees, 

Carolina ! 
Fling  down  thy  gauntlet  to  the  Huns, 
And  roar  the  challenge  from  thy  guns ; 
Then  leave  the  future  to  thy  sons, 

Carolina ! 


1^4  Southern  Literary  Readings 

ODE 

SUNG  ON  THE  OCCASION  OF  DECORATING  THE  GRAVES 
OF  THE  CONFEDERATE  DEAD  AT  MAGNOLIA  CEMETERY, 
CHARLESTON,  S.  C,   1867. 

I 

Sleep  sweetly  in  your  humble  graves, 

Sleep,  martyrs  of  a  fallen  cause; 
Though  yet  no  marble  column  craves 

The  pilgrim  here  to  pause. 

II 

In  seeds  of  laurel  in  the  earth 
The  blossom  of  your  fame  is  blown, 

And  somewhere,  waiting  for  its  birth, 
The  shaft  is  in  the  stone ! 

Ill 
Meanwhile,  behalf  the  tardy  years 

Which  keep'in  trust  your  storied  tombs, 
Behold !  your  sisters  bring  their  tears. 

And  these  memorial  blooms. 

IV 

Small  tributes !  but  your  shades  will  smile 
More  proudly  on  these  wreaths  to-day. 

Than  when  some  cannon-moulded  pile 
Shall  overlook  this  bay. 

V 

Stoop,  angels,  hither  from  the  skies  \ 
There  is  no  holier  spot  of  ground 
Than  where  defeated  valor  lies, 
»  By  mourning  beauty  crowned ! 


JOHN  ESTEN  COOKE 

John  Esten  Cooke  of  Virginia  was  descended  from  dis- 
tinguished ancestry  on  both  sides  of  the  house.  His 
grandfather,  Stephen  Cooke,  a  surgeon  in  the  Continental 
Army  during  the  Revolution,  was  captured  by  the  British 
and  sent  as  a  prisoner  to  the  Bermuda  Islands.  Here  he 
met  and  married  Catherine  Esten  (pronounced  Easten), 
daughter  of  the  governor-general  of  the  island,  a  dis- 
tinguished member  of  an  old  English  family.  In  1791 
the  Cookes  left  the  islands  and  settled  in  Alexandria, 
Virginia.  John  Rogers  Cooke,  the  father  of  John  Esten, 
was  educated  at  Princeton,  and  became  a  noted  lawyer 
in  Virginia  at  a  time  when  the  state  was  full  of  great  legal 
lights.  He  married  Maria  Pendleton,  of  the  well-known 
Pendleton  family  of  Virginia,  and  lived  at  various  places 
in  the  state.  Near  Winchester,  in  Frederick  County, 
John  Esten  was  bom,  November  3,  1830.  Later  the 
family  moved  to  Richmond,  where  Esten  attended 
school.  Instead  of  going  to  college  as  did  his  elder 
brother,  Philip  Pendleton  Cooke,  he  decided  to  study  law  at 
home  in  order  to  become  an  immediate  help  to  his  father. 

Although  he  was  admitted  to  the  bar  and  began  the 
practice  of  his  profession  in  a  small  way,  he  never  attained 
eminence  as  a  lawyer,  for  he  devoted  most  of  his  time 
to  literary  pursuits,  constantly  reading  all  sorts  of  books, 
and  writing  all  kinds  of  material  for  the  newspapers  and 
magazines  of  the  time.  On  two  separate  occasions  he 
became  for  brief  periods  acting  editor  of  the  Southern 
Literary  Messenger,  during  the  absence  of  the  regular 
editor,  John  Reuben  Thompson.  In  1854  Cooke  published 
The  Virginia  Comedians,  his  novel  dealing  with  pre-revolu- 
tionary  times.  He  had  already  written  several  novels  and 
many  biographical  sketches  and  reviews,  but  this  was  as 
yet  his  most  ambitious  production ;  by  competent  critics  it 
has  been  classed  among  the  best  works  of  fiction  produced 
in  the  South  before  the  Civil  War. 

[155] 


1^6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Cooke  enlisted  as  a  private  at  the  beginning  of  the 
war,  was  gradually  promoted,  and  finally  was  raised  to 
the  rank  of  major,  serving  as  a  staff  officer  under  General 
J.  E.  B.  Stuart.  After  Stuart's  death  Cooke  was  trans- 
ferred to  the  staff  of  General  Pendleton.  During  the  war 
he  saw  much  hard  military  service  and  won  for  himself  an 
enviable  reputation  for  courage  and  discretion  as  a  soldier 
and  an  officer.  Moreover,  he  did  good  service  for  the 
cause  by  constantly  writing.  He  kept  full  notes  of  all 
that  he  saw  and  experienced,  writing  up  his  impressions 
of  men  and  events  at  night  by  the  camp  fires,  or  in  the 
saddle  by  day,  and  sometimes  in  the  very  roar  of  the 
battle  field  itself.  Later,  in  his  romances  dealing  with 
the  Civil  War  period,  he  skillfully  turned  these  notes  to 
account.  For  instance,  his  most  famous  book,  Surry  of 
Eagle' s-N est,  is  supposed  to  be  the  memoirs  of  an  officer 
on  General  J.  E.  B.  Stuart's  staff,  and  much  of  Cooke's 
own  experience  is  woven  into  the  romance. 

Of  particular  interest  in  connection  with  the  selection 
given  in  these  pages  is  Cooke's  Life  of  Stonewall  Jackson, 
written  during  the  most  trying  period  of  the  war  and 
published  in  1863,  less  than  a  year  after  Jackson's  death. 
Much  of  the  material  in  this  excellent  biography  has  been 
used  by  later  writers  on  Jackson,  and  Cooke's  work  is  still 
quoted  as  an  authority.  The  account  of  Jackson's  death 
in  Surry  of  EagWs-Nest  is  in  the  main  the  same  as  that 
found  in  the  Life  of  Jackson. 

Cooke  fought  on  with  the  Army  of  Virginia  until  the 
final  surrender  at  Appomattox,  and  then,  returning  to  his 
brother  Philip's  home  in  the  Shenandoah  Valley,  he  began 
to  pour  forth,  in  an  ever-increasing  stream,  volume  after 
volume  of  war  story,  revolutionary  romance,  biography, 
and  history.  In  1866  appeared  Surry  of  Eagle' s-Nest, 
which  at  once  became  popular  and  has  steadily  held  its 
place  in  the  public  esteem,  being  still  one  of  the  most 
widely  read  romances  dealing  with  the  Civil  War.  After 
1867,  in  which  year  Cooke  married  Miss  Mary  Page  and 
settled  in  Clark  County,  he  lived  quietly  and  peacefully 
at  his  home  "The  Briars,"  supporting  his  family  almost 
entirely  by  his  pen.  Some  of  his  most  famous  books 
written  after  the  war  are  Fairfax,  Mohun^  Hilt  to  Hilt,, 


John  Esten  Cooke  157 

Wearing  the  Gray,  Lee  and  his  Lieutenants,  Virginia:  a 
History  of  Her  People,  My  Lady  Pokahontas.  In  all,  he 
produced  more  than  thirty  volumes,  besides  a  vast  amount 
of  ephemeral  matter  which  has  never  been  collected  in 
book  form. 

There  is  no  more  admirable  representative  of  the  fine  old 
Virginia  type  of  character  than  John  Esten  Cooke.  His 
life  was  in  every  way  above  reproach,  and  his  devotion 
to  the  ideals  and  history  of  the  Old  Dominion  has  rarely, 
if  ever,  been  surpassed.  Whether  or  not  he  aspired  to 
do  for  Virginia  what  Simms  had  done  for  South  Carolina 
or  Hayne  had  done  for  Georgia,  he  remains  the  most 
truly  representative  Virginia  writer  of  the  Civil  War  and 
Reconstruction  periods. 

The  faults  of  his  writings  are  a  straining  after  romantic 
effects,  an  over-sentimentality,  a  lack  of  restraint  and 
finish,  and  a  failure  to  coordinate  and  properly  proportion 
the  larger  masses  of  his  material.  He  recognized  his  own 
faults,  and  in  his  later  years  said  of  one  of  his  earlier  produc- 
tions: ''Crude  art  must  be  everywhere  seen  in  it — the 
hurry  of  youth,  the  hot  pulse,  the  absence  of  repose,  more 
than  all,  of  that  nice  finish  which  is  the  cameo-work  of 
literature,  and  is  so  agreeable.  The  writer  can  only  urge 
in  reply  to  this  criticism,  which  is  perfectly  just,  that, 
unable  to  attain  either  this  nice  finish  or  repose,  he  was 
forced  to  depend  upon  drama.  But  after  all  that  is  some- 
thing. It  is  only  another  word  for  the  play  of  the  pas- 
sions of  the  human  heart ;  and  to  paint  these  was  the  end 
of  the  art  of  Shakspere." 

(The  most  recent  and  most  satisfactory  essay  on  John  Esten 
Cooke  is  that  by  J.  L.  Armstrong  in  Library  of  Southern  Literature, 
Vol.  VIII.) 


THE  DEATH  OF  STONEWALL  JACKSON 

Here  my  memoirs  might  terminate — for  the  present, 
if  not  forever.  All  the  personages  disappear,  lost  in  the 
bloody  gulf,  or  have  reached  that  crisis  in  their  lives  when 
we  can  leave  them. 

5  But  one  scene  remains  to  wind  up  the  tragedy — another 
figure  is  about  to  fall,  as  the  mighty  pine  falls  in  the  depths 
of  the  forest,  making  the  woods  resound  as  it  crashes  to 
the  earth.  The  hours  drew  onward  now  when  the  form  of 
him  to  whom  all  the  South  looked  in  her  day  of  peril  was  to 

10  disappear — when  the  eagle  eye  was  to  flash  no  more,  the 
voice  to  be  hushed — when  the  hero  of  a  hundred  battles 
was  to  leave  the  great  arena  of  his  fame,  and  pass  away 
amid  the  wailing  of  a  nation. 

Come  with  me,  reader,  and  we  will  look  upon  this 

15  ''last  scene  of  all."     Then  the  curtain  falls. 

At  daylight  .  .  .  Jackson  put  his  column  in  motion  .  .  . 
At  the  Catherine  Furnace  he  was  observed  and  attacked 
by  the  advance  force  of  the  enemy,  but,  pushing  on 
without  stopping — his  flank  covered  by  the  cavalry — 

20  he  reached  the  Brock  road,  and,  finally,  the  Orange 
plank-road. 

Here  I  joined  him  at  the  moment  when  General  Fitz 
Lee,  who  commanded  the  cavalry  under  Stuart,  informed 
him  that,  by  ascending  a  neighboring  eminence,  he  could 

25  obtain  a  good  view  of  the  enemy's  works.  Jackson  imme- 
diately rode  to  the  point  thus  indicated,  in  company  with 
Generals  Fitz  Lee  and  Stuart;  and  the  works  of  Hooker 
were  plainly  descried  over  the  tops  of  the  trees. 

The  whole  was  seen  at  a  glance,  and,  to  attack  to 

'[158] 


The  Death  0}  Stonewall  Jackson  i^g 

advantage,  it  was  obviously  necessary  to  move  further  30 
still  around  the  enemy's  flank. 

"Tell  my  column  to  cross  that  road,"  Jackson  said  to 
one  of  his  aides;  and  the  troops  moved  on  steadily  until 
they  reached  the  Old  Turnpike,  at  a  point  between  the 
Wilderness  Tavern  and  Chancellorsville.  35 

Here  instant  preparations  were  made  for  attack.  The 
force  which  Jackson  had  consisted  of  Rodes's,  Colston's, 
and  A.  P.  Hill's  divisions — in  all,  somewhat  less  than 
twenty-two  thousand  men — and  line  of  battle  was  imme- 
diately formed  for  an  advance  upon  the  enemy.  Rodes4o 
moved  in  front,  Colston  followed  within  two  hundred 
yards,  and  Hill  marched  in  column,  with  the  artillery  as 
a  reserve. 

Jackson  gave  the  order  to  advance  at  about  six  in  the 
evening,  and,  as  the  sinking  sun  began  to  throw  its  long  45 
shadows  over  the  Wilderness,  the  long  line  of  bayonets  was 
seen  in  motion.  Struggling  on  through  the  dense  thickets 
on  either  side  of  the  turnpike,  the  troops  reached  the 
open  ground  near  Melzi  Chancellor's — and  there,  before 
them,  was  the  long  line  of  the  enemy's  works.  50 

Jackson  rode  in  front,  and,  as  soon  as  his  lines  were 
formed  for  the  attack,  ordered  the  works  to  be  stormed 
with  the  bayonet. 

At  the  word,  Rodes  rushed  forward — the  men  cheering 
wildly — and,  in  a  few  moments,  they  had  swept  over  the  55 
Federal  earthworks,  driving  the  Eleventh  Corps  in  wild 
confusion  before  them.  The  woods  swarmed  with  panic- 
stricken  infantry,  in  utter  confusion;  artillery  galloped  off, 
and  was  overturned  in  ditches,  or  by  striking  against  the 
trees.  At  one  blow  the  entire  army  of  Hooker,  as  events  eo 
subsequently  proved,  was  entirely  demoralized. 

Jackson  pressed  straight  on  upon  the  track  of  the  flying 
enemy;  and  I  soon  discovered  that  he  was  straining  every 


i6o  Southern  Literary  Readings 

nerve  to  extend  his  left,  and  so  cut  off  their  retreat  to  the 

65  Rappahannock.  Unavoidable  delays,  however,  ensued. 
The  lines  of  Rodes  and  Colston  had  been  mingled  in 
inextricable  confusion  in  the  charge;  officers  could  not 
find  their  commands:  before  advancing  further,  it  was 
absolutely  necessary  to  halt  and  re-form  the  line  of  battle. 

70  Rodes  and  Colston  were,  accordingly,  ordered  to  stop 
their  advance,  re-form  their  divisions,  and  give  way  to 
Hill,  who  was  directed  to  take  the  front  with  his  fresh 
division,  not  yet  engaged. 

Before  these  orders  could  be  carried  out,  it  was  nearly 

75  nine  o'clock  at  night,  and  the  weird  scene  was  only  lit  up 
by  the  struggling  beams  of  a  pallid  moon.  On  all  sides 
the  scattered  troops  were  seen  gathering  around  their 
colors  again,  and  forming  a  new  line  of  battle — and  soon 
A.  P.  Hill  was  heard  steadily  advancing  to  take  his  place 

80  in  front,  for  the  decisive  attack  on  Chancellorsville,  about 
a  mile  distant. 

Such  was  the  condition  of  things,  when  General  Jackson, 
accompanied  by  his  staff  and  escort,  rode  in  advance  of 
his  line  down  the  road  toward  Chancellorsville,  listening, 

85  at  every  step,  for  some  indications  of  a  movement  in  the 
Federal  camps. 

When  nearly  opposite  an  old  wooden  house,  in  the 
thicket  by  the  roadside,  he  checked  his  horse  to  listen;  and 
the  whole  cortege.  General,  staff,  and  couriers,  remained 

90  for  some  moments  silent  and  motionless,  gazing  toward 
the  enemy. 

From  the  narrative  of  what  followed  I  shrink  with  a  sort 
of  dread,  and  a  throbbing  heart.  Again  that  sombre  and 
lugubrious  Wilderness  rises  up  before  me,  lit  by  the  pallid 

95 moon;  again  the  sad  whippoorwill's  cry;  again  I  see  the 
great  soldier,  motionless  upon  his  horse — and  then  I  hear 
the  fatal  roar  of  the  guns  which  laid  him  low ! 


The  Death  of  Stonewall  Jackson  i6i 

Jackson  had  halted  thus,  and  remained  motionless  in 
the  middle  of  the  road,  listening  intently,  when,  suddenly, 
for  what  reason  has  never  yet  been  discovered,  one  of  his  loo 
brigades  in  rear,  and  on  the  right  of  the  turnpike,  opened 
a  heavy  fire  upon  the  party. 

Did  they  take  us  for  Federal  cavalry,  or  were  they  fir- 
ing at  random,  under  the  excitement  of  the  moment?  I 
know  not,  and  it  is  probable  that  the  truth  will  never  be  105 
known.  But  the  fire  had  terrible  results.  Some  of  the 
staff  were  wounded;  others  threw  themselves  from  their 
horses,  who  were  running  from  the  fire  toward  the  Federal 
lines,  not  two  hundred  yards  distant ;  and  Captain  Boswell, 
engineer  upon  the  General's  staff,  was  killed,  and  his  body  no 
dragged  by  his  maddened  horse  to  Chancellorsville. 

As  the  bullets  whistled  around  him,  Jackson  wheeled 
his  horse  to  the  left,  and  galloped  into  the  thicket.  Then 
came  the  fatal  moment.  The  troops  behind  him,  on  the 
left  of  the  road,  imagined  that  the  Federal  cavalry  was  115 
charging;  and,  kneeling  on  the  right  knee,  with  bayonets 
fixed,  poured  a  volley  upon  the  General,  at  the  distance 
of  thirty  yards. 

Two  balls  passed  through  his  left  arm,  shattering  the 
bone,  and  a  third  through  his  right  hand,  breaking  the  120 
fingers. 

Mad  with  terror,  his  horse  wheeled  round  and  ran  off; 
and,  passing  under  a  low  bough,  extending  horizontally 
from  a  tree,  Jackson  was  struck  in  the  forehead,  his  cap 
torn  from  his  head,  and  his  form  hurled  back  almost  out  125 
of  the  saddle.  He  rose  erect  again,  however;  grasped  the 
bridle  with  his  bleeding  fingers;  and,  regaining  control 
of  his  horse,  turned  again  into  the  high  road,  near  the 
spot  which  he  had  left. 

The  fire  had  ceased  as  suddenly  as  it  began,  and  not  130 
a  human  being  was  seen.     Of  the  entire  staff  and  escort, 
11 


l62  Southern  Literary  Readings 

no  one  remained  but  myself  and  a  single  courier.  The 
rest  had  disappeared  before  the  terrible  fire,  as  leaves 
disappear  before  the  blasts  of  winter. 

135  Jackson  reeled  in  the  saddle,  but  no  sound  had  issued 
from  his  lips  during  the  whole  scene.  He  now  declared, 
in  faint  tones,  that  his  arm  was  broken;  and,  leaning  for- 
ward, he  fell  into  my  arms. 

More  bitter  distress  than  I  experienced  at  that  moment 

140 1  would  not  wish  to  have  inflicted  upon  my  deadliest 
enemy.  Nor  was  my  anxiety  less  terrible.  The  lines  of 
the  enemy  were  in  sight  of  the  spot  where  the  General 
lay.  At  any  moment  they  might  advance,  when  he  would 
fall  into  their  hands. 

145  No  time  was  to  be  lost.  I  sent  the  courier  for  an 
ambulance;  and,  taking  off  the  General's  military  satchel 
and  his  arms,  endeavored  to  stanch  his  wound.  While  I 
was  thus  engaged,  I  experienced  a  singular  consciousness 
that  othei:  eyes  than  the  General's  were  intently  watching 

150  me.      I  can  only  thus  describe  the  instinctive  feeling 
which  induced  me  to  look  up — and  there,  in  the  edge  of 
the  thicket,  within  ten  paces  of  me,  was  a  dark  figure, 
motionless,  on  horseback,  gazing  at  me. 
' '  Who  is  that  ? "  I  called  out. 

155     But  no  reply  greeted  my  address. 

''Is  that  one  of  the  couriers?  If  so,  ride  up  there,  and 
see  what  troops  those  are  that  fired  upon  us." 

At  the  order,  the  dark  figure  moved ;  went  slowly  in  the 
direction  which  I  indicated;  and  never  again  appeared. 

160  Who  was  that  silent  horseman?  I  know  not,  nor  ever 
expect  to  know. 

I  had  turned  again  to  the  General,  and  was  trying  to 
remove  his  bloody  gauntlets,  when  the  sound  of  hoofs  was 
heard  in  the  direction  of  our  own  lines,  and  soon  General 

165  A.  P.  Hill  appeared,  with  his  staff.     Hastily  dismounting. 


The  Death  of  Stonewall  Jackson  ■  163 

he  expressed  the  deepest  regret  at  the  fatal  occurrence, 
and  urged  the  General  to  permit  himself  to  be  borne  to 
the  rear,  as  the  enemy  might,  at  any  moment,  advance. 

As  he  was  speaking,  an  instant  proof  was  afforded  of  the 
justice  of  his  fears.  170 

"Halt!  surrender!  Fire  on  them,  if  they  do  not  sur- 
render!" came  from  one  of  the  staff  in  advance  of  the 
spot,  toward  the  enemy;  and,  in  a  moment,  the  speaker 
appeared,  with  two  Federal  skirmishers,  who  expressed 
great  astonishment  at  finding  themselves  so  near  the  175 
Southern  lines. 

It  was  now  obvious  that  no  time  was  to  be  lost  in  bearing 
off  the  General,  and  Lieutenant  Morrison,  one  of  the  staff, 
exclaimed:  ''Let  us  take  the  General  up  in  our  arms  and 
carry  him  off!"  iso 

"No;  if  you  can  help  me  up,  I  can  walk!"  replied 
Jackson,  faintly. 

And,  as  General  Hill,  who  had  drawn  his  pistol  and 
mounted  his  horse,  hastened  back  to  throw  forward  his 
line,  Jackson  rose  to  his  feet.  iss 

He  had  no  sooner  done  so,  than  a  roar  like  thunder 
came  from  the  direction  of  Chancellors ville,  and  a  hurricane 
of  shell  swept  the  road  in  which  we  stood.  A  fragment 
struck  the  horse  of  Captain  Leigh,  of  Hill's  staff,  who 
had  just  ridden  up  with  a  litter,  and  his"  rider  had  only  190 
time  to  leap  to  the  ground  when  the  animal  fell.  This 
brave  officer  did  not  think  of  himself,  however ;  he  hastened 
to  Jackson,  who  leaned  his  arm  upon  his  shoulder;  and, 
slowly  dragging  himself  along,  his  arm  bleeding  profusely, 
the  General  approached  his  own  lines  again.  195 

Hill  was  now  in  motion,  steadily  advancing  to  the  attack, 
and  the  troops  evidently  suspected,  from  the  number  and 
rank  of  the  wounded  man's  escort,  that  he  was  a  superior 
officer. 


164  Southern  Literary  Readings 

200      "Who  is  that? "  was  the  incessant  question  of  the  men; 
but  the  reply  came  as  regularly,  "Oh,  only  a  friend  of  ours." 
"When  asked,  just  .say  it  is  a  Confederate  officer!" 
murmured  Jackson. 

And  he  continued  to  walk  on,  leaning  heavily  upon  the 

205  shoulders  of  the  two  officers  at  his  side.     The  horses  were 

led  along  between  him  and  the  passing  troops;  but  many 

of  the  soldiers  peered  curiously  around  them,  to  discover 

who  the  wounded  officer  was. 

At  last  one  of  them  recognized  him  as  he  walked,  bare- 

210  headed,  in  the  moonlight,  and  exclaimed,  in  the  most 

piteous  tone  ever  heard : 

"Great  God!  that  is  General  Jackson!" 
"You  are  mistaken,  my  friend,"  was  the  reply  of  one 
of  the  staff;  and,  as  he  heard  this  denial  of  Jackson's 
215  identity,  the  man  looked  utterly  bewildered.  He  said 
nothing  more,  however,  and  moved  on,  shaking  his  head. 
Jackson  then  continued  to  drag  his  feet  along — slowly  and 
with  obvious  pain. 

At  last  his  strength  "was  exhausted,  and  it  was  plain 

220  that  he  could  go  no  further.     The  litter,   brought   by 

Captain  Leigh,  was  put  in  requisition,  the  General  laid 

upon  it,  and  four  of  the  party  grasped  the  handles  and 

bore  it  on  toward  the  rear. 

Such,  up  to  this  moment,  had  been  the  harrowing  scenes 
225  of  the  great  soldier's  suffering;  but  the  gloomiest  and  most 
tragic  portion  was  yet  to  come. 

No  sooner  had  the  litter  begun  to  move,  than  the 
enemy,  who  had,  doubtless,  divined  the  advance  of  Hill, 
opened  a  frightful  fire  of  artillery  from  the  epaulments  near 
230  Chancellors ville.  The  turnpike  was  swept  by  a  veritable 
hurricane  of  shell  and  canister — men  and  horses  fell  before 
it,  mowed  down  like  grass — and,  where  a  moment  before 
had  been  seen  the  serried  ranks  of  Hill,  the  eye  could  now 


The  Death  of  Stonewall  Jackson  165 

discern  only  riderless  horses,  men  writhing  in  the  death 
agony,  and  others  seeking  the  shelter  of  the  woods.  235 

That  sudden  and  furious  fire  did  not  spare  the  small 
party  who  were  bearing  off  the  great  soldier.  Two  of  the 
litter-bearers  were  shot,  and  dropped  the  handles  to  the 
ground.  Of  all  present,  none  remained  but  myself  and 
another;  and  we  were  forced  to  lower  the  litter  to  the  240 
earth,  and  lie  beside  it,  to  escape  the  terrific  storm  of 
canister  tearing  over  us.  It  struck  millions  of  sparks 
from  the  flint  of  the  turnpike,  and  every  instant  I  expected 
would  be  our  last. 

The  General  attempted,  during  the  hottest  portion  of  245 
the  fire,  to  rise  from  the  litter ;  but  this  he  was  prevented 
from  doing;  and  the  hurricane  soon  ceased.  He  then 
rose  erect,  and,  leaning  upon  our  shoulders,  while  another 
officer  brought  on  the  litter,  made  his  way  into  the  woods, 
where  the  troops  were  lying  down  in  line  of  battle.  250 

As  we  passed  on  in  the  moonlight,  I  recognized  General 
Pender,  in  front  of  his  brigade,  and  he  also  recognized  me. 

"Who  is  wounded,  Colonel?"  he  said. 

"Only  a  Confederate  officer,  General." 

But,  all  at  once,  he  caught  a  sight  of  General  Jackson's  255 
face. 

"Oh!  General!"  he  exclaimed,  "I  am  truly  sorry  to  see 
you  are  wounded.  The  lines  here  are  so  much  broken 
that  I  fear  we  will  be  obliged  to  fall  back ! ' ' 

The  words  brought  a  fiery  flush  to  the  pale  face  of  260 
Jackson.     Raising  his  drooping  head,  his  eyes  flashed, 
and  he  replied : 

"You  must  hold  your  ground,  General  Pender!  You 
must  hold  your  ground,  sir!" 

Pender  bowed,  and  Jackson  continued  his  slow  progress  265 
to  the  rear. 

He  had  given  his  last  order  on  the  field. 


i66  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Fifty  steps  further,  his  head  sank  upon  his  bosom,  his 
shoulders  bent  forward,  and  he  seemed  about  to  fall  from 

270  exhaustion.  In  a  tone  so  faint  that  it  sounded  like  a 
murmur,  he  asked  to  be  permitted  to  lie  down  and  die. 

Instead  of  yielding  to  this  prayer,  we  placed  him 
again  upon  the  litter — some  bearers  were  procured — 
and,  amid  bursting  shell,  which  filled  the  moonlit  sky 

275  above  with  their  dazzling  coruscations,  we  slowly  bore 
the  wounded  General  on,  through  the  tangled  thicket, 
toward  the  rear. 

So  dense  was  the  undergrowth  that  we  penetrated  it  with 
difficulty,  and  the  vines  which  obstructed  the  way  more 

280  than  once  made  the  litter-bearers  stumble.  From  this 
proceeded  a  most  distressing  accident.  One  of  the  men, 
at  last,  caught  his  foot  in  a  grape-vine,  and  fell — and, 
in  his  fall,  he  dropped  the  handle  of  the  litter.  It  de- 
scended heavily,  and  then,  as  the  General's  shattered  arm 

285  struck  the  ground,  and  the  blood  gushed  forth,  he  uttered, 
for  the  first  time,  a  low,  piteous  groan. 

We  raised  him  quickly,  and  at  that  moment,  -a  ray  of 
moonlight,  glimmering  through  the  deep  foliage  overhead, 
fell  upon  his  pale  face  and  his  bleeding  form.     His  eyes 

290  were  closed,  his  bosom  heaved — I  thought  that  he  was 
about  to  die. 

What  a  death  for  the  man  of  Manassas  and  Port  Repub- 
lic! What  an  end  to  a  career  so  wonderful!  Here,  lost 
in  the  tangled  and  lugubrious  depths  of  this  weird  Wilder- 

295  ness,  with  the  wan  moon  gliding  like  a  ghost  through  the 
clouds — the  sad  notes  of  the  whippoorwill  echoing  from 
the  thickets — the  shell  bursting  in  the  air,  like  showers  of 
falling  stars — here,  alone,  without  other  witnesses  than  a 
few  weeping  officers,  who  held  him  in  their  arms,  the  hero 

300  of  a  hundred  battles,  the  idol  of  the  Southern  people, 
seemed  about  to  utter  his  last   sigh!    Never  will  the 


The  Death  of  Stonewall  Jackson  167 

recollection  of  that  scene  be  obliterated.  Again  my 
pulses  throb,  and  my  heart  is  oppressed  with  its  bitter 
load  of  anguish,  as  I  go  back  in  memory  to  that  night 
in  the  Wilderness.  303 

I  could  only  mutter  a  few  words,  asking  the  General  if 
his  fall  had  hurt  him — and,  at  these  words,  his  eyes  slowly 
opened.  A  faint  smile  came  to  the  pale  face,  and  in  a  low 
murmur  he  said : 

**  No,  my  friend ;  do  not  trouble  yourself  about  me ! "       310 

And  again  the  eyes  closed,  his  head  fell  back.  With 
his  grand  courage  and  patience,  he  had  suppressed  all 
evidences  of  suffering;  and,  once  more  taking  up  the  litter, 
we  continued  to  bear  him  toward  the  rear. 

As  we  approached  Melzi  Chancellor's,  a  staff -officer  of  315 
General  Hill  recognized  Jackson,   and  announced  that 
Hill  had  been  wounded  by  the  artillery  fire  which  had 
swept  down  the  turnpike. 

Jackson  rose  on  his  bleeding  right  arm,  and  exclaimed : 

* '  Where  is  Stuart ! "  320 

As  though  in  answer  to  that  question,  we  heard  the 
quick  clatter  of  hoofs,  and  all  at  once  the  martial  figure 
of  the  great  cavalier  was  seen  rapidly  approaching. 

"Where  is  General  Jackson?"  exclaimed  Stuart,  in  a 
voice  which  I  scarcely  recognized.  '  325 

And  suddenly  he  checked  his  horse  right  in  front  of 
the  group.  His  drawn  sabre  was  in  his  hand — his  horse 
foaming.  In  the  moonlight  I  could  see  that  his  face  was 
pale,  and  his  eyes  full  of  gloomy  emotion. 

For  an  instant  no  one  moved  or  spoke — and  again  1 330 
return  in  memory  to  that  scene.  Stuart,  clad  in  his  ' '  fight- 
ing jacket,"  with  the  dark  plume  floating  from  his  looped- 
up  hat,  reining  in  his  foaming  horse,  while  the  moonlight 
poured  on  his  martial  features;  and  before  him,  on  the 
litter,  the  bleeding  form  of  Jackson,  the  face  pale,  the  335 


i68  Southern  Literary  Readings 

eyes  half -closed,  the  bosom  rising  and  falling  as  the  life 
of  the  great  soldier  ebbed  away. 

In  an  instant  Stuart  had  recognized  his  friend,  and 
had  thrown  himself  from  his  horse. 
340      * '  You  are  dangerously  wounded ! " 

* '  Yes, ' '  came  in  a  murmur  from  the  pale  lips  of  Jackson, 
as  he  faintly  tried  to  hold  out  his  hand.     Then  his  cheeks 
suddenly  filled  with  blood,  his  eyes  flashed,  and,  half  rising 
from  the  litter,  he  exclaimed : 
345      "Oh!  for  two  hours  of  daylight!     I  would  then  cut  off 
the  enemy  from  United  States  Ford,  and  they  would  be 
entirely  surrounded ! " 
Stuart  bent  over  him,  and  their  eyes  met. 
"Take  command  of  my  corps!"  murmured  Jackson, 
350  falling  back;  "follow  your  own  judgment — I  have  implicit 
confidence  in  you ! " 

Stuart's  face  flushed  hot  at  this  suprem^e  recognition  of 
his  courage  and  capacity — and  I  saw  a  flash  dart  from  the 
fiery  blue  eyes. 
355      "But  you  will  be  ilear,  General!    You  will  still  send 
me  orders!"  he  exclaimed. 

"You  will  not  need  them,"  murmured  Jackson;  "to- 
night or  early  to-morrow  you  will  be  in  possession  of 
Chancellorsville !    Tell  m^^  men  that  I  am  watching  them — 
360  that  I  am  with  them  in  spirit ! " 

"The  watchword  in  the  charge  shall  be,   'Remember 
Jackson!'" 

And,  with  these  fiery  words,  Stuart  grasped  the  bleeding 

hand;  uttered  a  few  words  of  farewell,  and  leaped  upon 

365  his  horse.     For  a  moment  his  sword  gleamed,  and  his  black 

plume  floated  in  the  moonlight;  then  he  disappeared,  at 

full  speed,  toward  Chancellorsville. 

At  ten  o'clock  next  morning  he  had  stormed  the  intrench- 
ments  around  Chancellorsville;  swept  the  enemy,  with 


I 


The  Death  of  Stonewall  Jackson  i6g 

the  bayonet,  back  toward  the  Rappahannock;  and  as 370 
the  troops,  mad  with  victory,  rushed  through  the  blazing 
forest,  a  thousand  voices  were  heard  shouting: 
*  *  Remember  Jackson ! ' ' 

Here  I  terminate  my  memoirs  for  the  present,  if  not 
forever.  375 

The  great  form  of  Jackson  has  disappeared  from  the 
stage.  What  remains  but  a  cold  and  gloomy  theatre,  from 
which  the  spectators  have  vanished,  where  the  lights  are 
extinguished,  and  darkness  has  settled  down  upon  the 
pageant.  sso 

Other  souls  of  fire,  and  valor,  and  unshrinking  nerve 
were  left,  and  their  career  was  glorious;  but  the  finger  of 
Fate  seemed  to  mark  out,  with  its  bloody  point,  the  name 
of  *' Chancellors ville,"  and  the  iron  lips  to  unclose  and 
mutter:  "Thus  far,  no  further!"  With  the  career  of  385 
this  man  of  destiny  had.  waned  the  strength  of  the  South 
— when  he  fell,  the  end  was  in  sight.  Thenceforward  as 
good  fighting  as  the  world  ever  saw  seemed  useless,  and 
to  attain  no  result.  Even  the  soldiership  of  Lee — such 
soldiership  as  renders  famous  forever  a  race  and  an  390 
epoch — could  achieve  nothing.  From  the  day  of  Chan- 
cellorsville,  the  battle-flag,  torn  in  so  many  glorious 
encounters,  seemed  to  shine  no  more  in  the  light  of  victory. 
It  drooped  upon  its  staff,  however  defiantly  at  times  it  rose 
— slowly  it  descended.  It  fluttered  for  a  moment  amid  the  395 
fiery  storm  of  Gettysburg,  in  the  woods  of  Spottsylvania, 
and  on  the  banks  of  the  Appomattox ;  but  never  again  did 
its  dazzling  folds  flaunt  proudly  in  the  wind,  and  burn  like 
a  beacon  light  on  victorious  fields.  It  was  natural  that 
the  army  should  connect  the  declining  fortunes  of  the  400 
great  flag  which  they  had  fought  under  with  the  death  of 
him  who  had  rendered  it  so  illustrious.     The  form  of 


ifO  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Jackson  had  vanished  from  the  scene:  that  king  of  battle 
had  dropped  his  sword,  and  descended  into  the  tomb :  from 

405  that  moment  the  star  of  hope,  Hke  the  hght  of  victory, 
seemed  to  sink  beneath  ebon  clouds.  The  hero  had  gone 
down  in  the  bloody  gulf  of  battle,  and  the  torrent  bore 
us  away ! 

In  the  scenes  of  this  voltmie,  the  great  soldier  has 

410  appeared  as  I  saw  him.  Those  of  his  last  hours  I  did  not 
witness,  but  many  narratives  upon  the  subject  have  been 
printed.  Those  last  moments  were  as  serene  as  his  life 
had  been  stormy — and  there,  as  everywhere,  he  was 
victorious.     On  the  field  it  was  his  enemies  he  conquered : 

415  here  it  was  pain  and  suffering.  That  faith  which  over- 
comes all  things  was  in  his  heart,  and  among  his  last 
words  were :  "  It  is  all  right ! ' ' 

In  that  delirium  which  immediately  precedes  death,  -he 
gave  his  orders  as  on  the  battle-field,  and  was  distinctly 

420 heard  directing  A.  P.  Hill  to  ''prepare  for  action!"  But 
these  clouds  soon  passed — his  eye  grew  calm  again — and, 
murmuring,  "Let  us  cross  over  the  river,  and  rest  under 
the  shade  of  the  trees!"  he  fell  back  and  expired. 

Such  was  the  death  of  this  strange  man.    To  me  he  seems 

425  so  great  that  all  words  fail  in  speaking  of  him.    Not  in  this 

poor  page  do  I  attempt  a  characterization  of  this  king  of 

battle:  I  speak  no  further  of  him — but  I  loved  and  shall 

ever  love  him. 

A  body  laid  in  state  in  the  capitol  at  Richmond,  the 

430  coffin  wrapped  in  the  pure  white  folds  of  the  newly- 
adopted  Confederate  flag;  a  great  procession,  moving  to 
the  strains  of  the  Dead  March,  behind  the  hearse,  and  the 
war-horse  of  the  dead  soldier;  then  the  thunder  of  the  guns 
at  Lexington ;  the  coffin  borne  upon  a  caisson  of  his  own  old 

435  battery,  to  the  quiet  grave — that  was  the  last  of  Jackson. 
Dead,  he  was  immortal! 


From  a  photograph. 


Courtesy  of  the  poet's  son, 
William  Hamilton  Hayne 


PAUL  HAMILTON  HAYNE 


PAUL  HAMILTON  HAYNE 

Paiil  Hamilton  Hayne,  a  grandson  of  the  distinguished 
statesman  and  orator  Robert  Young  Hayne,  was  bom  in 
Charleston,  South  Carolina,  on  New  Year's  Day,  in  1830. 
His  father,  Lieutenant  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne  of  the 
United  States  Navy,  died  when  Paul  was  a  mere  infant, 
and  the  boy  was  brought  up  amid  the  wealth  and  luxury 
of  his  grandfather's  home.  He  received  careful  training 
in  the  best  schools  of  Charleston,  and  was  graduated  from 
Charleston  College  in  1850. 

Like  many  young  Southerners  of  good  family,  Hayne 
prepared  himself  for  the  bar,  but  the  call  of  poetry  was 
stronger  than  that  of  the  law.  He  became  an  associate 
editor  of  the  Southern  Literary  Gazette,  and  later  co-founder 
and  editor  of  RusselVs  Magazine,  which  he  made  a  decided 
success.  He  published  a  volume  of  poems  in  1855,  and 
three  other  volimies  followed — Sonnets  and  Other  Poems 
(1857),  Avolio  and  Other  Poems  (i860),  Legends  and  Lyrics 
(1872),  and  a  complete  edition  of  his  poems,  arranged  by 
himself  and  published  with  an  introductory  biographical 
sketch  by  his  friend  and  fellow  poet  Margaret  J.  Preston, 
about  four  years  before  his  death  on  July-6,  1886. 

The  Civil  War  came  on  just  in  time  to  interfere  seri- 
ously with  the  development  of  his  genius  and  the  spread 
of  his  fame.  True,  he  threw  himself  whole-heartedly  into 
the  struggle,  writing  a  number  of  good  war  poems;  but 
his  muse  was  better  suited  to  the  home,  the  winter  fire- 
side, and  the  summer  forest  retreat  than  to  the  battle  field, 
the  march,  the  camp.  In  spite  of  his  delicate  constitution 
and  frail  physique  he  volunteered  his  services  to  the  Con- 
federate cause,  becoming  an  aide  on  Governor  Pickens's 
staff. 

Home,  library,  wealth,  all  were  swept  away  by  the 
war.  When  peace  came,  Hayne  moved  with  his  devoted 
wife  and  only  son,  William  Hamilton  (now  a  poet  of  no 
mean  ability) ,  into  the  pine  barrens  of  Georgia,  and  settled 

U71] 


1J2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

in  a  little  cottage — or,  rather,  log  cabin — near  Augusta. 
In  this  primitive  home,  which  he  named  "Copse  Hill," 
he  spent  the  remainder  of  his  life,  striving  to  build  up 
his  health,  and  devoting  himself  exclusively  to  literature 
for  a  livelihood.  His  poems  and  prose  articles  found  a 
ready  reception  in  the  magazines  and  periodicals  of  the 
North  as  well  as  in  those  of  the  South,  but  the  remunera- 
tion was  small  and  the  family  was  forced  to  live  under 
the  severest  economy. 

Hayne's  lyric  genius  has  been  highly  praised,  but  he 
is  still  little  more  than  a  name  to  many  readers  North 
and  South.  He  wrote  a  large  amount  of  poetry  of  a 
singularly  tiniform  excellence,  but  no  single  poem  so  far 
superior  to  the  great  mass  of  his  work  as  to  make  itself 
particularly  noteworthy  or  noticeable.  Poets  of  far  less 
literary  merit  are  more  generally  known,  through  some 
single  popular  work,  while  Hayne,  for  the  very  reason  of 
his  uniform  excellence,  is  neglected.  He  was  not  strikingly 
original  in  his  poetry,  but  he  had  an  individual  note, 
and  his  art  was  rarely  at  fault.  He  deserves  a  more 
generous  and  general  recognition  than  he  has  received. 
His  longer  narrative  poems  and  his  dramatic  pieces  are 
not  without  merit,  but  his  best  work  is  undoubtedly  in 
the  purer  lyric  and  descriptive  types.  Especially  note- 
worthy are  his  sonnets,  of  which  he  wrote  considerably 
more  than  one  hundred.  Maurice  Thompson  said:  *'As 
a  sonneteer,  Hayne  was  strong,  ranldng  well  with  the 
best  in  America";  and  again,  *'I  can  pick  twenty  of 
Hayne's  sonnets  to  equal  almost  any  in  the  language"; 
and  Professor  Painter  adds,  "It  is  hardly  too  much  to 
claim  that  Hayne  is  the  prince  of  American  sonneteers." 

Paul  Hamilton  Hayne  lived  as  he  wrote — simply, 
purely,  bravely.  The  latter  part  of  his  life  was  marked 
by  struggle  and  heartache,  privation  and  disease;  yet 
he  kept  up  his  courage  and  maintained  a  calm,  sweet 
temper  to  the  end,  making  of  his  own  life,  perhaps,  a  more 
beautiful  poem  than  any  he  ever  penned. 

(Perhaps  the  best  essays  on  Hayne  are  those  by  Margaret  Junkin 
Preston  in  the  latest  edition  of  his  poems  (1882)  and  by  WilHam 
Hamilton  Hayne  in  Lippincott'' s  Magazine  for  December,    1892.) 


LYRIC  OF  ACTION 

'Tis  the  part  of  a  coward  to  brood 

O'er  the  past  that  is  withered  and  dead : 
What  though  the  heart's  roses  are  ashes  and  dust? 

What  though  the  heart's  music  be  fled? 

Still  shine  the  grand  heavens  o'erhead,  5 

Whence  the  voice  of  an  angel  thrills  clear  on  the  soul, 
"Gird  about  thee  thine  armor,  press  on  to  the  goal!" 

If  the  faults  or  the  crimes  of  thy  youth 

Are  a  burden  too  heavy  to  bear, 
What  hope  can  rebloom  on  the  desolate  waste  10 

Of  a  jealous  and  craven  dispair? 

Down,  down  with  the  fetters  of  fear! 
In  the  strength  of  thy  valor  and  manhood  arise. 
With  the  faith  that  illumes  and  the  will  that  defies. 

**  Too  late! "  through  God's  infinite  world,  15 

From  His  throne  to  life's  nethermost  fires, 

"  Too  late!''  is  a  phantom  that  flies  at  the  dawn 
Of  the  soul  that  repents  and  aspires. 
If  pure  thou  hast  made  thy  desires. 

There 's  no  height  the  strong  wings  of  immortals  may  gain  20 

W^hich  in  striving  to  reach  thou  shalt  strive  for  in  vain. 

Then,  up  to  the  contest  with  fate, 

Unbound  by  the  past  which  is  dead ! 
What  though  the  heart's  roses  are  ashes  and  dust? 

What  though  the  heart's  music  be  fled?  25 

Still  shine  the  fair  heavens  o'erhead; 
And  sublime  as  the  seraph  who  rules  in  the  sun 
Beams  the  promise  of  joy  when  the  conflict  is  won! 

U73] 


174  Southern  Literary  Readings 

AETHRA 

It  is  a  sweet  tradition,  with  a  soul 
Of  tenderest  pathos !     Hearken,  love ! — for  all 
The  sacred  undercurrents  of  the  heart 
Thrill  to  its  cordial  music : 

Once,  a  chief, 
Philantus,  king  of  Sparta,  left  the  stem 
And  bleak  defiles  of  his  unfruitful  land  — 
Girt  by  a  band  of  eager  colonists — 
To  seek  new  homes  on  fair  Italian  plains. 
Apollo's  oracle  had  darkly  spoken: 
''Where'er from  cloudless  skies  a  plenteous  shower 
Outpours,  the  Fates  decree  that  ye  should  pause 
And  rear  your  household  deities!'' 

Racked  by  doubt 
Philantus  traversed  with  his  faithful  band 
Full  many  a  bounteous  realm ;  but  still  defeat 
Darkened  his  banners,  and  the  strong- walled  towns 
His  desperate  sieges  grimly  laughed  to  scorn ! 
Weighed  down  by  anxious  thoughts,  one  sultry  eve 
The  warrior — his  rude  helmet  cast  aside — 
Rested  his  weary  head  upon  the  lap 
Of  his  fair  wife,  who  loved  him  tenderly; 
And  there  he  drank  a  generous  draught  of  sleep. 
She,  gazing  on  his  brow  all  worn  with  toil 
And  his  dark  locks,  which  pain  had  silvered  over 
With  glistening  touches  of  a  frosty  rime,  , 
Wept  on  the  sudden  bitterly;  her  tears 
Fell  on  his  face,  and,  wondering,  he  woke. 
"O  blest  art  thou,  my  Aethra,  my  clear  sky," 
He  cried  exultant,  "from  whose  pitying  blue 
A  heart-rain  falls  to  fertilize  my  fate : 
Lo !  the  deep  riddle 's  solved  —  the  gods  spake  truth ! ' 


Sonnets  lys. 

So  the  next  night  he  stormed  Tarentum,  took 
The  enemy's  host  at  vantage,  and  o'erthrew 
His  mightiest  captains.     Thence  with  kindly  sway 
He  ruled  those  pleasant  regions  he  had  won, — 
But  dearer  even  than  his  rich  demesnes 
The  love  of  her  whose  gentle  tears  unlocked 
The  close-shut  mystery  of  the  Oracle ! 


SONNETS 
Great  Poets  and  Small 

Shall  I  not  falter  on  melodious  wing, 

In  that  my  notes  are  weak  and  may  not  rise 

To  those  world-wide  entrancing  harmonies, 

Which  the  great  poets  to  the  ages  sing? 

Shall  my  thought's  humble  heaven  no  longer  ring 

With  pleasant  lays,  because  the  empyreal  height 

Stretches  beyond  it,  lifting  to  the  light 

The  anointed  pinion  of  song's  radiant  king? 

Ah !  a  false  thought !  the  thrush  her  fitful  flight 

Ventures  in  vernal  dawns;  a  happy  note 

Trills  from  the  russet  linnet's  gentle  throat, 

Though  far  above  the  eagle  soars  in  might. 

And  the  glad  skylark — an  ethereal  mote — 

Sings  in  high  realms  that  mock  our  straining  sight. 

Poets 

Some  thunder  on  the  heights  of  song,  their  race 
Godlike  in  power,  while  others  at  their  feet 
Are  breathing  measures  scarce  less  strong  and  sweet 
Than  those  which  peal  from  out  that  loftiest  place; 
Meantime,  just  midway  on  the  mount,  his  face 


jy6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Fairer  than  April  heavens,  when  storms  retreat, 
And  on  their  edges  rain  and  sunshine  meet, 
Pipes  the  soft  lyrist  lays  of  tender  grace; 
But  where  the  slopes  of  bright  Parnassus  sweep 
Near  to  the  common  ground,  a  various  throng 
Chant  lowlier  measures — yet  each  tuneful  strain 
(The  silvery  minor  of  earth's  perfect  song) 
Blends  with  that  music  of  the  topmost  steep, 
O'er  whose  vast  realm  the  master  minstrels  reign ! 


My  Study 

This  is  my  wDrld !  within  these  narrow  walls, 
I  own  a  princely  service;  the  hot  care 
And  tumult  of  our  frenzied  life  are  here 
But  as  a  ghost,  and  echo;  what  befalls 

5      In  the  far  mart  to  me  is  less  than  naught , 
I  walk  the  fields  of  quiet  Arcadies, 
And  wander  by  the  brink  of  hoary  seas, 
Calmed  to  the  tendance  of  untroubled  thought : 
Or  if  a  livelier  himior  should  enhance 

10     The  slow-timed  pulse,  'tis  not  for  present  strife, 
The  sordid  zeal  with  which  our  age  is  rife. 
Its  mammon  conflicts  crowned  by  fraud  or  chance, 
But  gleamings  of  the  lost,  heroic  life, 
Flashed  through  the  gorgeous  vistas  of  romance. 

To  Henry  W.  Longfellow 

I  think  earth's  noblest,  most  pathetic  sight 
Is  some  old  poet,  round  whose  laurel-crown 
The  long  gray  locks  are  streaming  softly  down;  — 
Whose  evening,  touched  by  prescient  shades  of  night, 
fi      Grows  tranquillized,  in  calm,  ethereal  light: — 


Sonnets  177 

Such,  such  art  thou,  O  master!  worthier  grown 

In  the  fair  sunset  of  thy  full  renown, — 

Poising,  perchance,  thy  spiritual  wings  for  flight ! 

Ah,  heaven!  why  shoiildst  thou  from  thy  place  depart? 

God's  court  is  thronged  with  minstrels,  rich  with  song;    10 

Even  now,  a  new  note  swells  the  immaculate  choir, — 

But  thou,  whose  strains  have  filled  our  lives  so  long. 

Still  from  the  altar  of  thy  reverent  heart 

Let  golden  dreams  ascend,  and  thoughts  of  fire ! 

The  Mocking-bird  amid  Yellow  Jasmine 

Of  all  the  woodland  flowers  of  earlier  spring, 

These  golden  jasmines,  each  an  air-hung  bower, 

Meet  for  the  Queen  of  Fairies'  tiring  hour. 

Seem  loveliest  and  most  fair  in  blossoming; 

How  yonder  mock-bird  thrills  his  fervid  wing  5 

And  long,  lithe  throat,  where  twinkling  flower  on  flower 

Rains  the  globed  dewdrops  down,  a  diamond  shower. 

O'er  his  brown  head  poised  as  in  act  to  sing; 

Lo !  the  swift  sunshine  floods  the  flowery  urns, 

Girding  their  delicate  gold  with  matchless  light,  10 

Till  the  blent  life  of  bough,  leaf,  blossom,  burns ; 

Then,  then  outbursts  the  inock-bird  clear  and  loud, 

Half -drunk  with  perfume,  veiled  by  radiance  bright, 

A  star  of  music  in  a  fiery  cloud ! 


12 


JAMES  RYDER  RANDALL 

James  Ryder  Randall,  bom  in  Baltimore,  January  i, 
1839,  sang  himself  into  fame  with  a  single  war  lyric — 
Maryland!  My  Maryland!  His  mother  was  his  first 
teacher,  and  he  once  expressed  the  wish  that  all  he  had 
ever  written  be  dedicated  to  her  memory.  He  was  sent  to 
Georgetown  College,  where  he  was  noted  as  the  youngest 
boy  who  had  ever  attended,  for  he  was  only  eleven  years 
old  when  he  entered. 

After  leaving  Georgetown,  he  received  an  appointment 
as  professor  of  English  literature  in  Poydras  College, 
Point  Coupee,  Louisiana,  and  here  in  the  first  year  of 
the  Civil  War  he  wrote  the  famous  lyric  already  men- 
tioned. It  is  said  that  on  April  23,1861,  the  night  after  he 
heard  the  news  of  the  clash  of  a  few  days  before,  between 
the  citizens  of  Baltimore  and  the  soldiers  of  the  Sixth 
Massachusetts  Regiment,  he  could  not  sleep,  but  paced 
up  and  down  his  room  in  a  restless  and  perfervid  mood. 
He  seized  a  pencil  and*  wrote  the  fiery  lines  of  Maryland  ! 
My  Maryland!  The  next  day  he  read  the  verses  to  his 
literature  class  and  then  sent  them  off  to  the  New  Orleans 
Delta,  in  which  they  appeared  three  days  later.  The 
stanzas  were  copied  widely  over  the  South  and  were 
received  with  wild  enthusiasm  in  city  and  camp  through- 
out the  Confederacy.  The  words  were  first  sung  to  the 
French  air  of  Ma  Normandie,  but  later  they  were  set  to 
that  famous  and  beautiful  old  German  tune,  Tannenbaum, 
O  Tannenbaum.  The  song  has  been  called  the  Marseillaise 
of  the  Confederacy.  Randall  wrote  other  patriotic  lyrics, 
but  none  to  equal,  in  fervid  diction  and  patriotic  glow, 
Maryland!  My  Maryland! 

Thoroughly  aroused  by  the  Federal  invasion  of  the  South, 
Randall  enlisted  in  the  Confederate  Army.  However, 
before  the  company  left  for  the  front  he  siiffered  a  severe 
hemorrhage  from  the  lungs  and  was  immediately  mustered 
out.    Although  he  partially  recovered  from  his  illness,  he 

[178] 


James  Ryder  Randall  lyg 

was  never  a  strong  or  robust  man.  He  tried  hard  to  estab- 
lish himself  in  newspaper  work  in  Augusta,  Georgia,  but 
he  never  succeeded  beyond  making  a  bare  living.  He 
gained  some  notice  as  Washington  correspondent  for  the 
Augusta  Chronicle,  and  he  was  also  connected  with  other 
papers,  being  the  editor  in  his  later  years  of  the  Hot  Blast 
of  Anniston,  Alabama;  but  he  fought  a  losing  battle, 
unrecognized  and  almost  forgotten. 

A  rift  came  in  the  clouds  before  the  end.  In  1907  he 
was  invited  to  Baltimore  to  be  guest  of  honor  in  the  great 
home-coming  festivities  which  were  being  held  throughout 
the  state.  A  plan  was  put  on  foot  to  reward  the  veteran 
poet  who  had  immortalized  his  state  in  song.  Before 
these  plans  were  consummated,  however,  he  returned  to 
Augusta,  Georgia,  where  he  died,  January  14,  1908.  In 
this  year  an  edition  of  his  poems  was  published,  and  the 
volume  brought  forth  generous  recognition  from  critics 
both  in  the  North  and  in  the  South.  Another  and  more 
complete  volume  appeared  in  19 10  under  the  editorship 
of  Matthew  P.  Andrews. 

Randall's  right  to  a  recognized  place  among  the  minor 
poets  of  America  now  seems  fully  established.  He  wrote, 
besides  the  famous  war  poem  already  mentioned,  an  elegy 
on  Major  John  Pelham  which  deserves  to  rank  with  the 
best  poems  of  the  kind  in  our  literature.  Among  his  other 
war  lyrics  worthy  of  remembrance  are  There's  Life  in  the 
Old  Land  Yet,  The  Lone  Sentry,  The  Battle  Cry  of  the  South, 
and  At  Arlington.  Randall  also  possessed  a  vein  of  senti- 
ment and  in  his  youthful  years  wrote  some  excellent  love 
songs,  among  which  Mary,  my  Heart,  Ma  Belle  Creole, 
Ha!  Ha!,  and  My  Bonny  Kate  may  be  mentioned  as 
preeminent.  Miscellaneous  poems  and  poems  of  a  memo- 
rial or  religious  nature  make  up  the  remainder  of  Randall's 
poetic  work.  His  most  recent  biographer  says:  "He 
gave  the  best  he  had  to  his  friends,  his  Hfe  to  his  home 
and  family,  to  his  native  state  an  immortal  name,  and 
to  the  English  language  perhaps  the  greatest  of  battle- 
hymns." 

(The  best  memoir  of  Randall  is  that  by  Matthew  P.  Andrews, 
prefixed  as  an  introduction  to  the  19 10  edition  of  Poems  of  James 
Ryder  Randall.) 


MARYLAND!    MY  MARYLAND! 

The  despot's  heel  is  on  thy  shore, 

Maryland ! 
His  torch  is  at  thy  temple  door, 

Maryland! 
Avenge  the  patriotic  gore 
That  flecked  the  streets  of  Baltimore, 
And  be  the  battle  queen  of  yore, 
Maryland!     My  Maryland! 

Hark  to  an  exiled  son's  appeal, 

Maryland ! 
My  mother  State !  to  thee  I  kneel, 

Maryland! 
For  life  and  death,  for  woe  and  weal, 
Thy  peerless  chivalry  reveal, 
And  gird  thy  beauteous  limbs  with  steel, 
Maryland!     My  Maryland! 

Thou  wilt  not  cower  in  the  dust, 

Maryland ! 
Thy  beaming  sword  shall  never  rust, 

Maryland ! 
Remember  Carroll's  sacred  trust, 
Remember  Howard's  warlike  thrust, — 
And  all  thy  slumberers  with  the  just, 
Maryland!     My  Maryland! 

Come !  't  is  the  red  dawn  of  the  day, 
Maryland ! 

[i8o] 


Maryland!  My  Maryland!  i8i 

Come  with  thy  panopHed  array, 

Maryland ! 
With  Ringgold's  spirit  for  the  fray, 
With  Watson's  blood  at  Monterey, 
With  fearless  Lowe  and  dashing  May, 
Maryland !     My  Maryland ! 

Come !  for  thy  shield  is  bright  and  strong, 

Maryland ! 
Come !  for  thy  dalliance  does  thee  wrong, 

Maryland ! 
Come  to  thine  own  heroic  throng, 
Stalking  with  Liberty  along. 
And  chaunt  thy  dauntless  slogan  song, 
Maryland!     My  Maryland! 

Dear  Mother !  biirst  the  tyrant's  chain, 

Maryland!' 
Virginia  should  not  call  in  vain, 

Maryland! 
She  meets  her  sisters  on  the  plain — 
''Sic  semper! "  't  is  the  proud  refrain 
That  baffles  minions  back  again, 

Maryland !     My  Maryland ! 

I  see  the  blush  upon  thy  cheek, 

Maryland! 
For  thou  wast  ever  bravely  meek, 

Maryland ! 
But  lo !  there  surges  forth  a  shriek 
From  hill  to  hill,  from  creek  to  creek — 
Potomac  calls  to  Chesapeake, 

Maryland !     My  Maryland ! 


i82  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Thou  wilt  not  yield  the  Vandal  toll, 

Maryland! 
Thou  wilt  not  crook  to  his  control, 

Maryland! 
Better  the  fire  upon  thee  roll, 
Better  the  blade,  the  shot,  the  bowl, 
Than  crucifixion  of  the  soul, 

Maryland!    My  Maryland! 

I  hear  the  distant  thunder-hum, 
Maryland ! 
.  The  Old  Line's  bugle,  fife,  and  drum, 
Maryland! 
She  is  not  dead,  not  deaf,  nor  dumb — 
Huzza !  she  spurns  the  Northern  scum ! 
She  breathes!  she  burns!  she'll  come!  she'll  come! 
Maryland!    My  Maryland! 


tPELHAM 

Just  as  the  Spring  came  laughing  through  the  strife, 

With  all  its  gorgeous  cheer; 
In  the  bright  April  of  historic  life. 

Fell  the  great  cannoneer. 

A  wondrous  lulling  of  a  hero's  breath. 

His  bleeding  country  weeps ; 
Hushed  in  the  alabaster  arms  of  Death, 

Our  young  Marcellus  sleeps. 

Nobler  and  grander  than  the  Child  of  Rome, 

Curbing  his  chariot  steeds, 
The  knightly  scion  of  a  Southern  home 

Dazzled  the  land  with  deeds. 


Pelham  i8j 

Gentlest  and  bravest  in  the  battle's  brunt, 

The  Champion  of  the  Truth; 
He  won  his  banner  in  the  very  front 

Of  our  immortal  youth. 

A  clang  of  sabres  'mid  Virginian  snow, 

The  fiery  pang  of  shells — 
And  there 's  a  wail  of  immemorial  woe 

In  Alabama  dells. 

The  pennon  droops  that  led  the  sacred  band 

Along  the  crimson  field; 
The  meteor  blade  sinks  from  the  nerveless  hand 

Over  the  spotless  shield. 

We  gazed  and  gazed  upon  that  beauteous  face, 

While  round  the  lips  and  eyes, 
Couched  in  their  marble  slumber  flashed  the  grace 

Of  a  divine  surprise. 

O  mother  of  a  blessed  soul  on  high ! 

Thy  tears  may  soon  be  shed — 
Think  of  thy  boy  with  princes  of  the  sky. 

Among  the  Southern  Dead. 

How  must  he  smile  on  this  dull  wo*-'    beneath 

Favored  with  swift  renown; 
He  with  the  martyr's  amaranthine  wreath 

Twining  the  victor's  crown! 


MARGARET  JUNKIN  PRESTON 

The  chief  woman  poet  of  the  South — in  fact,  of  America 
— is  Margaret  Junkin  Preston  of  Virginia.  Though  born 
in  Germantown,  Pennsylvania,  May  19,  1820,  and  reared 
and  educated  in  her  native  state,  she  belongs  to  the 
South  because  of  her  long  residence  in  Lexington, 
Virginia,  because  of  her  marriage  to  a  noted  Southern 
teacher  and  soldier,  but  chiefly  because  she  espoused 
the  cause  of  the  South  and  wrote  her  best  poems  on 
Southern  themes  and  in  warm  Southern  tones.  In  her 
youth  she  was  a  brilliant  student  and  was  rapidly  becoming 
a  profound  scholar,  when,  in  her  twenty-first  year,  partial 
blindness  slammed,  as  she  said,  the  door  of  knowledge  in 
her  face.  The  trouble  was  due  to  eye  strain  from  close 
study  of  Greek  texts  by  candlelight  night  after  night. 
Though  she  suffered  greatly  with  her  eyes  throughout  life, 
she  never  gave  up  her  literary  ambitions.  She  wrote  and 
published  anonymously  a  novel  called  Silverwood,  and  was 
continually  composing, poems,  rimed  letters,  and  literary 
essays  of  various  kinds. 

Her  father,  Dr.  George  Junkin,  was  the  founder  and  for 
many  years  the  president  of  La  Fayette  College,  Easton, 
Pennsylvania.  In  1848  he  accepted  the  presidency  of 
Washington  College,  Lexington,  Virginia,  now  Washington 
and  Lee  University.  Margaret,  the  eldest  daughter, 
familiarly  known  as  "Miss  Maggie,"  was  then  twenty- 
seven  years  old;  brilliant,  kindly,  helpful,  noble,  she  was 
the  life  of  her  father's  home,  and  the  leading  spirit  in 
its  social  activities.  Major  Thomas  J.  Jackson,  afterward 
the  great  "Stonewall"  Jackson,  who  was  then  professor 
of  mathematics  in  the  Virginia  Military  Institute,  located 
almost  within  a  stone's  throw  of  Washington  College, 
was  a  constant  visitor  at  Dr.  Junkin's  home.  The 
beautiful  and  saintly  Eleanor  Junkin  became  Jackson's 
first  wife,  and  during  his  brief  married  life  of  one  year  and 
for  four  years  after  his  wife's  death,  Jackson  lived  in 

[184] 


Margaret  Junkin  Preston  i8j 

Dr.  Junkin's  home.  Margaret,  whom  he  called  "Sister 
Maggie,"  was  in  the  young  professor's  most  intimate 
confidence,  and  she  learned  to  appreciate  Jackson  long 
before  he  became  famous.  No  wonder,  then,  that  after 
his  death  she  was  well  prepared  to  commemorate  his  life 
and  character  in  two  notable  poems,  The  Shade  of  the 
Trees  and  Jackson's  Grave. 

In  1857  Margaret  Junkin  married  Colonel  J.  T.  L. 
Preston,  professor  of  Latin  in  the  Virginia  Military 
Institute,  then  a  widower  with  seven  children.  She 
assumed  the  great  responsibilities  of  this  large  house- 
hold in  a  beautiful  spirit,  giving  her  life  unstintedly 
to  her  home  duties.  For  three  years  she  lived  in  perfect 
happiness  with  her  husband  and  his  children  and  her  own 
two  baby  boys.  Then  came  the  distressful  period  of  the 
Civil  War. 

For  Margaret  Preston  this  was  indeed  a  trying  time. 
Her  father  was  faithful  to  his  section,  and  when  war 
was  declared  he  returned  to  Pennsylvania.  But  she  had 
given  her  heart  and  hand  to  a  Southern  soldier,  and 
she  unhesitatingly  and  loyally  espoused  the  cause  of  the 
South.  She  was  without  bitterness  toward  the  North, 
but  she  once  said  that  she  was  ashamed  of  her  section 
because  of  the  disgraceful  conduct  of  some  soldiers  who 
depredated  her  home.  Colonel  Preston  became  a  member 
of  Jackson's  staff,  and  was  almost  continually  away  from 
home  during  the  war.  Mrs.  Preston's  journals  of  this 
period  show  how  her  heart  was  racked  with  anxiety  for 
her  husband  on  one  side  and  for  her  kinsmen  on  the 
other.  But  through  it  all  she  showed  a  brave  and  beauti- 
ful spirit,  confidently  trusting  that  God  would  bring  all 
right  in  the  end. 

During  the  war  Mrs.  Preston  wrote  Beechenhrook:  a 
Rhyme  of  the  War,  and  sent  it  to  her  husband  at  the  front. 
He  read  it  to  delighted  audiences  of  officers  and  soldiers, 
and  was  so  impressed  with  it  that  he  had  it  printed  in 
Richmond.  But  a  fire  destroyed  almost  the  entire 
edition,  and  the  book  was  not  circulated  until  it  was  repub- 
lished in  1866.  After  the  war  she  continued  her  literary 
activities  with  the  help  of  amanuenses.  She  wrote 
poetry,  stories,  reviews,  essays,  and  reminiscences,  and  kept 


i86  Southern  Literary  Readings 

up  a  voluminous  correspondence  with  many  literary  men 
and  women  of  her  day.  From  time  to  time  she  published 
collections  of  her  poems — Old  Songs  and  New,  Cartoons, 
For  Love's  Sake,  and  Colonial  Ballads. 

Elizabeth  Preston  Allan,  stepdaughter  and  biographer 
of  Mrs.  Preston,  says:  ''Margaret  Junkin  Preston  did  not 
claim  to  be  a  poet.  Her  standard  of  what  a  true  poet 
should  measure  up  to  was  so  high  that  she  repudiated, 
almost  indignantly,  that  claim  as  made  in  her  behalf 
by  the  lovers  and  admirers  of  her  writings.  She  called 
herself  a  'singer  with  a  slender  trill,'  and  declared  that 
there  were  those  for  whom  the  lark  and  nightingale  soared 
with  a  song  too  distant,  who  yet  listened  with  pleasure  to 
her  'quiet  cooings  in  the  leafy  dark';  for  them,  she  said, 
she  sang;  but  let  no  one  think  she  aspired  to  be  called 
lark  or  nightingale.  Nevertheless,  the  claim  was  made 
for  her  during  her  lifetime,  and  steadily  persists,  now  that 
her  voice  has  been  hushed  by  the  Great  Silence,  that  she 
was  a  true  poet,  and  one  of  no  mean  rank.  There  is, 
indeed,  much  of  her  verse  which  fits  her  own  modest  esti- 
mate of  her  writings;  and  were  she  judged  by  this  'quiet 
cooing,'  the  name  'poet'  might  be  found  too  large  for  her; 
but  she  coiild  leave  these  level  fields,  when  she  willed, 
and  rise  to  heights  of  imagination,  passion,  and  poetic 
feeling;  nor  did  she  lack  words  that  'breathe  and  bum' 
in  which  to  give  utterance  to  her  inspiration." 

Excepting  in  the  troublous  times  of  the  Civil  War,  Mrs. 
Preston's  life  was  a  quiet  one;  and  yet  she  did  a  great 
work  in  the  world.  She  was  a  devoted  mother  to  her 
own  and  her  stepchildren,  and  all  who  knew  her  in  her 
home  rise  up  to  call  her  blessed.  She  gave  her  talents 
and  her  energies  to  the  cause  of  her  adopted  section.  She 
wrote  some  of  the  purest  poetry  that  ever  came  from  the 
brain  and  heart  of  a  woman.  She  lived  a  beautiful 
Christian  life,  and  as  Professor  James  A.  Harrison  of  the 
University  of  Virginia  says,  she  deserves  the  threefold 
appellation  of  woman,  poet,  saint. 

(The  standard  work  on  Mrs.  Preston  is  The  Life  and  Letters  of 
Margaret  Junkin  Preston  by  her  stepdaughter  Elizabeth  Preston 
Allan.) 


GONE  FORWARD 
I 
Yes,  "Let  the  tent  be  struck":  Victorious  morning 

Through  every  crevice  flashes  in  a  day 
Magnificent  beyond  all  earth's  adorning : 
The  night  is  over;  wherefore  should  he  stay? 
And  wherefore  should  our  voices  choke  to  say,  s 

"The  General  has  gone  forward"? 

II 

Life's  foughten  field  not  once  beheld  surrender; 

But  with  superb  endtirance,  present,  past, 
Our  pure  Commander,  lofty,  simple,  tender, 

Through  good,  through  ill,  held  his  high  ptirpose  fast,    lo 

Wearing  his  armor  spotless, — till  at  last, 
Death  gave  the  final,  ''Forward." 

Ill 
All  hearts  grew  sudden  palsied:  Yet  what  said  he 

Thus  summoned? — ''Let  the  tent  be  struck!'' — For  when 
Did  call  of  duty  fail  to  find  him  ready  15 

Nobly  to  do  his  work  in  sight  of  men. 
For  God's  and  for  his  country's  sake — and  then. 
To  watch,  wait,  or  go  forward? 

IV 

We  will  not  weep, — we  dare  not!    Such  a  story 

As  his  large  life  writes  on  the  century's  years,  20 

Should  crowd  our  bosoms  with  a  flush  of  glory, 
That  manhood's  type,  supremest  that  appears 
To-day,  he  shows  the  ages.     Nay,  no  tears 
Because  he  has  gone  forward ! 

[187] 


i88  Southern  Literary  Readings 

V 

25  Gone  forward? — Whither? — Where  the  marshall'd  legions, 
Christ's  well-worn  soldiers,  from  their  conflicts  cease;  — 
Where  Faith's  true  Red-cross   knights  repose  in  regions 
Thick-studded  with  the  calm,  white  tents  of  peace, — 
Thither,  right  jo3rful  to  accept  release, 

80  The  General  has  gone  forward ! 


THE  SHADE  OF  THE  TREES 

What  are  the  thoughts  that  are  stirring  his  breast  ? 

What  is  the  mystical  vision  he  sees? 
— '^Let  us  pass  over  the  river  and  rest 
Under  the  shade  oj  the  trees.'' 

5     Has  he  grown  sick  of  his  toils  and  his  tasks? 
Sighs  the  worn  spirit  for  respite  or  ease? 
Is  it  a  moment's  cool  halt  that  he  asks 
Under  the.shade  of  the  trees  ? 

Is  it  the  gurgle  of  waters  whose  flow 
10         Oft-time  has  come  to  him,  borne  on  the  breeze, 
Memory  listens  to,  lapsing  so  low. 

Under  the  shade  of  the  trees? 

Nay — though  the  rasp  of  the  flesh  was  so  sore, 
Faith  that  had  yearnings  far  keener  than  these, 
13     vSaw  the  soft  sheen  of  the  Thitherward  Shore, 
Under  the  shade  of  th.e  trees; — 

Caught  the  high  psalms  of  ecstatic  delight, — 

Heard  the  harps  harping,  like  soundings  of  seas,- 
Watched  earth's  assoiled  ones  walking  in  white 
w  Under  the  shade  of  the  trees. 


The  Color-bearer  i8g 

O,  was  it  strange  he  should  pine  for  release, 
Touched  to  the  soul  with  such  transports  as 
these, — 
He  who  so  needed  the  balsam  of  peace, 
Under  the  shade  of  the  trees  ? 

Yea,  it  was  noblest  for  him — it  was  best 

(Questioning  naught  of  our  Father's  decrees) 
There  to  pass  over  the  river  and  rest 
Under  the  shade  of  the  trees ! 


THE    COLOR- BEARER 

The  shock  of  battle  swept  the  lines, 

And  wounded  men  and  slain 
Lay  thick  as  lie  in  summer  fields 

The  ridgy  swathes  of  grain. 

The  deadly  phalanx  belched  its  fire. 

The  raking  cannon  pealed, 
The  lightning-flash  of  bayonets 

Went  glittering  round  the  field. 

On  rushed  the  steady  Twenty-fourth 

Against  the  bristling  guns, 
As  if  their  gleams  could  daunt  no  more 

Than  that  October  sun's. 

It  mattered  not  though  heads  went  down, 
Though  gallant  steps  were  stayed. 

Though  rifles  dropped  from  bleeding  hands, 
And  ghastly  gaps  were  made, — 


tgo  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"Close  up!" — was  still  the  stern  command, 
And  with  unwavering  tread, 

They  held  right  on,  though  well  they  knew 
They  tracked  their  way  with  dead. 

As  fast  they  pressed  with  laboring  breath, 
Clinched  teeth  and  knitted  frown, 

The  sharp,  arrestive  cry  rang  out, — 
* '  The  color-bearer 's  down ! " 

Quick  to  the  front  sprang,  at  the  word, 

The  youngest  of  the  band, 
And  caught  the  flag  still  tightly  held 

Within  the  fallen  hand. 

With  cheer  he  reared  it  high  again, 
I  Yet  claimed  one  instant's  pause 

To  lift  the  dying  head  and  see 
What  comrade's  face  it  was. 

0 

"Forward!" — the  captain  shouted  loud. 
Still  "Forward!"— and  the  men 
i  Snatched  madly  up  the  shrill  command. 

And  shrieked  it  out  again. 

But  like  a  statue  stood  the  boy. 

Without  a  foot's  advance. 
Until  the  captain  shook  his  arm, 
)  And  roused  him  from  his  trance. 

His  home  had  flashed  upon  his  sight, 

The  peaceful,  sunny  spot! 
He  did  not  hear  the  crashing  shells, 

Nor  heed  the  hissing  shot. 


The  Color-bearer  igi 

He  saw  his  mother  wring  her  hands, 

He  caught  his  sister's  shriek, — 
And  sudden  anguish  racked  his  brow, 

And  blanched  his  ruddy  cheek. 

The  touch  dissolved  the  spell, — he  knew, 

He  felt  the  fearful  stir; 
He  raised  his  head  and  softly  said, 

"He  was  my  brother,  sir!" 

Then  grasping  firm  the  crimson  flag 

He  flung  it  free  and  high. 
While  patriot-passion  stanched  his  grief, 

And  drank  its  channels  dry. 

Between  his  close-set  teeth  he  spake. 

And  hard  he  drew  his  breath, — 
"God  help  me,  sir, — I'll  bear  this  flag 

To  victory, — or  to  death!" 

The  bellowing  batteries  thundered  on, 

The  sulph'rous  smoke  rose  higher. 
And  from  the  columns  in  their  front. 

Poured  forth  the  galling  fire. 

But  where  the  bullets  thickest  fell. 

Where  hottest  raged  the  fight, 
The  steady  colors  tossed  aloft 

Their  blood-red  trail  of  light. 

Firm  and  indomitable  still 

The  Twenty-fourth  moved  on, 
A  dauntless  remnant  only  left, — 

The  staunch  three-score  were  gone ! 


ig2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

And  now  once  more  the  shout  arose 
Which  not  the  guns  could  drown, — 

"Ho,  boys! — Up  with  the  flag  again! 
The  color-bearer 's  down ! " 

They  strove  to  free  his  grasp, — but  fast 
He  clung  with  desperate  will ; 

"The  arm  that's  broken  is  my  left, 
See!  I  can  hold  it  still!" 

And  "Forward!  Twenty-fourth!'*  rang  out 

Above  the  deafening  roar, 
Till,  all  at  once,  the  colors  lowered, 

Sank,  and  were  seen  no  more. 

And  when  the  stubborn  fight  was  done, 

And  from  the  fast-held  field 
The  order'd  remnant  slow  retired, 

Too  resolute  to  yield, — 
t 
They  found  a  boy  whose  face  still  wore 

A  look  resolved  and  grand. 
Who  held  a  riddled  flag  close  clutched 

Within  his  shatter'd  hand. 


ABRAM  JOSEPH  RYAN 


From  a  photograph 


ABRAM  JOSEPH  RYAN 

"These  verses  (which  some  friends  call  by  the  higher 
title  of  poems — to  which  appellation  the  author  objects) 
were  written  at  random — off  and  on,  here,  there,  any- 
where— just  when  the  mood  came,  with  little  of  study 
and  less  of  art,  and  always  in  a  hurry." 

Such  are  the  opening  words  of  Father  Ryan's  brief 
preface  to  his  volume  of  poems.  He  goes  on  to  say  that 
he  does  not  expect  to  be  ranked  even  in  the  lowest  place 
among  authors,  and  yet  somehow,  he  can  hardly  tell  why, 
he  has  tried  to  sing.  And  somehow,  we  can  hardly  tell 
why,  his  simple,  unambitious  songs  have  sunk  deep  into 
the  hearts  of  his  people.  While  some  of  the  critics  have 
continued  to  point  out  the  trivial  faults  and  inartistic 
blemishes  of  his  verse,  his  poems  hold  their  place  in  the 
popular  regard,  The  Conquered  Banner  and  The  Sword  of 
Robert  Lee  being  especial  favorites. 

Abram  Joseph  Ryan — better  known,  from  his  priestly 
office,  as  "Father  Ryan" — was  born  at  Norfolk,  Virginia, 
August  15,  1839,  his  parents  being  Irish  immigrants  who 
had  shortly  before  landed  in  America.  When  he  was  seven 
or  eight  years  of  age  his  parents  moved  to  St.  Louis, 
where  he  was  put  into  a  Roman  Catholic  school.  He 
had  a  fine  mind,  and  even  as  a  boy  he  showed  the  deeply 
religious  tendency  of  his  nature.  This  tendency  led  him, 
early  in  his  teens,  to  resolve  to  enter  the  priesthood.  He 
studied  in  the  Roman  Catholic  Seminary  at  Niagara,  New 
York,  and  was  consecrated  as  a  priest  in  186 1.  He  im- 
mediately afterward  joined  the  Confederate  Army,  and 
served,  either  as  chaplain  or  soldier,  throughout  the 
war.  He  appeared  to  court  death  in  any  form,  taking 
his  place  in  the  front  rank  in  battle,  attending  the 
wounded  and  dying  amid  flying  bullets,  and  serving  in" 
prisons  during  smallpox  epidemics.  But  he  was  spared 
for  twenty  years  or  more,  to  comfort  many  a  wearier 
heart  than  his  own. 

13  {i93\ 


ig4  Southern  Literary  Readings 

After  the  war  he  moved  around  from  place  to  place,  doing 
priestly  service  in  various  Southern  cities,  among  them 
being  Nashville  and  Knoxville,  Tennessee;  Augusta, 
Georgia;  and  Mobile,  Alabama.  He  founded  and  edited 
literary  and  religious  journals,  lectured,  wrote  verse,  and 
ministered  to  the  unfortunate.  He  was  finally  sent  to 
St.  Mary's  Church,  in  Mobile,  and  there  he  remained  for 
ten  years.  During  the  last  five  years  of  his  life,  being 
relieved  on  account  of  ill-health  from  his  active  priestly 
offices,  he  devoted  himself  to  literary  pursuits,  editing 
his  poems,  and  preparing  a  Life  of  Christ,  which  he  left 
unfinished  at  his  death.  He  died  at  the  Franciscan 
monastery  at  Louisville,  Kentucky,  April  22,  1886. 

(No  full  biography  of  Father  Ryan  has  been  written,  and  many 
facts  of  his  life  remain  obscure.  Perhaps  the  best  memoir  is  that 
by  John  Moran  in  the  Household  Edition  of  Father  Ryan's  Poems.) 


THE  CONQUERED  BANNER 

Furl  that  Banner,  for  'tis  weary; 
Round  its  staff  'tis  drooping  dreary; 

Furl  it,  fold  it,  it  is  best ; 
For  there 's  not  a  man  to  wave  it, 
And  there 's  not  a  sword  to  save  it, 
And  there 's  not  one  left  to  lave  it 
In  the  blood  which  heroes  gave  it; 
And  its  foes  now  scorn  and  brave  it ; 

Furl  it,  hide  it — let  it  rest! 

Take  that  Banner  down!  'tis  tattered; 
Broken  is  its  staff  and  shattered; 
And  the  valiant  hosts  are  scattered 

Over  whom  it  floated  high. 
Oh!  'tis  hard  for  us  to  fold  it; 
Hard  to  think  there 's  none  to  hold  it; 


The  Conquered  Banner  ig^ 

Hard  that  those  who  once  unrolled  it 
Now  must  furl  it  with  a  sigh. 


Furl  that  Banner!  furl  it  sadly! 
Once  ten  thousands  hailed  it  gladly, 
And  ten  thousands  wildly,  madly. 

Swore  it  should  forever  wave ; 
Swore  that  foeman's  sword  should  never 
Hearts  like  theirs  entwined  dissever, 
Till  that  flag  should  float  forever 

O'er  their  freedom  or  their  grave! 

Furl  it !  for  the  hands  that  grasped  it, 
And  the  hearts  that  fondly  clasped  it, 

Cold  and  dead  are  lying  low; 
And  that  Banner — it  is  trailing! 
While  around  it  sounds  the  wailing 

Of  its  people  in  their  woe. 

For,  though  conquered,  they  adore  it ! 
Love  the  cold,  dead  hands  that  bore  it ! 
Weep  for  those  who  fell  before  it ! 
Pardon  those  who  trailed  and  tore  it ! 
But,  oh!  wildly  they  deplore  it. 
Now  who  furl  and- fold  it  so. 

Furl  that  Banner!    True,  'tis  gory, 
Yet  'tis  wreathed  around  with  glory, 
And  't  will  live  in  song  and  story, 

Though  its  folds  are  vc\  the  dust : 
For  its  fame  on  brightest  pages, 
Penned  by  poets  and  by  sages, 


i()6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Shall  go  sounding  down  the  ages — 
Furl  its  folds  though  now  we  must. 

Furl  that  Banner,  softly,  slowly ! 
Treat  it  gently — it  is  holy — 

For  it  droops  above  the  dead. 
Touch  it  not — unfold  it  never, 
Let  it  droop  there,  furled  forever, 

For  its  people's  hopes  are  dead ! 


THE  SWORD  OF  ROBERT  LEE 

Forth  from  its  scabbard,  pure  and  bright, 

Flashed  the  sword  of  Lee ! 
Far  in  the  front  of  the  deadly  fight. 
High  o'er  the  brave  in  the  cause  of  Right, 
Its  stainless  sheen,  like  a  beacon  light. 

Led  us  to  "Victory ! 

Out  of  its  scabbard,  where,  full  long. 

It  slumbered  peacefully, 
Roused  from  its  rest  by  the  battle's  song. 
Shielding  the  feeble,  smiting  the  strong, 
Guarding  the  right,  avenging  the  wrong, 

Gleamed  the  sword  of  Lee ! 

Forth  from  its  scabbard,  high  in  air 

Beneath  Virginia's  sky — 
And  they  who  saw  it  gleaming  there, 
And  knew  who  bore  it,  knelt  to  swear 
That  where  that  sword  led  they  would  dare 

To  follow — and  to  die! 


The  Sword  of  Robert  Lee  igy 

Out  of  its  scabbard !    Never  hand 

Waved  sword  from  stain  as  free, 
Nor  purer  sword  led  braver  band, 
Nor  braver  bled  for  a  brighter  land, 
Nor  brighter  land  had  a  cause  so  grand, 
Nor  cause  a  chief  like  Lee ! 

Forth  from  its  scabbard !     How  we  prayed 

That  sword  might  victor  be ; 
And  when  ovlt  triumph  was  delayed. 
And  many  a  heart  grew  sore  afraid, 
We  still  hoped  on  while  gleamed  the  blade 

Of  noble  Robert  Lee ! 

Forth  from  its  scabbard  all  in  vain 

Bright  flashed  the  sword  of  Lee ; 
'T  is  shrouded  now  in  its  sheath  again, 
It  sleeps  the  sleep  of  our  noble  slain, 
Defeated,  yet  without  a  stain, 

Proudly  and  peacefully ! 


LUCIUS  QUINTUS  CINCINNATUS  LAMAR 

Lucius  Quintus  Cincinnatus  Lamar  was  bom  in  Putnam 
County,  Georgia,  September  17,  1825.  He  was  of  a 
notable  Georgia  family,  his  father,  whose  full  name 
he  bore,  being  a  judge  in  the  Georgia  courts  and  his 
uncle,  Mirabeau  B.  Lamar,  a  poet,  soldier,  and  states- 
man famous  in  the  history  of  the  Republic  of  Texas. 
As  a  boy,  Lucius  did  not  show  any  marked  indication  of 
his  future  greatness.  He  was  a  quiet,  thoughtful,  pure- 
minded,  and  faithful  lad,  but  not  at  all  brilliant  in  his 
school  work.  He  was  of  frail  physique,  and  the  man- 
ual labor  which  was  a  part  of  the  regular  work  of  the 
school  he  attended  near  Covington  did  much  toward 
developing  him  and  hardening  his  constitution.  He 
rarely  took  part  in  the  sports  of  the  other  boys,  but 
sought  retirement  and  spent  much  time  in  solitary  musing. 
He  was  not  especially  good  in  his  lessons,  and  his  teachers 
and  companions  interpreted  his  absent-mindedness  as  an 
evidence  of  dullness;  but  there  was  in  this  sober,  thought- 
ful boy  the  making  of  a  remarkable  man. 

When  he  was  old  enough  to  enter  college,  he  was  sent 
to  Emory  College,  Oxford,  Georgia.  Here  he  was  gradu- 
ated in  1845.  He  had  in  his  early  school  life  shown 
a  predilection  for  oratory  and  debate,  and  when  he 
entered  college  he  at  once  took  rank  among  the  best 
debaters  there,  always  winning  a  speaker's  place  for 
the  formal  public  meetings  of  the  debating  society  to 
which  he  belonged. 

After  his  graduation  he  took  up  the  study  of  law  under 
Judge  A.  H.  Chappell  of  Macon,  Georgia,  and  on  his 
admission  to  the  bar  was  invited  to  become  the  law  part- 
ner of  his  preceptor.  In  the  year  that  he  was  admitted 
to  the  bar,  Mr.  Lamar  married  Miss  Virginia  Longstreet, 
the  daughter  of  Judge  A.  B.  Longstreet,  author  of  Georgia 
Scenes.  Two  years  later,  when  Judge  Longstreet  was 
called  to  the  presidency  of  the  University  of  Mississippi, 

[198] 


From  a  photograph 
LUCIUS  QUINTUS  CINCTNNATUS  LAMAR 


Lucius  Quintus  Cincinnatus  Lamar  igg 

Mr.  Lamar  removed  to  Oxford,  Mississippi,  to  practice 
law.  He  became  for  a  time  an  adjunct  professor  of 
mathematics  in  the  university,  but  he  did  not  give  up 
his  law  practice.  It  was  here  that  he  began  his  career 
as  a  political  speaker,  in  his  debate  with  Senator  Foote 
of  Mississippi.  The  States  Rights  party  had  no  champion ; 
Mr.  Lamar  was  asked  to  meet  the  distinguished  senator, 
and  the  result  was  a  triumph  for  the  young  orator. 

Then  the  state  of  Georgia  lured  her  son  back  for  a 
time.  In  1852  he  went  to  Carrington  and  formed  a  law 
partnership  with  his  old  college  friend  Robert  G.  Harper. 
In  1853  he  was  elected  to  the  Georgia  Legislature.  In 
1855  he  returned  to  Mississippi  and  purchased  a  planta- 
tion which  he  called  "Solitude."  Here  on  his  broad  acres 
with  his  slaves  about  him,  he  lived  the  secluded  life  of 
a  Southern  planter.  But  he  was  not  long  to  remain 
in  the  retirement  of  ''Solitude,"  for  in  1857  he  was  sent 
by  the  people  of  his  state  to  represent  them  in  Congress. 

Mr.  Lamar  made  a  strong  impression  as  a  ready  debater, 
but  he  had  hardly  begun  to  make  his  influence  felt  in 
Congress  when  the  question  of  secession  became  acute  in 
the  Southern  States,  and  he  resigned  and  retired  to  Oxford, 
Mississippi,  to  become  professor  of  ethics  and  metaphysics 
in  the  university.  But  the  classroom  was  not  the  place 
for  a  man  of  his  gifts  in  those  stirring  times.  He  joined 
the  Confederate  Army  in  the  first  year  of  the  struggle, 
and  speedily  rose  to  the  rank  of  lieutenant-colonel.  In 
the  later  years  of  the  war^  Colonel  Lamar  went  abroad  on 
the  prospect  of  appointment  to  a  diplomatic  post,  but 
some  hitch  occurred  and  his  nomination  as  ambassador 
to  Russia  was  not  confirmed  by  the  Confederate  Govern- 
ment. On  his  return  he  did  not  go  into  the  field  again, 
but  served  his  country  in  a  judicial  capacity  during 
the  remainder  of  the  war. 

When  peace  was  declared.  Colonel  Lamar  resumed  his 
duties  as  professor  of  ethics  and  metaphysics  in  the  State 
University  at  Oxford.  Some  years  later  he  was  made 
professor  of  law.  In  1873  he  was  again  called  into  politics 
and  sent  to  Congress.  He  had  served  hardly  a  year  when 
he  was  given  the  opportunity  to  make  a  great  speech  of 
reconciHation,  being  asked  to  second  the  resolution  for 


200  Southern  Literary  Readings 

the  suspension  of  public  business  out  of  respect  to  the 
memory  of  Senator  Charles  Sumner.  An  account  of  this 
speech,  its  reception,  and  its  influence  is  given  in  the  notes. 

It  will  be  impossible  here  to  follow,  except  in  barest  out- 
line, the  career  of  Justice  Lamar  from  this  point  to  the  end 
of  his  life.  In  1877  he  became  Senator  from  Mississippi, 
and  in  1885  he  was  appointed  Secretary  of  the  Interior 
by  President  Cleveland.  In  1887  he  was  nominated,  and 
in  1888  confirmed,  justice  of  the  Supreme  Court  of  the 
United  States.  He  filled  all  these  offices  with  credit  to 
himself  and  his  people,  and  his  fame  continued  to  grow 
brighter  and  brighter,  to  the  close  of  his  life.  He  died 
January  23,  1893,  ^^^  was  buried  at  Macon,  Georgia. 
It  is  not  as  a  writer  that  Justice  Lamar  is  chiefly  remem- 
bered; but  his  speeches  approach  pure  literature  in  their 
elegance  and  finish  of  structure  and  style.  There  is, 
perhaps,  no  better  example  of  the  eulogy  to  be  found  in 
the  body  of  our  literature  than  Lamar's  heart-moving 
speech  on  Charles  Sumner. 

(Dr.  Edward  Mayes,  formerly  Chancellor  of  the  University  of 
Mississippi,  is  the  author  of  a  valuable  volume  of  over  eight  hundred 
pages  on  the  Life,  Times,  and  Speeches  oj  L.  Q.  C.  Lamar.) 


EULOGY  ON   CHARLES   SUMNER 

Mr.  Speaker:  In  rising  to  second  the  resolutions  just 
offered,  I  desire  to  add  a  few  remarks  which  have  occurred 
to  me  as  appropriate  to  the  occasion.  I  beheve  that  they 
express  a  sentiment  which  pervades  the  hearts  of  all  the 
people  whose  Representatives  are  here  assembled.  Strange  s 
as,  in  looking  back  upon  the  past,  the  assertion  may  seem, 
impossible  as  it  would  have  been  ten  years  ago  to  make  it, 
it  is  not  the  less  true  that  to-day  Mississippi  regrets  the 
death  of  Charles  Sumner,  and  sincerely  unites  in  pay- 
ing honor  to  his  memory.  Not  because  of  the  splendor  of  lo 
his  intellect,  though  in  him  was  extinguished  one  of  the 
brightest  of  the  lights  which  have  illustrated  the  councils 
of  the  Government  for  nearly  a  quarter  of  a  century;  not 
because  of  the  high  culture,  the  elegant  scholarship,  and 
the  varied  learning  which  revealed  themselves  so  clearly  15 
in  all  his  public  efforts  as  to  justify  the  application  to  him 
of  Johnson's  felicitous  expression,  "He  touched  nothing 
which  he  did  not  adorn";  not  this,  though  these  are 
qualities  by  no  means,  it  is  to  be  feared,  so  common  in 
public  places  as  to  make  their  disappearance,  in  even  a  20 
single  instance,  a  matter  of  indifference;  but  because  of 
those  peculiar  and  strongly  marked  moral  traits  of  his 
character  which  gave  the  coloring  to  the  whole  tenor  of  his 
singularly  dramatic  public  career;  traits  which  made  him 
for  a  long  period  to  a  large  portion  of  his  countrymen  the  25 
object  of  as  deep  and  passionate  a  hostility  as  to  another 
he  was  one  of  enthusiastic  admiration,  and  which  are  not 
the  less  the  cause  that  now  unites  all  these  parties,  ever 
so  widely  differing,  in  a  common  sorrow  to-day  over  his 
lifeless  remains.  30 

[201] 


202  Southern  Literary  Readings 

It  is  of  these  high  moral  qualities  which  I  wish  to  speak ; 
for  these  have  been  the  traits  which  in  after  years,  as  I 
have  considered  the  successive  acts  and  utterances  of  this 
remarkable  man,  fastened  most  strongly  my  attention, 

35  and  impressed  themselves  most  forcibly  upon  my  imagina- 
tion, my  sensibilities,  my  heart.  I  leave  to  others  to  speak 
of  his  intellectual  superiority,  of  those  rare  gifts  with  which 
nature  had  so  lavishly  endowed  him,  and  of  the  power  to 
use  them  which  he  had  acquired  by  education.     I  say 

40  nothing  of  his  vast  and  varied  stores  of  historical  knowl- 
edge, or  of  the  wide  extent  of  his  reading  in  the  elegant 
literature  of  ancient  and  modern  times,  or  of  his  wonderful 
power  of  retaining  what  he  had  read,  or  of  his  readiness 
in  drawing  upon  these  fertile  resources  to  illustrate  his  own 

45  arguments.  I  say  nothing  of  his  eloquence  as  an  orator, 
of  his  skill  as  a  logician,  or  of  his  powers  of  fascination  in 
the  unrestrained  freedom  of  the  social  circle,  which  last 
it  was  my  misfortune  not  to  have  experienced.  These, 
indeed,  were  the  qualities  which  gave  him  eminence  not 

50  only  in  our  country  bi>t  throughout  the  world;  and  which 
have  made  the  name  of  Charles  Sumner  an  integral  part 
of  our  nation's  glory.  They  were  the  qualities  which  gave 
to  those  moral  traits  of  which  I  have  spoken  the  power 
to  impress  themselves  upon  the  history  of  the  age  and  of 

55  civilization  itself;  and  without  which  those  traits,  however 
intensely  developed,  would  have  exerted  no  influence 
beyond  the  personal  circle  immediately  surrounding  their 
possessor.  More  eloquent  tongues  than  mine  will  do  them 
justice.     Let  me  speak  of  the  characteristics  which  brought 

60  the  illustrious  Senator  who  has  just  passed  away  into 
direct  and  bitter  antagonism  for  years  with  my  own  State 
and  her  sister  States  of  the  South. 

Charles  Sumner  was  bom  with  an  instinctive  love  of 
freedom,  and  was  educated  from  his  earliest  infancy  to  the 


Eulogy  on  Charles  Sumner  20j 

belief  that  freedom  is  the  natural  and  indefeasible  right  of  65 
every  intelligent  being  having  the  outward  form  of  man. 
In  him  in  fact  this  creed  seems  to  have  been  something 
more  than  a  doctrine  imbibed  from  teachers,  or  a  result 
of  education.     To  him  it  was  a  grand  intuitive  truth 
inscribed  in  blazing  letters  upon  the  tablet  of  his  inner  70 
consciousness,  to  deny  which  would  have  been  for  him  to 
deny  that  he  himself  existed.     And  along  with  this  all- 
controlling  love  of  freedom  he  possessed  a  moral  sensibility 
keenly  intense  and  vivid,  a  conscientiousness  which  would 
never  permit  him  to  swerve  by  the  breadth  of  a  hair  from  75 
what  he  pictured  to  himself  as  the  path  of  duty.     Thus 
were  combined  in  him  the  characteristics  which  have  in 
all  ages  given  to  religion  her  martyrs,  and  to  patriotism  her 
self-sacrificing  heroes. 

To  a  man  thoroughly  permeated  and  imbued  with  such  so 
a  creed,  and  animated  and  constantly  actuated  by  such  a 
spirit  of  devotion,  to  behold  a  human  being  or  a  race  of 
human  beings  restrained  of  their  natiural  right  to  liberty, 
for  no  crime  by  him  or  them  committed,  was  to  feel  all  the 
belligerent  instincts  of  his  nature  roused  to  combat.     The  ss 
fact  was  to  him  a  wrong  which  no  logic  could  justify.     It 
mattered  not  how  humble  in  the  scale  of  rational  existence 
the  subject  of  this  restraint  might  be,  how  dark  his  skin, 
or  how  dense  his  ignorance.     Behind  all  that  lay  for  him 
the  great  principle  that  liberty  is  the  birthright  of  all  90 
humanity,  and  that  every  individual  of  every  race  who  has 
a  soul  to  save  is  entitled  to  the  freedom  which  may  enable 
him  to  work  out  his  salvation.     It  mattered  not  that  the 
slave  might  be  contented  with  his  lot ;  that  his  actual  con- 
dition might  be  immeasurably  more  desirable  than  that  95 
from  which  it  had  transplanted  him ;  that  it  gave  him  physi- 
cal comfort,  mental  and  moral  elevation,  and  religious 
culture  not  possessed  by  his  race  in  any  other  condition ; 


204  Southern  Literary  Readings 

that  his  bonds  had  not  been  placed  upon  his  hands  by 

100 the  Hving  generation;  that  the  mixed  social  system  of 
which  he  formed  an  element  had  been  regarded  by  the 
fathers  of  the  Republic,  and  by  the  ablest  statesmen  who 
had  risen  up  after  them,  as  too  complicated  to  be  broken 
up  without  danger  to  society,  itself,  or  even  to  civilization ; 

105  or  finally,  that  the  actual  state  of  things  had  been  recog- 
nized and  explicitly  sanctioned  by  the  very  organic  law 
of  the  Republic.  Weighty  as  these  considerations  might 
be,  formidable  as  were  the  difficulties  in  the  way  of  the 
practical  enforcement  of  his  great  principle,  he  held  none 

no  the  less  that  it  must  sooner  or  later  be  enforced,  though 
institutions  and  constitutions  should  have  to  give  way 
alike  before  it.  But  here  let  me  do  this  great  man  the 
justice  which  amid  the  excitement  of  the  struggle  between 
the  sections,  now   past,   I  may  have  been  disposed  to 

115  deny  him.  In  this  fiery  zeal  and  this  earnest  warfare 
against  the  wrong,  as  he  viewed  it,  there  entered  no 
enduring  personal  animosity  toward  the  men  whose  lot  it 
was  to  be  born  to  the  System  which  he  denounced. 

It  has  been  the  kindness  of  the  sympathy  which  in  these 

120  later  years  he  has. displayed  toward  the  impoverished  and 
suffering  people  of  the  Southern  States  that  has  unveiled 
to  me  the  generous  and  tender  heart  which  beat  beneath 
the  bosom  of  the  zealot,  and  has  forced  me  to  yield  him  the 
tribute  of  my  respect,  I  might  even  say  of  my  admiration. 

125  Nor  in  the  manifestation  of  this  has  there  been  anything 
which  a  proud  and  sensitive  people,  smarting  under  a  sense 
of  recent  discomfiture  and  present  suffering,  might  not 
frankly  accept,  or  which  would  give  them  just  cause  to 
suspect  its  sincerity.     For  though  he  raised  his  voice,  as 

130  soon  as  he  believed  the  momentous  issues  of  this  great 
military  conflict  were  decided,  in  behalf  of  amnesty  to  the 
vanquished,  and  though  he  stood  forward  ready  to  welcome 


Eulogy  on  Charles  Sumner  205 

back  as  brothers  and  to  reestablish  in  their  rights  as  citizens 
those  whose  valor  had  so  nearly  riven  asunder  the  Union 
which  he  loved,  yet  he  always  insisted  that  the  most  ample  135 
protection  and  the  largest  safeguards  should  be  thrown 
around  the  liberties  of  the  newly  enfranchised  African 
race.  Though  he  knew  very  well  that  of  his  conquered 
fellow-citizens  of  the  South  by  far  the  larger  portion,  even 
those  who  most  heartily  acquiesced  in  and  desired  the  uo 
abolition  of  slavery,  seriously  questioned  the  expediency 
of  investing  in  a  single  day  and  without  any  preliminary 
tutelage  so  vast  a  body  of  inexperienced  and  uninstructed 
men  with  the  full  rights  of  freemen  and  voters,  he  would 
tolerate  no  half-way  measures  upon  a  point  to  him  so  vital,  us 

Indeed,  immediately  after  the  war,  while  other  minds 
were  occupying  themselves  with  different  theories  of  recon- 
struction, he  did  not  hesitate  to  impress  most  emphati- 
cally upon  the  administration,  not  only  in  public,  but  in 
the  confidence  of  private  intercourse,  his  uncompromising  150 
resolution  to  oppose  to  the  last  any  and  every  scheme  which 
should  fail  to  provide  the  surest  guarantees  for  the  personal 
freedom  and  political  rights  of  the  race  which  he  had  un- 
dertaken to  protect.  Whether  his  measures  to  secure  this 
result  showed  him  to  be  a  practical  statesman  or  a  theo- 155 
retical  enthusiast  is  a  question  on  which  any  decision  we 
may  pronounce  to-day  must  await  the  inevitable  revision 
of  posterity.  The  spirit  of  magnanimity,  therefore,  which 
breathes  in  his  utterances  and  manifests  itself  in  all  his 
acts  affecting  the  South  during  the  last  two  years  of  his  leo 
life,  was  as  evidently  honest  as  it  was  grateful  to  the  feel- 
ings of  those  toward  whom  it  was  displayed. 

It  was  certainly  a  gracious  act  toward  the  South — though 
unhappily  it  jarred  upon  the  sensibilities  of  the  people  at 
the  other  extreme  of  the  Union,  and  estranged  from  him  i65 
the  great  body  of  his  political  friends — to  propose  to  erase 


2o6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

from  the  banners  of  the  national  army  the  mementos  of 
the  bloody  internecine  struggle,  which  might  be  regarded 
as  assailing  the  pride  or  wounding  the  sensibilities  of  the 

170  Southern  people.  That  proposal  will  never  be  forgotten 
by  that  people  so  long  as  the  name  of  Charles  Sumner  lives 
in  the  memory  of  man.  But  while  it  touched  the  heart  of 
the  South  and  elicited  her  profound  gratitude,  her  people 
would  not  have  asked  of  the  North  such  an  act  of  self- 

175  renunciation. 

Conscious  that  they  themselves  were  animated  by  devo- 
tion to  constitutional  liberty,  and  that  the  brightest  pages 
of  history  are  replete  with  evidences  of  the  depth  and  sin- 
cerity of  that  devotion,  they  cannot  but  cherish  the  recol- 

180  lections  of  sacrifices  endured,  the  battles  fought,  and  the 
victories  won  in  defense  of  their  hapless  cause.  And  respect- 
ing, as  all  true  and  brave  men  must  respect,  the  martial 
spirit  with  which  the  men  of  the  North  vindicated  the  in- 
tegrity of  the  Union,  and  their  devotion  to  the  principles 

185  of  human  freedom,  they  do  not  ask,  they  do  not  wish,  the 
North  to  strike  the  Aiementos  of  her  heroism  and  victory 
from  either  records  or  monuments  or  battle  flags.  They 
would  rather  that  both  sections  should  gather  up  the  glories 
won  by  each  section,  not  envious,  but  proud  of  each  other, 

190  and  regard  them  a  common  heritage  of  American  valor.  Let 
us  hope  that  future  generations,  when  they  remember  the 
deeds  of  heroism  and  devotion  done  on  both  sides,  will 
speak  not  of  Northern  prowess  and  Southern  courage,  but  of 
the  heroism,  fortitude,  and  courage  of  Americans  in  a  war  of 

195  ideas — a  war  in  which  each  section  signalized  its  consecra- 
tion to  the  principles,  as  each  understood  them,  of  American 
liberty  and  of  the  constitution  received  from  their  fathers. 
It  was  my  misfortune,  perhaps  my  fault,  personally  never 
to  have  known  this  eminent  philanthropist  and  statesman. 

200  The  impulse  was  often  strong  upon  me  to  go  to  him  and  offer 


Eulogy  on  Charles  Sumner  2oy 

him  my  hand,  and  my  heart  with  it,  and  to  express  to  him 
my  thanks  for  his  kind  and  considerate  course  toward 
the  people  with  whom  I  am  identified.  If  I  did  not  yield 
to  that  impulse,  it  was  because  the  thought  occurred  that 
other  days  were  coming  in  which  such  a  demonstration  205 
might  be  more  opportune  and  less  liable  to  misconstruc- 
tion. Suddenly,  and  without  premonition,  a  day  has  come 
at  last  to  which,  for  such  a  purpose,  there  is  no  to-morrow. 
My  regret  is  therefore  intensified  by  the  thought  that  I 
failed  to  speak  to  him  out  of  the  fullness  of  my  heart  while  210 
there  was  yet  time. 

How  often  is  it  that  death  thus  brings  unavailingly  back 
to  our  remembrance  opportunities  unimproved;  in  which 
generous  overtures,  prompted  by  the  heart,  remain 
unoff ered ;  frank  avowals  which  rose  to  the  lips  remain  213 
unspoken;  and  the  injustice  and  wrong  of  bitter  resent- 
ments remain  unrepaired!  Charles  Sumner  in  life 
believed  that  all  occasion  for  strife  and  distrust  between 
the  North  and  South  had  passed  away,  and  that  there 
no  longer  remained  any  cause  for  continued  estrangement  220 
between  these  two  sections  of  our  common  country.  Are 
there  not  many  of  us  who  believe  the  same  thing  ?  Is  not 
that  the  common  sentiment,  or  if  it  is  not  ought  it  not 
to  be,  of  the  great  mass  of  our  people  North  and  South  ? 
Bound  to  each  other  by  a  common  constitution,  destined  225 
to  live  together  under  a  common  government,  forming 
unitedly  but  a  single  member  of  the  great  family  of  nations, 
shall  we  not  now  at  last  endeavor  to  grow  toward  each  other 
once  more  in  heart,  as  we  are  already  indissolubly  linked  to 
each  other  in  fortunes  ?  Shall  we  not,  over  the  honored  230 
remains  of  this  great  champion  of  human  liberty,  this 
feeling  sympathizer  with  human  sorrow,  this  earnest 
pleader  for  the  exercise  of  human  tenderness  and  charity, 
lay  aside  the  concealments  which  serve  only  to  perpetuate 


2o8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

235  misunderstandings  and  distrust,  and  frankly  confess  that 
on  both  sides  we  most  earnestly  desire  to  be  one ;  one  not 
merely  in  political  organization;  one  not  merely  in  iden- 
tity of  institutions;  one  not  merely  in  community  of  lan- 
guage and   literature  and  traditions  and  country;  but 

240  more,  and  better  than  all  that,  one  also  in  feeling  and  in 
heart  ?    Am  I  mistaken  in  this  ? 

Do  the  concealments  of  which  I  speak  still  cover  ani- 
mosities which  neither  time  nor  reflection  nor  the  march 
of  events  has  yet  sufficed  to  subdue?     I  cannot  believe  it. 

245  Since  I  have  been  here  I  have  watched  with  anxious 
scrutiny  your  sentiments  as  expressed  not  merely  in  public 
debate,  but  in  the  abandon  of  personal  confidence.  I 
know  well  the  sentiments  of  these  my  Southern  brothers, 
whose  hearts  are  so  infolded  that  the  feeling  of  each  is  the 

250  feeling  of  all ;  and  I  see  on  both  sides  only  the  seeming  of 
a  constraint,  which  each  apparently  hesitates  to  dismiss. 
The  South — prostrate,  exhausted,  drained  of  her  lifeblood, 
as  well  as  of  her  material  resources,  yet  still  honorable  and 
true — accepts  the  bitter  award  of  the  bloody  arbitrament 

255  without  reservation,  resolutely  determined  to  abide  the  re- 
sult with  chivalrous  fidelity;  yet,  as  if  struck  dumb  by  the 
magnitude  of  her  reverses,  she  suffers  on  in  silence.  The 
North,  exultant  in  her  triumph,  and  elated  by  success, 
still  cherishes,  as  we  are  assured,  a  heart  full  of  magnani- 

26omous  emotions  toward  her  disarmed  and  discomfited 
antagonist;  and  yet,  as  if  mastered  by  some  mysterious 
spell,  silencing  her  better  impulses,  her  words  and  acts  are 
the  words  and  acts  of  suspicion  and  distrust. 

Would  that  the  spirit  of  the  illustrious  dead  whom  we 

265  lainent  to-day  could  speak  from  the  grave  to  both  parties 
to  this  deplorable  discord  in  tones  which  should  reach  each 
and  every  heart  throughout  this  broad  territory,  *  *  My  coun- 
tr3mien!  know  one  another,  and  you  will  love  one  another." 


From  a  print  after  a  portrait.    Courtesy  of 
Henry  W.  Lanier 
SIDNEY  LANIER 


SIDNEY  LANIER 

In  one  of  his  earlier  poems,  called  Life  and  Song,  Sidney 
Lanier  says  that  none  of  the  poets  has  ever  yet  so  per- 
fectly united  the  ideal  of  his  minstrelsy  with  the  reality  of 
his  daily  life  as  to  cause  the  world  in  wonder  to  exclaim : 

"His  song  was  only  living  aloud, 

His  work,  a  singing  with  his  hand!" 

but  so  near  did  Lanier  himself  come  to  a  realization  of 
his  ideal  of  "a  perfect  life  in  perfect  labor  writ,"  that 
the  ever  growing  circle  of  his  admirers  is  ready  to  place 
him  among  that  very  small  number  of  the  gifted  sons 
of  genius  who  have  nobly  conceived  and  nobly  striven 
toward  the  ideal.  Outwardly  his  life  was  a  hard  one. 
The  story  of  his  struggle  against  poverty,  disease,  and 
adversity  often  has  been  told,  but  not  too  often,  for  it 
is  as  inspiring  as  it  is  pathetic.  It  is  the  old,  old  story  of 
genius  making  its  way  in  spite  of  all  obstructions. 

Sidney  Lanier  was  bom  at  Macon,  Georgia,  February  3 , 
1842.  His  father,  Robert  S.  Lanier,  was  a  fairly  success- 
ful lawyer  who  was  able  to  keep  his  family  in  that  moderate 
degree  of  comfort  which  seems  conducive  to  the  highest 
happiness  in  home  life.  The  simple  little  cottage  in  which 
Sidney  was  born  was  the  scene  of  many  a  hospitable  gather- 
ing of  friends  and  neighbors  at  impromptu  family  musical 
entertainments.  The  three  children,  Sidney,  Clifford, 
and  Gertrude,  as  well  as  the  father  and  mother,  were 
talented  in  music,  and  each  member  of  the  family  con- 
tributed to  the  home  concerts.  The  Laniers  had  for  many 
generations  been  distinguished  for  their  attainments  in 
various  kinds  of  artistic  expression,  particularly  in  paint- 
ing and  in  music.  Sidney  early  showed  his  remarkable 
musical  talent,  becoming  a  performer  on  almost  all  kinds 
of  instruments  at  an  early  age,  learning  with  that 
ease  and  rapidity  which  come  only  from  natural  genius. 
He  was  so  fascinated  by  the  music  of  the  violin  that 
he  would  sometimes  fall  into  deep  reveries  or  trances  as 

14  [20p] 


210  Southern  Literary  Readings 

he  played.  His  father,  fearing  the  power  of  the  instru- 
ment over  the  boy  and  not  wishing  him  to  become  a 
professional  musician,  forbade  him  to  practice  on  it ;  and 
Sidney  turned  to  the  instrument  which  after  the  violin 
most  appealed  to  him,  the  flute.  On  this  he  produced 
marvelous  effects,  not  only  fascinating  his  schoolmates 
at  Oglethorpe  College  and  his  fellow  soldiers  during  the 
Civil  War,  but  later  earning  as  a  professional  the  distinc- 
tion of  being  the  greatest  flute-player  in  the  world.  The 
sweetness,  mellowness,  and  passionate  appeal  of  the  tones 
of  his  flute  are  said  to  have  held  all  hearers  spellbound. 
He  could  imitate  bird  notes  with  ease,  and  was  even  able 
to  obtain  in  his  extemporized  variations  and  embellish- 
ments tones  imitative  of  those  of  the  violin.  He  was 
not  merely  a  virtuoso,  but  a  composer  as  well. 

But  later  on  we  find  the  conviction  taking  possession  of 
Lanier  that  he  must  be  a  poet.  He  writes  to  his  father, 
"Gradually  I  find  that  my  whole  soul  is  merging  itself 
into  this  business  of  writing."  He  had  begun  while  at 
college  to  test  his  powers  as  a  writer.  He  was  ambitious 
to  prepare  himself  by  study  in  Germany  for  a  college 
professorship,  but  the  war  came  on,  and  like  many  another 
talented  young  Southerner,  he  threw  himself  with  great 
enthusiasm  into  the  cause  of  the  Confederacy.  He 
entered  the  army  as  a  private,  and  rather  than  accept 
promotion  which  would  separate  him  from  his  brother 
Clifford,  he  remained  such.  Near  the  close  of  the  war, 
when  both  he  and  Clifford  were  put  in  charge  of  blockade- 
running  vessels,  Sidney  was  captured  and  confined  for  five 
months  in  the  Federal  prison  at  Point  Lookout.  During 
the  war,  Lanier  did  not  neglect  his  mental  development. 
He  read  all  the  books  he  could  lay  hands  on,  studied 
German,  translated  many  poems  from  foreign-  languages, 
and  played  on  his  beloved  flute  whenever  he  had  an 
opportunity  to  do  so.  He  began  work  on  a  novel  in  which 
he  made  use  of  some  of  the  experiences  and  aspirations 
of  this  period.  This  immature  production  was  pviblished 
shortly  after  the  war,  under  the  title  of  Tiger  Lilies, 

Returning  home  from  prison  just  in  time  to  see  his 
mother  before  her  death,  he  sadly  set  to  work  to  make 
a  living  for  himself  and  thus  to  help  retrieve  the  broken 


Sidney  Lanier  211 

fortunes  of  the  family.  He  began  teaching  as  a  tutor  on  a 
plantation  near  Macon,  and  then  he  became  a  clerk  in  the 
old  Exchange  Hotel  at  Montgomery,  Alabama.  In  1867 
he  accepted  the  principalship  of  the  village  school  at  Pratt- 
ville,  Alabama,  and  it  was  while  he  was  occupying  this 
position  that  he  married  Miss  Mary  Day  of  Macon, 
Georgia.  Lanier  was  now  writing  poetry  with  a  serious 
purpose,  and  the  new  and  rich  emotions  incident  to  his 
love,  courtship,  and  marriage  were  blossoming  forth  into 
many  beautiful  tributes  to  the  object  of  his  lifelong  devo- 
tion. No  more  exquisite  love  poem  is  to  be  found  in  our 
literature  than  My  Springs. 

After  his  marriage,  Lanier  decided  to  become  a  lawyer 
in  order  to  be  able  to  provide  more  adequately  for  his 
family.  He  went  to  Macon  to  study  with  the  firm  of  which 
his  father  was  a  member,  and  he  was  shortly  afterward 
admitted  to  the  bar.  He  did  not  practice  long,  however, 
for  clients  came  slowly,  and  he  was  inwardly  yearning 
for  a  literary  career.  He  said  he  had  in  his  heart  a 
thousand  songs  that  were  oppressing  him  because  they 
remained  unsung.  His  health  was  already  beginning  to 
fail,  and  from  this  time  on  he  fought  a  brave  but  losing 
fight  against  consumption.  He  spent  some  time  in  San 
Antonio,  Texas,  in  the  winter  of  1872. 

The  next  year  he  determined  to  go  to  the  North  or 
East,  where  he  could  find  encouragement  and  opportunity 
to  devote  himself  to  the  twin  arts  of  music  and  poetry. 
He  was  engaged  as  first  flute  in  the  Peabody  Symphony 
Concerts  in  Baltimore,  and  for  the  remaining  nine  years 
of  his  life  he  reveled  in  the  musical  and  scholarly  atmos- 
phere of  this  and  other  eastern  cities.  He  soon  made  warm 
friends  of  many  notable  persons,  such  as  Bayard  Taylor, 
Charlotte  Cushman,  Gibson  Peacock  of  Philadelphia, 
Leopold  Damrosch,  President  Gilman,  and  others.  Again 
he  was  under  the  necessity  of  being  separated  from  his 
family;  but  while  these  enforced  periods  of  separation 
were  extremely  painful  to  the  poet  and  his  wife,  the  general 
public  may  count  them  fortunate,  in  that  they  were  the 
occasion  of  a  series  of  beautiful  personal  letters  giving 
the  musical  impressions  and  aspirations  of  the  poet- 
musician.     Lanier  ranks  easily  among  the    first    letter 


212  Southern  Literary  Readings 

writers  of  America.  The  brief  selections  from  his  letters 
found  in  this  book  are  wholly  inadequate  to  give  one  a 
just  appreciation  of  the  fullness  with  which  the  poet  has 
expressed  himself  by  means  of  the  delicate  art  of  personal 
correspondence.  Students  who  are  interested  in  his  life 
or  in  this  kind  of  composition  should  read  the  published 
volume  of  his  letters. 

The  later  years  of  the  poet's  life,  while  consciously 
devoted  to  art,  were  a  struggle  against  poverty  and  disease. 
In  the  winter  of  1876-7  his  health  became  so  greatly 
impaired  that  his  physicians  and  friends  prevailed  on  him 
to  go  to  Tampa,  Florida,  to  recuperate.  In  the  leisure 
of  this  visit  Lanier  produced  many  notable  poems,  among 
them  being  Tampa  Robins,  Beethoven,  The  Waving  of  the 
Corn,  The  Song  of  the  Chattahoochee,  The  Stirrup  Cup, 
An  Evening  Songy  The  Mocking-bird.  On  his  return  to 
Baltimore  in  the  spring,  he  tried  to  find  some  employ- 
ment to  supplement  the  meager  income  from  his  position 
in  the  Peabody  Symphony  Orchestra.  All  the  efforts 
of  himself  and  his  friends  seemed  of  no  avail.  It  was  at 
this  time  that  what  Professor  Mims  calls  "perhaps  the 
most  pathetic  words  in  all  his  letters"  were  written  by 
the  poet:  "Altogether,  it  seems  as  if  there  wasn't  any 
place  for  me  in  the  'world,  and  if  it  were  not  for  May 
[his  wife]  I  should  certainly  quit  it,  in  mortification  at 
being  so  useless." 

Finally  he  hit  upon  the  idea  of  organizing  private  classes 
for  a  series  of  lectures  on  English  poetry.  He  had  been 
taking  every  advantage  of  the  excellent  libraries  and 
opportunities  for  culture  in  Baltimore,  and  he  had  devel- 
oped rapidly  under  the  inspiration  of  the  literary  and 
artistic  liie  of  that  city.  He  was  reading  deeply  into  the 
Old  and  Middle  English  and  the  Elizabethan  writers.  His 
sympathetic  interpretations  attracted  a  goodly  number 
of  students  to  his  classes,  and  the  success  of  these  private 
lectures  soon  gave  him  an  opportunity  to  present  the 
results  of  his  investigations  in  a  regular  series  of  lectures 
in  Johns  Hopkins  University.  It  was  in  1879  that 
President  Oilman  appointed  him  to  a  lectureship  in 
English  literature. 

During   all  this   time   Lanier  was   turning  out  many 


Sidney  Lanier  21  j 

excellent  works,  both  creative  and  editorial.  His  Boy's 
Froissart,  Boy's  King  Arthur,  Boy's  Percy,  Boy's  Mabino- 
gion  are  still  standard  juvenile  books.  He  was  gradually 
working  out  in  concrete  examples  of  poetic  composition 
his  theories  of  the  interrelationship  of  music  and  poetry. 
Poems  like  The  Symphony,  The  Song  of  the  Chattahoochee, 
The  Marshes  of  Glynn,  Sunrise,  almost  justify  these 
theories,  though  later  critics,  while  acknowledging  the 
fascination  and  suggestiveness  of  The  Science  of  English 
Verse,  have  generally  refuted  the  extremes  to  which  the 
author  presses  his  theories  of  the  interrelationship  between 
the  two  arts. 

In  1880  Lanier  tried  to  fill  his  engagements  at  the  uni- 
versity, but  it  is  said  that  his  hearers  were  in  constant 
dread  lest  each  breath  should  be  his  last.  It  was  only 
by  the  conquering  power  of  his  will  that  he  kept  him- 
self alive  at  all.  He  rode  to  the  hall  in  a  closed  carriage, 
and  sat  during  the  hour,  being  unable  to  stand  to  deliver 
his  lectures.  In  1881  he  sought  relief  in  the  mountains 
near  Asheville  in  North  Carolina.  His  father  and  his 
brother  Clifford  were  with  htm  for  several  weeks,  but 
only  his  wife  was  there  when  the  end  came.  Mr. 
William  Hayes  Ward,  in  his  memorial  essay,  which  is 
attached  as  introduction  to  the  volume  of  Lanier's  Poems, 
quotes  Mrs.  Lanier's  own  words: 

"We  are  left  alone  with  one  another.  On  the  last 
night  of  the  summer  comes  a  change.  His  love  and 
immortal  will  hold  off  the  destroyer  of  our  summer  yet 
one  more  week,  until  the  forenoon  of  September  7th,  and 
then  falls  the  frost,  and  that  unfaltering  will  renders  its 
supreme  submission  to  the  adored  will  of  God." 

He  was  buried  in  Greenwood  Cemetery  in  Baltimore, 
the  beloved  city  of  his  adoption. 

(The  fullest  and  most  satisfactory  life  of  Lanier  is  that  by  Edwin 
Mims.  Other  noteworthy  studies  are  those  by  Morgan  Callaway, 
Jr.,  in  his  Select  Poems  of  Sidney  Lanier,  and  by  Henry  Nelson 
Snyder  in  his  volume  on  Lanier.) 


SONG  OF  THE  CHATTAHOOCHEE 

Out  of  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

Down  the  valleys  of  Hall, 
I  hurry  amain  to  reach  the  plain, 
Run  the  rapid  and  leap  the  fall, 
Split  at  the  rock  and  together  again. 
Accept  my  bed,  or  narrow  or  wide, 
And  flee  from  folly  on  every  side 
With  a  lover's  pain  to  attain  the  plain 

Far  from  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

Far  from  the  valleys  of  Hall. 

All  down  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

All  through  the  valleys  of  Hall, 
The  rushes  cried  Abide,  abide, 
The  willful  waterweeds  held  me  thrall, 
The  laving  laurel  turned  my  tide. 
The  ferns  and  the  fondling  grass  said  Stay, 
The  dewberry  dipped  for  to  work  delay. 
And  the  little  reeds  sighed  Abide,  abide, 

Here  in  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

Here  in  the  valleys  of  Hall. 

High  o'er  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

Veiling  the  valleys  of  Hall, 
The  hickory  told  me  manifold 
Fair  tales  of  shade,  the  poplar  tall 
Wrought  me  her  shadowy  self  to  hold. 
The  chestnut,  the  oak,  the  walnut,  the  pine, 
Overleaning,  with  flickering  meaning  and  sign, 

'    [214] 


Song  of  the  Chattahoochee  215 

Said,  Pass  not,  so  cold,  these  manifold 

Deep  shades  of  the  hills  of  Habersham, 
These  glades  in  the  valleys  of  Hall. 

And  oft  in  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

And  oft  in  the  valleys  of  Hall, 
The  white  quartz  shone,  and  the  smooth  brook-stone 
Did  bar  me  of  passage  with  friendly  brawl. 
And  many  a  luminous  jewel  lone 
— Crystals  clear  or  a-cloud  with  mist, 
Ruby,  garnet  and  amethyst — 
Made  lures  with  the  lights  of  streaming  stone 

In  the  clefts  of  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

In  the  beds  of  the  valleys  of  Hall. 

But  oh,  not  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

And  oh,  not  the  valleys  of  Hall 
Avail :  I  am  fain  for  to  water  the  plain. 
Downward  the  voices  of  Duty  call — 
Downward,  to  toil  and  be  mixed  with  the  main, 
The  dry  fields  burn,  and  the  mills  are  to  turn, 
And  a  myriad  flowers  mortally  yearn, 
And  the  lordly  main  from  beyond  the  plain 

Calls  o'er  the  hills  of  Habersham, 

Calls  through  the  valleys  of  Hall.  j 


2i6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

A  BALLAD  OF  TREES  AND  THE  MASTER 

Into  the  woods  my  Master  went, 

Clean  forspent,  forspent. 

Into  the  woods  my  Master  came, 

Forspent  with  love  and  shame. 

But  the  olives  they  were  not  blind  to  Him, 

The  little  gray  leaves  were  kind  to  Him : 

The  thorn-tree  had  a  mind  to  Him 

When  into  the  woods  He  came. 

Out  of  the  woods  my  Master  went, 

And  He  was  well  content. 

Out  of  the  woods  my  Master  came 

Content  with  death  and  shame. 

When  Death  and  Shame  would  woo  Him  last. 

From  under  the  trees  they  drew  Him  last : 

'Twas  on  a  tree  they  slew  Him — last 

When  out  of  the  woods  He  came. 


MY  SPRINGS 

In  the  heart  of  the  Hills  of  Life,  I  know 
Two  springs  that  with  unbroken  flow 
Forever  pour  their  lucent  streams 
Into  my  soul's  far  Lake  of  Dreams. 

Not  larger  than  two  eyes,  they  lie 
Beneath  the  many-changing  sky 
And  mirror  all  of  life  and  time, 
— Serene  and  dainty  pantomime. 

Shot  through  with  lights  of  stars  and  dawns. 
And  shadowed  sweet  by  ferns  and  fawns, 


My  Springs  21^ 

— Thus  heaven  and  earth  together  vie 
Their  shining  depths  to  sanctify. 

Always  when  the  large  Form  of  Love 
Is  hid  by  storms  that  rage  above, 
I  gaze  in  my  two  springs  and  see 
Love  in  his  very  verity. 

Always  when  Faith  with  stifling  stress 
Of  grief  hath  died  in  bitterness, 
I  gaze  in  my  two  springs  and  see 
A  Faith  that  smiles  immortally. 

Always  when  Charity  and  Hope, 
In  darkness  bounden,  feebly  grope, 
I  gaze  in  my  two  springs  and  see 
A  Light  that  sets  my  captives  free. 

Always,  when  Art  on  perverse  wing 
Flies  where  I  cannot  hear  him  sing, 
I  gaze  in  my  two  springs  and  see 
A  charm  that  brings  him  back  to  me. 

When  Labor  faints,  and  Glory  fails, 
And  coy  Reward  in  sighs  exhales, 
I  gaze  in  my  two  springs  and  see 
Attainment  full  and  heavenly. 

O  Love,  O  Wife,  thine  eyes  are  they, 

— My  springs  from  out  whose  shining  gray 

Issue  the  sweet  celestial  streams 

That  feed  my  life's  bright  Lake  of  Dreams. 

Oval  and  large  and  passion-pure 
And  gray  and  wise  and  honor-sure ; 


21 8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Soft  as  a  dying  violet-breath 
Yet  calmly  unafraid  of  death ; 

Thronged,  like  two  dove-cotes  of  gray  doves, 
With  wife's  and  mother's  and  poor-folk's  loves, 
And  home-loves  and  high  glory-loves 
And  science-loves  and  story-loves. 

And  loves  for  all  that  God  and  man 
In  art  and  nature  make  or  plan, 
And  lady-loves  for  spidery  lace 
And  broideries  and  supple  grace 

And  diamonds  and  the  whole  sweet  round 
Of  littles  that  large  life  compound, 
And  loves  for  God  and  God's  bare  truth, 
And  loves  for  Magdalen  and  Ruth. 

Dear  eyes,  dear  eyes  and  rare  complete — 
Being  heavenl/-sweet  and  earthly-sweet, 
—  I  marvel  that  God  made  you  mine. 
For  when  He  frowns,  'tis  then  ye  shine! 


STANZAS  FROM  "CORN" 

I  wander  to  the  zigzag-cornered  fence 

Where  sassafras,  intrenched  in  brambles  dense. 

Contests  with  stolid  vehemence 

The  march  of  culture,  setting  limb  and  thorn 
As  pikes  against  the  army  of  the  corn. 

There,  while  I  pause,  my  fieldward-faring  eyes 
Take  harvests,  where  the  stately  corn-ranks  rise, 


Stanzas  from  "Corn"  21  q 

Of  inward  dignities 
And  large  benignities  and  insights  wise, 

Graces  and  modest  majesties. 
Thus,  without  theft,  I  reap  another's  field; 
Thus,  without  tilth,  I  house  a  wondrous  yield, 
And  heap  my  heart  with  quintuple  crops  concealed. 

Look,  out  of  line  one  tall  corn-captain  stands 
Advanced  beyond  the  foremost  of  his  bands, 
And  waves  his  blades  upon  the  very  edge 
And  hottest  thicket  of  the  battling  hedge. 
Thou  lustrous  stalk,  that  ne'er  mayst  walk  nor  talk. 
Still  shalt  thou  type  the  poet-soul  sublime 
That  leads  the  vanward  of  his  timid  time 
And  sings  up  cowards  with  commanding  rhyme  — 
Soul  calm,  like  thee,  yet  fain,  like  thee,  to  grow 
By  double  increment,  above,  below; 

Soul  homely,  as  thou  art,  yet  rich  in  grace  like  thee. 
Teaching  the  yeomen  selfless  chivalry 
That  moves  in  gentle  curves  of  courtesy ; 
Soul  filled  like  thy  long  veins  with  aweetness  tense. 

By  every  godlike  sense 
Transmuted  from  the  four  wild  elements. 
Drawn  to  high  plans. 
Thou  lift'st  more  stature  than  a  mortal  man's, 
Yet  ever  piercest  downward  in  the  mould 
And  keepest  hold 
Upon  the  reverend  and  steadfast  earth 

That  gave  thee  birth; 
Yea,  standest  smiling  in  thy  future  grave, 

Serene  and  brave. 
With  unremitting  breath 
Inhaling  life  from  death. 
Thine  epitaph  writ  fair  in  fruitage  eloquent, 
Thyself  thy  monimient. 


220  Southern  Literary  Readings 

THREE  LETTERS 

I 

Macon,  Ga.,  April  13,  1870. 
My  Dear  Mr.  Hayne  :    Watching,  night  and  day,  for 
two  weeks  past,  by  the  bedside  of  a  sick  friend,  I  have  had 
no  spiritual  energy  to  escape  out  of  certain  gloomy  ideas 

5  which  always  possess  me  when  I  am  in  the  immediate 
presence  of  physical  ailment;  and  I  did  not  care  to  write 
you  that  sort  of  letter  which  one  is  apt  to  send  under  such 
circumstances,  since  I  gather  from  your  letters  that  you 
have  enough  and  to  spare  of  these  dismal  down-weighings 

10  of  the  flesh's  ponderous  cancer  upon  suffering  and  thought- 
ful souls. 

I  am  glad,  therefore,  that  I  waited  until  this  divine 
day.  If  the  year  were  an  Orchestra,  to-day  would  be  the 
Flute-tone  in  it.    A  serene  Hope,  just  on  the  very  verge 

15  of  realizing  itself;  a  tender  loneliness, — what  some  Ger- 
man calls  Waldeinsamkeity  wood-loneliness, — the  ineffable 
withdrawal-feeling  thsPt  comes  over  one  when  he  hides 
himself  in  among  the  trees,  and  knows  himself  shut  in  by 
their  purity,  as  by  a  fragile  yet  impregnable  wall,  from  the 

20  suspicions  and  the  trade-regulations  of  men;  and  an  inward 
thrill,  in  the  air,  or  in  the  sunshine,  one  knows  not  which, 
half  like  the  thrill  of  the  passion  of  love,  and  half  like  the 
thrill  of  the  passion  of  friendship; — these,  which  make 
up  the  office  of  the  flute-voice  in  those  poems  which  the 

25  old  masters  wrote  for  the  Orchestra,  also  prevail  through- 
out to-day. 

Do  you  like — as  I  do — on  such  a  day  to  go  out  into 
the  sunlight  and  stop  thinking, — lie  fallow,  like  a  field,  and 
absorb  those  certain  liberal  potentialities  which  will  in  after 

80  days  reappear,  duly  formulated,  duly  grown,  duly  per- 
fected, as  poems  ?     I  have  a  curiosity  to  know  if  to  you,  as 


Three  Letters  221 

to  me,  there  come  such  as  this  day: — a  day  exquisitely 
satisfying  with  all  the  fulnesses  of  the  Spring,  and  filling 
you  as  full  of  nameless  tremors  as  a  girl  on  a  wedding- 
mom;  and  yet,  withal,  a  day  which  utterly  denies  you  the  35 
gift  of  speech,  which  puts  its  finger  on  the  lip  of  your 
inspiration,  which  inexorably  enforces  upon  your  soul  a 
silence  that  you  infinitely  long  to  break,  a  day,  in  short, 
which  takes  absolute  possession  of  you  and  says  to  you, 
in  tones  which  command  obedience,  to-day  you  must  40 
forego  expression  and  all  outcome,  you  must  remain  a  fallow 
field,  for  the  sun  and  wind  to  fertilize,  nor  shall  any  corn  or 
flowers  sprout  into  visible  green  and  red  until  to-morrow, — 
mandates,  further,  that  you  have  learned  after  a  little 
experience  not  only  not  to  fight  against,  but  to  love  and  45 
revere  as  the  wise  communication  of  the  Unseen  Powers. 
Have  you  seen  Browning's  **The  Ring  and  the  Book"? 
I  am  confident  that,  at  the  birth  of  this  man,  among  all  the 
good  fairies  who  showered  him  with  magnificent  endow- 
ments, one  bad  one — as  in  the  old  tale — crept  in  by  stealth  50 
and  gave  him  a  constitutional  twist  i'  the  neck,  whereby 
his  windpipe  became,  and  has  ever  since  remained,  a  mar- 
vellous tortuous  passage.  Out  of  this  glottis-labyrinth  his 
words  won't,  and  can't  come  straight.  A  hitch  and  a 
sharp  crook  in  every  sentence  bring  you  up  with  a  shock.  55 
But  what  a  shock  it  is !  Did  you  ever  see  a  picture  of  a 
lasso,  in  the  act  of  being  flung?  In  a  thousand  coils  and 
turns,  inextricably  crooked  and  involved  and  whirled,  yet, 
if  you  mark  the  noose  at  the  end,  you  see  that  it  is  directly 
in  front  of  the  bison's  head,  there,  and  is  bound  to  catch  eo 
him !  That  is  the  way  Robert  Browning  catches  you.  The 
first  sixty  or  seventy  pages  of  ''The  Ring  and  the  Book" 
are  altogether  the  most  doleful  reading,  in  point  either 
of  idea  or  of  music,  in  the  English  language;  and  yet  the 
monologue  of   Giuseppe  Caponsacchi,  that  of   Pompiliaes 


222  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Comparini,  and  the  two  of  Guido  Franceschini,  are  un- 
approachable, in  their  kind,  by  any  hving  or  dead  poet, 
me  judice.  Here  Browning's  jerkiness  comes  in  with 
inevitable  effect.  You  get  lightning-glimpses — and,  as  one 
70  naturally  expects  from  lightning,  zig-zag  glimpses — into 
the  intense  night  of  the  passion  of  these  souls.  It  is 
entirely  wonderful  and  without  precedent.  The  fitful  play 
of  Guido's  lust,  and  scorn,  and  hate,  and  cowardice,  closes 
with  a  master-stroke: 

75  "...  Christ!     Maria!     God!  .  .  . 

Pompilia,  will  you  let  them  murder  me?" 

Pompilia,  mark  you,  is  dead,  by  Guido's  own  hand; 
deliberately  stabbed,  because  he  hated  her  purity,  which 
all  along  he  has  reviled  and  mocked  with  the  Devil's  own 

80  malignant  ingenuity  of  sarcasm. 

You  spoke  of  a  project  you  wished  to  tell  me.  Let  me 
hear  it.  Your  plans  are  always  of  interest  to  me.  Can 
I  help  you?  I've  not  put  pen  to  paper,  in  the  literary 
way,  in  a  long  time.     How  I  thirst  to  do  so,  how  I  long 

85  to  sing  a  thousand  various  songs  that  oppress  me,  unsung, 
— is  inexpressible.  Yet,  the  mere  work  that  brings  bread 
gives  me  no  time.  I  know  not,  after  all,  if  this  is  a  sorrow- 
ful thing.  Nobody  likes  my  poems  except  two  or  three 
friends, —  who    are    themselves    poets,   and    can    supply 

90  themselves ! 

Strictly  upon  Scriptural  principle,  I've  written  you 
(as  you  see)  almost  entirely  about  myself.  This  is  doing 
unto  you  as  I  would  you  should  do  unto  me.  Go,  and 
do  likewise.     Write  me  about  yourself. 

05  Your  Friend, 

Sidney  Lanier. 


Three  Letters  22 j 

II 
Baltimore,  December  2,  1873. 

Well,  Flauto  Primo  hath  been  to  his  first  rehearsal. 

Fancy  thy  poor  lover,  weary,  worn,  and  stiiffed  with 
a  cold,  arriving  after  a  brisk  walk — he  was  so  afraid  he 
might  be  behind  time — at  the  hall  of  Peabody  Institute.  5 
He  passeth  down  betwixt  the  empty  benches,  turneth 
through  the  green-room,  emergeth  on  the  stage,  greeteth 
the  Maestro,  is  introduced  by  the  same  to  Flauto  Secondo, 
and  then,  with  as  much  carelessness  as  he  can  assume,  he 
sauntereth  in  among  the  rows  of  music-stools,  to  see  if  10 
peradventure  he  can  find  the  place  where  he  is  to  sit — for 
he  knoweth  not,  and  liketh  not  to  ask.  He  remembereth 
where  the  flutes  sit  in  Thomas'  Orchestra;  but  on  going 
to  the  corresponding  spot  he  findeth  the  part  of  Contra- 
Basso  on  the  music-stand,  and  fleeth  therefrom  in  terror,  is 
In  despair,  he  is  about  to  endeavor  to  get  some  information 
on  the  sly,  when  he  seeth  the  good  Flauto  Secondo  sitting 
down  far  in  front,  and  straightway  marcheth  to  his  place 
on  the  left  of  the  same,  with  the  air  of  one  that  had  played 
there  since  babyhood.  This  Hamerik  of  ours  hath  French  20 
ideas  about  his  orchestral  arrangements  and  places  his 
pieces  very  differently  from  Thomas.  Well,  I  sit  down, 
some  late-comers  arrive,  stamping  and  blowing — for  it  is 
snowing  outside — and  pull  the  green-baize  covers  off  their 
big  horns  and  bass-fiddles.  Presently  the  Maestro,  who  25 
is  rushing  about,  hither  and  thither,  in  some  excite- 
ment, falleth  to  striking  a  great  tuning-fork  with  a  mallet, 
and  straightway  we  all  begin  to  toot  A,  to  puff  it,  to  groan 
it,  to  squeak  it,  to  scrape  it,  until  I  sympathize  with  the 
poor  letter,  and  glide  off  in  some  delicate  little  runs ;  and  30 
presently  the  others  begin  to  flourish  also,  and  here  we 
have  it,  up  chromatics,  down  diatonics,  unearthly  buzzings 
from  the  big  fiddles,  diabolical  four-string  chords  from 


224  Southern  Literary  Readings 

the   'cellos,   passionate  shrieks  from  the  clarionets  and 

35  oboes,  manly  remonstrances  from  the  horns,  querulous 
complaints  from  the  bassoons,  and  so  on.  Now  the 
Maestro  mounteth  to  his  perch.  I  am  seated  imme- 
diately next  the  audience,  facing  the  first  violins,  who  are 
separated  from  me  by  the  conductor's  stand.     I  place 

40  my  part  (of  the  Fifth  Symphony  of  Beethoven,  which  I 
had  procured  two  days  before,  in  order  to  look  over  it, 
being  told  that  on  the  first  rehearsal  we  would  try  nothing 
but  the  Fifth  Symphony)  on  my  stand,  and  try  to  stop  my 
heart  from  beating  so  fast — with  unavailing  arguments. 

45  Maestro  rappeth  with  his  baton,  and  magically  stilleth  all 
the  shrieks  and  agonies  of  the  instruments.  "Fierst" 
(he  saith,  with  the  Frenchiest  of  French  accents — tho' 
a  Dane,  he  was  educated  in  Paris)  "I  wish  to  present  to 
ze  gentlemen  of  ze  orchestra  our  iierst  flutist,  Mr.  Sidney 

50  Lanier,  also  our  fierst  oboe,  Mr.  (I  didn't  catch  his  name)." 
Whereupon,  not  knowing  what  else  to  do — and  the  pause 
being  somewhat  awkward — I  rise  and  make  a  profound 
bow  to  the  Reeds,  who  sit  behind  me,  another  to  the  'Celli, 
the  Bassi,  and  the  Tympani,  in  the  middle,  and  a  third  to 

55  the  Violins  opposite.  This  appeareth  to  be  the  right 
thing,  for  Oboe  jumpeth  up  also,  and  boweth,  and  the 
gentlemen  of  the  orchestra  all  rise  and  bow,  some  of  them 
with  great  empressement.  Then  there  is  a  little  idiotic 
hum  and  simper,  such  as  newly  introduced  people  usually 

60  affect.  Then  cometh  a  man — whom  I  should  always  hate, 
if  I  could  hate  anybody  always — and,  to  my  horror,  put- 
teth  on  my  music-stand  the  fiauto  primo  part  of  Niels 
Gade's  Ossian  Overture,  and  thereupon  the  Maestro  saith, 
**We  will  try  that  fierst."     Horrors!    They  told  me  they 

65  would  play  nothing  but  the  Fifth  Symphony,  and  this 
Ossian  Overture  I  have  never  seen  or  heard!  This  does 
not  help  my  heart-beats  nor  steady  my  lips — thou  canst 


Three  Letters  22§ 

believe.  However,  there  is  no  time  to  tarry;  the  baton 
rappeth,  the  horns  blow,  my  five  bars'  rest  is  out — I 
plunge.  70 

— Oh!  If  thou  couldst  but  be  by  me  in  this  sublime 
glory  of  music!  All  through  it  I  yearned  for  thee  with 
heart-breaking  eagerness.  The  beauty  of  it  maketh  me 
catch  my  breath — to  write  of  it.  I  will  not  attempt  to 
describe  it.  It  is  the  spirit  of  the  poems  of  Ossian  done  75 
in  music  by  the  wonderful  Niels  Gade. 

I   got   through  it   without   causing   any   disturbance. 
Maestro  had  to  stop  twice  on  account  of  some  other 
players.     I  failed  to  come  in  on  time  twice  in  the  Sym- 
phony.    I  am  too  tired  now  to  give  thee  any  further  so 
account.     I  go  again  to  rehearsal  to-morrow. 


Ill 

Tampa,  Fla.,  January  11,  1877. 

My  Dear  Mr.  Taylor:  What  would  I  not  give  to 
transport  you  from  your  frozen  sorrows  instantly  into  the 
midst  of  the  green  leaves,  the  gold  oranges,  the  glitter 
of  great  and  tranquil  waters,  the  liberal  friendship  of  the  5 
sun,  the  heavenly  conversation  of  robins  and  mocking- 
birds and  larks,  which  fill  my  days  with  delight! 

But  if  I  commence  in  this  strain  I  shall  never  have  done ; 
and  I  am  writing  in  full  rebellion  against  the  laws  now  of 
force  over  the  land  of  Me — which  do  not  yet  allow  me  to  10 
use  the  pen  by  reason  of  the  infirmity  of  my  lung;  yet  I 
could  not  help  sending  you  some  little  greeting  for  the 
New  Year,  with  a  violet  and  a  rose  which  please  find  here- 
within.  The  violet  is  for  purity, — and  I  wish  that  you 
may  be  pure  all  this  year;  and  the  rose  is  for  love — and  15 
I  'm  sure  I  shall  love  you  all  the  year. 

15 


226  Southern  Literary  Readings 

We  are  quite  out  of  the  world  and  know  not  its  doings. 
The  stage  which  brings  our  mail  (twice  a  week  only) 
takes  three  days  to  reach  the  railroad  at  Gainesville;  and 

20  it  is  a  matter  of  from  nine  days  to  any  conceivable  time  for 
a  letter  to  reach  here  from  New  York.  Nevertheless, — 
nay,  all  the  more  therefore, — send  me  a  line  that  I  may 
know  how  you  fare,  body  and  soul. 

I  received  a  check  for  fifteen  dollars  from  Mr.  Alden, 

25 Editor  "Harpers,"  for  the  poem  you  sent  to  him;  and  I 
make  little  doubt  that  I  owe  its  acceptance  to  the  circum- 
stance that  you  sent  it.  I  hear  of  an  "International 
Review,"  but  have  not  seen  any  copy  of  it:  do  you  think 
it  would  care  for  anything  like  the  enclosed? — a  poem 

30  which  I  have  endeavored  to  make  bum  as  hotly  as,  yet 
with  a  less  highly  colored  flame  than,  others  of  mine.  If 
you  do,  pray  direct  the  envelope;  if  not,  address  it  to  the 
"Galaxy,"  unless  you  think  that  inadvisable:  in  which 
last  event  keep  the  copy,  if  you  like. 

85  I  had  a  very  cordial  letter  from  Mr.  Eggleston  about 
my  volume  of  poems,  which  gave  me  pleasure. 

I  'm  sure  you  11  be  glad  to  know  that  I  improve  decidedly ; 
I  see  no  reason  to  doubt  that  I  shall  be  soon  at  work 
again.     In  truth,  I  * '  bubble  song ' '  continually  during  these 

40  heavenly  days,  and  it  is  as  hard  to  keep  me  from  the  pen 
as  a  toper  from  his  tipple. 

I  hope  Mrs.  Taylor  is  well,  and  beg  you  to  commend 
me 'to  her;  wherein  my  wife  very  heartily  joins  me,  as  well 
as  in  fair  messages  to  you.     I  wrote  you  several  times 

45 before  leaving  Philadelphia:  did  you  get  the  letters? 

Your  faithful  friend, 

S.  L. 


IRWIN  RUSSELL 

Irwin  Russell,  the  boy  poet  of  Mississippi,  lived  but 
twenty-six  years,  and  yet,  as  one  of  his  biographers  has 
said,  because  of  his  sufferings  his  life  was  a  long  one.  And 
for  this,  as  has  been  the  case  with  many  a  man  of  genius,  he 
had  only  himself  and  his  wayward  temperament  to  blame, 
for  his  friends  and  relatives  did  all  they  could  by  way 
of  warning  and  pleading  to  save  him.  He  was  born  at 
Port  Gibson,  Mississippi,  June  3,  1853.  His  father.  Dr. 
William  McNab  Russell,  though  bom  and  reared  in  Ohio, 
was  of  Virginia  extraction;  and  his  mother  was  of  New 
England  ancestry.  After  finishing  his  medical  education. 
Dr.  Russell  married  and  moved  to  Port  Gibson,  to  begin 
the  practice  of  his  profession.  Here  an  epidemic  of  yellow 
fever  broke  out  in  the  year  of  Irwin's  birth,  and  the  child 
suffered  a  severe  attack  of  the  dreaded  disease  when  he 
was  but  three  months  old.  Though  he  recovered  from  the 
malady,  it  is  thought  that  his  constitution  was  permanently 
weakened  by  the  fever.  Dr.  Russell  moved  to  St.  Louis 
shortly  after  the  boy's  recovery,  and  here  at  an  early  age 
Irwin  was  placed  in  school.  The  boy's  remarkable  pre- 
cocity attracted  considerable  notice  among  his  father's 
friends  and  acquaintances. 

At  the  outbreak  of  the  war  the  family  moved  back  to 
Port  Gibson,  for  Dr.  Russell  was  a  warm  supporter  of  the 
cause  of  the  Confederacy.  When  Irwin  was  old  enough 
to  be  sent  to  college  he  was  put  in  the  Jesuit  school  known 
as  the  St.  Louis  University.  He  pursued  a  general  com- 
mercial course  here,  and  was  graduated  in  1869,  at  the 
age  of  sixteen.  Returning  to  Mississippi,  he  read  law,  and 
two  years  before  he  reached  his  majority  he  was  by  a 
special  legislative  enactment  admitted  to  the  bar  and 
licensed  to  practice.  However,  he  seems  to  have  done 
little  in  his  profession.  Music  and  literature  were  more 
attractive  to  him  than  courts  and  briefs,  and  he  eventually 
gave  up  his  law  practice  to  devote  himself  to  literature. 

[227] 


228  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Russell  played  well  on  the  piano,  and  was  an  adept 
on  the  banjo.  By  a  happy  accident  he  was  led  into  com- 
posing impromptu  verses  imitative  of  the  negro  songs  he 
heard  sung  by  the  servants  of  his  father's  household.  He 
sang  these  songs  to  the  music  of  the  banjo,  that  instru- 
ment so  dear  to  the  darky's  heart  and  so  well  suited  to 
the  expression  of  the  negro's  emotional  nature.  A  few  of 
these  dialect  poems  were  published  in  local  papers,  but 
in  January,  1876,  one  of  the  best  of  the  negro  character 
studies,  ifncle  Cap  Interviewed,  appeared  in  Scrihner's 
Monthly,  and  from  that  date  on  until  1880  this  magazine 
continued  to  publish  Russell's  poems. 

Competent  critics  at  once  recognized  in  these  dialect 
poems  a  new  type  of  writing,  which  opened  a  fresh  and 
rich  literary  vein  for  Southern  writers  to  develop.  The 
negro  dialect  gave  the  only  practical  approach  to  the 
exposition  and  delineation  of  the  true  negro  character. 
It  is  generally  acknowledged  that  Russell  was  the  first  to 
use  the  negro  dialect  and  negro  life  and  character  for  purely 
artistic  purposes.  Negro  characters  had  appeared  in  other 
works  of  fiction,  but  they  were  either  subordinated  or 
made  the  means  of  a  political  or  altruistic  appeal,  as  in 
Mrs.  Stowe's  Uncle  Tom's  Cabin.  Since  Irwin  Russell's 
successful  work  in  this  line,  other  artists  have  arisen  who 
have  used  the  negro  as  material  for  literary  treatment, 
among  them  Joel  Chandler  Harris  of  Georgia  in  his  Uncle 
Remus  stories  and  Thomas  Nelson  Page  of  Virginia  in  his 
negro-dialect  stories  and  poems.  In  his  brief  introduction 
to  Russell's  poems  Joel  Chandler  Harris  says: 

"It  seems  to  me  that  some  of  Irwin  Russell's  negro- 
character  studies  rise  to  the  level  of  what,  in  a  large  way, 
we  term  literature.  His  negro  operetta,  'Christmas-Night 
in  the  Quarters,'  is  inimitable.  It  cordbines  the  features 
of  a  character  study  with  a  series  of  bold  and  striking 
plantation  pictures  that  have  never  been  surpassed.  In 
this  remarkable  group, — if  I  may  so  term  it, — the  old  life 
before  the  war  is  reproduced  with  a  fidelity  that  is 
marvelous." 

Thomas  Nelson  Page  pays  a  similar  tribute  to  Russell  in 
acknowledging  the  debt  he  owes  to  the  Mississippian  as 
the  one  who  first  led  him  in  the  way  he  has  since  followed. 


Irwin  Russell  22Q 

Dialect  is  not,  to  be  sure,  the  highest  artistic  medium  for 
poetical  expression,  but  the  best  of  it  is  well  worthy  of 
preservation,  and  surely  there  is  no  better  negro-dialect 
verse  written  than  that  by  Russell.  He  understood  the 
negro  character  thoroughly,  and  all  that  he  wrote  is  true 
to  the  simple,  homely  life  of  the  old-time  plantation  darky. 

The  last  years  of  Russell's  life  were  unhappy.  In  1878, 
at  the  time  of  another  terrible  epidemic  of  yellow  fever  at 
Port  Gibson,  he  broke  himself  down  completely  nursing 
the  sick,  attending  the  distressed,  and  burying  the  dead. 
His  own  father  died  in  the  epidemic,  and  this  blow  left 
the  young  man  hopeless  and  stunned,  for  his  father  had 
been  his  idol.  With  a  restless  desire  to  get  away  from 
the  scenes  of  his  distress,  and  with  a  faint  hope  that  he 
might  yet  conquer  his  excessive  use  of  alcoholic  stimulants 
and  make  a  name  for  himself  in  literature,  he  went  to 
New  York.  Here  he  quickly  won  warm  friends  and 
admirers  among  the  literary  people  with  whom  he  was 
thrown  in  contact  as  a  contributor  to  Scrihner's  Monthly; 
but  his  old  habits  reasserted  themselves,  and  he  soon  fell 
seriously  ill.  After  his  recovery — partially,  no  doubt, 
from  a  feeling  of  remorse  because  of  his  excesses — he 
seemed  to  wish  to  get  away  from  the  friends  who  had 
niu"sed  him  through  his  illness  and  contributed  to  his 
comfort  while  he  was  in  need.  He  secretly  left  New 
York  on  a  steamer  bound  for  New  Orleans,  working  his 
passage  as  a  stoker.  On  reaching  New  Orleans  he 
attached  himself  to  the  Times  as  a  reporter  or  literary 
contributor  and  once  more  tried  to  make  a  success  of  life. 
But  his  habits  had  gained  too  strong  a  hold  on  him,  and 
he  seemed  to  realize  that  he  was  a  doomed  man.  He 
wrote  some  serious  poems  at  this  time,  indicative  of  his 
hopelessness  so  far  as  this  life  went  but  of  his  hopefulness 
for  the  life  yet  to  be. 

He  died  December  23,  1879,  and  was  buried  in  New 
Orleans,  but  later  his  body  was  removed  and  placed  beside 
his  father's  remains  in  Bellefontaine  Cemetery,  St.  Louis. 

(The  best  essays  on  Irwin  Russell  are  those  by  W.  M.  Baskervill 
in  Southern  Writers,  Vol.  I,  and  by  Joel  Chandler  Harris  in  the 
volume  of  Poems  by  Irwin  Russell,  published  by  the  Century  Co., 
1888.) 


CHRISTMAS -NIGHT   IN  THE   QUARTERS 

When  merry  Christmas-day  is  done, 
And  Christmas-night  is  just  begun ; 

~^     While  clouds  in  slow  procession  drift, 

To  wish  the  moon-man  ''Christmas  gift," 

Yet  linger  overhead,  to  know 

What  causes  all  the  stir  below; 

At  Uncle  Johnny  Booker's  ball 

The  darkies  hold  high  carnival. 

From  all  the  country-side  they  throng, 

With  laughter,  shouts,  and  scraps 

of  song, — 
Their  whole  deportment  plainly  showing 
That  to  the  frolic  they  are  going. 
Some  take  the*  path  with  shoes  in  hand. 
To  traverse  muddy  bottom-land; 
Aristocrats  their  steeds  bestride — 

J       Four  on  a  mule,  behold  them  ride ! 
'^        And  ten  great  oxen  draw  apace 
The  wagon  from  "de  oder  place," 
With  forty  guests,  whose  conversation 
Betokens  glad  anticipation. 
Not  so  with  him  who  drives :  old  Jim 
Is  sagely  solemn,  hard,  and  grim. 
And  frolics  have  no  joys  for  him. 
He  seldom  speaks  but  to  condemn — 
Or  utter  some  wise  apothegm — 
Or  else,  some  crabbed  thought  pursuing. 
Talk  to  his  team,  as  now  he  's  doing : 

[230] 


M 


Christmas-night  in  the  Quarters  23! 

Come  up  heah,  Star!    Yee-bawee! 

You  alluz  is  a-laggin' — 
Mus'  be  you  think  I 's  dead, 

An'  dis  de  huss  you 's  draggin' — 
You 's  'mos'  too  lazy  to  draw  yo'  bref , 

Let  lone  drawin'  de  waggin. 

Dis  team — quit  bel'rin',  sah! 

De  ladies  don't  submit  'at — 
Dis  team — you  oF  fool  ox, 

You  heah  me  tell  you  quit  'at? 
Dis  team's  des  like  de  'Nited  States; 

Dat  '5  what  I 's  tryin'  to  git  at ! 


^^      \       De  people  rides  behin', 

De  pollytishners  haulin' — 
Sh'u'd  be  a  well-bruk  ox, 

To  foller  dat  ar  callin' — 
An*  sometimes  nuffin  won't  do  dem  steers, 
But  what  dey  mus'  be  stallin' ! 

Woobahgh!    Buck-kannon!    Yes,  sah, 
Sometimes  dey  will  be  stickin' ; 

An'  den,  fus  thing  dey  knows, 
Dey  takes  a  rale  good  lickin'. 

De  folks  gits  down :  an'  den  watch  out 
For  hommerin'  an'  kickin'. 

Dey  blows  upon  dey  hands. 
Den  flings  'em  wid  de  nails  up. 

Jumps  up  an'  cracks  dey  heels. 
An'  pruzently  dey  sails  up, 

An'  makes  dem  oxen  hump  deysef , 
By  twistin'  all  dey  tails  up ! 


A 


2^2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

In  this  our  age  of  printer's  ink 
'Tis  books  that  show  us  how  to  think — 
The  rule  reversed,  and  set  at  naught, 
That  held  that  books  were  bom  of  thought. 
We  form  our  minds  by  pedants'  rules, 
And  all  we  know  is  from  the  schools ; 
And  when  we  work,  or  when  we  play, 
We  do  it  in  an  ordered  way — 
And  Nature's  self  pronounce  a  ban  on, 
Whene'er  she  dares  transgress  a  canon. 
Untrammeled  thus  the  simple  race  is 
That  "wuks  the  craps"  on  cotton  places. 
"^nDriginal  in  act  and  thought, 
^\     Because  unlearned  and  untaught. 
■^'       Observe  them  at  their  Christmas  party: 

How  unrestrained  their  mirth — how  hearty! 

How  many  things  they  say  and  do 

That  never  would  occur  to  you ! 

See  Brudder  Brown — whose  saving  grace 

Would  sanctify  a  quarter  race— 

Out  on  the  crowded  floor  advance, 

To  *'beg  a  blessin'  on  dis  dance." 


O  Mahsr!  let  dis  gath'rin'  fin'  a  blessin'  in  yo'  sight! 
Don't  jedge  us  hard  fur  what  we  does — you  knows  it's 

Chrismus-night ; 
An'  all  de  balunce  ob  de  yeah  we  does  as  right 's  we  kin. 
Ef  dancin's  wrong,  O  Mahsr!  let  de  time  excuse  de  sin! 

We  labors  in  de  vineya'd,  wukin'  hard  an'  wukin'  true; 
85  Now,  shorely  you  won't  notus,  ef  we  eats  a  grape  or  two, 
An'  takes  a  leetle  holiday, — a  leetle  restin'-spell, — 
Bekase,  nex'  week,  we  '11  start  in  fresh,  an'  labor  twicet 
as  well. 


Christmas-night  in  the  Quarters  233 

Remember,  Mahsr, — min'  dis,  now, — de  sinfulness  ob  sin 
Is  'pendin'  'pon  de  sperrit  what  we  goes  an'  does  it  in: 
An'  in  a  righchis  frame  ob  min'  we 's  gwine  to  dance  an'  90 

sing, 
A-feelin'  like  King  David,  when  he  cut  de  pigeon-wing. 

It  seems  to  me — indeed  it  do — I  mebbe  mout  be  wrong — 
That  people  raly  ought  to  dance,  when  Chrismus  comes 

along; 
Des  dance  bekase  dey's  happy — like  de  birds  hops  in  de 

trees, 
De  pine-top  fiddle  soundin'  to  de  bowin'  ob  de  breeze.        qs 

We  has  no  ark  to  dance  afore,  like  Isrul's  prophet  king; 
We  has  no  harp  to  soun'  de  chords,  to  holp  us  out  to 

sing; 
But  'cordin'  to  de  gif 's  we  has  we  does  de  bes'  we  knows, 
An'  folks  don't  'spise  de  vi'let-flower  bekase  it  ain't  de 

rose. 

You  bless  us,  please,  sah,  eben  ef  we 's  doin'  wrong  to-night;  loc 
Kase  den  we '11  need  de  blessin'  more  'n  ef  we 's  doin'  right; 
An'  let  de  blessin'  stay  wid  us,  untel  we  comes  to  die. 
An'  goes  to  keep  our  Chrismus  wid  dem  sheriffs  in  de  sky! 

Yes,  tell  dem  preshis  anguls  we's  a-gwine  to  jine  'em  soon: 
Our  voices  we's  a-trainin'  fur  to  sing  de  glory  tune;  105 

We's  ready  when  you  wants  us,  an'  it  ain't  no  matter 

when — 
0  Mahsr !  call  yo'  chillen  soon,  an'  take  'em  home !    Amen. 

The  rev  'rend  man  is  scarcely  through, 
When  all  the  noise  begins  anew, 
And  with  such  force  assaults  the  ears, 


234  Southern  Literary  Readings 

That  through  the  din  one  hardly  hears 
Old  fiddling  Josey  * 'sound  his  A," 
Correct  the  pitch,  begin  to  play, 
Stop,  satisfied,  then,  with  the  bow, 
Rap  out  the  signal  dancers  know : 

Git  yo'  pardners,  fust  kwattillion! 
Stomp  yo'  feet,  an'  raise  'em  high; 
Tune  is:  "Oh!  dat  water-million ! 
Gwine  to  git  to  home  bime-bye. ' ' 
SVute  yo'  pardners  I — scrape  perlitely— 
Don't  be  bumpin'  gin  de  res' — 
Balance  all! — now,  step  out  rightly; 
Alluz  dance  yo'  lebbel  bes'. 
Fo'wa'd  foah !  — whoop  up,  niggers ! 
Back  ag'in! — don't  be  so  slow! — 
Swing  cornaks! — min'  de  figgers! 
When  I  hollers,  den  yo'  go. 
Top  ladies  cross  ober ! 
HoF  on,  till  I  takes  a  dram — 
Gemmen  solo! — yes,  I 's  sober — 
Cain't  say  how  de  fiddle  am. 
Hans  around! — hoi'  up  yo'  faces. 
Don't  be  lookin'  at  yo'  feet! 
Swing  yo'  pardners  to  yo'  places! 
Dat 's  de  way — dat 's  hard  to  beat. 
Sides  fo'w'd !  —  when  you 's  ready — 
Make  a  bow  as  low 's  you  kin ! 
Swing  acrost  wid  opposite  lady ! 
Now  we'll  let  you  swap  ag'in: 
I  Ladies  change!  — shet  up  dat  talkin' ; 

Do  yo'  talkin'  arter  while! 
Right  an'  lef! — don't  want  no  walkin'- 
Make  yo'  steps,  an'  show  yo'  style! 


Christmas-night  in  the  Quarters  235 

And  so  the  "set"  proceeds — its  length 
Determined  by  the  dancers'  strength; 
And  all  agree  to  yield  the  palm 
For  grace  and  skill  to  * '  Georgy  Sam, ' ' 
Who  stamps  so  hard,  and  leaps  so  high, 

*  *  Des  watch  him ! "  is  the  wond  'ring  cry — 

*  *  De  nigger  mus'  be,  for  a  f  ac' , 
Own  cousin  to  a  jiimpin'-jack ! " 
On,  on  the  restless  fiddle  sounds, 
Still  chorused  by  the  curs  and  hounds ; 
Dance  after  dance  succeeding  fast, 

V  Till  supper  is  announced  at  last. 

y  That  scene — but  why  attempt  to  show  it? 

The  most  inventive  modem  poet, 
In  fine  new  words  whose  hope  and  trust  is, 
Could  form  no  phrase  to  do  it  justice ! 
When  supper  ends — that  is  not  soon — 
^^'th&  fiddle  strikes  the  same  old  tune ; 
^     The  dancers  pound  the  floor  again. 

With  all  they  have  of  might  and  main ; 
Old  gossips,  almost  turning  pale. 
Attend  Aunt  Cassy's  gruesome  tale 
Of  conjurors,  and  ghosts,  and  devils. 
That  in  the  smoke-house  hold  their  revels ; 
Each  drowsy  baby  droops  his  head, 
Yet  scorns  the  very  thought  of  bed: — 

.  So  wears  the  night,  and  wears  so  fast, 

f  All  wonder  when  they  find  it  past. 

And  hear  the  signal  sound  to  go 
From  what  few  cocks  are  left  to  crow. 
Then,  one  and  all,  you  hear  them  shout : 
"Hi!  Booker!  fotch  de  banjo  out, 
An'  gib  us  one  song  'fore  we  goes — 
One  ob  de  berry  bes'  you  knows!" 


2j6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Responding  to  the  welcome  call, 
He  takes  the  banjo  from  the  wall, 
180  And  tunes  the  strings  with  skill  and  care, 

Then  strikes  them  with  a  master's  air, 
And  tells,  in  melody  and  rhyme, 
This  legend  of  the  olden  time : 

Go  'way,  fiddle!  folks  is  tired  o'  hearin'  you  a-squawk- 

in'. 
185    Keep  silence  fur  yo*  betters! — don't  you  heah  de  banjo 

talkin'  ? 
About  de  'possum's  tail  she's  gwine  to  lecter — ladies, 

listen !  — 
About  de  ha'r  whut  is  n't  dar,  an'  why  de  ha'r  is  missin' : 

"Dar's  gwine  to  be  a'  oberfiow,"  said  Noah,  lookin' 

solemn. — 
Fur  Noah  tuk  the  "Herald,"   an'  he  read  de  ribber 
column — 
leo    An'  so  he  sot  his  hands  to  wuk  a-cl'arin'  timber-patches. 
An'    'lowed  he 's   gwine  to  build  a  boat  to  beat  the 
steamah  Natchez. 

or  Noah  kep'  a-nailin'  an'  a-chippin'  an'  a-sawin'; 
An'  all  de  wicked  neighbors  kep'  a-laughin'  an'  a-pshaw- 

in'; 
But  Noah  didn't  min'  'em,  knowin'  whut  wuz  gwine  to 

happen : 
195    An'  forty  days  an'  forty  nights  de  rain  it  kep'  a-drap- 

pin'. 

Now,  Noah  had  done  cotched  a  lot  ob   ebry   sort  o' 

beas'es — 
Ob  all  de  shows  a-trabbelin',  it  beat  *em  all  to  pieces! 


Christmas-night  in  the  Quarters  2^y 

He  had  a  Morgan  colt  an*  sebral  head  o'  Jarsey  cattle — 
An'  dnkV  'em    'board  de  Ark  as  soon's  he  heered  de 
thunder  rattle. 

Den  sech  anoder  fall  ob  rain! — it  come  so  awful  hebby,  200 
De  ribber  riz  immejitly,  an'  busted  troo  de  lebbee; 
De  people  all  was  drownded  out — 'cep'  Noah  an'  de 

critters, 
An'  men  he  'd  hired  to  work  de  boat — an'  one  to  mix 

de  bitters. 

De  Ark  she  kep'  a-sailin'  an '  a-sailin'  an'  a-sailin' ; 

De  lion  got  his  dander  up,  an'  like  to  bnik  de  palin';    205 

De  sarpints  hissed;    de  painters  yelled;    tell,  whut  wid 

all  de  fussin', 
You  c'u'dn't  hardly  heah  de  mate  a-bossin'  'roun'  an' 

cussin'. 

Now,  Ham,  de  only  nigger  whut  wuz    runnin'  on  de 

packet, 
Got  lonesome  in  de  barber-shop,  an'  c'u'dn't  stan'  de 

racket ; 
An'  so,  fur  to  amuse  he-se'f ,  he  steamed  some  wood  an'  210 

bent  it. 
An'  soon  he  had  a  banjo  made — de  fust  dat  wuz  in^ 

vented. 

He  wet  de  ledder,  stretched  it  on;    made   bridge  an* 

screws  an'  aprin; 
An'  fitted  in  a  proper  neck — 't  wuz  berry  long  an'  tap  'rin' ; 
He  tuk  some  tin,  an'  twisted  him  a  thimble  fur  to  ring 

it; 
An'  den  de  mighty  question  riz :   how  wuz  he  gwine  to  215 

string  it? 


-2j5  Southern  Literary  Readings 

De  'possum  had  as  fine  a  tail  as  dis  dat  I  's  a-singin'; 
De  ha'rs   so   long   an'  thick  an'  strong, — des   fit    fur 

banjo-stringin' ; 
Dat  nigger  shaved  em'  off  as  short  as  wash-day-dinner 

graces; 
An'  sorted  ob  'em  by  de  size,  f'om  little  E's  to  basses. 

220    He  strung  her,  tuned  her,  struck  a  jig, —  'twuz  "Nebber 
min'  de  wedder," — 
She  soun'  like  forty-lebben  bands  a-playin'  all  togedder; 
Some  went  to  pattin' ;    some  to  dancin' :    Noah  called 

de  figgers; 
An'  Ham  he  sot  an'  knocked  de  tune,  de  happiest  ob 
niggers ! 

Now,  sence  dat  time — it's  mighty  strange — dere 's  not 

de  slightes'  showin' 
225    Ob  any  ha'r  at  all  upon  de  'possum's  tail  a-growin'; 
An'   curi's,  too,  dat  nigger's  ways:    his  people  nebber 

los'  'em — 
Fur  whar  you  finds  de  nigger — dar's  de  banjo  an'  de 

'possum ! 

" ' :  -■  The  night  is  spent ;  and  as  the  day 

Throws  up  the  first  faint  flash  of  gray, 
230  The  guests  pursue  their  homeward  way ; 

And  through  the  field  beyond  the  gin, 

Just  as  the  stars  are  going  in, 
"   See  Santa  Claus  departing — grieving — 

His  own  dear  Land  of  Cotton  leaving. 
235  His  work  is  done ;  he  fain  would  rest 

Where  people  know  and  love  him  best. 

He  pauses,  listens,  looks  about; 

But  go  he  must :  his  pass  is  out. 


Business  in  Mississippi  239 

/' 

So,  coughing  down  the  rising  tears, 
He  climbs  the  fence  and  disappears. 
And  thus  observes  a  colored  youth 
(The  common  sentiment,  in  sooth) : 
"Oh!  what  a  blessin'  'tw'u'd  ha'  been, 
Ef  Santy  had  been  born  a  twin ! 
We  'd  hab  two  Christmuses  a  yeah — 
Or  p'r'aps  one  brudder'd  settle  heah!" 


BUSINESS   IN   MISSISSIPPI 

Why,  howdy,  Mahsr  Johnny!     Is  you  gone  to  keepin' 

store? 
Well,  sah,  I  is  surprised !     I  nebber  heard  ob  dat  afore. 
Say,  ain't  you  gwine  to  gib  me  piece  o'  good  tobacco, 

please? 
I 's  'long  wid  you  in  Georgia,  time  we  all  wuz  refugees. 

I  know'd  you  would;  I  alluz  tells  the  people,  white  an'  5 

black, 
Dat  you 's  a  r'al  gen'l'man,  an'  dat 's  de  libin'  fac' — 
Yes,  sah,  dat 's  what  I  tells  'em,  an'  it 's  nuffin  else  but  true, 
An'  all  de  cullud  people  thinks  a  mighty  heap  ob  you. 

Look  heah,  sah,  don't  you  want  to  buy  some  cotton  ?    Yes, 

you  do; 
Dere  's  oder  people  wants  it,  but  I  'd  rader  sell  to  you.  10 

How  much?    Oh,  jes  a  bale — dat  on  de  wagon  in  de 

street — 
Dis  heah's  de  sample, — dis  cotton 's mighty  hard  to  beat! 

You  *11  fin'  it  on  de  paper,  what  de  offers  is  dat 's  made; 
Dey 's  all  de  same  seditions, — half  in  cash,  half  in  trade. 


240  Southern  Literary  Readings 

16  Dey 's  mighty  low,  sah;  come,  now,  can't  you  'prove  upon 
de  rates 
Dat  Barrot  Brothers  offers — only  twelb  an'  seben-eights? 

Lord,  Mahsr  Johnny,  raise  it !     Don't  you  know  dat  I's  a 

frien', 
An'  when  I  has  de  money  I  is  willin'  fur  to  spen'f 
My  custom 's  wuff  a  heap,  sah;  jes  you  buy  de  bale  an'  see. 
20  Dere  didn't  nebber  nobody  lose  nuffin  off  ob  me. 

Now,  what 's  de  use  of  gwine  dere  an'  a-zaminin'  ob  de  bale? 
When  people  trades  wid  me  dey  alluz  gits  an  hones'  sale; 
I  ain't  no  han'  fur  cheatin';  I  beliebes  in  actin'  fa'r, 
An'  ebry-body '11  tell  you  dey  alluz  foun'  me  squar'. 

25 1  isn't  like  some  niggers;  I  declar'  it  is  a  shame 
De  way  some  ob  dem  swin'les — ^What!  de  cotton  ain't  de 

same 
As  dat 's  in  de  sample !  well,  I  'm  blest,  sah,  ef  it  is ! 
Dis  heah  must  be  my'brudder's  sample — Yes,  sah,  dis  is  his. 

If  dat  don't  beat  creation!     Heah  I've  done  been  totin* 
'round 
80 A  sample  different  from  de  cotton!    I — will — be — con- 
sound  ! 

Mahsr  Johnny,  you  must  scuse  me.     Take  de  cotton  as  it 
Stan's, 

An'  tell  me  ef  you  're  willin'  fur  to  take  it  off  my  han's. 

Sho!  nebber  min'  de  auger!  't ain't  a  bit  o'  use  to  bore; 
De  bale  is  all  de  same's  dis  heah  place  de  baggin's  tore; 
85  You  oughtn't  to  go  pullin'  out  de  cotton  dat  a-way; 
It  spiles  de  beauty  ob  de — What,  sah!  rocks  in  dar,  you 
say! 


Mahsr  John  241 

Rocks  in  dat  ar  cotton!    How  de  debbil  kin  dat  be? 

I  packed  dat  bale  myse'f — hoi'  on  a  minute,  le' — me — 

see — 
My  stars!     I  mus'  be  crazy!     Mahsr  Johnny,  dis  is  fine! 
I 's  gone  an'  hauled  my  brudder's  cotton  in,  instead  ob  40 

mine ! 


MAHSR  JOHN 

I  heahs  a  heap  o'  people  talkin',  ebrywhar  I  goes, 

'Bout  Washintum  an'  Franklum,  an'  sech  gen 'uses  as  dose; 

I  s'pose  dey 's  mighty  fine,  but  heah's  de  p'int  I 's  bettin' 

on: 
Dere  wuzn't  nar  a  one  ob  'em  come  up  to  Mahsr  John. 

He  shorely  wuz  de  greates'  man  de  country  ebber  growed.  5 
You  better  had  git  out  de  way  when  he  come  'long  de 

road! 
He  hel'  his  head  up  dis  way,  like  he   'spised  to  see  de 

groun'; 
An'  niggers  had  to  toe  de  mark  when  Mahsr  John  wuz 

roun*. 

I  only  has  to  shet  my  eyes,  an'  den  it  seems  to  me 

I  sees  him  right  afore  me  now,  jes  like  he  use'  to  be,  10 

A-settin'  on  de  gal'ry,  lookin'  awful  big  an'  wise, 

Wid  little  niggers  fannin'  him  to  keep  away  de  flies. 

He  alluz  wore  de  berry  bes'  ob  planters'  linen  suits. 
An'  kep'  a  nigger  busy  jes  a-blackin'  ob  his  boots; 
De  buckles  on  his  galluses  wuz  made  of  solid  gol',  15 

An'  diamon's! — dey  wuz  in  his  shut  as  thick  as  it  would 
hoi'. 

16 


242  Southern  Literary  Readings 

You  heered  me!  'twas  a  caution,  when  he  went  to  take  a 

ride, 
To  see  him  in  de  kerridge,  wid  ol'  Mistis  by  his  side — 
Mulatter  Bill  a-dribin',  an'  a  nigger  on  behin', 
20  An'  two  Kaintucky  bosses  tuk  'em  tearin'  whar  dey  gwine. 

or  Mahsr  John  wuz  pow'ful  rich — he  owned  a  heap  o'  Ian' : 
Fibe  cotton  places,  'sides  a  sugar  place  in  Loozyan*; 
He  had  a  thousan'  niggers — an'  he  wuked  'em,  shore's 

you  born ! 
De  oberseahs  'u'd  start  'em  at  de  breakin'  ob  de  morn. 

25 1  reckon  dere  wuz  forty  ob  de  niggers,  young  an'  ol', 
Dat  staid  about  de  big  house  jes  to  do  what  dey  wuz  tol' ; 
Dey  had  a'  easy  time,  wid  skacely  any  work  at  all — 
But  dey  had  to  come  a-runnin'  when  ol'  Mahsr  John 
'u'd  call! 

Sometimes  he'd  gib  a  frolic — dat's  de  time  you  seed  de 

fun:  t 

80  De  'ristocratic  fam'lies,  dey  'u'd  be  dar,  ebry  one; 
Dey  'd  hab  a  band  from  New  Orleans  to  play  for  'em  to 

dance, 
An*  tell  you  what,  de  supper  wuz  a  Hic'lar  sarcumstance. 

Well,  times  is  changed.     De  war  it  come  an'  sot  de  niggers 

free, 
An'  now  ol'  Mahsr  John  ain't  hardly  wuf  as  much  as  me; 
35  He  had  to  pay  his  debts,  an'  so  his  Ian'  is  mos'ly  gone — 
An'  I  declar'  I 's  sorry  fur  my  pore  ol'  Mahsr  John. 

But  when  I  heahs  'em  talkin'    'bout  some   sullybrated 

man, 
I  listens  to  'em  quiet,  till  dey  done  said  all  dey  can, 


Nebuchadnezzar  243 

An'  den  I  'lows  dat  in  dem  days  'at  I  remembers  on, 
Dot  gemman  war  n't  a  patchin'  onto  my  ol'  Mahsr 
John! 


NEBUCHADNEZZAR 

You,  Nebuchadnezzah,  whoa,  sah! 
Whar  is  you-  tryin'  to  go,  sah? 
I  'd  hab  you  fur  to  know,  sah, 

I 's  a-holdin'  ob  de  lines. 
You  better  stop  dat  prancin' ; 
You's  pow'ful  fond  ob  dancin', 
But  I  '11  bet  my  yeah's  advancin' 

Dat  I  '11  cure  you  ob  yo'  shines. 

Look  heah,  mule !     Better  min'  out ; 
Fus'  t'ing^you  know  you  '11  fin'  out 
How  quick  I  '11  wear  dis  line  out 

On  your  ugly,  stubbo'n  back. 
You  needn't  try  to  steal  up 
An'  lif  dat  precious  heel  up; 
You's  got  to  plow  dis  fiel'  up, 

You  has,  sah,  fur  a  fac'. 

Dar,  dat 's  de  way  to  do  it ! 
He 's  comin'  right  down  to  it; 
Jes  watch  him  plowin'  troo  it ! 

Dis  nigger  ain't  no  fool. 
Some  folks  dey  would  'a'  beat  him ; 
Now,  dat  would  only  heat  him  — 
I  know  jes  how  to  treat  him: 

You  mus'  reason  wid  a  mule. 


244  Southern  Literary  Readings 

He  minds  me  like  a  nigger. 

If  he  wuz  only  bigger 

He  'd  fotch  a  mighty  figger, 

He  would,  I  tell  you!    Yes,  sah! 
See  how  he  keeps  a-clickin' ! 
He 's  as  gentle  as  a  chickin ! 
An'  nebber  thinks  o'  kickin' — 

Whoa  dar!  Nehuchadnezzah! 


Is  dis  heah  me,  or  not  me? 
Or  is  de  debbil  got  me  ? 
Wuz  dat  a  cannon  shot  me? 

Hab  I  laid  heah  more 'n  a  week? 
Dat  mule  do  kick  amazin' ! 
De  beast  wuz  sp'iled  in  raisin' — 
But  now  I  'spect  he 's  grazin' 

On  de  Oder  side  de  creek. 


From  a  photograph.    Courtesy  oj  Clark  Howell 
HENRY  WOODFIN  GRADY 


HENRY  WOODFIN   GRADY 

The  long  list  of  eminent  Southern  orators  includes  no 
name  that  shines  with  greater  luster  than  that  of  Henry 
Woodiin  Grady.  He  was  bom  in  Athens,  Georgia,  May 
17,  185 1.  When  he  was  just  entering  his  teens  he  stood 
beside  the  open  grave  of  his  father,  who  had  been  brought 
back  dead  from  the  battle  field  of  Petersburg,  Virginia. 
Shortly  after  this  loss,  young  Grady  entered  the  Univer- 
sity of  Georgia.  He  was  not  an  ideal  student,  but  he 
was  an  enthusiastic  and  distinguished  member  of  one  of 
the  literary  or  debating  societies.  He  was  not  awarded 
the  honor  he  sought — that  of  being  elected  annual 
spokesman  of  his  society — but  he  was  chosen  commence- 
ment orator  in  the  year  of  his  graduation.  The  following 
year  Grady  spent  in  further  study  at  the  University  of 
Virginia.  Again  he  entered  enthusiastically  into  the  work 
of  the  literary  societies,  and  again  he  was  disappointed 
in  not  being  elected  orator  of  his  society.  He  earned  for 
himself,  however,  the  distinction  of  being  one  of  the  most 
brilliant  speakers  in  the  university. 

On  his  return  to  his  native  state  he  determined  to  make 
journalism  his  life  work,  and  through  thick  and  thin, 
through  poverty  and  success,  even  in  the  face  of  flattering 
opportunities  to  go  into  politics  and  accept  public  office,  he 
adhered  to  his  determination.  He  began  by  reporting  or 
writing  special  articles  for  various  newspapers  in  his  own 
fanciful  and  attractive  style.  Soon  he  launched  into  the 
business  side  of  journalism  by  purchasing  and  combining 
two  papers  in  Rome,  Georgia.  Grady  had  so  many 
purely  idealistic  notions  about  newspaper  work  that  he 
speedily  made  a  financial  failure  of  this  venture.  He  then 
went  to  Atlanta,  and  in  conjunction  with  two  partners 
founded  the  Daily  Herald.  So  daring  and  unpractical 
were  the  projects  of  these  idealistic  editors  that  the  paper 
failed  financially,  and  swept  away  the  remnant  of  Grady's 
patrimony. 

[245] 


246  Southern  Literary  Readings 

But  instead  of  becoming  despondent  over  his  financial 
troubles — he  was  now  married  and  the  proud  father  of 
two  children — with  undaunted  courage  he  set  forth  to 
win  his  way  to  fortune  and  fame.  Borrowing  fifty  dollars 
from  a  friend,  he  gave  twenty  of  it  to  his  wife,  and  with 
the  remaining  thirty  left  home  to  find  work.  He  had  a 
chance  to  secure  the  editorship  of  a  paper  in  Wilmington, 
North  Carolina,  but  felt  there  were  larger  opportunities 
for  him  in  New  York  City.  He  reached  the  metropolis 
with  only  a  few  dollars  in  his  pocket,,  and  with  character- 
istic self-confidence  took  a  room  at  the  Astor  House. 
Grady's  own  account  of  his  experience  in  New  York 
(reported  by  M.J.  Verdery  in  his  Memorial  of  Henry  W. 
Grady)  is  so  human  and  so  characteristic  of  the  impetuous 
Southerner  that  it  seems  worthy  of  reproduction  in  full: 

"After  forcing  down  my  unrelished  breakfast  on  the 
morning  of  my  arrival  in  New  York,  I  went  put  on  the 
sidewalk  in  front  of  the  Astor  House,  and  gave  a  bootblack 
twenty-five  cents,  one-fifth  of  which  was  to  pay  for  shining 
my  shoes,  and  the  balance  was  a  fee  for  the  privilege  of 
talking  to  him.  I  felt  that  I  would  die  if  I  did  not  talk 
to  somebody.  Having  stimulated  myself  at  that  doubtful 
fountain  of  sympathy,  I  went  across  to  the  Herald  office, 
and  the  managing  editor  was  good  enough  to  admit  me  to 
his  sanctum.  It  happened  that  just  at  that  time  several 
of  the  Southern  States  were  holding  constitutional  con- 
ventions. The  Herald  manager  asked  me  if  I  knew  any- 
thing about  politics;  I  replied  that  I  knew  very  little 
about  an3rthing  else.  'Well,'  said  he,  *sit  at  this  desk 
and  write  me  an  article  on  State  Conventions  in  the  South.' 
With  these  words  he  tosssed  me  a  pad  and  left  me  alone 
in  the  room.  When  my  task-master  returned,  I  had  fin- 
ished the  article  and  was  leaning  back  in  the  chair  with 
my  feet  up  on  the  desk.  'Why,  Mr.  Grady,  what  is  the 
matter? '  asked  the  managing  editor.  ' Nothing,'  I  replied, 
'except  that  I  am  through.'  'Very  well,  leave  your  copy 
on  the  desk,  and  if  it  amounts  to  an3rthing  I  will  let  you 
hear  from  me.  Where  are  you  stopping?'  *I  am  at  the 
Astor  House.'  Early  the  next  morning,  before  getting  out 
of  bed,  I  rang  for  a  hall-boy  and  ordered  the  Herald.  I 
actually  had  not  strength  to  get  up  and  dress  myself, 


Henry  Woodfin  Grady  24^ 

until  I  could  see  whether  or  not  my  article  had  been  used. 
I  opened  the  Herald  with  a  trembling  hand,  and  when  I 
saw  that  'State  Conventions  in  the  South'  was  on  the 
editorial  page,  I  fell  back  on  the  bed,  buried  my  face  in 
the  pillow,  and  cried  like  a  child.  When  I  went  back  to 
the  Herald  ofhce  that  day  the  managing  editor  received 
me  cordially  and  said,  'You  can  go  back  to  Georgia, 
Mr.  Grady,  and  consider  yourself  in  the  employ  of  the 
Herald:"    . 

Shortly  after  this  incident,  Grady  assumed,  in  con- 
junction with  his  work  on  the  New  York  Herald,  the 
duties  of  a  reporter  on  the  Atlanta  Constitution,  and  it  was 
on  this  paper  that  he  worked  during  the  remainder  of  his 
life.  A  few  years  later  he  borrowed  the  money  to  purchase 
an  interest  in  the  Constitution,  and  now  all  his  energies 
went  into  the  upbuilding  of  the  prestige  of  this  journal. 
With  remarkable  brilliancy  of  intellect,  singleness  of  pur- 
pose, and  nobleness  of  heart,  he  threw  himself  into  the 
life  of  his  people.  There  was  scarcely  a  philanthropic' 
movement  in  his  city  of  which  he  was  not  the  mainstay  and 
most  enthusiastic  promoter.  The  columns  of  his  paper 
were  always  generously  thrown  open  to  appeals  for  the 
suffering,  or  for  the  promotion  of  institutions  of  a  help- 
ful or  educational  nature.  He  seemed  to  have  wonderful 
power  of  attaching  all  classes  to  him.  His  word  in  the 
editorial  columns  of  his  paper  went  farther  and  produced 
more  immediate  results  than  the  mandates  from  governors' 
mansions,  congressional  halls,  or  political  caucuses.  He 
could  have  had  any  office  within  the  gift  of  his  people,  but 
he  cared  fpr  no  political  preferment.  Yet  no  man  in 
Georgia  felt  sure  of  election  to  any  office  of  distinction 
unless  he  had  Grady's  endorsement  and  support. 

Already  the  idol  of  his  own  people,  Grady  by  his  great 
speech  before  the  New  England  Society  of  New  York  City, 
December,  1886,  suddenly  leaped  into  national  fame.  He 
was  at  once  reckoned  one  of  the  foremost  orators  of 
America,  and  every  utterance  of  the  last  three  years  of  his 
life  only  served  to  enhance  this  reputation.  He  was 
called  upon  repeatedly  to  speak,  but  owing  to  his  editorial 
duties  he  could  accept  but  few  invitations.  On  many 
occasions  he  spoke  to  his  fellow  citizens  in  Atlanta  and 


248  Southern  Literary  Readings 

elsewhere  in  Georgia,  but  as  his  speeches  were  largely 
extemporaneous  and  unreported,  few  of  them  have  sur- 
vived. In  October,  1887,  he  delivered  at  the  State  Fair  in 
Dallas,  Texas,  an  oration  on  The  South  and  Her  Problems. 
He  had  carefully  prepared  the  manuscript  of  this,  but  when 
he  rose  to  speak  he  discarded  his  written  speech  and 
trusted  to  the  inspiration  of  the  occasion.  For  vividness, 
pathos,  imagination,  and  soaring  eloquence,  his  picture 
of  the  wounded  soldier  has  been  thought  to  be  unsur- 
passed in  American  oratory.  At  the  Augusta  Exposition 
in  his  own  state,  in  November  of  this  same  year,  he  made 
another  notable  speech  on  the  political  problems  of  the 
Southern  States.  In  June,  1889,  before  the  literary  soci- 
eties of  the  University  of  Virginia,  he  delivered  an  address 
against  centralization.  In  this  same  month  and  year 
he  spoke  to  a  large  gathering  of  Southern  farmers  at  an 
old-time  barbecue  in  the  little  city  of  Elberton,  Georgia, 
his  subject  being  The  Farmer  and  the  Cities.  Of  all  his 
graphic  word  pictures  the  passage  from  this  speech  de- 
scriptive of  the  farmer's  home  is  the  one  best  known. 
The  last  and  perhaps  the  greatest  of  all  Grady's  spoken 
messages  was  the  speech  on  The  Race  Problem,  delivered 
at  the  annual  banquet  of  the  Boston  Merchants'  Associa- 
tion in  December,  1889. 

Returning  home  from  his  visit  to  New  England,  he  fell 
a  victim  to  pneumonia  and  died,  December  23,  1889. 
Not  only  the  South  but  the  whole  nation  mourned  his 
death.  He  had  done  more  than  any  other  man  of  his 
generation  to  heal  the  breach  between  the  North  and  the 
South;  and  he  will  go  down  in  history  as  one  of  the  great 
national  forces  for  good  in  the  last  half  of  the*  nineteenth 
century.  A  monument  has  been  erected  to  his  memory 
in  the  city  which,  as  a  struggling  young  newspaper  man, 
he  adopted  for  his  own. 

John  Temple  Graves — himself  a  distinguished  Georgia 
author — in  his  eulogy  on  Grady  pronounced  at  the 
Atlanta  memorial  service,  said  in  part: 

"It  is  marvelous,  past  all  telling,  how  he  caught  the 
heart  of  the  country  in  the  fervid  glow  of  his  own.  All 
the  forces  of  our  statesmanship  have  not  prevailed  for 
union  like  the  ringing  speeches  of  this  magnetic  man.    His 


\ 


The  New  South  24Q 

eloquence  was  the  electric  current  over  which  the  positive 
and  negative  poles  of  American  sentiment  were  rushing  to 
a  warm  embrace.  It  was  the  transparent  medium  through 
which  the  bleared  eyes  of  the  sections  were  learning  to  see 
each  other  clearer  and  to  love  each  other  better.   .    .    . 

"If  I  should  seek  to  touch  the  core  of  all  his  greatness, 
I  would  lay  my  hand  upon  his  heart.  I  should  speak  of 
his  humanity — his  almost  inspired  sympathies,  his  sweet 
philanthropy,  and  the  noble  heartfulness  that  ran  like  a 
silver  current  through  his  life.  His  heart  was  the  furnace 
where  he  fashioned  all  his  glowing  speech.  Love  Was  the 
ciurrent  that  sent  his  golden  sentences  pulsing  through  the 
world,  and  in  the  hottest  throb  of  human  sympathies,  he 
found  the  anchor  that  held  him  steadfast  to  all  things 
great  and  true." 

(The  chief  work  on  Grady  is  the  memorial  volume  compiled 
by  his  co-workers  on  the  Atlanta  Constitution  and  edited  by  Joel 
Chandler  Harris :  H&nry  W.  Grady,  His  Life,  Writings,  and  Speeches.) 


THE  NEW  SOUTH 
Peroration 

The  new  South  is  enamored  of  her  new  work.  Her 
soul  is  stirred  with  the  breath  of  a  new  life.  The  light  of 
a  grander  day  is  falling  fair  on  her  face.  She  is  thrilling 
with  the  consciousness  of  growing  power  and  prosperity. 
As  she  stands  upright,  full-statured  and  equal  among  the 
people  of  the  earth,  breathing  the  keen  air  and  looking 
out  upon  the  expanded  horizon,  she  understands  that 
her  emancipation  came  because  through  the  inscrutable 
wisdom  of  God  her  honest  purpose  was  crossed,  and  her 
brave  armies  were  beaten. 

This  is  said  in  no  spirit  of  time-serving  or  apology. 
The  South  has  nothing  for  which  to  apologize.  She  be- 
lieves that  the  late  struggle  between  the  States  was  war 
and  not  rebellion;    revolution  and  not  conspiracy,  and 


2^0.  Southern  Literary  Readings 

15  that  her  convictions  were  as  honest  as  yours.  I  should  be 
unjust  to  the  dauntless  spirit  of  the  South  and  to  my  own 
convictions  if  I  did  not  make  this  plain  in  this  presence. 

^The  South  has  nothing  to  take  back.  In  my  native  town 
of  Athens  is  a  monument  that  crowns  its  central  hill — a 

20  plain,  white  shaft.  Deep  cut  into  its  shining  side  is  a  name 
dear  to  me  above  the  names  of  men — that  of  a  brave  and 
simple  man  who  died  in  brave  and  simple  faith.  Not  for 
all  the  glories  of  New  England,  from  Plymouth  Rock  all 
the  way,  would  I  exchange  the  heritage  he  left  me  in  his 

25  soldier's  death.  To  the  foot  of  that  [shaft]  I  shall  send  my 
children's  children  to  reverence  him  who  ennobled  their 
name  with  his  heroic  blood.  But,  sir,  speaking  from  the 
shadow  of  that  memory  which  I  honor  as  I  do  nothing  else 
on  earth,  I  say  that  the  cause  in  which  he  suffered  and  for 

80  which  he  gave  his  life  was  adjudged  by  higher  and  fuller 
wisdom  than  his  or  mine,  and  I  am  glad  that  the  omnis- 
cient God  held  the  balance  of  battle  in  His  Almighty  hand 
and  that  human  slavery  was  swept  forever  from  American 
soil,  the  American  Union  saved  from  the  wreck  of  war. 

85  This  message,  Mr.  President,  comes  to  you  from  conse- 
crated ground.  Every  foot  of  soil  about  the  city  in  which 
I  live  is  sacred  as  a  battle-ground  of  the  republic.  Every 
hill  that  invests  it  is  hallowed  to  you  by  the  blood  of  your 
brothers  who  died  for  your  victory,  and  doubly  hallowed 

40  to  us  by  the  blood  of  those  who  died  hopeless,  but  un- 
daunted, in  defeat — sacred  soil  to  all  of  us — rich  with 
memories  that  make  us  purer  and  stronger  and  better — 
silent  but  staunch  witness  in  its  red  desolation  of  the 
matchless  valor  of  American   hearts  and  the  deathless 

45  glory  of  American  arms — speaking  an  eloquent  witness  in 
its  white  peace  and  prosperity  to  the  indissoluble  union 
of  American  States  and  the  imperishable  brotherhood  of 
the  American  people. 


The  New  South  251 

Now,  what  answer  has  New  England  to  this  message? 
Will  she  permit  the  prejudice  of  war  to  remain  in  the  50 
hearts  of  the  conquerors,  when  it  has  died  in  the  hearts 
of  the  conquered?  Will  she  transmit  this  prejudice  to 
the  next  generation,  that  in  their  hearts  which  never  felt 
the  generous  ardor  of  conflict  it  may  perpetuate  itself? 
Will  she  withhold,  save  in  strained  courtesy,  the  hand  55 
which  straight  from  his  soldier's  heart  Grant  offered  to  Lee 
at  Appomattox?  Will  she  make  the  vision  of  a  restored 
and  happy  people,  which  gathered  above  the  couch  of  your 
dying  captain,  filling  his  heart  with  grace,  touching  his 
lips  with  praise,  and  'glorifying  his  path  to  the  grave — eo 
will  she  make  this  vision  on  which  the  last  sigh  of  his 
expiring  soul  breathed  a  benediction,  a  cheat  and  delusion? 
If  she  does,  the  South,  never  abject  in  asking  for  com- 
radeship, must  accept  with  dignity  its  refusal;  but  if  she 
does  not  refuse  to  accept  in  frankness  and  sincerity  this  es 
message  of  good  will  and  friendship,  then  will  the  proph- 
ecy of  Webster,  delivered  in  this  very  society  forty  years 
ago  amid  tremendous  applause,  become  true,  be  verified 
in  its  fullest  sense,  when  he  said:  ''Standing  hand  to 
hand  and  clasping  hands,  we  should  remain  united  as  we  70 
have  been  for  sixty  years,  citizens  of  the  same  country, 
members  of  the  same  government,  united,  all  united 
now  and  united  forever."  There  have  been  difficulties, 
contentions,  and  controversies,  but  I  tell  you  that  in  my 
judgment,  75 

"Those  opened  eyes, 

Which  like  the  meteors  of  a  troubled  heaven, 

All  of  one  nature,  of  one  substance  bred, 

Did  lately  meet  in  th'  intestine  shock, 

Shall  now,  in  mutual  well  beseeming  ranks,  so 

March  all  one  way." 


2^2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

THE  FARMER'S   HOME 
From  "The  Farmer  and  the  Cities" 

A  few  Sundays  ago  I  stood  on  a  hill  in  Washington. 
My  heart  thrilled  as  I  looked  on  the  towering  marble  of  my 
country's  Capitol,  and  a  mist  gathered  in  my  eyes  as, 
standing  there,  I  thought  of  its  tremendous  significance  and 
.5  the  powers  there  assembled,  and  the  responsibilities  there 
centered — its  presidents,  its  congress,  its  courts,  its  gath- 
ered treasure,  its  army,  its  navy,  and  its  sixty  millions  of 
citizens.  It  seemed  to  me  the  best  and  mightiest  sight  that 
the  sun  could  find  in  its  wheeling  course — this  majestic 

10  home  of  a  Republic  that  has  taught  the  world  its  best 
lessons  of  liberty — and  I  felt  that  if  wisdom,  and  justice, 
and  honor  abided  therein,  the  world  would  stand  indebted 
to  this  temple  on  which  my  eyes  rested,  and  in  which  the 
ark  of  my  covenant  was  lodged  for  its  final  uplifting  and 

15  regeneration. 

A  few  days  later  I  visited  a  country  home.  A  modest, 
quiet  house  sheltered  by  great  trees  and  set  in  a  circle  of 
field  and  meadow,  gracious  with  the  promise  of  harvest  — 
barns  and  cribs  well  filled  and  the  old  smoke-house  odor- 

20  ous  with  treasure — the  fragrance  of  pink  and  hollyhock 
mingling  with  the  aroma  of  garden  and  orchard,   and 

^  resonant  with  the  hum  of  bees  and  poultry's  busy  clucking 
— inside  the  house,  thrift,  comfort,  and  that  cleanliness 
that  is  next  to  godliness — the  restful   beds,  the  open 

25  fireplace,  the  books  and  papers,  and  the  old  clock  that 
had  held  its  steadfast  pace  amid  the  frolic  of  weddings, 
that  had  welcomed  in  steady  measure  the  newborn  babes 
of  the  family,  and  kept  company  with  the  watchers  of  the 
sick  bed,  and  had  ticked  the  solemn  requiem  of  the  dead; 

30  and  the  well-worn  Bible  that,  thumbed  by  fingers  long 
since  stilled,  and  blurred  with  tears  of  eyes  long  since  closed, 


The  Farmer's  Home  .     2^3 

held  the  simple  annals  of  the  family,  and  the  heart  and 
conscience  of  the  home.  Outside  stood  the  master,  strong 
and  wholesome  and  upright;  wearing  no  man's  collar; 
with  no  mortgage  on  his  roof,  and  no  lien  on  his  ripening  35 
harvest;  pitching  his  crops  in  his  own  wisdom,  and  selling 
them  in  his  own  time  in  his  chosen  market ;  master  of  his 
lands  and  master  of  himself.  Near  by  stood  his  aged 
father,  happy  in  the  heart  and  home  of  his  son.  And  as 
they  started  to  the  house,  the  old  man's  hands  rested  on  the  40 
young  man's  shoulder,  touching  it  with  the  knighthood  of 
the  fourth  commandment,  and  laying  there  the  unspeak- 
able blessing  of  an  honored  and  grateful  father.  As 
they  drew  near  the  door  the  old  mother  appeared;  the 
sunset  falling  on  her  face,  softening  its  wrinkles  and  its  45 
tenderness  lighting  up  her  patient  eyes,  and  the  rich  music 
of  her  heart  trembling  on  her  lips,  as  in  simple  phrase  she 
welcomed  her  husband  and  son  to  their  home.  Beyond 
was  the  good  wife,  true  of  touch  and  tender,  happy  amid 
her  household  cares,  clean  of  heart  and  conscience,  the  50 
helpmate  and  the  buckler  of  her  husband.  And  the 
children,  strong  and  sturdy,  trooping  down  the  lane  with 
the  lowing  herd,  or  weary  of  simple  sport,  seeking,  as 
truant  birds  do,  the  quiet  of  the  old  home  nest.  And  I 
saw  the  night  descend  on  that  home,  falling  gently  as  from  55 
the  wings  of  the  unseen  dove.  And  the  stars  swarmed 
in  the  bending  skies — the  trees  thrilled  with  the  cricket's 
cry — the  restless  bird  called  from  the  neighboring  wood  — 
and  the  father,  a  simple  man  of  God,  gathering  the  family 
about  him,  read  from  the  Bible  the  old,  old  story  of  love  eo 
and  faith,  and  then  went  down  in  prayer,  the  baby  hidden 
amid  the  folds  of  its  mother's  dress,  and  closed  the  record 
of  that  simple  day  by  calling  down  the  benediction  of  God 
on  the  family  and  the  home! 

And  as  I  gazed  the  memory  of  the  great  Capitol  faded  os 


254  Southern  Literary  Readings 

from  my  brain.  Forgotten  its  treasure  and  its  splendor. 
And  I  said,  "Surely  here — here  in  the  homes  of  the  people 
is  lodged  the  ark  of  the  covenant  of  my  country.  Here 
is  its  majesty  and  its  strength.     Here  the  beginning  of 

70  its  power  and  the  end  of  its  responsibility."  The  homes 
of  the  people;  let  us  keep  them  pure  and  independent,  and 
all  will  be  well  with  the  Republic.  Here  is  the  lesson  our 
foes  may  learn — here  is  work  the  humblest  and  weakest 
hands  may  do.     Let  us  in  simple  thrift  and  economy  make 

75  our  homes  independent.  Let  us  in  frugal  industry  make 
them  self-sustaining.  In  sacrifice  and  denial  let  us  keep 
them  free  from  debt  and  obligation.  Let  us  make  them 
homes  of  refinement  in  which  we  shall  teach  our  daughters 
that  modesty  and  patience  and  gentleness  are  the  charms 

80  of  woman.  Let  us  make  them  temples  of  liberty,  and 
teach  our  sons  that  an  honest  conscience  is  every  man's 
first  political  law.  That  his  sovereignty  rests  beneath 
his  hat,  and  that  no  splendor  can  rob  him  and  no  force 
justify  the  surrender  of  the  simplest  right  of  a  free  and 

85  independent  citizen.  And  above  all,  let  us  honor  God 
in  our  homes — anchor  them  close  in  His  love;  build  His 
altars  above  our  hearthstones,  uphold  them  in  the  set  and 
simple  faith  of  our  fathers  and  crown  them  with  the  Bible  — 
that  book  of  books  in  which  all  the  ways  of  life  are  made 

90  straight  and  the  mystery  of  death  is  made  plain.  The 
home  is  the  source  of  our  national  life.  Back  of  the 
national  Capitol  and  above  it  stands  the  home.  Back 
of  the  President  and  above  him  stands  the  citizen.  What 
the  home  is,  this  and  nothing  else  will  the  Capitol  be. 

95  What  the  citizen  wills,  this  and  nothing  else  will  the 
President  be. 


The  Wounded  Soldier  255 

THE  WOUNDED  SOLDIER 

Peroration  from  the  Speech  on  "The  South  and  Her 
Problems" 

A  few  words  for  the  young  men  of  Texas.  I  am  glad  that 
I  can  speak  to  them  at  all.  Men,  especially  young  men, 
look  back  for  their  inspiration  to  what  is  best  in  their 
traditions.  Thermopylae  cast  Spartan  sentiments  in 
heroic  mould  and  sustained  Spartan  arms  for  more  than  5 
a  century.  Thermopylae  had  survivors  to  tell  the  story 
of  its  defeat.  The  Alamo  had  none.  Though  voiceless 
it  shall  speak  from  its  dumb  walls.  Liberty  cried  out  to 
Texas,  as  God  called  from  the  clouds  unto  Moses.  Bowie 
and  Fanning,  though  dead  still  live.  Their  voices  rang  10 
above  the  din  of  Goliad  and  the  glory  of  San  Jacinto, 
and  they  marched  with  the  Texas  veterans  who  rejoiced 
at  the  birth  of  Texas  independence.  It  is  the  spirit  of 
the  Alamo  that  moved  above  the  Texas  soldiers  as'  they 
charged  like  demigods  through  a  thousand  battlefields,  15 
and  it  is  the  spirit  of  the  Alamo  that  whispers  from  their 
graves  held  in  every  State  of  the  Union,  ennobling  their 
dust,  their  soil,  that  was  crimsoned  with  their  blood. 

In  the  spirit  of  this  inspiration  and  in  the  thrill  of  the 
amazing  growth  that  surrounds  you,  my  young  friends,  it  20 
will  be  strange  if  the  young  men  of  Texas  do  not  carry  the 
lone  star  into  the  heart  of  the  struggle.  The  South  needs 
her  sons  to-day  more  than  when  she  summoned  them  to 
the  forum  to  maintain  her  political  supremacy,  more  than 
when  the  bugle  called  them  to  the  field  to  defend  issues  25 
put  to  the  arbitrament  of  the  sword.  Her  old  body  is 
instinct  with  appeal,  calling  on  us  to  come  and  give  her 
fuller  independence  than  she  has  ever  sought  in  field  or 
forum.  It  is  ours  to  show  that  as  she  prospered  with 
slaves  she  shall  prosper  still  more  with  freemen;  ours  to  30 


2^6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

see  that  from  the  Hsts  she  entered  in  poverty  she  shall 
emerge  in  prosperity ;  ours  to  carry  the  transcending  tradi- 
tions of  the  old  South  from  which  none  of  us  can  in  honor 
or  in  reverence  depart,  unstained  and  unbroken  into  the 

35 new.  Shall  we  fail?  Shall  the  blood  of  the  old  South — 
the  best  strain  that  ever  uplifted  human  endeavor — that 
ran  like  water  at  duty's  call  and  never  stained  where  it 
touched — shall  this  blood  that  pours  into  our  veins 
through  a  century  luminous  with  achievement,  for  the 

40  first  time  falter  and  be  driven  back  from  irresolute  heat, 
when  the  old  South,  that  left  us  a  better  heritage  in  man- 
liness and  courage  than  in  broad  and  rich  acres,  calls  us  to 
settle  problems? 
A  soldier  lay  wounded   on   a   hard-fought   field;   the 

45  roar  of  the  battle  had  died  away,  and  he  rested  in  the 
deadly  stillness  of  its  aftermath.  Not  a  sound  was  heard 
as  he  lay  there,  sorely  smitten  and  speechless,  but  the 
shriek  of  wounded  and  the  sigh  of  the  dying  soul,  as  it 
escaped  from  the  tumult  of  earth  into  the  unspeakable 

50  peace  of  the  stars.  Off  t>ver  the  field  flickered  the  lanterns 
of  the  surgeons  with  the  litter  bearers,  searching  that 
they  might  take  away  those  whose  lives  could  be  saved 
and  leave  in  sorrow  those  who  were  doomed  to  die  with 
pleading  eyes  through  the  darkness.     This  poor  soldier 

55  watched,  unable  to  turn  or  speak  as  the  lanterns  drew  near. 
At  last  the  light  flashed  in  his  face,  and  the  surgeon,  with 
kindly  face,  bent  over  him,  hesitated  a  moment,  shook 
his  head,  and  was  gone,  leaving  the  poor  fellow  alone  with 
death.     He  watched  in  patient  agony  as  they  went  on  from 

60  one  part  of  the  field  to  another.  As  they  came  back  the 
surgeon  bent  over  him  again.  "I  believe  if  this  poor 
fellow  lives  to  sundown  to-morrow  he  will  get  well."  And 
again  leaving  him,  not  to  death  but  with  hope;  all  night 
long  these  words  fell  into  his  heart  as  the  dews  fell  from 


The  Wounded  Soldier  257 

the  stars  upon  his  lips,  "if  he  but  Hves  till  sundown,  he  es 
will  get  well."     He  turned  his  weary  head  to  the  east  and 
watched  for  the  coming  sun.     At  last  the  stars  went  out, 
the  east  trembled  with  radiance,  and  the  sun,  slowly 
lifting  above  the  horizon,  tinged  his  pallid  face  with  flame. 
He  watched  it  inch  by  inch  as  it  climbed  slowly  up  the  70 
heavens.     He  thought  of  life,  its  hopes  and  ambitions, 
its  sweetness  and  its  raptures,  and  he  fortified  his  soul 
against  despair  until  the  sun  had  reached  high  noon. 
It  sloped  down  its  slow  descent,  and  his  life  was  ebbing 
away  and  his  heart  was  faltering,  and  he  needed  stronger  75 
stimulants  to  make  him  stand  the  struggle  until  the  end 
of  the  day  had  come.     He  thought  of  his  far-off  home, 
the  blessed  house  resting  in  tranquil  peace  with  the  roses 
climbing  to  its  door,  and  the  trees  whispering  to  its  win- 
dows, and  dozing  in  the  sunshine,  the  orchard  and  the  little  80 
brook  running  like  a  silver  thread  through  the  forest. 

''If  I  live  till  sundown  I  will  see  it  again.  I  will  walk 
down  the  shady  lane:  I  will  open  the  battered  gate,  and 
the  mocking-bird  shall  call  to  me  from  the  orchard,  and 
I  will  drink  again  at  the  old  mossy  spring."  ss 

And  he  thought  of  the  wife  who  had  come  from  the 
neighboring  farmhouse  and  put  her  hand  shyly  in  his,  and 
brought  sweetness  to  his  life  and  light  to  his  home. 

*'If  I  live  till  sundown  I  shall  look  once  more  into  her 
deep  and  loving  eyes  and  press  her  brown  head  once  more  90 
to  my  aching  breast." 

And  he  thought  of  the  old  father,  patient  in  prayer, 
bending  lower  and  lower  every  day  under  his  load  of  sorrow 
and  old  age. 

"If  I  but  live  till  sundown  I  shall  see  him  again  and  95 
wind  my  strong  arm  about  his  feeble  body,  and  his  hands 
shall  rest  upon  my  head  while  the  unspeakable  healing  of 
his  blessing  falls  into  my  heart." 

17 


2j8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

And  he  thought  of  the  little  children  that  clambered 

100  on  his  knees  and  tangled  their  little  hands  into  his  heart- 
strings, making  to  him  such  music  as  the  world  shall  not 
equal  or  heaven  surpass. 

**  If  I  live  till  sundown,  they  shall  again  find  my  parched 
lips  with  their  warm  mouths,  and  their  little  fingers  shall 

105  run  once  more  over  my  face." 

And  he  then  thought  of  his  old  mother,  who  gathered 
these  children  about  her  and  breathed  her  old  heart  afresh 
in  their  brightness  and  attuned  her  old  lips  anew  to  their 
prattle,  that  she  might  live  till  her  big  boy  came  home. 

no  '  *  If  I  live  till  sundown  I  will  see  her  again,  and  I  will 
rest  my  head  at  my  old  place  on  her  knees,  and  weep 
away  all  memory  of  this  desolate  night."  And  the  Son 
of  God,  who  had  died  for  men,  bending  from  the  stars,  put 
the  hand  that  had  been  nailed  to  the  cross  on  ebbing  life 

115  and  held  on  the  staunch  until  the  sun  went  down  and  the 

stars  came  out,  and  shone  down  in  the  brave  man's  heart 

and  blurred  in  his  glistening  eyes,  and  the  lanterns  of  the 

surgeons  came,  and  he  was  taken  from  death  to  life. 

The  world  is  a  battlefield  strewn  with  the  wrecks  of 

120  government  and  institutions,  of  theories  and  of  faiths  that 
have  gone  down  in  the  ravage  of  years.  On  this  field  lies 
the  South,  sown  with  her  problems.  Upon  the  field  swing 
the  lanterns  of  God.  Amid  the  carnage  walks  the  Great 
Physician.     Over  the  South  he  bends.     "If  ye  but  live 

125  until  to-morrow's  sundown  ye  shall  endure,  my  country- 
men." Let  us  for  her  sake  turn  our  faces  to  the  east  and 
watch  as  the  soldier  watched  for  the  coming  sun.  Let  us 
staunch  her  wounds  and  hold  steadfast.  The  sun  mounts 
the  skies.     As  it  descends  to  us,  minister  to  her  and  stand 

130  constant  at  her  side  for  the  sake  of  our  children,  and 
of  generations  unborn  that  shall  suffer  if  she  fails.  And 
when  the  sun  has  gone  down  and  the  day  of  her  probation 


The  Wounded  Soldier  2^g 

has  ended,  and  the  stars  have  ralHed  her  heart,  the  lan- 
terns shall  be  swung  over  the  field  and  the  Great  Physician 
shall  lead  her  up,  from  trouble  into  content,  from  suf-  135 
fering  into  peace,  from  death  to  life.  Let  every  man  here 
pledge  himself  in  this  high  and  ardent  hour,  as  I  pledge 
myself  and  the  boy  that  shall  follow  me ;  every  man  him- 
self and  his  son,  hand  to  hand  and  heart  to  heart,  that  in 
death  and  earnest  loyalty,  in  patient  painstaking  and  care,  uo 
he  shall  watch  her  interest,  advance  her  fortune,  defend 
her  fame  and  guard  her  honor  as  long  as  life  shall  last. 
Every  man  in  the  sound  of  my  voice,  under  the  deeper 
consecration  he  offers  to  the  Union,  will  consecrate  himself 
to  the  South.  Have  no  ambition  but  to  be  first  at  her  us 
feet  and  last  at  her  service.  No  hope  but,  after  a  long  life 
of  devotion,  to  sink  to  sleep  in  her  bosom,  and  as  a  little 
child  sleeps  at  his  mother's  breast  and  rests  untroubled 
in  the  light  of  her  smile. 

With  such  consecrated  service,  what  could  we  not  accom-  150 
plish;  what  riches  we  should  gather  for  her;  what  glory 
and  prosperity  we  should  render  to  the  Union;  what  bless- 
ings we  should  gather  unto  the  universal  harvest  of  human- 
ity !    As  I  think  of  it,  a  vision  of  surpassing  beauty  unfolds 
to  my  eyes.     I  see  a  South,  the  home  of  fifty  millions  of  155 
people,  who  rise  up  every  day  to  call  from  blessed  cities, 
vast  hives  of  industry  and  of  thrift;   her  country-sides 
the  treasures  from  which  their  resources  are  drawn;  her 
streams  vocal  with  whirring  spindles ;  her  valleys  tranquil 
in  the  white  and  gold  of  the  harvest ;  her  mountains  shower-  leo 
ing  down  the  music  of  bells,  as  her  slow-moving  flocks  and 
herds  go  forth  from  their  folds ;  her  rulers  honest  and  her 
people  loving,  and  her  homes  happy  and  their  hearthstones 
bright,  and  their  waters  still,  and  their  pastures  green,  and 
her  conscience  clear ;  her  wealth  diffused  and  poor-houses  les 
empty,  her  churches  earnest  and  all  creeds  lost  in  the  gospel ; 


26o  Southern  Literary  Readings 

peace  and  sobriety  walking  hand  in  hand  through  her  bor- 
ders; honor  in  her  homes ;  uprightness  in  her  midst ;  plenty 
in  her  fields;   straight  and  simple  faith  in  the  hearts  of 

170  her  sons  and  daughters;  her  two  races  walking  together 

in  peace  and  contentment;  sunshine  everywhere  and  all 

the  time,  and  night  falling  on  her  generally  as  from  the 

wings  of  the  unseen  dove. 

All  this,  my  country,  and  more  can  we  do  for  you.     As 

175 1  look  the  vision  grows,  the  splendor  deepens,  the  horizon 
falls  back,  the  skies  open  their  everlasting  gates,  and  the 
glory  of  the  Almighty  God  streams  through  as  He  looks 
down  on  His  people  who  have  given  themselves  unto  Him 
and  leads  them  from  one  triumph  to  another  until  they 

180  have  reached  a  glory  unspeakable,  and  the  whirling  stars, 
as  in  their  courses  through  Arcturus  they  run  to  the 
milky  way,  shall  not  look  down  on  a  better  people  or 
happier  land. 


JAMES  LANE  ALLEN 


From  a  photograph 


JAMES   LANE  ALLEN 

In  the  estimation  of  a  host  of  cultured  readers,  James 
Lane  Allen  of  Kentucky  ranks  to-day  as  the  dean  of  Amer- 
ican story-writers.  Undoubtedly,  the  place  he  has  made 
for  himself  is  well  above  that  of  the  popular  modern 
novelist.  The  reason  for  this  is  that  Mr.  Allen  has  always 
done  his  best  and  has  never  allowed  himself  to  be  hur- 
ried into  print  or  spoiled  by  popular  applause.  He  has 
worked  slowly  and  published  rarely.  Written  with  pains- 
taking conscientiousness,  all  that  he  produces  is  marked 
by  sureness  of  touch  and  elegance  of  finish  bom  of  a  deep 
love  for  his  art  and  a  commendable  pride  in  perfect  work- 
manship. He  looks  more  carefully  to  the  quality  of  his 
writing  than  to  the  number  of  pages  he  can  publish  in  a 
year,  and  so  it  happens  that  whenever  a  new  volume 
by  him  appears  it  is  welcomed  by  thousands  of  eager, 
expectant  readers. 

He  was  born  near  Lexington,  Kentucky,  December  21, 
1849.  His  ancestry  was  of  that  sturdy  Virginia  stock 
which  moved  westward  to  occupy  the  frontier  in  pioneer 
days.  The  estate  upon  which  he  was  bom  had  long  been 
held  by  his  progenitors,  and  it  was  here  that  the  boy 
learned  to  love  that  picturesque  and  beautiful  Kentucky 
scenery  which  the  man  has  since  so  faithfully  and 
artistically  transferred  to  his  pages.  He  attended  the 
preparatory  department  of  the  old  Transylvania  Univer- 
sity, now  Kentucky  University,  and  was  graduated 
with  honors  at  this  institution  in  1872.  For  about  ten 
years  he  followed  the  profession  of  teaching,  serving  in 
several  academic  positions  in  both  private  and  public 
schools,  and  finally  attaining  a  professorship  of  English 
and  Latin  in  Bethany  College,  West  Virginia.  Early  in 
this  period,  through  his  essays  and  poems  published  in 
various  magazines,  he  had  begun  to  taste  the  joys  of  suc- 
cessful authorship,  and  to  chafe  under  the  uncertainties 
and  exacting  duties  of  teaching,  and  about  the  year  1884 

[261] 


262  Southern  Literary  Readings 

he  decided  to  devote  himself  thenceforward  to  Hterature. 
Eventually  he  moved  to  New  York,  to  be  in  the  center 
of  literary  and  publishing  activities,  and  here  he  has 
firmly  established  himself  as  a  professional  literary  man. 
Among  his  first  publications  was  a  series  of  articles  on  the 
Cumberland  and  Blue  Grass  regions  of  Kentucky,  but 
it  was  in  those  beautiful  and  poetic,  if  somewhat  melan- 
choly and  pathetic,  tales  of  Kentucky,  Flute  and  Violin, 
Sister  Dolorosa,  The  White  Cowl,  Two  Gentlemen  oj 
Kentucky,  and  others,  that  he  first  struck  a  rich  vein 
of  fresh  and  original  material.  These  were  published  in 
1 89 1  under  the  title  of  the  first  story  named,  and  the 
volume  which  they  formed  was  immediately  hailed  as  a 
classic  in  the  new  type  of  American  short  story,  and 
has  since  held  its  place  as  a  permanent  contribution  to 
American  fiction. 

But  the  most  popular  book  that  Mr.  Allen  has  written — 
and  many  of  his  admirers  think  he  has  never  surpassed  it 
nor  ever  will — is  A  Kentucky  Cardinal,  which  began  as  a 
short  serial  in  Harper's  Magazine  in  1893  and  was  published 
as  a  novelette  in  1894.  Professor  Henneman  in  his 
admirable  study  of  James  Lane  Allen  in  Southern  Writers 
calls  it  "a  pastoral  poem  in  prose,  noting  the  procession  of 
the  seasons ' ' ;  and  he  adds :  "  Here  was  the  heart  of  Nature 
laid  bare;  here  wrote  a  novelist  who  at  the  same  time 
was  a  disciple  of  Thoreau  and  Audubon."  Aftermath  is  a 
beautiful  though  sad  conclusion  to  this  exquisite  love  story, 
but  it  has  never  attained  the  popular  approval  accorded 
to  A  Kentucky  Cardinal. 

Other  long  stories,  broader  in  theme  but  not  more 
charming  in  style,  have  followed  at  infrequent  intervals. 
The  Choir  Invisible,  another  popular  favorite,  appeared  in 
1897,  but  it  was  based  on  an  earlier  story,  John  Gray, 
published  in  1892.  The  Reign  of  Law  came  in  1900,  The 
Mettle  of  the  Pasture  in  1903,  The  Bride  of  the  Mistletoe 
in  1909,  The  Brood  of  the  Eagle  in  19 10,  and  The  Heroine 
in  Bronze  in  191 2.  While  many  readers  do  not  find  in 
these  later  productions  the  fulfillment  of  the  promise  of 
his  earlier  work,  no  one  can  deny  his  power,  and  there 
are  some  who  would  rank  him  with  Hawthorne  and  Poe 
as  one  of  the  supremely  great  American  artists  in  prose. 


James  Lane  Allen  263 

There  is  certainly  a  distinct  charm  in  everything  that 
Mr.  Allen  writes.  There  is  something  in  the  flow  of  his 
words,  something  in  the  quaUty  of  his  style,  which  pleases 
not  only  the  ear  but  the  heart.  Not  all  of  his  ideas  are 
commendable,  and  there  is  sometimes  a  certain  morbid- 
ness in  some  of  his  themes;  but  there  is  nothing  pedantic, 
nothing  unmusical,  nothing  abrupt  in  his  pages.  The 
prose  moves  along  almost  with  the  rhythm  of  verse;  in 
fact,  the  poetic  element  predominates.  There  is  a  wealth 
of  exquisitely  wrought  imagery  in  his  outdoor  pictures. 
One  would  say  that  he  excels  in  imagination  and  pictorial 
power.  He  sees  clearly,  and  draws  the  outlines  of  his 
picture  firmly,  filling  in  the  detail  with  a  deft  and  delicate 
touch.  The  sunlight  fairly  dances  over  his  landscapes. 
The  many-peaked  clouds  become  wandering  Alps;  the 
cold  brook  creeps  over  the  gray-mossed  rocks;  Nature 
walks  abroad  as  though  to  salute  some  imperial  presence; 
a  hundred  green  boughs  wave  on  every  side;  a  hundred 
floating  odors  rise ;  the  flash  and  rush  of  bright  wings  catch 
the  eye ;  and  the  sweet  confusion  of  innumerable  melodies 
soothes  the  tired  mind.  Surely  no  present-day  writer  has 
come  nearer  to  Nature's  heart  than  James  Lane  Allen. 

(The  essay  by  the  late  John  Bell  Henneman  in  Southern  Writers^ 
Vol.  II,  is  by  far  the  best  study  of  James  Lane  Allen's  work  that 
has  yet  been  published.) 


EARTH  SHIELD  AND  EARTH  FESTIVAL 

A  mighty  table-land  lies  southward  in  a  hardy  region  of 
our  country.  It  has  the  form  of  a  colossal  Shield,  lacking 
and  broken  in  some  of  its  outlines  and  rough  and  rude  of 
make.     Nature  forged  it  for  some  crisis  in  her  long  warfare 

5  of  time  and  change,  made  use  of  it,  and  so  left  it  Ij^ng  as 
one  of  her  ancient  battle-pieces — Kentucky. 

The  great  Shield  is  raised  high  out  of  the  earth  at  one 
end  and  sunk  deep  into  it  at  the  other.  It  is  tilted  away 
from  the  dawn  toward  the  sunset.    Where  the  western  dip 

10  of  it  reposes  on  the  planet,  Nature,  cunning  artificer,  set 
the  stream  of  ocean  flowing  past  with  restless  foam — 
the  Father  of  Waters.  Along  the  edge  for  a  space  she 
bound  a  bright  river  to  the  rim  of  silver.  And  where  the 
eastern  part  rises  loftiest  on  the  horizon,  turned  away  from 

15  the  reddening  daybreak,  she  piled  shaggy  mountains 
wooded  with  trees  that  loose  their  leaves  ere  snowflakes 
fly  and  with  steadfast  evergreens  which  hold  to  theirs 
through  the  gladdening  and  the  saddening  year.  Then 
crosswise  over  the  middle  of  the  Shield,  northward  and 

20  southward  upon  the  breadth  of  it,  covering  the  life-bom 
rock  of  many  thicknesses,  she  drew  a  tough  skin  of  verdure 
— a  broad  strip  of  hide  of  the  ever  growing  grass.  She 
embossed  noble  forests  on  this  greensward  and  under  the 
forests  drew  clear  waters. 

25  This  she  did  in  a  time  of  which  we  know  nothing — 
uncharted  ages  before  man  had  emerged  from  the  deeps 
of  ocean  with  eyes  to  wonder,  thoughts  to  wander,  heart  to 
love,  and  spirit  to  pray.  Many  a  scene  the  same  power  has 
wrought  out  upon  the  surface  of  the  Shield  since  she  brought 

[264] 


Earth  Shield  and  Earth  Festival  265 

him  forth  and  set  him  there :  many  an  old  one,  many  a  new.  30 
She  has  made  it  sometimes  a  Shield  of  war,  sometimes  a 
Shield  of  peace.  Nor  has  she  yet  finished  with  its  destinies 
as  she  has  not  yet  finished  with  anything  in  the  universe. 
While  therefore  she  continues  her  will  and  pleasure  else- 
where throughout  creation,  she  does  not  forget  the  Shield.  35 

She  likes  sometimes  to  set  upon  it  scenes  which  admon- 
ish man  how  little  his  lot  has  changed  since  Hephaistos 
wrought  like  scenes  upon  the  shield  of  Achilles,  and  Thetis 
of  the  silver  feet  sprang  like  a  falcon  from  snowy  Olympus 
bearing  the  glittering  piece  of  armor  to  her  angered  son.  40 

These  are  some  of  the  scenes  that  were  wrought  on  the 
shield  of  Achilles  and  that  to-day  are  spread  over  the 
Earth  Shield  Kentucky : 

Espousals  and  marriage  feasts  and  the  blaze  of  lights 
as  they  lead  the  bride  from  her  chamber,  flutes  and  45 
violins  sounding  merrily.     An  assembly-place  where  the 
people  are  gathered,  a  strife  having  arisen  about  the  blood- 
price  of  a  man  slain;  the  old  lawyers  stand  up  one  after 
another  and  make  their  tangled  arguments  in  turn.     Soft, 
freshly  ploughed  fields  where  ploughmen  drive  their  teams  so 
to  and  fro,  the  earth  growing  dark  behind  the  share.     The 
estate  of  a  landowner  where  laborers  are  reaping;  some 
armfuls  the  binders  are  binding  with  twisted  bands  of 
straw:   among  them  the   farmer  is  standing  in  silence, 
leaning  on  his  staff,  rejoicing  in  his  heart.     Vineyards  with  55 
purpling  clusters  and  happy  folk  gathering  these  in  plaited  . 
baskets  on  sunny  afternoons.    A  herd  of  cattle  with  in- 
curved horns  hurrying  from  the  stable  to  the  woods  where 
there  is  running  water  and  where  purple-topped  weeds 
bend  above  the  sleek  grass.    A  fair  glen  with  white  sheep,  eo 
A  dancing-place  under  the  trees;  girls  and  young  men 
dancing,  their  fingers  on  one  another's   wrists:   a  great 
company  stands  watching  the  lovely  dance  of  joy. 


266  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Such  pageants  appeared  on  the  shield  of  Achilles  as 

65  art ;  as  pageants  of  life  they  appear  on  the  Earth  Shield 
Kentucky.  The  metal-worker  of  old  wrought  them  upon 
the  armor  of  the  Greek  warrior  in  tin  and  silver,  bronze 
and  gold.  The  world-designer  sets  them  to-day  on  the 
throbbing  land  in  nerve  and  blood,  toil  and  delight  and  pas- 

70  sion.  But  there  with  the  old  things  she  mingles  new  things, 
with  the  never  changing  the  ever  changing ;  for  the  old  that 
remains  always  the  new  and  the  new  that  perpetually  be- 
comes old — these  Nature  allots  to  man  as  his  two  portions 
wherewith  he  must  abide  steadfast  in  what  he  is  and  go 

75  upward  or  go  downward  through  all  that  he  is  to  become. 

But  of  the  many  scenes  which  she  in  our  time  sets  forth 

upon  the  stately  grassy  Shield  there  is  a  single  spectacle 

that  she  spreads  over  the  length  and  breadth  of  it  once 

every  year  now  as  best  liked  by  the  entire  people ;  and  this 

80  is  both  old  and  new. 

It  is  old  because  it  contains  man's  faith  in  his  immor- 
tality, which  was  venerable  with  age  before  the  shield  of 
Achilles  ever  grew  effulgent  before  the  sightless  orbs  of 
Homer.     It  is  new  because  it  contains  those  latest  hopes 

85  and  reasons  for  this  faith,  which  briefly  blossom  out  upon 
the  primitive  stock  with  the  altering  years  and  soon  are 
blown  away  upon  the  winds  of  change.  Since  this  spec- 
tacle, this  festival,  is  thus  old  and  is  thus  new  and  thus 
enwraps  the  deepest  thing  in  the  human  spirit,  it  is  never 

90  forgotten. 

When  in  vernal  days  any  one  turns  a  furrow  or  sows 
in  the  teeth  of  the  wind  and  glances  at  the  fickle  sky;  when 
under  the  summer  shade  of  a  flowering  tree  any  one  looks 
out  upon  his  fatted  herds  and  fattening  grain;  whether 

96  there  is  autumnal  plenty  in  his  bam  or  autumnal  empti- 
ness, autumnal  peace  in  his  breast  or  autumnal  strife, — all 
days  of  the  year,  in  the  assembly-place,  in  the  dancing- 


Earth  Shield  and  Earth  Festival  26^ 

place,  whatsoever  of  good  or  ill  befall  in  mind  or  hand, 
never  does  one  forget. 

When  nights  are  darkest  and  days  most  dark;  when  the  100 
sun  seems  farthest  from  the  planet  and  cheers  it  with  low- 
est heat;  when  the  fields  lie  shorn  between  harvest-time 
and  seed-time  and  man  turns  wistful  eyes  back  and  forth 
between  the  mystery  of  his  origin  and  the  mystery  of  his 
end, — then  comes  the  great  pageant  of  the  winter  solstice,  105 
then  comes  Christmas. 

So  what  is  Christmas?    And  what  for  centuries  has  it 
been  to  differing  but  always  identical  mortals  ? 

It  was  once  the  old  pagan  festival  of  dead  Nature. 
It  was  once  the  old  pagan  festival  of  the  reappearing  sun.  no 
It  was  the  pagan  festival  when  the  hands  of  labor  took  their 
rest  and  hunger  took  its  filL     It  was  the  pagan  festival 
to  honor  the  descent  of  the  fabled  inhabitants  of  an  upper 
world  upon  the  earth,  their  commerce  with  common  flesh, 
and  the  production  of  a  race  of  divine-and-human  half-  115 
breeds.     It  is  now  the  festival  of  the  Immortal  Child 
appearing  in  the  midst  of  mortal  children.     It  is  now  the 
new  festival  of  man's  remembrance  of  his  errors  and  his 
charity  toward  erring  neighbors.     It  has  latterly  become 
the  widening  festival  of  universal  brotherhood  with  succor  120 
for  all  need  and  nighness  to  all  suffering ;  of  good  will  war- 
ring against  ill  will  and  of  peace  warring  upon  war. 

And  thus  for  all  who  have  anywhere  come  to  know  it, 
Christmas  is  the  festival  of  the  better  worldly  self.  But 
better  than  worldliness,  it  is  on  the  Shield  to-day  what  it  12s 
essentially  has  been  through  many  an  age  to  many  people 
— the  symbolic  Earth  Festival  of  the  Evergreen;  setting 
forth  man's  pathetic  love  of  youth — of  his  own  youth  that 
will  not  stay  with  him;  and  renewing  his  faith  in  a  destiny 
that  winds  its  ancient  way  upward  out  of  dark  and  damp  130 
toward  Eternal  Light. 


JOEL  CHANDLER  HARRIS 

One  of  the  foremost  of  recent  American  authors  is, 
undoubtedly,  Joel  Chandler  Harris.  He  won  his  place 
by  simple  and  unassuming  methods  of  composition,  by 
keen  observation  of  man  and  nature,  by  the  richness  and 
profound  quality  of  his  humor  and  his  pathos,  by  the 
sane  and  healthful  philosophy  of  life  which  he  expounds, 
and  by  his  great  creative  power — the  power  to  mold  into 
permanent  artistic  form  the  simple,  homely  material  with 
which  he  deals.  That  Uncle  Remus  and  Miss  Sally  and 
Miss  Sally's  little  boy,  with  all  their  human  and  their 
animal  friends,  go  to  make  up  one  of  the  supreme  creations 
in  American  literature  is  not  to  be  denied. 

Joel  Chandler  Harris  was  bom  December  8,  1848,  in 
Putnam  County,  Georgia.  His  was  a  humble  country 
home  near  the  little  town  of  Eatonton,  almost  in  the 
exact  center  of  the  state.  He  received  an  inadequate 
education  in  the  rural  schools  and  in  Eatonton  Academy. 
When  he  was  about  fourteen  years  of  age  he  read  the 
advertisement,  "Wanted,  boy  to  learn  the  printer's  trade." 
He  applied  for  and  secured  the  position  on  the  Coun- 
tryman, a  journal  modeled  somewhat  upon  Addison's 
Spectator,  and  edited  and  published  by  Mr.  J.  A.  Turner  on 
his  plantation  in  Putnam  County.  Here  Joel  learned  to 
do  all  the  work  of  a  printer's  devil  in  a  country  printing 
office.  In  time  he  became  a  printer  and  proofreader,  and 
then  he  began  to  send  in  contributions  under  assumed 
names,  and  finally  signed  articles.  He  received  constant 
encouragement  from  his  employer,  and  in  a  book  called  On 
the  Plantation,  written  many  years  later  and  dedicated  to 
Mr.  Turner,  he  has  given  his  own  experiences  during  this 
formative  period,  weaving  fact  and  fiction  into  a  wonder- 
fully suggestive  and  attractive  representation  of  life  on  an 
old-time  Georgia  plantation.  In  this  book  there  are  ex- 
cellent descriptions,  profound  but  simple  character  studies 
of  many  Southern  types,  incidents  and  tales  of  country  life, 

[268] 


From  a  photograph  by  Francis  Benjamin  Johnston 
JOEL  CHANDLER  HARRIS 


Joel  Chandler  Harris  26g 

and  illuminating  comment  on  events  just  prior  to  and  coin- 
cident with  the  Civil  War  period.  The  hero  of  the  story, 
Joe  Maxwell,  is  none  other  than  the  author  himself.  At 
the  conclusion  of  this  book  Mr.  Harris  says :  '  'A  larger  world 
beckoned  to  Joe  Maxwell,  and  he  went  out  into  it.  And 
it  came  about  that  on  every  side  he  found  loving  hearts 
to  comfort  him  and  strong  and  friendly  hands  to  guide 
him.  He  found  new  associations  and  formed  new  ties.  In 
a  humble  way  he  made  a  name  for  himself,  but  the  old 
plantation  days  still  live  in  his  dreams."  The  old  plan- 
tation days  live  not  only  in  the  dreams  of  Mr.  Harris,  but 
also  in  the  dreams  of  his  delighted  readers  the  world  over, 
and  there  are  many  who  think  that  it  is  no  very  humble 
place  that  he  made  for  himself  in  the  world,  for  he  lives  in 
the  hearts  of  all  those  who  know  his  books  or  who  have 
in  any  way  come  in  touch  with  the  man. 

Sherman's  army  swept  away  the  Countryman,  with 
many  other  good  things  in  the  Old  South,  but  nothing  could 
rob  young  Joel  Harris  of  the  valuable  experiences  and 
the  broadening  education  he  had  received  in  Mr.  Turner's 
library  and  printing  office.  The  boy  had  always  loved  to 
read,  and  when  he  was  allowed  free  access  to  his  employer's 
excellent  collection  of  books  and  periodicals  he  made  good 
use  of  the  opportunity.  Carlyle  has  said  that  "the  true 
imiversity  of  these  days  is  a  collection  of  books,"  and 
this  library,  together  with  the  varied  experiences  in  the 
outdoor  world  and  among  the  good  people  of  the  Georgia 
countryside,  was  the  only  university  education  Joel 
Chandler  Harris  ever  received.  Among  the  books  which 
he  read  and  ever  afterward  held  closest  to  his  heart  were 
The  Vicar  of  Wakefield,  Ivanhoe,  and  Vanity  Fair.  Later 
in  life  the  Bible  and  Shakspere  were  added  to  these 
early  favorites,  but  nothing  could  ever  make  him  admit 
that  he  loved  any  book  better  than  he  loved  The  Vicar 
of  Wakefield. 

There  is  little  of  the  marvelous  in  the  story  of  this  simple 
country  lad.  He  grew  up  among  the  red  hills  and  green 
dales  of  central  Georgia,  and  learned  to  know  intimately 
all  the  animals  and  fowls  of  barnyard,  field,  and  forest,  as 
he  has  well  proved  by  his  later  works.  He  was  just  an 
ordinary  boy,  living  an  ordinary  life,  but  he  so  used  his 


2^/0  Southern  Literary  Readings 

faculties  and  opportunities  and  so  idealized  his  common- 
place experiences  as  to  make  them  highly  valuable  and 
attractive  to  his  fellow  men.  Some  one  has  said  that 
Harris  is  a  real  benefactor  to  humanity,  for  he  has  given  to 
many  thousands  of  children  their  first  taste  for  nature 
study.  Nothing  but  genius  and  love  for  humankind  could 
have  made  of  these  simple  incidents  and  experiences  of 
everyday  life  so  noteworthy  a  contribution  to  the  intellec- 
tual life  of  our  country.  Joel  Chandler  Harris's  life  story 
contains  no  more  than  the  usual  happenings  in  the  progress 
of  a  journeyman  newspaper  man  or  journalist,  and  the 
main  facts  we  have  to  tell  of  him  are  that  he  worked  on 
various  newspapers  and  journals,  that  he  did  conscien- 
tiously his  daily  portion  of  work,  and  that  he  sought 
retirement  and  domestic  happiness  rather  than  notoriety 
and  popular  applause.  But  all  the  while,  he  was  gradually 
turning  his  memories,  his  experiences,  and  his  imaginings 
into  what  we  believe  to  be  permanent  literary  form,  and 
he  gave  to  the  world  freely  of  the  best  that  was  in  him. 

After  the  war  Mr.  Harris  was  for  a  time  connected  with 
the  Macon  Daily  Telegraph,  Then  he  became  secretary 
to  the  editor  of  the  Crescent  Monthly  in  New  Orleans,  and 
later  editor  of  the  Advertiser,  a  weekly  paper  in  Forsythe, 
Georgia.  In  187 1  he  went  to  Savannah,  to  become  a 
reporter  on  the  staff  of  the  Daily  Times,  and  here  he  met 
Miss  La  Rose,  the  daughter  of  a  French  Canadian  seaman, 
who  became  his  wife.  Shortly  after  his  marriage  an 
epidemic  of  yellow  fever  in  Savannah  caused  him  to  seek 
employment  elsewhere,  and  he  went  in  1876  to  Atlanta, 
to  join  the  editorial  staff  of  the  Constitution,  For  more 
than  twenty-five  years  he  continued  in  active  work  on 
this  paper,  making  for  himself  an  enviable  place  among 
the  newspaper  men  of  the  South. 

It  was  while  he  was  serving  on  the  Constitution  that  his 
first  opportunity  for  permanent  literary  work  came,  though 
at  the  time  neither  he  nor  anybody  else  recognized  it 
as  such.  One  of  the  regular  contributors  who  had  been 
writing  negro-dialect  sketches  for  the  paper  retired,  and 
Mr.  Harris  was  asked  to  supply  the  deficiency  thus 
created.  He  began  then,  under  the  nom-de- plume  of  Uncle 
Remus,  to  put  upon  paper  the  stories  heard  in  his  youth 


Joel  Chandler  Harris  2yi 

on  the  plantation,  which  have  since  made  him  famous 
the  world  over.  In  1881  his  first  book,  Uncle  Remus,  His 
Songs  and  His  Sayings,  appeared,  and  in  1883  his  Nights 
with  Uncle  Remus  followed.  These,  with  other  later  works 
along  the  same  line,  form  the  most  notable  contributions 
to  the  field  of  negro  folklore  this  country  has  ever  pro- 
duced. Who  of  us  has  not  enjoyed — laughing  and  crying 
by  turns — dear  old  Uncle  Remus  and  the  quaint  stories 
he  told  to  the  little  boy  who  lived  up  at  the  big  house 
with  Miss  Sally  and  Marse  John — stories  about  Brer  Fox 
and  Brer  Rabbit  and  Brer  Bar  and  Brer  Mudturkle,  and 
all  those  wonderful  people  of  the  woods  and  fields  ?  Their 
conversation  is  so  true  to  life,  so  natural,  and  in  such  per- 
fect keeping  with  the  characters  portrayed  and  the  scenes 
described  that  we  do  not  detect  a  single  false  note. 

Besides  his  Uncle  Remus  stories,  Mr.  Harris  wrote 
novels,  short  stories,  negro  sketches,  fairy  tales,  and  dia- 
lect poems  and  melodies,  all  of  which  are  excellent.  He 
retired  from  active  newspaper  work  about  the  turn  of 
the  century,  in  order  to  devote  his  time  entirely  to  the 
more  attractive  pursuit  of  literature  in  his  own  peculiar 
vein.  He  worked  the  old  leads  and  opened  new  ones 
which  he  had  in  mind,  writing  on  uninterruptedly  until 
1907,  when  he  again  entered  the  field  of  journalism  with 
his  Uncle  Remus' s  Magazine.  This  is  a  monthly  journal, 
which  he  edited  and  to  which  he  was  by  far  the  largest 
contributor  until  his  death,  July  3,  1908. 

Whatever  Mr.  Harris's  rank  among  the  world's  writers 
of  fiction  may  be,  we  Southerners  take  him  to  ourselves 
as  a  friend  whom  we  have  known  and  loved,  as  one  who 
has  felt  and  seen  and  preserved  in  his  works  a  large  part 
of  the  poetic  simplicity  and  romanticism  attached  to  our 
Southland.  He  was  not  the  painter  of  mighty  canvasses 
of  heroic  deeds,  but  a  careful  worker  in  black  and  white, 
touchingly  calling  forth  home  scenes  and  home  charac- 
ters. We  would  hang  his  simple  sketches,  as  it  were,  all 
about  us  in  our  living  rooms  rather  than  in  our  reception 
halls  or  front  parlors. 

(Appreciative  essays  on  Joel  Chandler  Harris  may  be  found  in 
W.  M.  Baskervill's  Southern  Writers,  Vol.  I,  and  in  The  Library  of 
Southern  Literature,  Vol.  V.) 


THE  TALE  OF  THE  CRYSTAL  BELL 

Once  upon  a  time,  in  a  far  country,  there  lived  a 
little  girl  named  Lizette.  She  was  a  very  sweet  little 
girl,  bright,  clever,  and  kind-hearted.  Her .  father  and 
mother  were  very  poor.     In  the  cold  weather  they  eked 

5  out  a  scanty  living  by  gathering  the  dead  branches  of  trees 
in  the  forest,  and  selling  them  to  their  more  prosperous 
neighbours,  who  used  them  as  fuel.  In  the  spring  Lizette's 
father  and  mother  gathered  herbs  and  simples  and  sold 
them  to  the  apothecary  in  the  neighbouring  village.     In 

10  the  summer  they  helped  their  neighbours  with  their  crops, 
and  in  the  fall  they  helped  to  gather  grapes. 

This  was  the  season  that  Lizette  loved,  for  at  that 
time  all  the  youths  and  maidens  assembled  in  the  vine- 
yards and  played  and  sang  even  while  they  were  at  work. 

15  And  at  the  close  of  the  day,  especially  when  the  round 
moon  was  peeping  at  them  through  the  trees,  Merry 
Hans,  of  Hendon,  would  play  on  his  flute  while  the  others 
danced.  At  such  times  it  frequently  happened  that  the 
lords  and  ladies  from  the  castles  near  by  would  come  in 

20  their  fine  coaches  and  watch  the  merry-making. 

All  the  workers  in  the  fields  and  vineyards  were  poor, 
but  Lizette's  father  and  mother  were  the  poorest  of  all. 
They  were  the  poorest,  but  they  were  just  as  happy  as 
any  of  the  rest,  for  they'had  their  pretty  little  daughter, 

25  they  had  their  health,  and  they  had  good  appetites,  and 
sound  sleep  visited  them  when  the  day  was  over.  They 
had  few  troubles  and  no  sorrows,  save  as  they  were  called 
upon  to  sympathise  with  such  of  their  neighbours  as  had 
illness  or  death  in  the  house. 

[272] 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  275 

Never  believe  that  poverty  means  unhappiness  or  30 
sour  discontent.  It  is  the  poor  who  are  generous  and 
charitable,  and  it  is  the  honest  poor  who  have  the  sound- 
est sleep  and  the  healthiest  minds.  Thus  it  was  with 
the  father  and  mother  of  Lizette.  They  were  not  only 
contented,  but  they  were  thankful  their  condition  was  no  35 
worse.  But  as  their  little  daughter  grew  older  and  more 
beautiful  they  often  wished  that  they  were  able  to  give 
her  the  accomplishments  that  would  fit  her  beauty  and 
her  brightness. 

When  she  heard  them  expressing  their  regrets  that  40 
they  were  too  poor  to  do  as  much  for  her  as  they  could 
wish,  she  would  shake  her  head  and  laugh,  saying,  "If  I 
had  all  the  accompHshments  you  desire  me  to  have,  I  am 
afraid  I  should  be  discontented  here.  It  is  better  as  it 
is.  I  can  sing  as  loud  and  dance  as  long  as  any  of  the  45 
children;  I  have  a  good  frock  for  Sunday;  and  though, 
as  we  know,  the  times  are  hard,  it  is  not  often  that  I  am 
hungry." 

The  father  and  mother  said  nothing,  but  they  thought 
to  themselves  that  the  sweet  disposition  of  their  child  50 
was  only  another  reason  why  she  should  fare  better  than 
they  had  fared.  Old  people,  as  you  will  discover,  live 
life  over  again  in  the  lives  of  their  children.  But  these 
old  people  had  no  way  to  carry  out  their  desires.  They 
could  only  sigh  when  they  thought  that  their  lovely  55 
child  would  have  to  follow  in  their  footsteps.  They 
sighed,  but  they  were  not  unhappy.  Ever3rthing  would 
be  as  a  higher  Power  willed,  and  with  this  they  were 
content. 

Meanwhile  Lizette  was   growing  more   beautiful   dayeo 
by  day.     The  colour  of  the  sky  was  reflected  in  her  eyes, 
and  the  sunshine  was  caught  and  held  in  the  meshes  of 
her  golden  hair.     Her  frock  was  scanty  and  coarse,  but 

18 


2'/4  Southern  Literary  Readings 

somehow  she  wore  her  ragged  frock  and  her  wooden  shoes 

65  in  a  way  that  made  one  forget  these  signs  of  poverty. 

The  young  girl  enjoyed  the  singing  and  the  dancing 

when  the  grapes  were  gathered ;  indeed,  her  feet  were  the 

nimblest,  and  her  voice  the  sweetest;  but  her  greatest 

pleasure  was  to  ramble  about  in  the  great  forest  near 

70  which  she  lived.  The  opportunity  for  this  came  on 
Sunday  afternoons  and  on  the  feast  days  of  the  saints. 
At  such  times  she  could  always  be  found  in  the  forest, 
and  here  she  was  at  home  in  the  truest  sense.  She  talked 
to  the  trees  in  a  famihar  way,  and  she  was  sure  they  under- 

75  stood  her,  for  their  boughs  would  wave  and  their  leaves 
flutter  when  she  spoke  to  them ;  and  when  a  sudden  storm 
came  up  they  would  shelter  her  with  their  foliage.  She 
knew  the  birds,  and  the  birds  knew  her,  and  they  were 
so  fond  of  her  that  they  never  made  any  loud  outcry 

80  when  she  came  near  their  nests.  They  had  known  her 
ever  since  she  could  toddle  about,  for  she  used  to  wander 
in  the  forest  even  when  she  was  very  small. 

Indeed,  the  forest 'had   been   her   nurse.    When  her 
father  and  mother,  in  earning  their  scanty  living,  were 

85  compelled  to  go  away  from  home,  they  always  went 
away  satisfied  that  she  would  be  cared  for  in  some  way. 
Left  alone,  she  would  toddle  off  into  the  woods,  and  when 
she  grew  tired  of  looking  at  the  birds  and  the  big  butter- 
flies that  fluttered  over  the  wild  flowers,  she  would  stretch 

90  herself  on  the  grass  under  the  sheltering  arms  of  a  wild 
thorn,  or  in  a  bower  made  by  the  woodbine,  and  there 
sleep  as  sweetly  and  as  soundly  as  if  she  were  rocked  in 
the  richest  of  cradles.  As  she  grew  older  she  continued 
to  ramble  in  the  forest.     In  some  mysterious  way  she 

95  seemed  to  absorb  its  freshness  and  its  beauty,  and  she 
imbibed  the  innocence  of  the  wild  creatures  who  came  to 
know  her  as  one  of  their  companions.    And  as  she  grew 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  275 

in  beauty  she  grew  in  strength,  and  her  strength  gave  her 
gentleness.     Her  eyes  shone  with  dewy  tenderness,  and 
the  story  they  told  could  be  understood  even  by  a  wounded  100 
bird  that  lay  panting  in  her  path,  or  by  any  creature  that 
was  seeking  refuge  or  succour. 

One  day — it  was  in  the  opening  month  of  spring — 
"  while  Lizette  was  rambling  about  in  her  beloved  forest 
admiring  the  flowers  that  were  beginning  to  bloom,  105 
and  making  believe  to  catch  the  butterflies,  though  every 
butterfly  in  the  forest  knew  better  than  that — she  saw  a 
very  large  one  hovering  near  her.  More  than  once  she 
reached  out  her  hand  to  take  it,  but  it  was  always  just 
out  of  reach.  It  was  the  largest  and  most  beautiful  no 
butterfly  she  had  ever  seen.  It  had  tremendous  wings, 
marked  in  black  and  gold,  though  when  the  sun  shone 
on  them  the  black  changed  to  purple  in  the  light. 

Something  in  the  movements  of  this  butterfly  com- 
pelled her  to  watch  it,  and  after  a  while  she  thought  it  115 
was  acting  in  a  very  singular  way.  When  she  went 
forward  the  butterfly  seemed  to  be  contented,  but  when 
she  paused  or  turned  aside  from  the  course  in  which  she 
had  been  going,  it  fluttered  about  her  head  and  face  and 
played  such  pranks  that  anyone  but  the  tender  Lizette  120 
would  have  been  annoyed.  More  than  once  she  play- 
fully tried  to  catch  it,  but  at  such  times  it  was  always 
just  out  of  reach. 

Knowing  the  birds  and  the  butterflies  better  than 
most  people,  Lizette  came  to  the  conclusion  after  a  while  125 
that  this  particular  butterfly  meant  something  by  its 
antics,  so  she  went  in  the  direction  which  it  seemed  to 
desire  her  to  go.  Flying  before  her  and  darting  about, 
now  to  the  right,  now  to  the  left,  but  always  leading  in 
one  direction,  the  butterfly  went  far  into  the  forest.  And  130 
presently  Lizette  forgot  all  about  the  butterfly,  for  there 


2y6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

before  her,  lying  prone  on  the  ground,  was  an  old  woman. 
She  seemed  to  be  very  ill  or  dying,  and  she  presented 
a  very  pitiable  spectacle.     Her  grey  hair  was  hanging 

135  from  under  her  head-covering,  and  her  clothing  was 
nothing  but  a  collection  of  patches.  She  was  groaning 
and  moaning,  and  appeared  to  be  in  a  terrible  plight. 

As  soon  as  she  saw  the  deplorable  condition  of  the 
old  woman,  and  heard  her  moans  and  groans,  Lizette 

140  ran  forward,  kneeled  on  the  ground  beside  the  unfor- 
tunate creature,  stroked  her  hair  away  from  her  face,  and 
tried  to  find  out  what  the  trouble  was. 

The  old  woman  opened  her  eyes  and  made  a  hideous 
face  at  the  young  girl.    "You  are  trying  to  rob  me,"  she 

145  cried,  *'and  you  are  over-young  to  be  a  thief." 

"I  rob  you,  grandmother!"  exclaimed  Lizette,  blush- 
ing at  the  unexpected  charge.  Then,  remembering  the 
pitiable  condition  of  the  old  woman,  she  said,  "We  will 
talk  about  it  when  you  are  better.     First  tell  me  what 

150  the  trouble  is."  She  took  the  old  woman's  head  in  her 
lap,  in  spite  of  the  ugfy  faces  she  made,  and  did  her  best 
to  soothe  and  comfort  her. 

But  the  old  woman  would  not  be  soothed.  She  con- 
tinued to  charge  Lizette  with  robbing  her,  and  tried  to 

155  drive  her  away.  But  the  young  girl  was  too  tender- 
hearted to  be  driven.  She  could  hardly  restrain  her 
tears  at  the  repeated  charges  of  the  old  woman,  but  she 
continued  to  do  the  best  she  could  for  her,  which  was 
very  little,  since  the  poor  old  creature  refused  to  say  where 

160  she  was  hurt  or  how.  Between  her  moans  and  groans 
she  made  faces  at  Lizette,  continued  to  call  her  a  thief, 
and  did  everything  she  could  to  drive  her  away. 

But  the  child  would  not  leave  her.  She  swallowed  her 
mortification  the  best  she  could,  and  continued  to  minister 

165  to  the  old  woman,  although  she  knew  not  what  to  do. 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  277 

Finally  she  thought  she  saw  a  change  come  over  the 
old  woman's  face.  Her  features  grew  more  composed, 
and  it  was  high  time,  for  when  her  countenance  was 
puckered  up  with  pain,  or  when  she  was  making  grimaces 
at  Lizette,  she  was  not  pretty  by  any  means.  She  ceased  170 
to  groan  and  moan,  and  presently  when  her  countenance 
was  smoothed  out,  and  the  wrinkles  had  disappeared, 
she  was  a  very  pleasant-looking  old  woman. 

Wonderful  to  relate,  she  grew  younger  as  Lizette 
caressed  her.  Her  hair  ceased  to  be  grey,  the  patches  dis-  175 
appeared  from  her  clothes,  her  withered  cheeks  and  hands 
filled  out  and  became  plump,  and  when  she  arose  to  her 
feet,  which  she  did  in  no  long  time,  she  was  as  beautiful  as 
a  dream.  Her  hair,  which  had  seemed  to  be  grey,  shone 
like  spun  silver,  and  her  clothing,  which  had  seemed  so  iso 
old  and  ragged,  glittered  in  the  sunshine  like  satin. 

"Oh,  how  could  I  think  that  one  so  beautiful  was  old 
and  ugly!"  cried  Lizette. 

"Stranger  things  than  that  happen  every  day,"  replied 
the  beautiful  creature.     "I  was  old  and  ugly  when  1 185 
caused  you  to  be  brought  here,  but  now  I  am  what  your 
good  heart  has  made  me;  this  is  what  your  kindness  has 
done." 

"But  you  called  me  a  thief,"  said  Lizette,  blushing  at 
the  remembrance  of  the  harsh  things  the  pretended  old  m 
woman  had  said  about  her. 

"My  dear,  that  was  the  result  of  a  bargain  I  had  made. 
We  have  our  little  disputes  and  differences  in  the  country 
that  is  all  about  you,  but  which  you  are  not  permitted 
to  see.  I,  for  one,  have  been  watching. you  since  your  195 
birth,  and  when  I  saw  you  the  other  day  tenderly  nursing 
a  poor  wounded  butterfly  which  had  been  chilled  by  the 
night  air,  I  said  that  you  were  as  good  as  you  are  beauti- 
ful."    At  this  Lizette  blushed  again,  but  this  time  from 


2^/8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

200 pleasure.  "The  remark  was  overheard  by  a  friend  of 
mine  who  has  a  very  good  disposition,  but  who  is  some- 
what suspicious  of  the  good  qualities  that  are  sometimes 
ascribed  to  mortals. 

**She  has  a  good  deal  of  power,  too,  this  friend  of  mine, 

205  for  some  day,  the  day  when  the  moon  changes  at  seven 
minutes  past  seven  o'clock  on  Friday,  she  will  be  the  queen 
of  our  small  kingdom.  And  so  when  I  insisted  that  you 
were  as  good  as  you  are  beautiful  she  proposed  a  test. 
This  test  is  what  you  have  just  witnessed.     I  became  an 

210  old  woman,  and  it  was  part  of  the  test  that  I  should  do 
my  best  to  make  you  angry.  I  was  to  try  to  frighten 
you  with  my  grimaces,  and  I  was  to  call  you  a  thief,  and 
all  sorts  of  ugly  names,  and  if  you  had  gone  away  in  a 
fit  of  anger  I  should  have  been  compelled  to  remain  an 

215  old  woman  and  go  about  in  rags  for  five  and  two  years. 

"You  see  how  much  I  trusted  to  your  sweet  temper  and 

your  kind  heart.     I  was  a  little  frightened  for  myself 

when  you  were  about  to  cry,  but  I  soon  saw  that  your 

good  heart  would  triumph  over  your  pride.     It  was  a  trial 

220  for  you,  and,  as  a  reward,  I  have  something  for  you." 

From  under  her  shining  mantle  she  drew  a  tiny  casket, 
covered  with  rich-looking  cloth,  plush  or  velvet.  Touch- 
ing a  spring,  the  lid  of  the  casket  flew  up,  disclosing  a 
crystal  bell,  which  was  suspended  from  a  little  rod  of  gold, 

225  the  two  ends  of  which  rested  on  the  inner  frame  of  the 
casket.  It  was  a  beautiful  bell  in  a  lovely  setting.  It 
glistened  in  the  sun  like  a  large  diamond,  and  in  that  day 
there  was  no  jeweller  so  expert  that  he  could  have  told 
it  was  not  a  diamond. 

230  "This bell,"  said  the  fairy — Lizette  had  already  recog- 
nized the  beautiful  creature  as  a  fairy  whose  good  deeds 
the  older  people  were  always  praising — "is  a  magic  bell. 
It  has  no  clapper,  and  yet  it  will  ring.     There  is  a  little 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  2yg 

hammer  in  the  bottom  of  the  casket,  and  this  will  rise 
and  strike  the  bell  when  the  time  has  come  to  warn  you  235 
of  some  danger  that  threatens  you  or  those  you  love.     I 
have  here  a  chain  for  the  casket,  and  you  must  wear  it 
always  around  your  neck." 

Lizette's  heart  was  so  full  of  gratitude  that  she  knew 
not  what  to  say ;  but  her  feelings  shone  in  her  beautiful  240 
eyes,  and  the  good  fairy  understood  her  just  as  well  as 
if  she  had  spoken  in  the  most  eloquent  manner.  *'I 
will  wear  it  next  my  heart,"  said  the  young  girl  when  she 
had  fotind  her  voice,  "and  I  shall  remember  your  great 
kindness  always.  I  do  not  know  what  I  have  done  to  245 
deserve  it." 

"Do  you  remember  a  time  when  you  found  a  butterfly 
caught  in  a  spider's  web  ?  I  'm  sure  you  do,  for  it  was  not 
so  very  long  ago.  The  spider  was  a  very  large  and  fierce 
one,  and  he  would  have  made  short  work  of  the  poor  250 
butterfly,  entangled  as  it  was  in  the  strong  web.  You 
remember,  too,  how  carefully  you  released  the  butterfly, 
and  how  tenderly  you  handled  the  poor  thing  when  once 
it  was  free  from  the  web.  You  will  be  surprised  to  learn 
that  there  was  no  butterfly  in  the  web,  and  no  spider  to  255 
devour  her.  What  seemed  to  be  a  butterfly  was  no  other 
than  myself,  and  the  spider  was  an  unfriendly  fairy,  who 
lives  under  another  queen,  and  who,  for  some  reason  or 
other,  has  taken  a  strong  dislike  to  the  fairies  who  inhabit 
this  wood.  260 

"You  will  think  it  strange  that  a  fairy  who  can  change 
her  shape  at  will  should  remain  a  butterfly  when  caught  in 
a  spider's  web.  But  the  most  gifted  fairy  cannot  change 
her  shape  when  she  is  brought  in  contact  with  things  that 
perish.  You  tried  to  kill  the  spider;  and  it  would  have  205 
been  a  good  thing  for  both  of  us  if  you  had  succeeded; 
but,  at  any  rate,  you  rescued  me,  and   since  you  have 


28o  Southern  Literary  Readings 

stood  the  required  test,  I  think  you  have  nothing  to  fear 
from  the  ugly-tempered  fairy  who  took  the  shape  of  a 

270  spider  to  destroy  me. 

"You  will  have  trials,  and  you  will  be  alarmed,  but  you 
must  remember  all  the  time  that  nothing  but  unselfish- 
ness and  innocence  will  preserve  you.  I  do  not  say  that 
you  will  get  everything  you  desire,  because  that  would  be 

275  impossible  if  you  [should]  become  proud  or  vain  or  ambi- 
tious, but  if  you  continue  to  be  good  and  charitable  and 
modest  you  will  have  what  is  best  for  you  in  this  world." 
"I  am  sure,"  said  Lizette,  with  tears  in  her  eyes,  "that 
I  already  have  more  than  I  deserve,  since  I  have  your 

280  friendship.  I  ask  nothing  more  than  to  be  as  I  have  been, 
and  to  continue  to  deserve  the  good  opinion  of  my  friends 
and  the  Little  People  to  whom  you  belong." 

The  good  fairy  made  no  reply  to  this,  but  rose  from  the 
ground,   her  garments  shining  with  all  the  colours  of 

285  the  rainbow,  and  her  hair  shining  like  the  rays  of  the  har- 
vest moon.  "Remember  the  crystal  bell,"  she  said  as 
she  floated  upward,  and  her  voice  sounded  like  a  strain 
of  beautiful  music  heard  from  afar.  "Heed  its  warnings; 
but  when  it  strikes  as  the  chimes  do,  remember  that 

290  good  luck  is  waiting  in  the  road  for  you." 

The  beautiful  fairy  rose  higher  in  the  air,  and  began  to 
wave  the  corners  of  her  rich  mantle,  and  in  a  moment 
her  shape  had  changed  to  that  of  the  butterfly  that  had 
led  Lizette  to  the  old  woman  in  the  forest,  and  the  comers 

295  of  the  mantle  were  the  butterfly's  wings.  She  floated 
downward  again,  and,  circling  playfully  around  the  young 
girl's  head,  touched  her  lightly  on  the  cheek  with  her 
brilliant  wings,  and  Lizette  knew  that  it  was  intended  for 
a  caress. 

300  Circling  higher  and  higher  the  fairy  disappeared  in  the 
forest,   and  Lizette  standing  in  the  path,   and  looking 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  281 

after  her  benefactor,  felt  that  she  had  been  dreaming.  ■ 
Indeed,  she  would  have  been  certain  it  was  all  a  dream 
but  for  the  fact  that  she  could  feel  the  casket  in  her  bosom. 

And  yet,  while  she  was  talking  to  the  fairy,  everything  305 
that  happened  seemed  to  be  perfectly  natural.  She  was 
somewhat  surprised,  of  course,  but  no  more  so  than  she  had 
often  been  at  the  various  happenings  in  the  everyday  world 
around  her.  But,  now  that  it  was  all  over,  and  she  had 
time  to  reflect  over  it,  her  astonishment  knew  no  bounds.  310 
She  wondered,  too,  if  she  had  thanked  the  good  fairy  in  the 
proper  manner,  and  then  she  remembered  that  the  words 
she  wanted  to  say  had  refused'  to  come  at  her  bidding,  and 
she  thought,  with  a  feeling  of  shame,  that  the  fairy,  who 
had  been  so  kind,  must  look  upon  her  as  very  stupid.        31s 

In  spite  of  this  feeling,  however,  she  went  home  feeling 
very  happy.  She  ran  part  of  the  way,  so  eager  was  she 
to  tell  her  father  and  mother  of  her  good  fortune.  Lizette's 
story  was  hard  to  believe,  but  then  the  old  people  had 
heard  of  fairies  all  their  lives.  More  than  that,  it  was  s2o 
easier  to  believe  things  in  those  days  than  it  is  now. 
Nevertheless,  the  father  and  mother  sat  by  the  hearth 
that  night  a  long  time  after  their  daughter  had  gone  to 
bed,  and  wondered,  as  parents  will,  whether  the  vision 
their  child  had  seen  was  not  an  evil  spirit.  Even  the  325 
best-educated  people  had  some  decided  views  about  evil 
spirits  in  those  days,  and  among  those  who  were  ignorant 
such  ideas  were  as  real  as  any  belief  they  had.  Lizette's 
father  was  seriously  inclined  to  take  the  casket,  bell,  and 
all,  and  bury  it  deep  in  the  ground,  so  that  the  spell,  if  330 
it  was  a  spell,  could  do  their  daughter  no  harm.  But 
the  mother,  more  practical  in  her  views,  refused  to  listen 
to  this.  She  argued  that  if  the  vision  Lizette  had  seen 
was  an  evil  spirit,  it  would  be  useless  to  try  to  escape  the 
charm  that  had  been  laid  on  her,  while,  on  the  other  hand,  33s 


282  Southern  Literary  Readings 

if  Lizette  had  really  seen  a  good  fairy,  it  could  not  help 
matters  to  bury  her  gift. 

Nothing  of  all  this  talk  was  told  to  their  daughter, 
and  the  young  girl  never  knew  how  near  she  was  to  losing 

840  the  precious  gift  of  the  fairy.  She  dreamed  the  most 
beautiful  dreams  while  she  was  sleeping,  but  when  she 
awoke,  she  heard  the  crystal  bell  sounding  a  warning. 
She  threw  on  her  clothes  in  a  hurry,  and  all  the  while 
she  was  dressing,  the  bell  continued  to  strike.    Just  as  she 

345  was  ready  to  help  her  mother  with  breakfast,  she  heard  a 
loud  knocking  at  their  humble  door,  and  when  the  door 
was  opened,  she  heard  the  voice  of  an  old  woman  asking 
her  mother  if  she  had  a  daughter.  Peeping  through  a 
crack  in  her  own  door,  Lizette  saw  the  old  woman,  and 

350  she  was  as  ugly  a  hag  as  one  would  wish  to  see  in  a  day's 
journey.  Her  face  held  a  thousand  wrinkles,  her  skin 
was  yellow,  and  two  of  her  teeth  protruded  from  her 
upper  lip  like  the  tusks  of  some  wild  animals. 

"Where,  then,  is  this  daughter  of  yours?"  the  old  crone 

355  asked  harshly.  « 

"She  is  at  hand  when  those  who  have  the  right  desire 
to  see  her,"  replied  Lizette's  mother.  "I  will  answer  for 
her,  and  you  may  speak  to  me." 

"She  will  be  spoken  to  by  those  who  have  something 

360  more  than  the  right,"  replied  the  old  woman,  with  a 
cackling  laugh.  "Our  good  Prince  Palermon,  who  was 
riding  through  the  forest  yesterday,  lost  a  casket  which 
had  been  given  to  him  by  his  mother.  Search  has  been 
made  far  and  wide,  and  it  is  still  going  on.     It  is  now 

365  supposed  that  someone,  in  passing  through  the  forest, 
has  found  it,  and,  not  knowing  the  value,  has  concluded 
to  keep  it  as  a  curiosity.  By  chance,  I  saw  your  daughter 
walking  in  the  forest  yesterday,  and  have  an  idea  that  she 
has  the  casket.     If  she  will  give  it  to  me,  it  will  be  returned 


I 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  28 j 

to  the  Prince,  and  she  may  get  a  reward,  but  if  not,  nothing  370 
will  be  said  about  it.     If  she  has  hidden  it,  or  if  she  tries 

to  keep  it "     Here  the  old  crone  made  a  horrible 

grimace,  and  made  a  motion  as  if  the  affair  would  be  a 
hanging  matter. 

The  husband  and  father  had  already  gone  to  his  work  375 
in  the  fields,  and  the  mother  knew  not  what  to  do.     She 
had  no  idea  that  her  daughter  had  told  her  a  falsehood 
about  the  casket;  and  yet,  how  did  this  old  woman  know     * 
about  it?    Being  a  simple-minded  woman,  she  was  quite 
puzzled  as  to  the  wisest  course  to  take ;  but  she  remem-  sso 
bered  that  her  daughter  had  got  along  very  well  without 
the  casket  all  the  days  of  her  life,  and  so  she  said  to  the 
old  crone : 

"My  daughter  has  the  casket,  and  when  the  Prince 
comes,  or  someone  who  represents  him,  it  shall  be  returned  sss 
to  him.     You  may  tell  him  this  for  me." 

"And  do  you  suppose  that  the  illustrious  Prince  will 
condescend  to  come  to  this  hovel,  or  lower  himself  to  send 
for  what  belongs  to  him?  If  you  do,  you  are  mightily 
mistaken.  The  casket  will  be  sent  for,  be  sure  of  that — 390 
but  I  shouldn't  like  to  be  caught  in  this  house  when  the 
messenger  comes."  The  old  crone  cackled  as  she  said 
this,  and  was  for  going  away,  but  Lizette's  mother,  now 
thoroughly  frightened,  told  her  to  wait  a  moment,  and  she 
would  get  the  casket.  "Aha!"  cried  the  hag;  "you  are 395 
coming  to  your  senses,  I  see!  And  it  is  very  well  for  you 
and  your  daughter  that  you  are.  It  will  save  you  much 
trouble  now  and  in  the  days  to  come." 

Now,  while  her  mother  was  talking  to  this  old  crone, 
Lizette  was  standing  at  the  door  of  her  room  listening,  400 
and  all  the  time  she  was  listening  the  crystal  bell  was    . 
sounding  its  warning.     The  young  girl  felt  that  the  old 
hag  would  frighten  her  mother,  and  that  she  would  have 


284  Southern  Literary  Readings 

to  surrender  the  casket  if  she  remained  in  the  house,  and 

405  so,  while  the  bell  was  rapping  out  its  warning  notes,  she 
slipped  through  the  window  of  her  room,  and  fled  into 
the  fields,  and  as  soon  as  she  got  out  of  sight  of  the  house 
the  bell  ceased  to  sound  the  alarm. 

Thus  it  happened  that  when  Lizette's  mother  went  to 

410  fetch  the  casket,  she  found  her  daughter  gone.  She  was 
much  troubled  at  this,  for  the  child  had  not  eaten  her 

'  breakfast.  The  mother  searched  in  the  blankets  for  the 
casket,  but  it  was  not  to  be  found,  and  she  was  compelled 
to  tell  the  old  woman  that  Lizette  had  gone  out,  but  would 

415  probably  return  in  a  short  time. 

"Gone  out,  is  she?     I  thought  as  much.     Well,  the 
casket  will  be  called  for,  mark  that !    And  the  girl  will  be 
called  for  also — and  you  will  do  well  to  mark  that,  too." 
She  went  away  laughing  like  a  hen  cackling,  and  left 

420  the  poor  woman  thoroughly  frightened.  And  yet,  some- 
how, she  had  a  feeling  of  relief.  If  Lizette  had  been  in 
the  house  she  would  undoubtedly  have  compelled  her  to 
surrender  the  casket.  When  the  mother  grew  calmer,  she 
felt  convinced  that  the  old  hag  had  tried  to  deceive  her, 

425  for  she  had  never  known  her  daughter  to  tell  a  falsehood. 

She  waited  for  her  daughter  to  return,  and  she  also 

had  some  expectation  that  the  Prince  would  send  for  the 

casket;  but  she  soon  forgot  all  about  the  Prince  when 

Lizette  continued  to  absent  herself,  something  that  she 

430  had  never  been  known  to  do  until  after  she  had  attended 
to  all  her  household  duties.  Now  she  was  gone,  and 
nothing  had  been  attended  to — she  had  not  even  eaten 
her  breakfast.  The  good  mother  fretted  and  worried  a 
good  deal  as  the  morning  passed  with  no  sign  of  Lizette. 

435  She  went  to  the  field  where  her  husband  was  working, 
and  told  him  of  all  the  happenings  of  the  morning.  The 
poor  man  could  only  shake  his  head  and  push  his  spade 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  285 

deeper  into  the  ground;  he  could  do  nothing;  he  was 
-helpless.  He  felt  naturally  that  if  he  had  been  allowed 
to  have  his  own  way — if  he  had  been  permitted  to  bury  440 
the  casket  deep  out  of  sight — they  would  have  had  no 
trouble  with  it.  He  felt  so  and  said  so;  and  this  view  of 
the  matter  seemed  so  reasonable  that  the  good  wife  began 
to  cry,  feeling  that  everything  that  had  occurred  had  been 
her  fault.  The  poor  woman  cried  all  the  way  home,  445 
and  only  dried  her  eyes  when  she  came  near  the  house, 
feeling  that  it  would  not  mend  matters  for  Lizette  to 
see  her  in  tears  if  she  had  by  any  chance  returned. 

But  Lizette  had  not  returned,  and  the  mother  now 
became  thoroughly  frightened.     It  seemed  to  her  that  450 
the  house  was  lonelier  than  ever,  and  she  had  known  it 
to  be  very  lonely  sometimes.     But  with  her  child  gone, 
and  with  all  the  dread  created  by  uncertainty  hanging 
about  her,  the  place  no  longer  felt  like  home,  and  she  gave 
way  to  her  tears  again.     Nevertheless,  there  was  work  to  455 
be    done, — cooking,    washing,    scrubbing, — but    she   set    • 
about  it  with  a  heavy  heart. 

As  for  Lizette,  she  had  been  led  away  from  the  house 
by  her  desire  to  preserve  the  crystal  bell.  She  went  into 
the  forest,  where  she  remained  until  she  thought  the  old  46o 
woman  had  gone  away,  but  when  she  started  back  home, 
the  bell  began  to  warn  her  with  its  tinkling  strokes,  and 
she  felt  justified  in  obeying  the  warning.  So  she  con- 
tinued to  ramble  about  at  random  in  the  forest.  She 
came  to  a  path,  and  would  have  crossed  it,  but  the  bell  465 
warned  her,  and  it  continued  until  she  went  along  the 
path  in  a  direction  that  led  her  away  from  her  home. 

In  rambling  about  in  the  forest  she  had  avoided  this 
path,  for  she  knew  that  it  led  to  the  King's  highway, 
which  at  certain  seasons  of  the  year  was  filled  with  trav-  470 
ellers,  some  in  coaches,  some  in  carriages,  and  some  on 


286  Southern  Literary  Readings 

horseback.  It  was  the  season  for  the  great  annual  fete 
at  the  King's  capital,  and,  at  such  times,  Lizette's  mother 
had  often  warned  her  not  to  go  in  sight  of  the  highway. 

475  The  good   woman  knew  that   her  daughter  was   very 

beautiful,  and  she  wanted  to  keep  her  out  of  sight  of  the 

reckless  and  irresponsible  persons  who  might  chance  to 

be  going  to  or  coming  from  the  capital  of  the  kingdom. 

The  warnings  of  her  mother  had  been  sufficient  to 

480  keep  Lizette  away  from  the  highway,  and  she  had  confined 
her  rambles  to  that  part  of  the  forest  where  strangers 
never  came.  But  now  the  crystal  bell  was  leading  her  to 
disobey  the  instructions  of  both  her  mother  and  father,, 
but  she  thought  she  had  a  very  good  reason  for  it,  and 

485  she  followed  as  the  bell  led.  When  she  came  in  sight  of 
the  King's  highway,  a  company  of  troopers  was  pass- 
ing, and  they  made  a  brave  show,  with  their  shining 
armour,  their  glittering  halberds,  and  their  fiery  horses. 
Following  this  troop  was  a  troop  of  foot  soldiers,  with 

490  their  fifes  and  drums  and  flying  flags. 

Lizette  gazed  at  tHe  great  array  with  delight.  She 
had  never  seen  anything  so  fine,  and  she  was  ready  to 
clap  her  hands  because  of  the  brave  show  the  soldiers 
made.      She  would  have  gone  closer,   but  the  crystal 

495  bell  tinkled  out  its  warning,  and  she  remained  where  she 
was.  But  presently  the  highway  was  clear,  and  as  she 
went  forward  the  bell  was  silent.  The  road  ran  between 
two  hedges  that  had  been  planted  along  its  entire  length 
by  order  of  the  old  King,  who  had  been  dead  many  years 

500 — so  many  that  his  grandson,  who  reigned  in  his  stead, 
was  now  an  old  man  with  a  son  of  his  own,  who  was 
called  the  Prince.  Lizette  had  often  heard  how  handsome 
and  good  this  young  Prince  was.  He  was  so  different 
from  many  other  princes  that  his  good  deeds  and  his 

505  kindness  were  talked  of  everywhere. 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  287 

There  was  an  opening  in  the  hedge  near  where  Lizette 
stood,  and  she  went  through  and  stood  in  the  road, 
looking  at  the  gay  cavalcade  of  soldiers  that  was  just 
disappearing  in  the  distance.  She  was  so  much  interested 
in  this  that  she  failed  to  see  a  great  coach  that  was  com-  510 
ing  along  the  road  behind  her.  The  crystal  bell  warned 
her  in  time  to  get  out  of  the  way,  and  then  it  began  to 
ring  out  a  beautiful  chime.  The  coachman  was  for  driv- 
ing on  by,  but  a  grand  lady  who  sat  in  the  coach  gave 
him  a  command  to  stop,  and  he  drew  up  his  fine  horses  515 
instantly. 

In  the  coach  with  the  fine  lady  were  a  gentleman  and 
a  little  girl,  and  they  were  all  three  staring  at  Lizette 
with  all  their  eyes.  **Did  you  ever  see  a  creature  more 
beautiful?"  cried  the  lady.  "Just  think  how  lovely  she 520 
would  be  if  she  were  properly  clad!  Why,  she  would 
create  a  sensation  at  court ;  she  would  take  the  people's 
breath  away!" 

"Oh,  give  her  to  me,  mamma!"  exclaimed  the  little 
girl.  "  V/e  will  dress  her  up  in  my  large  dolly's  clothes,  525 
and  then  she'll  be  my  sweetest  dolly."  The  little  girl 
was  so  much  in  earnest  that  she  stood  up  and  looked 
from  the  window  of  the  coach,  and  called  and  beckoned 
to  Lizette.  "Come  here!"  she  cried.  "You  must  go  with 
me  and  be  my  largest  dolly."  530 

Lizette  smiled  at  the  little  girl,  and  the  smile  made  her 
more  beautiful  than  ever.  The  gentleman  in  the  coach 
was  not  so  enthusiastic  as  the  lady  and  the  little  girl. 
"Her  clothing  is  in  rags,"  he  suggested.  "But  it  is  very 
clean,"  replied  the  lady.  "And  look  at  her  hands,  how  535 
small — and  her  complexion,  how  clear!  Why,  she  is  as 
beautiful  as  a  wild  rose."  "True,"  said  the  gentleman; 
"but  she  is  happy  here — will  she  be  as  happy  in  a  strange 
place  and  among  strange  people?" 


288  Southern  Literary  Readings 

540  "As  to  that,  I  cannot  say,"  answered  the  lady;  "but 
she  seems  to  me  to  be  one  of  those  rare  natures  which 
find  happiness  in  making  others  happy."  The  gentleman 
shrugged  his  shoulders.     "Have  your  way." 

The  lady  asked  Lizette  her  name,  and  inquired  about 

545  her  father  and  mother,  and  was  very  much  pleased  at 
the  replies  she  received.  The  appearance  and  attitude 
of  the  young  girl  were  so  modest,  and  her  replies  were  so 
intelligent,  that  those  in  the  coach  could  not  but  believe 
that  she  was  superior  to  the  station  in  which  Providence 

550  had  placed  her. 

"Oh,  mamma!"  cried  the  little  girl  again,  "please  give 
her  to  me;  I  will  take  good  care  of  her." 

" I  am  sure  of  that,  my  dearest,"  replied  the  lady,  "but 
she  doesn't  belong  to  me.     If  she  will  go  with  me  of  her 

555  own  free  will,  I  shall  be  very  glad  to  take  her." 

Just  as  Lizette  was  about  to  say  that  she  would  be  very 
glad  to  go  with  the  kind  lady,  an  old  woman  came  out  of 
the  wood  behind  her,  and  rushed  forward  as  if  to  embrace 
her.     Lizette  eluded  her,  and  turned  to  those  in  the  coach 

560  with  an  air  of  entreaty,  for  she  recognised  in  the  old  woman 
the  same  old  hag  who  had  come  after  the  casket,  claiming 
that  the  Prince  had  lost  it  in  the  forest.  Strange  to  say, 
however,  the  crystal  bell  sounded  no  note  of  warning.  It 
was  quite  silent,  save  when  the  golden  hammer  rung  out 

565  the  musical  chimes.  For  this  reason  she  was  no  longer 
afraid  of  the  old  woman.  She  had  an  idea,  indeed,  that 
this  old  hag  was  no  other  than  the  evil-minded  fairy  whom 
she  had  been  warned  against. 

"You  see  how  my  daughter  treats  me!"  cried  the  old 

570 crone;  "but  you  must  excuse  her,  Your  Honours.  When 
she  gets  hungry,  she  is  quite  another  creature.  She  is 
ashamed  of  me  before  company,  but  she  is  not  ashamed 
of  me  when  she  wants  food," 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  28g 

"You  are  not  my  mother,"   said    Lizette,   blushing; 
"but  if  you  were  I  would  not  be  ashamed  of  you.     I  never  575 
saw  you  until  this  morning,  and  then  you  were  trying  to 
rob  me." 

"Rob  you!  your  own  mother  rob  you!" 

"Not  my  mother,  but  you.  Dame  Spider."  When  the 
old  crone  heard  this  name  she  flung  her  arms  above  her  58o 
head,  gave  a  cry,  and  darted  into  the  wood.  Lizette  had 
no  idea  that  this  name  would  have  such  an  effect  on  the 
old  woman,  but  she  remembered  what  she  had  heard  of 
the  spider  that  had  tried  to  catch  the  good  fairy,  and  she 
called  the  old  woman  Dame  Spider  to  let  her  know — if  585 
she  was  the  wicked  fairy — that  she  was  suspected. 

The  little  girl  laughed  to  see  the  ugly  old  woman  run 
away  so  quickly.  "She  doesn't  hke  the  name,"  said  the 
gentleman.     "If  she's  your  mother,  it's  a  pity." 

"But  she  is  not  my  mother,"  Lizette  insisted.  "1 590 
never  saw  her  but  once  before  in  my  life.  My  mother 
and  father  live  at  the  farther  edge  of  the  forest,  and  if 
the  lady  has  time  to  drive  that  way,  she  can  see  them 
both.  My  mother  is  quite  different  from  the  woman 
you  saw  here  just  now."  595 

"I  should  hope  so,"  said  the  lady;  and  then  she  told 
Lizette  that  she  would  like  to  take  her  to  the  capital, 
where  the  court  was,  and  where  the  King  lived,  and  she 
promised  the  young  girl  that  she  would  be  well  taken 
care  of.  eoo 

Lizette  replied  that  she  would  be  glad  to  go  if  she  could 
get  the  permission  of  her  father  and  mother.  Those 
in  the  carriage  consulted  a  while  together,  and  at  last 
it  was  decided  to  send  one  of  the  footmen  with  Lizette. 
Meanwhile,  the  lady,  the  gentleman,  and  the  little  girl  eos 
were  to  sit  in  the  coach  and  wait  for  the  footman's  return. 
The  gentleman,  it  was  plain,  was  not  pleased  with  the 

19 


2go  Southern  Literary  Readings 

programme;   but  he  made  the  best  of  it,  and  sat  with 
what  patience  he  could,  though  he  yawned  a  great  deal. 

610  Now,  if  the  wicked  fairy  was  powerless  to  do  Lizette 
a  bodily  injury  while  she  carried  the  crystal  bell  in  her 
bosom,  she  had  it  in  her  power  to  throw. a  great  many 
unexpected  obstacles  in  the  young  girl's  way,  and  this 
she  proceeded  to  do.     Lizette,  accompanied  by  the  foot- 

615  man,  turned  into  the  path  by  which  she  had  come  to  the 
highway,  but  presently  this  path  became  obscure,  and  it 
grew  fainter  and  fainter,  until  finally  it  disappeared  alto- 
gether. This  was  not  only  puzzling  to  the  young  girl — 
it  was   distressing.     The  path  had   always   been  plain 

620  enough  before,  and  she  could  not  understand  why  it 
should  fail  to  be  plain  now.  But  she  kept  on  the  best 
she  knew  how.  The  footman  was  very  patient  and  kind, 
— he  wanted  Lizette  to  give  a  good  report  of  his  conduct 
if  she  returned, — but  the  young  girl  was  completely  at  a 

625  loss  as  to  the  direction  in  which  she  was  going.  She  knew 
she  had  been  in  this  part  of  the  wood  many  times,  though 
not  in  the  path,  but  everything  seemed  strange  to  her  now. 
Her  eagerness  to  get  home  added  largely  to  her  confusion, 
and  it  was  not  long  before  she  felt  that  she  was  lost  — 

630  lost  in  a  forest  that  had  almost  been  her  home. 

Just  as  she  was  about  to  tell  the  footman  that  she  was 
lost,  and  did  not  know  which  way  to  turn,  a  large  butter- 
fly, the  one  that  she  had  seen  on  two  occasions  before — 
floated  down  from  the  tops  of  the  trees,  and  circled  round 

635 her  head  close  to  her  face.  "Lead  me  home,  pretty 
butterfly!"  she  exclaimed;  "lead  me  home,  and  that 
quickly." 

The  footman  thought  at  first  that  she  was  speaking  to 
him,  but  she  shook  her  head  when  he  asked  her,  and  kept 

640  her  eyes  on  the  butterfly,  which  now  went  in  a  direction 
nearly  opposite  to  that  in  which  they  had  been  going. 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  2gi 

Lizette  followed  it,  and  the  footman  followed  her,  and  they 
went  along  very  rapidly.  Once  she  lost  sight  of  the  butter- 
fly, but  she  soon  found  it  again.  It  had  been  compelled 
to  fly  over  the  tops  of  the  trees  to  escape  a  large  spider's  645 
web  that  had  been  flung  from  tree  to  tree.  At  that 
moment,  too,  they  found  the  path  again,  and  Lizette 
ran  ahead,  the  footman  following  as  best  he  could. 

Lizette  was  soon  at  home,  and  once  there  her  story 
was  quickly  told,  every  part  of  which  was  confirmed  by  65o 
the  footman.  This  was  not  enough  for  the  mother,  who 
insisted  on  accompanying  her  daughter  to  the  highway,  so 
she  could  see  the  face  of  the  kind  lady  who  had  proposed 
to  take  her  child  to  the  great  city  and  provide  for  her. 
The  mother  quickly  got  together  the  modest  wardrobe  655 
that  belonged  to  Lizette,  and  insisted  on  dressing  her  in 
her  Sunday  best.  This  occupied  but  a  few  moments,  and 
then  they  were  ready  to  return. 

They  found  the  lady  and  her  companions  awaiting  them 
very  impatiently.  The  gentleman  was  in  such  a  hurry  eeo 
that  he  had  descended  from  the  coach,  and  was  pacing 
slowly  up  and  down,  wishing,  no  doubt,  that  they  had 
never  seen  the  peasant  girl.  Still,  he  was  a  kind-hearted 
gentleman,  and  he  was  rather  glad  on  the  whole  that 
the  young  girl  had  returned.  The  lady,  without  telling  665 
her  name,  spoke  very  kindly  to  Lizette's  mother,  and  told 
her  how  the  beauty  of  the  child  had  attracted  her,  and 
how  she  proposed  to  take  charge  of  her  and  provide  for 
her  until  she  had  become  of  age.  Though  the  poor 
peasant  woman  loved  her  daughter  dearly,  and  though  67o 
she  knew  that  she  would  lie  awake  and  weep  over  her 
absence  for  many  a  long  night,  she  raised  no  objection 
to  the  lady's  wishes.  On  the  contrary,  she  declared  that 
she  looked  on  the  lady's  offer  as  the  greatest  honour 
that  ever  had  or  ever  could  come  to  them.  675 


2g2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"Be  not  too  sure  of  that,"  said  the  lady,  "for  your 
daughter  has  modesty  as  well  as  beauty,  and  if  she  is  also 
generous  and  kind-hearted,  nothing  will  stand  in  the  way 
of  her  advancement." 

680  The  mother  could  not  find  words  to  express  her  thanks, 
and  so  she  turned  away,  after  kissing  her  daughter  good- 
bye, and  went  out  of  sight  without  looking  back,  for  she 
was  afraid  Lizette  would  see  her  weeping. 

Now,  this  great  lady  was  not  altogether  unselfish  in 

685  what  she  proposed  to  do.  She  was  one  of  the  ladies  of 
the  court,  and  her  husband,  the  gentleman  who  was  in 
the  coach  with  her,  was  one  of  the  King's  chief  advisers. 
The  lady  was  ambitious  not  only  for  herself,  but  for  her 
husband.     She  knew  that  the  King  would  soon  be  com- 

690  pelled  to  surrender  the  government  to  his  son  the  Prince, 
and  she  wanted  her  husband  and  herself  to  stand  well 
with  the  Prince  when  he  became  King.  It  happened  that 
the  young  Prince,  who  had  just  come  of  age,  had  publicly 
declared  his  purpose  to  marry  the  most  beautiful  woman 

695  in  the  kingdom,  witholit  regard  to  rank  or  station.  The 
only  conditions  he  attached  to  the  decree  was  that  the 
woman  of  his  choice  should  be  modest,  gentle,  generous, 
and  good,  as  well  as  beautiful. 

Those  who  were  attached  to  the  court  thought  that 

700  it  would  be  well  for  the  young  Prince  to  marry  a  princess 
of  one  of  the  neighbouring  kingdoms,  so  that  the  power 
and  influence  of  his  own  country  might  be  strengthened, 
and  they  were  very  much  disturbed  over  the  announce- 
ment that  the  heir  to  the  throne  had  made.     They  were 

705  inclined  to  regard  it  as  evidence  that  he  would  make 
an  eccentric  ruler  when  he  became  King.  But  there 
were  others  who  thought  that  it  showed  an  independ- 
ent mind,  and  a  desire  to  make  himself  popular  with  his 
own  people. 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  2Qj 

Nevertheless,  those  who  were  close  to  the  court  were  in  710 
the  habit  of  trying  to  please  those  who  were  above  them, 
and  some  of  these  set  their  wits  to  work  to  please  the 
Prince  in  the  matter,  in  the  hope  that  they  might  advance 
their  own  interests.     Among  these  was  the  lady  who  had 
induced  Lizette  to  accompany  her  to  court.     This  lady  715 
had  a  great  advantage  over  the  other  ladies  of  the  court. 
She  had  humoured  the  Prince  when  he  was  a  mere  boy, 
and  she  had  given  him  good  advice  in  many  ways.     His 
own  mother,  who  had  been  the  Queen,  was  dead,  and  this 
lady  had  been  very  kind  to  him  when  he  stood  much  in  720 
need  of  sympathy. 

When  the  young  Prince  made  his  announcement,  the 
lady  urged  her  husband  to  visit  his  estate  in  the  country, 
in  the  hope  that  the  journey  would  enable  her  to  discover 
a  young  girl  who  was  beautiful  enough  to  catch  the  eye  725 
of  the  Prince.  Her  journey  had  been  in  vain  up  to  the 
moment  when  she  saw  Lizette  standing  by  the  roadside, 
and  it  needed  but  a  glance  for  her  to  see  that  this  girl 
was  the  one  she  had  been  searching  for. 

Once  at  the  capital,  and  in  her  own  home,  she  lost  no  730 
time  in  preparing  a  suitable  wardrobe  for  Lizette.  She 
had  sent  to  her  a  great  many  fine  dresses,  and  she  observed 
with  pleasure  that  the  young  girl  chose  the  simplest. 
And  even  while  Lizette  was  choosing,  and  was  prepared  to 
be  very  happy,  she  thought  of  the  poverty  of  her  mother  735 
and  father,  and  sighed.  She  made  no  secret  of  her 
thoughts,  and  the  lady  told  her  that  in  a  few  months, 
perhaps,  she  would  be  able  to  give  her  parents  everything 
they  wanted  and  more. 

The  young  Prince  finally  set  the  day  when  he  was  to  740 
make  his  choice,  and,  to  the  surprise  of  all,  he  named  a 
new  condition.     The  young  girl  who  was  to  be  his  bride 
was  to  be  not  only  beautiful,  gentle,  generous,  and  good, 


2Q4  Southern  Literary  Readings 

but  she  was  to  bring  as  her  wedding  dowry  a  trinket, 

745  or  piece  of  jewelry,  or  some  article  of  value  which  could 
not  be  matched  in  the  kingdom.  Of  course  there  was 
great  consternation  among  those  whose  friends  or  daugh- 
ters had  proposed  to  enter  the  contest.  Some  of  the 
would-be  brides  withdrew  in  a  huff,  while  others  besieged 

750  the  jewellers  with  orders  to  make  them  some  kind  of  an 
ornament  which  should  have  no  pattern  or  fellow  in  the 
kingdom.  The  result  was  quite  curious,  for  when  the 
day  came  for  the  Prince  to  make  his  selection  of  a  bride, 
the  room  in  the  palace  which  had  been  set  apart  for  those 

755  who  were  ambitious  to  become  princesses  had  the  appear- 
ance of  a  museum  full  of  queer  relics. 

Now,  the  lady  who  had  Lizette  in  charge  had  very 
wisely  refrained  from  telling  her  about  the  declaration  of 
the  Prince,  for  she  knew  that  the  young  girl's  modesty 

760  would  take  alarm.  But  the  Prince  was  a  frequent  visitor 
at  the  lady's  house,  and  she  contrived  it  so  that  the  two 
young  people  should  see  each  other.  Indeed,  she  gave 
them  frequent  opportunities  to  converse  together.  Not 
knowing  that  the  young  man  was  the  Prince,   Lizette 

765  talked  with  him  very  freely,  and  he  with  her.     He  inquired 

if  she  intended  to  enter,  into  the  contest  with  the  beauties 

of  the  kingdom  in  response  to  the  invitation  of  the  Prince. 

"Why,  no,"  she  replied.     "I  am  nothing  but  a  poor 

peasant  girl,  and  my  parents  have  as  much  as  they  can 

770  do  to  earn  an  honest  living.  The  Prince  wouldn't  look 
at  such  as  I." 

He  then  tried  to  explain  that,  under  the  terms  of  the 
contest,  a  peasant  girl  would  have  as  good  a  chance  as 
any,  if  only  she  could  fulfill  the  conditions.     But  Lizette 

775  only  laughed,  declaring  that  she  would  feel  so  much  out 
of  place  among  the  beautiful  girls  of  the  kingdom  that 
she  would  feel  like  sinking  through  the  floor. 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  2g^ 

"But,"  the  young  man  insisted,  "if  the  Prince  were 
wise  he  would  choose  you  in  preference  to  all  the  rest." 

The  lady  had  overheard  this  conversation,  and  herrso 
heart  was  filled  with  joy,  especially  when  Lizette  asked 
her  some  time  afterwards  if  she  thought  the  Prince  was 
wise.  The  reply  of  the  lady  was  that  the  Prince  was  as 
wise  as  the  young  man  who  sometimes  came  to  see  them. 
This  reply  caused  Lizette  to  blush,  though  it  failed  to  put  785 
any  foolish  ideas  in  her  head. 

When  the  day  came  for  the  Prince  to  make  choice  of 
his  bride,  the  largest  room  in  the  palace  was  filled  with 
young  ladies  from  all  parts  of  the  kingdom,  and  some  of 
them  were  very  beautiful.  Lizette  was  there  also,  but  790 
the  lady  had  given  her  to  understand  that  she  was  to  be 
present  merely  as  a  spectator.  When  everything  was 
ready,  the  young  man  who  sometimes  visited  the  lady 
with  whom  Lizette  lived,  came  into  the  room  and  looked 
around.  All  the  young  girls,  with  the  exception  of  795 
Lizette,  bowed  very  low,  making  curtsies  that  were 
deemed  a  part  of  the  court  etiquette.  Lizette,  having 
no  idea  that  this  was  the  Prince,  merely  nodded  as  to  an 
old  acquaintance.  This  created  some  comment,  and  as 
her  beauty  shone  out  more  brightly  than  all  the  rest,  soo 
the  comment  was  somewhat  ill-natured.  In  the  view  of 
some  she  was  an  "impudent  minx,"  while  others  whis- 
pered that  she  was  "ill-bred  and  impolite."  As  Lizette 
heard  none  of  these  remarks,  she  regarded  the  scene  with 
great  composure,  wondering  when  the  Prince  would  make  805 
his. appearance.  A  small  throne  had  been  placed  at  one 
end  of  the  room,  and  ushers  and  servants  in  fine  uniforms 
stood  at  its  rear,  and  were  lined  up  on  each  side. 

Suddenly,  while  Lizette  was  admiring  the  scene,  and 
wondering  where  so  many  beautiful  girls  had  come  from,  sio 
an  usher  came  to  her.     "The  Prince,"  he  said,  "would 


2g6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

be  pleased  to  speak  with  you."  He  led  the  way  toward 
the  throne,  and  she  beheld  seated  there  the  young  man 
with  whom  she  had  a  slight  acquaintance. 

816  "I  am  the  Prince,"  he  said;  "will  you  seat  yourself 
beside  me?" 

"Your  Royal  Highness,  I — "  The  poor  girl  was  so 
astonished  that  she  could  hardly  speak,  and,  in  fact,  she 
knew  not  what  to  say. 

820  The  Prince  rose,  seeing  her  embarrassment,  and  took 
her  by  the  hand.  She  would  have  knelt  before  him,  but 
he  would  not  permit  it.  "There  are  two  seats,  Lizette," 
he  said.  "One  is  for  me,  and  the  other,  if  you  will  take 
it,  is  for  you."     While  he  was  speaking  the  crystal  bell 

825  was  ringing  a  joyful  chime.  He  heard  it  and  paused  to 
listen,  charmed  with  the  sweet  melody.  Trembling,  she 
stepped  forward  to  take  the  seat,  then  paused,  and  turned 
to  the  Prince.  "Have  you  forgotten,  Your  Highness, 
that  I  am  but  a  poor  peasant  girl?    My  father  bums 

830  charcoal,  and  my  mother  gathers  faggots." 

Instead  of  answering  her  he  led  her  to  the  seat,  and  as 
she  took  it  he  was  well  repaid  by  the  look  she  gave  him. 
Her  eyes,  swimming  in  happy  tears,  were  full  of  gratitude. 
"I  heard  music  just  now,  and  I  hear  it  again,"  said  the 

835  Prince.  "Can  you  by  any  chance  tell  me  where  it  is  and 
what  it  is?" 

For  answer,  she  took  the  casket  containing  the  crystal 
bell  from  her  bosom,  and  placed  it  in  his  hand.  It  chimed 
forth  a  sweet  melody  louder  than  ever.     And  all  the  great 

840  company  were  enchanted  by  the  music  so  wonderfully 
produced. 

Lizette  was  married  to  the  Prince,  and  in  due  time 
became  the  Queen,  and  her  parents  were  well  cared  for. 
The  young  Prince,  who  afterward  became  King,  would 


The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell  zgy 

have  bestowed  riches  on  them,  but  they  insisted  that  845 
all  they  desired  was  to  be  comfortable.     Now  that  their 
daughter  was  happy,  they  had  no  other  aim  in  life  than 
to  live  contented  on  their  farm. 

One  of  the  features  of  the  wedding,  which  was  cele- 
brated with  great  magnificence,  was  a  large  and  beautiful  m 
butterfly  which  hovered  over  the  bride  during  the  cere- 
mony, and  alighted  on  her  shoulder  afterwards,  and  sat 
there  fanning  her  face  with  its  wings,  which  shone  as  if 
they  were  studded  with  jewels.    One  of  the  scholars  of 
the  court — he  was  an  entomologist,  a  man  who  collects  sss 
bugs  and  insects — wanted  to  catch  the  butterfly  and  add 
it  to  his  collection,  but  the  Princess  protested  so  earnestly 
that  the  Prince  threatened  to  banish  him  from  the  court 
if  he  so  much  as  looked  at  the  butterfly.     As  you  may 
guess,  the  butterfly  was  no  other  than  the  good  fairy  who  m 
had  brought  all  this  good  fortune  to  Lizette. 


CHARLES  EGBERT  CRADDOCK 

In  a  spacious  ante-bellum  country  home  near  Mur- 
freesboro,  Tennessee,  on  January  24,  1850,  there  was 
born  a  little  girl  who  was  named  by  her  parents  Mary 
Noailles  Murfree,  but  who,  when  she  became  old  enough 
to  write  stories,  rechristened  herself  by  the  more  mas- 
culine pen  name  Charles  Egbert  Craddock.  She  was  a 
frail  child,  and  in  early  youth  was  made  lame  for  life  by 
a  stroke  of  paralysis.  Unable  to  take  part  in  the  active 
sports  of  children,  she  found  her  greatest  pleasure  in 
reading  and  study.  She  was  educated  in  an  academy 
at  Nashville,  where  her  father,  William  R.  Murfree,  was 
a  successful  lawyer  and  man  of  affairs.  The  child  showed 
remarkable  aptitude  for  literature,  reading  with  intense 
interest  her  masters  in  fiction,  Sir  Walter  Scott  and  the 
great  English  woman  novelist  George  Eliot. 

It  was  at  the  time  of  the  Civil  War,  when  the  Murfree 
estate  was  seriously  impaired — almost  entirely  swept 
away,  in  fact— and  when  the  family  was  forced  to  move 
from  the  old  plantation  home  to  seek  a  refuge  in  the 
mountains  of  East  Tennessee,  that  the  young  girl,  already 
a  close  observer  of  nature  and  a  remarkably  keen 
critic  of  life  as  it  passed  under  her  eyes,  first  came  into 
contact  with  the  mountain  people  whose  lives  and  habits 
she  has  so  lovingly,  so  humorously,  so  faithfully,  so 
humanly  recorded  in  her  stories.  After  the  war  the 
family  usually  spent  the  winters  in  the  old  Dickinson 
homestead  and  the  summers  in  the  mountains  of  East 
Tennessee,  and  here  the  author  first  tried  her  hand  at 
story-writing,  using  as  models  the  country  people  who 
came  to  her  home  to  sell  vegetables,  chickens,  or  like 
products,  and  drawing  her  pictures  of  mountain  scenery 
from  her  own  observation  as  she  rode  about  among  the 
hills.  She  sent  many  of  her  early  productions  to  weekly 
publications,  among  them  Appleton's  Journal,  but  exactly 
when  she  began  to  use  the  pen  name  Charles  Egbert 

[298] 


From  a  photograph 
CHARLES  EGBERT  CRADDOCK 


Charles  Egbert  Craddock  2Qg 

Craddock  is  not  definitely  known.  In  literary  circles  she 
has  never  been  known  by  any  other  name,  and  for  many 
years  she  preserved  the  secret  of  her  identity  even  from 
the  most  discerning  critics. 

Though  Miss  Murfree  was  writing  in  the  early- 
seventies,  she  made  no  stir  in  the  literary  world  until 
her  stories  began  to  appear  in  the  Atlantic  Monthly  in 
1878.  Her  first  book,  In  the  Tennessee  Mountains,  a 
collection  of  her  short  stories,  did  not  appear  until  1884, 
but  from  this  time  on  Charles  Egbert  Craddock  was 
recognized  as  one  of  the  most  forceful  and  original  writers 
of  fiction  in  America.  Mr.  Baskervill  says:  "It  was  at 
once  recognized  that  another  Southern  writer  of  uncom- 
mon art,  originality,  and  power  had  entered  into  a  field 
altogether  new  and  perfectly  fresh.  Only  here  and  there 
was  discernible  the  slightest  trace  of  imitation  in  con- 
ception or  manner,  while  the  atmosphere  was  entirely 
her  own ;  and  to  the  rare  qualities  of  sincerity,  simplicity, 
and  closeness  of  observation  were  added  the  more  strik- 
ing ones  of  vivid  realization  and  picturing  of  scene  and 
incident  and  character.  Her  magic  wand  revealed  the 
poetry  as  well  as  the  pathos  in  the  hard,  narrow,  and 
monotonous  life  of  the  mountaineers,  and  touched  crag  and 
stream  and  wood  and  mountain  range  with  an  enduring 
splendor.  .  .  .  Her  insight  into  the  ordinary,  common- 
place, seemingly  unpoetic  lives  of  the  mountaineers, 
her  tenderness  for  them,  her  perception  of  the  beauty  and 
the  wonder  of  their  narrow  existence  is  one  of  the  finest 
traits  in  her  character  and  her  art.  Through  this  wonder- 
ful power  of  human  sympathy  the  delicately  nurtured 
and  highly  cultured  lady  entered  into  the  life  of  the  com- 
mon folk  and  heard  their  heart-throbs  underneath  jeans 
and  homespun.  She  realized  anew  for  her  fellow  men 
that  untutored  souls  are  perplexed  with  the  same  ques- 
tions and  shaken  by  the  same  doubts  that  baffle  the 
learned,  and  that  it  is  inherent  in  humanity  to  rise  to 
the  heroic  heights  of  self-forgetfulness  and  devotion  to 
duty  in  any  environment.  Indeed,  the  keynote  of  her 
studies  is  found  in  the  last  sentence  of  this  her  first 
volume :  *  The  grace  of  culture  is,  in  its  way,  a  fine  thing, 
but  the  best  that  art  can  do — the  polish  of  a  gentleman 


joo  Southern  Literary  Readings 

— is  hardly  equal  to  the  best  that  nature  can  do  in  her 
higher  moods.'" 

Miss  Murfree's  first  long  novel  was  Where  the  Battle 
was  Fought  (1884),  the  scene  of  which  was  the  home  of  her 
childhood,  the  house  described  in  the  opening  chapter 
being  the  one  in  which  she  was  born.  The  family  had 
returned  to  the  old  mansion  after  the  war,  and  Miss 
Murfree  still  owns  and  resides  in  this  famous  seat  of  her 
maternal  grandparents.  Other  books  followed  in  rapid 
succession,  some  of  the  most  important  titles  being  Down 
the  Ravine,  The  Prophet  of  the  Great  Smoky  Mountains, 
In  the  Clouds,  Keedon  Bluffs,  The  Despot  of  Broomsedge 
Cove,  The  Mystery  of  Witchface  Mountain,  The  Juggler, 
The  Frontiersman,  The  Storm  C enter y  The  Amulet,  The 
Windfall,  and  The  Fair  Mississippian.  Though  now  well 
past  her  threescore  years,  she  still  shows  keen  interest  in 
the  people  and  the  country  over  which  her  art  has  thrown 
so  beautiful  a  mantle  of  romance.  No  woman  in  the 
South — nor  any  in  the  nation,  for  that  matter — has  done 
more  satisfactory  work  in  the  difficult  art  of  story-telling. 
She  has  raade  a  distinct  contribution  to  American  fiction 
in  thus  preserving  in  enduring  form  the  life  and  character 
of  a  strange,  secluded,,  and  rapidly  vanishing  people. 

(The  most  satisfactory  treatment  of  Charles  Egbert  Craddock  and 
her  work  is  by  Professor  W.  M.  Baskervill  in  Southern  Writers,  Vol.  I.) 


TAKING   THE   BLUE   RIBBON  AT  THE 
COUNTY  FAIR 

Jenks  HoUis  sat  on  the  fence.  He  slowly  turned  the  quid 
of  tobacco  in  his  cheek,  and  lifting  up  his  voice  spoke  with 
an  oracular  drawl: — 

"Ef  he  kin  take  the  certif'cate  it's  the  mos'  ez  he  kin 
do.     He  ain't  never  a-goin'  ter  git  no  pvemi-um  in  this  life,  6 
sure's  ye  air  a  bom  sinner." 

And  he  relapsed  into  silence.  His  long  legs  dangled 
dejectedly  among  the  roadside  weeds;  his  brown  jeans 
trousers,  that  had  despaired  of  ever  reaching  his  ankles, 
were  ornamented  here  and  there  with  ill-adjusted  patches,  lo 
and  his  loose-fitting  coat  was  out  at  the  elbows.  An  old 
white  wool  hat  drooped  over  his  eyes,  which  were  fixed 
absently  on  certain  distant  blue  mountain  ranges,  that 
melted  tenderly  into  the  blue  of  the  noonday  sky,  and 
framed  an  exquisite  mosaic  of  poly-tinted  fields  in  the  val-  is 
ley,  far,  far  below  the  grim  gray  crag  on  which  his  little 
home  was  perched. 

Despite  his  long  legs  he  was  a  light  weight,  or  he  would 
not  have  chosen  as  his  favorite  seat  so  rickety  a  fence. 
His  interlocutor,  a  heavier  man,  apparently  had  some  20 
doubts,  for  he  leaned  only  slightly  against  one  of  the  pro- 
jecting rails  as  he  whittled  a  pine  stick,  and  with  his  every 
movement  the  frail  structiu*e  trembled.  The  log  cabin 
seemed  as  rickety  as  the  fence.  The  little  front  porch  had 
lost  a  puncheon  here  and  there  in  the  flooring — perhaps  26 
on  some  cold  winter  night  when  Hollis's  energy  was  not 
sufficiently  exuberant  to  convey  him  to  the  woodpile ;  the 
slender  posts  that  upheld  its  roof  seemed  hardly  strong 

[301] 


'  J02  Southern  Literary  Readings 

enough  to  withstand  the  weight  of  the  luxuriant  vines 

30  with  their  wealth  of  golden  gourds  which  had  clambered 
far  over  the  moss-grown  clapboards;  the  windows  had 
fewer  panes  of  glass  than  rags;  and  the  chimney,  built  of 
clay  and  sticks,  leaned  portentously  away  from  the  house. 
The  open  door  displayed  a  rough,  uncovered  floor;  a  few 

85  old  rush-bottomed  chairs ;  a  bedstead  with  a  patch-work 
calico  quilt,  the  mattress  swagging  in  the  centre  and  show- 
ing the  badly  arranged  cords  below;  strings  of  bright 
red  pepper  hanging  from  the  dark  rafters ;  a  group  of  tow- 
headed,  grave-faced,  barefooted  children;  and,  occupying 

40  almost  one  side  of  the  room,  a  broad,  deep,  old-fashioned 
fireplace,  where  winter  and  simimer  a  lazy  fire  burned  under 
a  lazy  pot. 

Notwithstanding  the  poverty  of  the  aspect  of  the  place 
and  the  evident  sloth  of  its  master,  it  was  characterized 

45  by  a  scrupulous  cleanliness  strangely  at  variance  with  its 
forlorn  deficiencies.  The  rough  floor  was  not  only  swept 
but  scoured;  the  darl^  rafters,  whence  depended  the  flam- 
ing banners  of  the  red  pepper,  harbored  no  cobwebs;  the 
grave  faces  of  the  white-haired  children  bore  no  more  dirt 

60  than  was  consistent  with  their  recent  occupation  of  making 
mudpies;  and  the  sedate,  bald-headed  baby,  lying  silent 
but  wide-awake  in  an  uncouth  wooden  cradle,  was  as  clean 
as  clear  spring  water  and  yellow  soap  could  make  it.  Mrs. 
Hollis  herself,  seen  through  the  vista  of  opposite  open  doors, 

55  energetically  rubbing  the  coarse  wet  clothes  upon  the 
resonant  washboard,  seemed  neat  enough  in  her  blue-and- 
white  checked  homespun  dress,  and  with  her  scanty  hair 
drawn  smoothly  back  from  her  brow  into  a  tidy  little  knot 
on  the  top  of  her  head. 

60  Spare  and  gaunt  she  was,  and  with  many  lines  in  her 
prematurely  old  face.  Perhaps  they  told  of  the  hard 
fight  her  brave  spirit  waged  against  the  stem  ordering  of 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      303 

her  life;   of  the  struggles  with  squalor, — inevitable  con- 
comitant of  poverty, — and  to  keep  together  the  souls  and 
bodies  of  those  numerous  children,  with  no  more  efficient  65 
assistance  than  could  be  wrung  from  her  reluctant  husband 
in  the  short  intervals  when  he  did  not  sit  on  the  fence. 
She  managed  as  well  as  she  could ;  there  was  an  abundance 
of  fine  fruit  in  that  low  line  of  foliage  behind  the  house — 
but  everybody  on  Old  Bear  Mountain  had  fine  fruit.  70 
Something  rarer,  she  had  good  vegetables — the  planting 
and  hoeing  being  her  own  work  and  her  eldest  daughter's; 
an  occasional  shallow  furrow  representing  the  contribu- 
tion of  her  husband's  plough.     The  althea-bushes  and 
the  branches  of  the  laurel  sheltered  a  goodly  number  of  75 
roosting  hens  in  these  September  nights ;  and  to  the  pond, 
which  had  been  formed  by  damming  the  waters  of  the 
spring  branch  in  the  hollow  across  the  road,  was  moving 
even  now  a  stately  procession  of  geese  in  single  file.     These 
simple  belongings  were  the  trophies  of  a  gallant  battle  so 
against  unalterable  conditions  and  the  dragging,  dispirit- 
ing clog  of  her  husband's  inertia. 

His  inner  life — does  it  seem  hard  to  realize  that  in  that 
uncouth  personality  concentred  the  complex,  incompre- 
hensible, ever-shifting  emotions  of  that  inner  life  which,  ss 
after  all,  is  so  much  stronger,  and  deeper,  and  broader 
than  the  material?  Here,  too,  beat  the  hot  heart  of 
himianity — beat  with  no  measured  throb.  He  had  his 
hopes,  his  pleasure,  his  pain,  like  those  of  a  higher  cul- 
ture, differing  only  in  object,  and  something  perhaps  in  90 
degree.  His  disappointments  were  bitter  and  lasting; 
his  triumphs,  few  and  sordid;  his  single  aspiration — to 
take  the  premium  offered  by  the  directors  of  the  Kildeer 
County  Fair  for  the  best  equestrian. 

This  incongruous  and  unpromising  ambition  had  sprung  os 
up  in  this  wise:   Between  the  country  people  of  Kildeer 


J04  Southern  Literary  Readings 

County  and  the  citizens  of  the  village  of  Colbury,  the 
county-seat,  existed  a  bitter  and  deeply  rooted  animosity 
manifesting  itself  at  conventions,  elections  for  the  legisla- 

looture,  etc.,  the  rural  population  voting  as  a  unit  against 
the  town's  candidate.  On  all  occasions  of  public  meetings 
there  was  a  struggle  to  crush  any  invidious  distinction 
against  the  "country  boys,"  especially  at  the  annual  fair. 
Here  to  the  rustics  of  Kildeer  County  came  the  tug  of 

105  war.  The  population  of  the  outlying  districts  was  more 
numerous,  and,  when  it  could  be  used  as  a  suffrage-engine, 
all-powerful;  but  the  region  immediately  adjacent  to  the 
town  was  far  more  fertile.  On  those  fine  meadows 
grazed  the  graceful  Jersey;  there  gamboled  sundry  long- 

110 tailed  colts  with  long-tailed  pedigrees;  there  greedy 
Berkshires  fattened  themselves  to  abnormal  proportions; 
and  the  merinos  could  hardly  walk,  for  the  weight  of 
their  own  rich  wardrobes.  The  well-to-do  farmers  of 
this  section  were  hand-in-glove  with  the  town's  people; 

115  they  drove  their  trotters  in  every  day  or  so  to  get  their 
mail,  to  chat  with  their  cronies,  to  attend  to  their  affairs 
in  court,  to  sell  or  to  buy — their  pleasures  centered  in  the 
town,  and  they  turned  the  cold  shoulder  upon  the  coun- 
try, which  supported  them,  and  gave  their  influence  to 

120  Colbury,  accounting  themselves  an  integrant  part  of  it. 
Thus,  at  the  fairs  the  town  claimed  the  honor  and  glory. 
The  blue  ribbon  decorated  cattle  and  horses  bred  within 
ten  miles  of  the  flaunting  flag  on  the  judges'  stand,  and 
the  foaming  mountain-torrents  and  the  placid  stream  in 

126  the  valley  beheld  no  cerulean  hues  save  those  of  the  sky 
which  they  reflected. 

The  premium  offered  this  year  for  the  best  rider  was,  as  it 
happened,  a  new  feature,  and  excited  especial  interest.  The 
country's  blood  was  up.     Here  was  something  for  which 

130  it  could  fairly  compete,  with  none  of  the  disadvantages 


Taking  the  Bhie  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair       jo^ 

of  the  false  position  in  which  it  was  placed.  Hence  a 
prosperous  landed  proprietor,  the  leader  of  the  rural  fac- 
tion, dwelling  midway  between  the  town  and  the  range 
of  mountains  that  bounded  the  county  on  the  north  and 
east,  bethought  himself  one  day  of  Jenkins  Hollis,  whose  135 
famous  riding  had  been  the  feature  of  a  certain  dashing 
cavalry  charge — once  famous,  too — forgotten  now  by  all 
but  the  men  who,  for  the  first  and  only  time  in  their 
existence,  penetrated  in  those  war  days  the  blue  moun- 
tains fencing  in  their  county  from  the  outer  world,  and  ho 
looked  upon  the  alien  life  beyond  that  wooded  barrier. 
The  experience  of  those  four  years,  submerged  in  the 
whirling  rush  of  events  elsewhere,  survives  in  these  event- 
less regions  in  a  dreamy,  dispassionate  sort  of  longevity. 
And  Jenkins  HoUis's  feat  of  riding  stolidly — one  could  145 
hardly  say  bravely — up  an  almost  sheer  precipice  to  a 
flame-belching  battery  came  suddenly  into  the  landed 
magnate's  recollection  with  the  gentle  vapors  and  soothing 
aroma  of  a  meditative  after-dinner  pipe.  Quivering  with 
party  spirit,  Squire  Goodlet  sent  for  Hollis  and  offered  to  150 
lend  him  the  best  horse  on  the  place,  and  a  saddle  and 
bridle,  if  he  would  go  down  to  Colbury  and  beat  those 
town  fellows  out  on  their  own  ground. 

No  misgivings  had  Hollis.  The  inordinate  personal 
pride  characteristic  of  the  mountaineer  precluded  his  155 
feeling  a  shrinking  pain  at  the  prospect  of  being  presented, 
a  sorry  contrast,  among  the  well-clad,  well-to-do  town's 
people,  to  compete  in  a  public  contest.  He  did  not  appre- 
ciate the  difference — he  thought  himself  as  good  as  the  best. 

And   to-day,    complacent   enough,    he   sat   upon   the  leo 
rickety  fence  at  home,  oracularly  disparaging  the  eques- 
trian accomplishments  of  the  town's  noted  champion. 

"I  dunno — I  dunno,"  said  his  young  companion  doubt- 
fully.   " Hackett  sets  mighty  firm  onto  his  saddle.     He's 


jo6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

165  ez  straight  ez  any  shingle,  an'  ez  tough  ez  a  pine-knot. 
He  come  up  hyar  las'  summer — war  it  las'  summer, 
now?  No,  't  war  summer  afore  las' — with  some  o'  them 
other  Colbury  folks,  a-fox-huntin',  an'  a-deer-huntin',  an' 
one  thing  an'  'nother.     I  seen  'em  a  time  or  two  in  the 

170  woods.  An'  he  kin  ride  jes'  ez  good  'mongst  the  gullies 
and  boulders  like  ez  ef  he  had  been  bom  in  the  hills.  He 
ain't  a-goin'  ter  be  beat  easy." 

"It  don't  make  no  differ,"  retorted  Jenks  Hollis. 
"He'll  never  git  no  premi-wm.     The  certif 'cate 's  good 

175  a-plenty  fur  what  ridin'  he  kin  do." 

Doubt  was  still  expressed  in  the  face  of  the  young  man, 
but  he  said  no  more,  and,  after  a  short  silence,  Mr.  Hollis, 
perhaps  not  relishing  his  visitor's  want  of  appreciation, 
dismounted,  so  to  speak,  from  the  fence,  and  slouched  off 

180  slowly  up  the  road. 

Jacob  Brice  still  stood  leaning  against  the  rails  and 
whittling  his  pine  stick,  in  no  wise  angered  or  dismayed 
by  his  host's  unceremonious  departure,  for  social  eti- 
quette is  not  very  ri^id  on  Old  Bear  Mountain.     He  was 

185  a  tall  athletic  fellow,  clad  in  a  suit  of  brown  jeans,  which 
displayed,  besides  the  ornaments  of  patches,  sundry  deep 
grass  stains  about  the  knees.  Not  that  piety  induced 
Brice  to  spend  much  time  in  the  lowly  attitude  of  prayer, 
unless,  indeed,  Diana  might  be  accounted  the  goddess  of 

190  his  worship.  The  green  juice  was  pressed  out  when  kneel- 
ing, hidden  in  some  leafy,  grassy  nook,  he  heard  the  infre- 
quent cry  of  the  wild  turkey,  or  his  large,  intent  blue  eyes 
caught  a  glimpse  of  the  stately  head  of  an  antl.ered  buck, 
moving  majestically  in  the  alternate  sheen  of  the  sunlight 

195  and  shadow  of  the  overhanging  crags ;  or  while  with  his 
deft  hunter's  hands  he  dragged  himself  by  slow,  noiseless 
degrees  through  the  ferns  and  tufts  of  rarik  weeds  to  the 
water's  edge,  that  he  might  catch  a  shot  at  the  feeding 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      307 

wild  duck.     A  leather  belt  around  his  waist  supported  his 
powder-horn  and  shot-pouch, — for  his  accoutrements  were  200 
exactly  such  as  might  have  been  borne  a  hundred  years 
ago  by  a  hunter  of  Old  Bear  Mountain, —  and  his  gun 
leaned  against  the  trunk  of  a  chestnut  oak. 

Although  he  still  stood  outside  the  fence,  aimlessly 
lounging,  there  was  a  look  on  his  face  of  a  half -suppressed  20s 
expectancy,  which  rendered  the  features  less  statuesque 
than  was  their  wont — an  expectancy  that  showed  itself 
in  the  furtive  lifting  of  his  eyelids  now  and  then,  enabling 
him  to  survey  the  doorway  without  turning  his  head. 
Suddenly  his  face  reassumed  its  habitual,  inexpressive  210 
mask  of  immobility,  and  the  furtive  eyes  were  persist- 
ently downcast. 

A  flare  of  color,  and  Cynthia  Hollis  was  standing  in 
the  doorway,  leaning  against  its  frame.  She  was  robed, 
like  September,  in  brilliant  yellow.  The  material  and  215 
make  were  of  the  meanest,  but  there  was  a  certain  appro- 
priateness in  the  color  with  her  slumberous  dark  eyes 
and  the  curling  tendrils  of  brown  hair  which  fell  upon  her 
forehead  and  were  clustered  together  at  the  back  of  her 
neck.  No  cuffs  and  no  collar  could  this  costume  boast,  220 
but  she  had  shown  the  inclination  to  finery  characteristic 
of  her  age  and  sex  by  wearing  around  her  throat,  where 
the  yellow  hue  of  her  dress  met  the  creamy  tint  of  her 
skin,  a  row  of  large  black  beads,  threaded  upon  a  shoe- 
string in  default  of  an  elastic,  the  brass  ends  flaunt- 225 
ing  brazenly  enough  among  them.  She  held  in  her 
hand  a  string  of  red  pepper,  to  which  she  was  adding 
some  newly  gathered  pods.  A  slow  job  Cynthia  seemed 
to  make  of  it. 

She  took  no  more  notice  of  the  man  under  the  tree  than  230 
he  accorded  to  her.     There  they  stood,  within  twelve  feet 
of  each  other,  in  utter  silence,  and,  to  all  appearance,  each 


jo8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

entirely  unconscious  of  the  other's  existence:  he  whittling 
his  pine  stick;  she  slowly,  slowly  stringing  the  pods  of 

235  red  pepper. 

There  was  something  almost  portentous  in  the  gravity 
and  sobriety  of  demeanor  of  this  girl  of  seventeen;  she 
manifested  less  interest  in  the  young  man  than  her  own 
grandmother  might  have  shown. 

240  He  was  constrained  to  speak  first.  "Cynthy" — he  said 
at  length,  without  raising  his  eyes  or  turning  his  head. 
She  did  not  answer;  but  he  knew  without  looking  that 
she  had  fixed  those  slumberous  brown  eyes  upon  him, 
waiting  for  him  to  go  on.     "Cynthy" — he  said  again, 

245  with  a  hesitating,  uneasy  manner.  Then,  with  an  awk- 
ward attempt  at  raillery,  "Ain't  ye  never  a-thinkin'  'bout 
a-gittin'  married  ? ' ' 

He  cast  a  laughing  glance  toward  her,  and  looked  down 
quickly  at  his  clasp-knife  and  the  stick  he  was  whittling. 

250  It  was  growing  very  slender  now. 

Cynthia's  serious  face  relaxed  its  gravity.  "Ye  air 
foolish,  Jacob,"  shef  said,  laughing.  After  stringing  on 
another  pepper-pod  with  great  deliberation,  she  continued : 
"Ef  I  war  a-studyin'  'bout  a-gittin'  married,  thar  ain't 

255 nobody  round  'bout  hyar  ez  I'd  hev."  And  she  added 
another  pod  to  the  flaming  red  string,  so  bright  against 
the  yellow  of  her  dress. 

That  stick  could  not  long  escape  annihilation.  The 
clasp-knife   moved    vigorously   through  its    fibres,    and 

260  accented  certain  arbitrary  clauses  in  its  owner's  retort. 
"Ye  talk  like,"  he  said,  his  face  as  monotonous  in  its 
expression  as  if  every  line  were  cut  in  marble — "ye  talk 
like — ye  thought  ez  how  I — war  a-goin'  ter  ax  ye — ter 
marry  me.     I  ain't  though,  nuther." 

265  The  stick  was  a  shaving.  It  fell  among  the  weeds. 
The   young   hunter   shut   his   clasp-knife   with   a   snap. 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      jog 

shouldered  his  gun,  and  without  a  word  of  adieu  on  either 
side  the  conference  terminated,  and  he  walked  off  down 
the  sandy  road. 

Cynthia  stood  watching  him  until  the  laurel-bushes  279 
hid  him  from  sight;  then  sliding  from  the  door-frame 
to  the  step,  she  sat  motionless,  a  bright-hued  mass  of 
yellow  draperies  and  red  peppers,  her  slumberous  deep  eyes 
resting  on  the  leaves  that  had  closed  upon  him. 

She  was  the  central  figure  of  a  still  landscape.     The  27s 
midday  sunshine  fell  in  broad  effulgence  upon  it;    the 
homely,  dun-colored  shadows  had  been  running  away  all 
the  morning,  as  if  shirking  the  contrast  with  the  splendors 
of  the  golden  light,  until  nothing  was  left  of  them  except  a 
dark  circle  beneath  the  wide-spreading  trees.     No  breath  280 
of  wind  stirred  the  leaves,  or  rippled  the  surface  of  the 
little  pond.     The  lethargy  of  the  hour  had  descended  even 
upon  the  towering  pine-trees,  growing  on  the  precipitous 
slope  of  the  mountain,  and  showing  their  topmost  plumes 
just  above  the  frowning,  gray  crag — their  melancholy  song  235 
was  hushed.     The  silent  masses  of  dazzling  white  clouds 
were  poised  motionless  in  the  ambient  air,  high  above  the 
valley  and  the  misty  expanse  of  the  distant,  wooded  ranges. 

A  lazy,  lazy  day,  and  very,  very  warm.  The  birds  had 
much  ado  to  find  sheltering  shady  nooks  where  they  might  290 
escape  the  glare  and  the  heat;  their  gay  carols  were  out 
of  season,  and  they  blinked  and  nodded  under  their  leafy 
umbrellas,  and  fanned  themselves  with  their  wings,  and 
twittered  disapproval  of  the  weather.  "Hot,  hot,  red- 
hot  ! ' '  said  the  birds  — ' '  broiling  hot ! ' '  295 

Now  and  then  an  acorn  fell  from  among  the  serrated 
chestnut  leaves,  striking  upon  the  fence  with  a  sounding 
thwack,  and  rebounding  in  the  weeds.  Those  chestnut- 
oaks  always  seem  to  unaccustomed  eyes  the  creation  of 
Nature  in  a  fit  of  mental  aberration — useful  freak!  the  300 


jio  Southern  Literary  Readings 

mountain  swine  fatten  on  the  plenteous  mast,  and  the  bark 

is  highly  esteemed  at  the  tan-yard. 
A  large  cat  was  lying  at  full  length  on  the  floor  of  the 

little  porch,  watching  with  drowsy,  half-closed  eyes  the 
305  assembled  birds  in  the  tree.      But  she  seemed  to  have 

relinquished  the  pleasures  of  the  chase  until  the  mercury 

should  fall. 

Close  in  to  the  muddiest  side  of  the  pond  over  there, 

which  was  all  silver  and  blue  with  the  reflection  of  the  great 
310  masses  of  white  clouds,  and  the  deep  azure  sky,  a  fleet  of 

shining,  snowy  geese  was  moored,  perfectly  motionless 

too.     No  circumnavigation  for  them  this  hot  day. 

And  Cynthia's  dark  brown  eyes,  fixed  upon  the  leafy 

vista  of  the  road,  were  as  slumberous  as  the  noontide 
315  sunshine. 

" Cynthy !  whar  is  the  gal? "  said  poor  Mrs.  HoUis,  as  she 

came  around  the  house  to  hang  out  the  ragged  clothes  on 

the  althea-bushes  and  the  rickety  fence.     **  Cynthy,  air  ye 

a-goin'  ter  sit  thar  in  the  door  all  day,  an'  that  thar  pot 
320  a-bilin'  all  the  stren'th  out'n  that  thar  cabbige  an'  roas'in'- 

ears?    Dish  up  dinner,  child,  an'  don't  be  so  slow  an' 

slack-twisted  like  yer  dad." 

Great  merriment  there  was,  to  be  sure,  at  the  Kildeer 
Fair  grounds,  situated  on  the  outskirts  of  Colbury,  when 

325  it  became  known  to  the  convulsed  town  faction  that  the 
gawky  Jenks  HoUis  intended  to  compete  for  the  premium 
to  be  awarded  to  the  best  and  most  graceful  rider.  The 
contests  of  the  week  had  as  usual  resulted  in  Colbury's 
favor;  this  was  the  last  day  of  the  fair,  and  the  defeated 

330  country  popiilation  anxiously  but  still  hopefully  awaited 
its  notable  event. 

A  warm  sun  shone;  a  brisk  autumnal  breeze  waved  the 
flag  fi5ning  from  the  judges'  stand ;  a  brass  band  in  the  upper 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      jii 

story  of  that  structure  thrilled  the  air  with  the  vibrations 
of  pop\ilar  waltzes  and  marches,  somewhat  marred  now  335 
and  then  by  mysteriously  discordant  bass  tones ;  the  judges, 
portly,  red-faced,  middle-aged  gentlemen,  sat  below  in 
cane-bottom  chairs  critically  a-tilt  on  the  hind  legs.  The 
rough  wooden  amphitheatre,  a  bold  satire  on  the  stately 
Roman  edifice,  was  filled  with  the  denizens  of  Colbury  and  340 
the  rosy  rural  faces  of  the  country  people  of  Kildeer 
County;  and  within  the  charmed  arena  the  competitors 
for  the  blue  ribbon  and  the  saddle  and  bridle  to  be  awarded 
to  the  best  rider  were  just  now  entering,  ready  mounted, 
from  a  door  beneath  the  tiers  of  seats,  and  were  slowly  mak-  345 
ing  the  tour  of  the  circle  around  the  judges'  stand.  One 
by  one  they  came,  with  a  certain  nonchalant  pride  of 
demeanor,  conscious  of  an  effort  to  display  themselves  and 
their  horses  to  the  greatest  advantage,  and  yet  a  little 
ashamed  of  the  consciousness.  For  the  most  part  they  350 
were  young  men,  prosperous  looking,  and  clad  according 
to  the  requirements  of  fashion  which  prevailed  in  this  little 
town.  Shut  in  though  it  was  from  the  pomps  and  vanities 
of  the  world  by  the  encircling  chains  of  blue  ranges  and  the 
bending  sky  which  rested  upon  their  summits,  the  frivolity  355 
of  the  mode,  though  somewhat  belated,  found  its  way  and 
ruled  with  imperative  rigor.  Good  riders  they  were  un- 
doubtedly, accustomed  to  the  saddle  almost  from  infancy, 
and  well  mounted.  A  certain  air  of  gallantry,  always 
characteristic  of  an  athletic  horseman,  commended  these  seo 
equestrian  figures  to  the  eye  as  they  slowly  circled  about. 
Still  they  came — eight — nine — ten — the  eleventh,  the 
long,  lank  frame  of  Jenkins  Hollis  mounted  on  Squire 
Goodlet's  "John  Barleycorn." 

The  horsemen  received  this  ungainly  addition  to  their  ses 
party  with  polite  composure,  and  the  genteel  element  of 
the  spectators  remained  silent  too  from  the  force  of  good 


JI2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

breeding  and  good  feeling;    but  the  "roughs,"  always 
critically  a-loose  in  a  crowd,  shouted  and  screamed  with 

370  derisive  hilarity.  What  they  were  laughing  at  Jenks  Hollis 
never  knew.  Grave  and  stolid,  but  as  complacent  as  the 
best,  he  too  made  the  usual  circuit  with  his  ill-fitting  jeans 
suit,  his  slouching  old  wool  hat,  and  his  long,  gaunt  figure. 
But  he  sat  the  spirited  "John  Barleycorn"  as  if  he  were 

375  a  part  of  the  steed,  and  held  up  his  head  with  unwonted 
dignity,  inspired  perhaps  by  the  stately  attitudes  of  the 
horse,  which  were  the  result  of  no  training  nor  compelling 
reins,  but  the  instinct  transmitted  through  a  long  line  of 
high-headed  ancestry.     Of  a  fine  old  family  was  "John 

380  Barleycorn." 

A  deeper  sensation  was  in  store  for  the  spectators. 
Before  Jenkins  Hollis's  appearance  most  of  them  had  heard 
of  his  intention  to  compete,  but  the  feeling  was  one  of 
unmixed  astonishment  when  entry  No.  12  rode  into  the 

385  arena,  and,  on  the  part  of  the  country  people,  this  surprise 
was  supplemented  by  an  intense  indignation.  The  twelfth 
man  was  Jacob  Brice*.  As  he  was  a  "mounting  boy,"  one 
would  imagine  that,  if  victory  should  crown  his  efforts, 
the  rural  faction  ought  to  feel  the  elation  of  success,  but 

390  the  prevailing  sentiment  toward  him  was  that  which  every 
well-conducted  mind  must  entertain  concerning  the  indi- 
vidual who  runs  against  the  nominee.  Notwithstanding 
the  fact  that  Brice  was  a  notable  rider,  too,  and  well 
calculated  to  try  the  mettle  of  the  town's  champion, 

395  there  arose  from  the  excited  countrymen  a  keen,  bitter, 
and  outraged  cry  of  "Take  him  out!"  So  strongly  does 
the  partisan  heart  pulsate  to  the  interests  of  the  nominee ! 
This  frantic  petition  had  no  effect  on  the  interloper.  A 
man  who  has  inherited  half  a  dozen  violent  quarrels,  any 

400  one  of  which  may  at  any  moment  burst  into  a  vendetta, 
— inheriting  little  else, — is  not  easily  dismayed  by  the 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      jij 

disapprobation  of  either  friend  or  foe.  His  statuesque 
features,  shaded  by  the  drooping  brim  of  his  old  black  hat, 
were  as  calm  as  ever,  and  his  slow  blue  eyes  did  not,  for 
one  moment,  rest  upon  the  excited  scene  about  him,  so  405 
unspeakably  new  to  his  scanty  experience.  His  fine  figure 
showed  to  great  advantage  on  horseback,  despite  his 
uncouth,  coarse  garb;  he  was  mounted  upon  a  sturdy, 
brown  mare  of  obscure  origin,  but  good-looking,  clean- 
built,  sure-footed,  and  with  the  blended  charm  of  spirit  410 
and  docility;  she  represented  his  whole  estate,  except  his 
gun  and  his  lean,  old  hound,  that  had  accompanied  him 
to  the  fair,  and  was  even  now  improving  the  shining  hour 
by  quarreling  over  a  bone  outside  the  grounds  with  other 
people's  handsomer  dogs.  415 

The  judges  were  exacting.  The  riders  were  ordered  to 
gallop  to  the  right — and  around  they  went.  To  the  left — 
and  there  was  again  the  spectacle  of  the  swiftly  circling 
equestrian  figures.  They  were  required  to  draw  up  in  a 
line,  and  to  dismount;  then  to  mount,  and  again  to  alight.  420 
Those  whom  these  manoeuvres  proved  inferior  were  dis- 
missed at  once,  and  the  circle  was  reduced  to  eight.  An 
exchange  of  horses  was  commanded;  and  once  more  the 
riding,  fast  and  slow,  left  and  right,  the  mounting  and 
dismounting  were  repeated.  The  proficiency  of  the  re-  425 
maining  candidates  rendered  them  worthy  of  more  diffi- 
cult ordeals.  They  were  required  to  snatch  a  hat  from  the 
ground  while  riding  at  full  gallop.  Pistols  loaded  with 
blank  cartridges  were  fired  behind  the  horses,  and  subse- 
quently close  to  their  quivering  and  snorting  nostrils,  in  430 
order  that  the  relative  capacity  of  the  riders  to  manage  a 
frightened  and  unruly  steed  might  be  compared,  and  the 
criticism  of  the  judges  mowed  the  number  down  to  four. 

Free  speech  is  conceded  by  all  right-thinking  people  to 
be  a  blessing.     It  is  often  a  balm.     Outside  of  the  building  435 


JJ4  Southern  Literary  Readings 

and  of  earshot  the  defeated  aspirants  took  what  comfort 
they  could  in  consigning,  with  great  fervor  and  volubility, 
all  the  judicial  magnates  to  that  torrid  region  unknown  to 
polite  geographical  works. 

440  Of  the  four  horsemen  remaining  in  the  ring,  two  were 
Jenkins  Hollis  and  Jacob  Brice.  Short  turns  at  full  gallop 
were  prescribed.  The  horses  were  required  to  go  backward 
at  various  gaits.  Bars  were  brought  in  and  the  crowd 
enjoyed  the  exhibition  of  the  standing-leap,  at  an  ever- 

445  increasing  height  and  then  the  flying-leap — a  tumultuous 
confused  impression  of  thundering  hoofs  and  tossing  mane 
and  grim  defiant  faces  of  horse  and  rider,  in  the  Ughtning- 
like  moment  of  passing.  Obstructions  were  piled  on  the 
track  for  the  "long  jumps,"  and  in  one  of  the  wildest  leaps 

450  a  good  rider  was  unhorsed  and  rolled  on  the  ground  while 
his  recreant  steed  that  had  balked  at  the  last  moment 
scampered  around  and  around  the  arena  in  a  wild  effort 
to  find  the  door  beneath  the  tiers  of  seats  to  escape  so 
fierce  a  competition.     This  accident  reduced  the  number 

455  of  candidates  to  the*  two  mountaineers  and  Tip  Hackett, 
the  man  whom  Jacob  had  pronounced  a  formidable  rival. 
The  circling  about,  the  mounting  and  dismounting,  the 
exchange  of  horses  were  several  times  repeated  without 
any  apparent  result,  and  excitement  rose  to  fever  heat. 

460  The  premiimi  and  certificate  lay  between  the  three  men. 
The  town  faction  trembled  at  the  thought  that  the  sub- 
stantial award  of  the  saddle  and  bridle,  with  the  decoration 
of  the  blue  ribbon,  and  the  intangible  but  still  precious 
secondary  glory  of  the  certificate  and  the  red  ribbon  might 

465  be  given  to  the  two  mountaineers,  leaving  the  crack  rider 
of  Colbury  in  an  ignominious  lurch;  while  the  country 
party  feared  Hollis 's  defeat  by  Hackett  rather  less  than 
that  Jenks  would  be  required  to  relinquish  the  premium  to 
the  interloper  Brice,  for  the  young  hunter's  riding  had 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      5/5 

stricken  a  pang  of  prophetic  terror  to  more  than  one  par-  470 
tisan  rustic's  heart.    In  the  midst  of  the  perplexing  doubt, 
which  tried  the  judges'  minds,  came  the  hour  for  dinner,  and 
the  decision  was  postponed  until  after  that  meal. 

The  competitors  left   the  arena,   and   the   spectators 
transferred  their  attention  to  unburdening  hampers,  or  to  475 
jostling  one  another  in  the  dining-hall. 

Everybody  was  feasting  but  Cynthia  Hollis.  The  in- 
tense excitement  of  the  day,  the  novel  sights  and  sounds 
utterly  undreamed  of  in  her  former  life,  the  abruptly  struck 
chords  of  new  emotions  suddenly  set  vibrating  within  her,  48o 
had  dulled  her  relish  for  the  midday  meal ;  and  while  the 
other  members  of  the  family  repaired  to  the  shade  of  a  tree 
outside  the  grounds  to  enjoy  that  refection,  she  wandered 
about  the  "floral  hall,"  gazing  at  the  splendors  of  bloom 
thronging  there,  all  so  different  from  the  shy  grace,  the  485 
fragility  of  poise,  the  delicacy  of  texture  of  the  flowers  of 
her  ken, — the  rhododendron,  the  azalea,  the  Chilhowee 
lily, — yet  vastly  imposing  in  their  massed  exuberance  and 
scarlet  pride,  for  somehow  they  all  seemed  high  colored. 

She  went  more  than  once  to  note  with  a  kind  of  aghast  490 
dismay  those  trophies  of  feminine  industry,  the  quilts; 
some  were  of  the  "log  cabin"  and  "rising  sun"  variety, 
but  others  were  of  geometric  intricacy  of  form  and  were 
kaleidoscopic   of   color   with   an   amazing   labyrinth   of 
stitchings    and    embroideries — it    seemed    a    species   of  495 
effrontery  to  dub  one  gorgeous  poly-tinted  silken  banner  a 
quilt.     But  already  it  bore  a  blue  ribbon,  and  its  owner 
was  the  richer  by  the  prize  of  a  glass  bowl  and  the  envy  of 
a  score  of  deft-handed  competitors.     She  gazed  upon  the 
glittering  jellies  and  preserves,   upon  the  biscuits  and  500 
cheeses,  the  hair- work  and  wax  flowers,  and  paintings. 
These  latter  treated  for  the  most  part  of  castles  and  seas 
rather  than  of  the  surrounding  altitudes,  but  Cynthia  came 


ji6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

to  a  pause  of  blank  surprise  in  front  of  a  shadow  rather 

505  than  a  picture  which  represented  a  spring  of  still  brown 
water  in  a  mossy  cleft  of  a  rock  where  the  fronds  of  a  fern 
seemed  to  stir  in  the  foreground.  "I  hev  viewed  the  like 
o'  that  a  many  a  time,"  she  said  disparagingly.  To  her  it 
hardly  seemed  rare  enough  for  the  blue  ribbon  on  the  frame. 

510  In  the  next  room  she  dawdled  through  great  piles  of 
prize  fruits  and  vegetables — water-melons  unduly  vast  of 
bulk,  peaches  and  pears  and  pumpkins  of  proportions  never 
seen  before  out  of  a  nightmare,  stalks  of  Indian  com 
eighteen  feet  high  with  seven  ears  each, — all  apparently 

515  attesting  what  they  could  do  when  they  would,  and  that 
all  the  enterprise  of  Kildeer  County  was  not  exclusively 
of  the  feminine  persuasion. 

Finally  Cynthia  came  out  from  the  midst  of  them  and 
stood  leaning  against  one  of  the  large  pillars  which  sup- 

520  ported  the  roof  of  the  amphitheatre,  still  gazing  about  the 
half-deserted  building,  with  the  smouldering  fires  of  her 
slumberous  eyes  newly  kindled. 

To  other  eyes  and^ars  it  might  not  have  seemed  a  scene 
of  tumultuous  metropolitan  life,  with  the  murmuring  trees 

525  close  at  hand  dappling  the  floor  with  sycamore  shadows, 
the  fields  of  Indian  com  across  the  road,  the  exuberant  rush 
of  the  stream  down  the  slope  just  beyond,  the  few  hundred 
spectators  who  had  intently  watched  the  events  of  the  day; 
but  to  Cynthia  Hollis  the  excitement  of  the  crowd  and 

530  movement  and  noise  could  no  further  go. 

By  the  natural  force  of  gravitation  Jacob  Brice  presently 
was  walking  slowly  and  apparently  aimlessly  around  to 
where  she  was  standing.  He  said  nothing,  however,  when 
he  was  beside  her,  and  she  seemed  entirely  unconscious 

535  of  his  presence.  Her  yellow  dress  was  as  stiff  as  a  board , 
and  as  clean  as  her  strong,  young  arms  could  make  it;  at 
her  throat  were  the  shining  black  beads ;  on  her  head  she 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      31"/ 

wore  a  limp,  yellow  calico  sunbonnet,  which  hung  down 
over  her  eyes,  and  almost  obscured  her  countenance.  To 
this  article  she  perhaps  owed  the  singular  purity  and  540 
transparency  of  her  complexion,  as  much  as  to  the  moun- 
tain air,  and  the  chiefly  vegetable  fare  of  her  father's  table. 
She  wore  it  constantly,  although  it  operated  almost  as  a 
mask,  rendering  her  more  easily  recognizable  to  their  few 
neighbors  by  her  flaring  attire  than  by  her  features,  and  545 
obstructing  from  her  own  view  all  surrounding  scenery,  so 
that  she  could  hardly  see  the  cow,  which  so  much  of  her 
time  she  was  slowly  poking  after. 

She  spoke  unexpectedly,  and  without  any  other  symptom 
that  she  knew  of  the  young  hunter's  proximity.     "  I  never  550 
thought,  Jacob,  ez  how  ye  would  hev  come  down  hyar, 
all  the  way  from  the  mountings,  to  ride  agin  my  dad, 
an'  beat  him  out'n  that  thar  saddle  an'  bridle." 

"Ye  won't  hev  nothin'  ter  say  ter  me,"  retorted  Jacob 
sourly.  555 

A  long  silence  ensued. 

Then  he  resumed  didactically,  but  with  some  irrelevancy, 
"I  tole  ye  t'other  day  ez  how  ye  war  old  enough  ter  be 
a-studyin'  'bout  gittin'  married." 

"They  don't  think  nothin'  of  ye  ter  our  house,  Jacob,  m 
Dad 's  always  a-jowin'  at  ye."     Cynthia's  candor  certainly 
could  not  be  called  in  question. 

The  young  hunter  replied  with  some  natiiral  irritation: 
"He  hed  better  not  let  me  hear  him,  ef  he  wants  to  keep 
whole  bones  inside  his   skin.     He  better  not  tell  me,  ses 
nuther." 

"He  don't  keer  enough  'bout  ye,  Jacob,  ter  tell  ye. 
He  don't  think  nothin'  of  ye." 

Love  is  popularly  supposed  to  dull  the  mental  faculties. 
It  developed  in  Jacob  Brice  sudden  strategic  abilities.         570 

"Thar  is  them  ez  does,"  he  said  diplomatically. 


ji8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Cynthia  spoke  promptly  with  more  vivacity  than 
usual,  but  in  her  customary  drawl  and  apparently  utterly 
irrelevantly: — 

575     "I  never  in  all  my  days  see  no  sech  red-headed  gal  ez 
that  thar  Becky  Stiles.    She 's  the  red-headedest  gal  ever 
I  see."     And  Cynthia  once  more  was  silent. 
Jacob  resumed,  also  irrelevantly: — 
''When  I  goes  a-huntin'  up  yander  ter  Pine  Lick,  they 

58(1  is  mighty  perlite  ter  me.  They  ain't  never  done  nothin' 
agin  me,  ez  I  knows  on."  Then,  after  a  pause  of  deep 
cogitation,  he  added,  "Nor  hev  they  said  nothin'  agin  me, 
nuther." 

Cynthia  took  up  her  side  of  the  dialogue,  if  dialogue 

585 it  could  be  called,  with  wonted  irrelevancy:  "That  thar 
Becky  Stiles,  she's  got  the  freckledest  face — ez  freckled 
ez  any  turkey-aig"  (with  an  indescribable  drawl  on  the 
last  word). 

"They  ain't  done  nothin'  agin  me,"  reiterated  Jacob 

590  astutely,  "nor  said  nothin'  nuther — none  of  'em." 

Cynthia  looked  hard  across  the  amphitheatre  at  the 
distant  Great  Smoky  Mountains  shimmering  in  the  hazy 
September  sunlight — so  ineffably  beautiful,  so  delicately 
blue,  that  they  might  have  seemed  the  ideal  scenery  of  some 

595  impossibly  lovely  ideal  world.  Perhaps  she  was  wondering 
what  the  unconscious  Becky  Stiles,  far  away  in  those  dark 
woods  about  Pine  Lick,  had  secured  in  this  life  besides 
her  freckled  face.  Was  this  the  sylvan  deity  of  the  young 
hunter's  adoration? 

600  Cynthia  took  off  her  sunbonnet  to  use  it  for  a  fan.  Per- 
haps it  was  well  for  her  that  she  did  so  at  this  moment; 
it  had  so  entirely  concealed  her  head  that  her.  hair  might 
have  been  the  color  of  Becky  Stiles 's,  and  no  one  the  wiser. 
The  dark  brown  tendrils  curled  delicately  on  her  creamy 

606  forehead ;  the  excitement  of  the  day  had  flushed  her  pale 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      jig 

cheeks  with  an  unwonted  glow;  her  eyes  were  ahght  with 
their  newly  kindled  fires;  the  clinging  curtain  of  her  bon- 
net had  concealed  the  sloping  curves  of  her  shoulders — 
altogether  she  was  attractive  enough,  despite  the  flare  of 
her  yellow  dress,  and  especially  attractive  to  the  untutored  eio 
eyes  of  Jacob  Brice.  He  relented  suddenly,  and  lost  all 
the  advantages  of  his  tact  and  diplomacy. 

"I  likes  ye  better  nor  I  does  Becky  Stiles,"  he  said 
moderately.  Then  with  more  fervor,  *  *  I  likes  ye  better  nor 
any  gal  I  ever  see."  615 

The  usual  long  pause  ensued. 

"Ye  hev  got  a  mighty  cur'ous  way  o'  showin'  it," 
Cynthia  replied.. 

"I  dunno  what  ye 're  talkin'  'bout,  Cynthy." 

"Ye  hev  got  a  mighty  cur'ous  way  o'  showin'  it,"  she  620 
reiterated,   with  renewed  animation — "a-comin'  all  the 
way  down  hyar  from  the  mountings  ter  beat  my  dad 
out'n  that  thar  saddle  an'  bridle,  what  he's  done  sot  his 
heart  onto.     Mighty  cur'ous  way." 

"Look  hyar,  Cynthy."     The  young  hunter  broke  off  625 
suddenly,  and  did  not  speak  again  for  several  minutes. 
A  great  perplexity  was  surging  this  way  and  that  in  his 
slow  brains — a  great  struggle  was  waging  in  his  heart.    He 
was  to  choose  between  love  and  ambition — nay,  avarice 
too  was  ranged  beside  his  aspiration.     He  felt  himself  an  630 
assured  victor  in  the  competition,  and  he  had  seen  that 
saddle  and  bridle.     They  were  on  exhibition  to-day,  and 
to  him  their  material  and  workmanship  seemed  beyond 
expression  wonderful,  and  elegant,  and  substantial.     He 
could  never  hope  otherwise  to  own  such  accoutrements,  m 
His  eyes  would  never  again  even  rest  upon  such  resplendent 
objects,  unless  indeed  in  Hollis's  possession.     Any  one  who 
has  ever  loved  a  horse  can  appreciate  a  horseman's  dear 
desire  that  beauty  should   go  beautifully  caparisoned. 


J20  Southern  Literary  Readings 

640  And  then,  there  was  his  pride  in  his  own  riding,  and  his 
anxiety  to  have  his  preeminence  in  that  accomplishment 
acknowledged  and  recognized  by  his  friends,  and,  dearer 
triumph  still,  by  his  enemies.  A  terrible  pang  before  he 
spoke  again. 

645  "Look  hyar,  Cynthy,"  he  said  at  last;  "ef  ye  will  marry 
me,  I  won't  go  back  in  yander  no  more.  I'll  leave  the 
premi-wm  ter  them  ez  kin  git  it." 

"Ye  're  fooHsh,  Jacob,"  she  replied,  still  fanning  with  the 
yellow  calico  sunbonnet.     "Ain't  I  done  tole  ye,  ez  how 

660  they  don't  think  nothin'  of  ye  ter  our  house  ?  I  don't  want 
all  of  'em  a-jowin'  at  me,  too." 

"Ye  talk  like  ye  ain't  got  good  sense,  Cynthy,"  said 
Jacob  irritably.  "What's  ter  hender  me  from  hitchin' 
up  my  mare  ter  my  uncle's  wagon  an'  ye  an'  me  a-drivin' 

655  up  hyar  to  the  Cross-Roads,  fifteen  mile,  and  git  Pa'son 
Jones  ter  marry  us  ?  We  '11  get  the  license  down  hyar  ter 
the  Court  House  afore  we  start.  An'  while  they'll  all 
be  a-foolin'  away  thar  time  a-ridin'  round  that  thar  ring, 
ye  an'  me  will  be  a-gittin'  married."     Ten  minutes  ago 

660  Jacob  Brice  did  not  think  riding  around  that  ring  was  such 
a  reprehensible  waste  of  time.  "What's  ter  hender?  It 
don't  make  no  differ  how  they  jow  then." 

"I  done  tole  ye,  Jacob,"  said  the  sedate  Cynthia,  still 
fanning  with  the  sunbonnet. 

665     With  a  sudden  return  of  his  inspiration,  Jacob  retorted, 
affecting  an  air  of  stolid  indifference:     "  Jes'  ez  ye  choose. 
I  won't  hev  ter  ax  Becky  Stiles  twict." 
And  he  turned  to  go. 
"I  never  said  no,  Jacob,"  said  Cynthia  precipitately. 

670  "I  never  said  ez  how  I  wouldn't  hev  ye." 

"Waal,  then,  jes'  come  along  with  me  right  now  while 
.  I  hitch  up  the  mare.  I  ain't  a-goin'  ter  leave  yer  a-standin' 
hyar.    Ye 're  too  skittish.    Time  I  come  back  ye'd  hev 


I 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      J2i 

done  run  away  I  dunno  whar."  A  moment's  pause  and 
he  added:  "Is  ye  a-goin'  ter  stand  thar  all  day,  Cynthy  675 
Mollis,  a-lookin'  up  an'  around,  and  a-turnin'  yer  neck  fust 
this  way  and  then  t'other,  an'  a-lookin'  fur  all  the  worl' 
like  a  wild  turkey  in  a  trap,  or  one  o'  them  thar  skeery 
young  deer,  or  sech  senseless  critters  ?    What  ails  the  gal  ? " 

"Thar '11  be  nobody  ter  help   along  the  work  ter  oureso 
house,"  said  Cynthia,  the  weight  of  the  home  difficulties 
bearing  heavily  on  her  conscience. 

"What 's  ter  hender  ye  from  a-goin'  down  thar  an'  lendin' 
a  hand  every  wunst  in  a  while?  But  ef  ye 're  a-goin'  ter 
stand  thar  like  ye  hedn't  no  more  action  than  a — a-dunno-  ess 
what, — jes'  like  yer  dad,  I  ain't.  I  '11  jes'  leave  ye  a-growed 
ter  that  thar  post,  an'  I  '11  jes'  light  out  stiddier,  an'  afore 
the  cows  git  ter  Pine  Lick,  I  '11  be  thar  too.  Jes'  ez  ye 
choose.  Come  along  ef  ye  wants  ter  come.  I  ain't  a-goin' 
ter  ax  ye  no  more."  ego 

"I'm  a-comin',"  said  Cynthia. 

There  was  great  though  illogical  rejoicing  on  the  part 
of  the  country  faction  when  the  crowds  were  again  seated, 
tier  above  tier,  in  the  amphitheatre,  and  the  riders  were 
once  more  summoned  into  the  arena,  to  discover  from  Jacob  eos 
Brice's  unaccounted-for  absence  that  he  had  withdrawn 
and  left  the  nominee  to  his  chances. 

In  the  ensuing  competition  it  became  very  evident  to 
the  not  altogether  impartially  disposed  judges  that  they 
could  not,  without  incurring  the  suspicions  alike  of  friend  700 
and  foe,  award  the  premium  to  their  fellow-townsman. 
Straight  as  a  shingle  though  he  might  be,  more  prepossess- 
ing to  the  eye,  the  ex-cavalryman  of  fifty  battles  was  far 
better  trained  in  all  the  arts  of  horsemanship. 

A  wild  shout  of  joy  burst  from  the  rural  party  when  705 
the  most  portly  and  rubicund  of  the  portly  and  red-faced 
21 


^22  Southern  Literary  Readings 

judges  advanced  into  the  ring  and  decorated  Jenkins  HoUis 
with  the  blue  ribbon.     A  frantic  antistrophe  rent  the  air. 
"Take  it  off !"  vociferated  the  bitter  town  faction — "take 
710 it  off!" 

A  diversion  was  produced  by  the  refusal  of  the  Colbury 
champion  to  receive  the  empty  honor  of  the  red  ribbon  and 
the  certificate.  Thus  did  he  except  to  the  ruling  of  the 
judges.  In  high  dudgeon  he  faced  about  and  left  the 
716  arena,  followed  shortly  by  the  decorated  Jenks,  bearing 
the  precious  saddle  and  bridle,  and  going  with  a  wooden 
face  to  receive  the  congratulations  of  his  friends. 

The  entries  for  the  slow  mule  race  had  been  withdrawn  at 
the  last  moment ;  and  the  spectators,  balked  of  that  unique 
720  sport,  and  the  fair  being  virtually  over,  were  rising  from 
their  seats  and  making  their  noisy  preparations  for  depar- 
ture. Before  Jenks  had  cleared  the  fair-building,  being 
somewhat  impeded  by  the  moving  mass  of  humanity,  he 
encountered  one  of  his  neighbors,  a  listless  mountaineer, 
725  who  spoke  on  this  wise: — 

"Does  ye  know  tliat  thar  gal   o'  youm — that  thar 
Cynthy?" 

Mr.  Hollis  nodded  his  expressionless  head — presumably 
he  did  know  Cynthia. 
730     "Waal,"  continued  his  leisurely  interlocutor,  still  inter- 
rogative, "does  ye  know  Jacob  Brice?" 

Ill-starred  association  of  ideas!    There  was  a  look  of 
apprehension  on  Jenkins  Hollis's  wooden  face. 

"They  hev  done  got  a  license  down  hyar  ter  the  Court 
735  House  an'  gone  a-kitin'  out  on  the  Old  B'ar  road." 
This  was  explicit. 

"Whar's  my  horse?"  exclaimed  Jenks,  appropriating 

"John    Barleycorn"    in    his    haste.     Great    as    was   his 

hurry,  it  was  not  too  imperative  to  prevent  him  from  strap- 

740  ping  upon  the  horse  the  premium  saddle,  and  inserting  in 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      J23 

his  mouth  the  new  bit  and  bridle.  And  in  less  than  ten 
minutes  a  goodly  number  of  recruits  from  the  crowd  assem- 
bled in  Colbury  were  also  *'a-kitin"'  out  on  the  road  to 
Old  Bear,  delighted  with  a  new  excitement,  and  bent  on 
running  down  the  eloping  couple  with  no  more  appre-745 
ciation  of  the  sentimental  phase  of  the  question  and  the 
tender  illusions  of  love's  young  dream  than  if  Jacob  and 
Cynthia  were  two  mountain  foxes. 

Down  the  red-clay  slopes  of  the  outskirts  of  the  town 
"John  Barleycorn"  thunders  with  a  train  of  horsemen  at 750 
his  heels.  Splash  into  the  clear  fair  stream  whose  trans- 
lucent depths  tell  of  its  birthplace  among  the  mountain 
springs — how  the  silver  spray  showers  about  as  the  pur- 
suers surge  through  the  ford  leaving  behind  them  a  foamy 
wake ! — and  now  they  are  pressing  hard  up  the  steep  ascent  755 
of  the  opposite  bank,  and  galloping  furiously  along  a  level 
stretch  of  road,  with  the  fences  and  trees  whirHng  by,  and 
the  September  landscape  flying  on  the  wings  of  the  wind. 
The  chase  leads  past  fields  of  tasseled  Indian  corn,  with 
yellowing  thickly  swathed  ears,  leaning  heavily  from  the  76o 
stalk;  past  wheat-lands,  the  crops  harvested  and  the 
crab-grass  having  its  day  at  last;  past  "wood-lots"  and 
their  black  shadows,  and  out  again  into  the  September 
sunshine;  past  rickety  little  homes,  not  unlike  HoUis's 
own,  with  tow-headed  children,  exactly  like  his,  standing  765. 
with  wide  eyes,  looking  at  the  rush  and  hurry  of  the  pur- 
suit— sometimes  in  the  ill-kept  yards  a  wood-fire  is  burning 
under  the  boiling  sorghum  kettle,  or  beneath  the  branches 
of  the  orchard  near  at  hand  a  cider-mill  is  crushing  the 
juice  out  of  the  red  and  yellow,  ripe  and  luscious  apples.  770 
Homeward-bound  prize  cattle  are  overtaken — a  Durhani 
bull,  reluctantly  permitting  himself  to  be  led  into  a  fence 
comer  that  the  hunt  may  sweep  by  unobstructed,  and 
turning  his  proud  blue-ribboned  head  angrily  toward  the 


^24  Southern  Literary  Readings 

776  riders  as  if  indignant  that  anything  except  him  should 
absorb  attention;  a  gallant  horse,  with  another  floating 
blue  streamer,  bearing  himself  as  becometh  a  king's  son; 
the  chase  comes  near  to  crushing  sundry  grunting  porkers 
impervious  to  pride  and  glory  in  any  worldly  distinctions 

780  of  cerulean  decorations,  and  at  last  is  fain  to  draw  up  and 
wait  until  a  flock  of  silly  overdressed  sheep,  running  in 
frantic  fear  every  way  but  the  right  way,  can  be  gathered 
together  and  guided  to  a  place  of  safety. 

And  once  more,  forward ;  past  white  frame  houses  with 

785  porches,  and  vine-grown  verandas,  and  well-tended  gardens, 
and  groves  of  oak  and  beech  and  hickory  trees — "John 
Barleycorn"  makes  an  ineffectual  but  gallant  struggle  to 
get  in  at  the  large  white  gate  of  one  of  these  comfortable 
places.  Squire  Goodlet's  home,  but  he  is  urged  back  into 

790  the  road,  and  again  the  pursuit  sweeps  on.  Those  blue 
mountains,  the  long  parallel  ranges  of  Old  Bear  and  his 
brothers,  seem  no  more  a  misty,  uncertain  mirage  against 
the  delicious  indefinable  tints  of  the  horizon.  Sharply 
outlined   they   are   now,   with    dark,   irregular   shadows 

795  upon  their  precipitous  slopes  which  tell  of  wild  ravines, 
and  rock-lined  gorges,  and  swirling  mountain  torrents,  and 
great,  beetling,  gray  crags.  A  breath  of  balsams  comes 
on  the  freshening  wind — the  lungs  expand  to  meet  it. 
There  is  a  new  aspect  in  the  scene ;  a  revivifying  current 

800  thrills  through  the  blood;  a  sudden  ideal  beauty  descends 
on  prosaic  creation. 

"  Tears  like  I  can't  git  my  breath  good  in  them  flat 
countries,"  says  Jenkins  HoUis  to  himself,  as  "John 
Barleycorn"  improves  his  speed  under  the  exhilarating 

805 influence  of  the  wind.  "I  'm  nigh  on  to  siffiicated  every 
time  I  goes  down  yander  ter  Colbrry"  (with  a  jerk  of  his 
wooden  head  in  the  direction  of  the  village). 

Long  stretches  of  woods  are  on  either  side  of  the  road 


Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair      ^25 

now,  with  no  sign  of  the  changing  season  in  the  foliage 
save  the  slender,  pointed,  scarlet  leaves  and  creamy  plumes  sio 
of  the  sourwood,  gleaming  here  and  there;  and  presently 
another  panorama  of  open  country  unrolls  to  the  view. 
Two  or  three  frame  houses  appear  with  gardens  and 
orchards,  a  number  of  humble  log  cabins,  and  a  dingy 
little  store,  and  the  Cross-Roads  are  reached.  And  here  815 
the  conclusive  intelligence  meets  the  party  that  Jacob 
and  Cynthia  were  married  by  Parson  Jones  an  hour  ago, 
and  were  still  **a-kitin',"  at  last  accounts,  out  on  the 
road  to  Old  Bear. 

The  pursuit  stayed  its  ardor.     On  the  auspicious  day  820 
when  Jenkins  Hollis  took  the  blue  ribbon  at  the  County 
Fair  and  won  the  saddle  and  bridle  he  lost  his  daughter. 
I  They  saw  Cynthia  no  more  until  late  in  the  autumn 
when  she  came,  without  a  word  of  self-justification  or 
apology  for  her  conduct,  to  lend  her  mother  a  helping  325 
hand  in  spinning  and  weaving  her  little  brothers'  and 
sisters'  clothes.     And  gradually  the  eclat  attendant  upon 
her  nuptials  was  forgotten,  except  that  Mrs.  Hollis  now 
and  then  remarks  that  she  *'dunno  how  we  could  hev 
bore  up  agin  Cynthy's  a-runnin'  away  like  she  done,  ef  830 
it  hedn't  a-been  fur  that  thar  saddle  an'  bridle  an'  takin' 
the  blue  ribbon  at  the  County  Fair." 


FRANCIS  HOPKINSON  SMITH 

The  story  of  a  self-made  man  is  always  interesting. 
Francis  Hopkinson  Smith  belongs  to  the  class  of  self- 
made  Americans,  and  inasmuch  as  he  has  succeeded  in 
so  many  different  kinds  of  work,  his  story  will  have  a 
broader  appeal  than  that  of  many  a  self-made  man  who 
has  devoted  his  energies  to  a  single  line  of  activity.  Bom 
in  Baltimore,  October  23,  1838,  he  was  early  thrown  upon 
his  own  resources.  His  father  planned  that  he  should 
have  a  college  education,  but  misfortune  and  financial 
reverses  in  the  family  forced  the  boy  into  the  struggle  for 
a  livelihood  when  he  had  barely  reached  his  teens.  In  his 
sixteenth  year  he  turned  toward  New  York  City  to  seek 
his  fortune. 

It  is  said  that  he  had  but  thirty-eight  cents  when  he 
arrived  in  the  metropolis  and  that  for  weeks  he  walked 
the  streets  of  the  great  city  searching  for  employment, 
with  no  money  in  his  pockets  but  with  large  confidence 
in  his  heart  and  a  merry  smile  on  his  face.  What  he 
actually  did  during  this  period  is  not  divulged,  but  it  is 
known  that  he  tried  various  kinds  of  work,  now  as  clerk 
in  some  store  and  now  as  a  day  laborer  on  pubHc  works. 
He  finally  secured  employment  in  a  manufacturing  plant, 
and  here  he  began  his  studies  in  iron  and  structural 
materials  which  led  him  eventually  into  what  he  calls 
his  regular  profession — namely,  constructive  mechanical 
engineering.  He  supplemented  his  practical  experience 
in  the  shops  with  theoretical  studies  during  his  evenings 
and  at  other  spare  times,  eventually  winning  for  himself 
a  distinguished  place  among  the  constructive  engineers  of 
the  country.  He  has  taken  especial  interest  in  building 
structures  in  water.  Among  his  successful  achievements 
are  the  sea  wall  around  Governor's  Island  in  New  York 
Harbor,  the  Race  Rock  Lighthouse  off  New  London, 
Connecticut,  and  the  foundation  of  the  famous  Bartholdi 
Statue  of  Liberty. 

[326] 


From  a  photograph  by  Paul  Thompson,  N.Y. 
FRANCIS  HOPKINSON  SMITH 


Francis  Hopkinson  Smith  527 

Another  field  of  endeavor,  painting,  has  always  been 
exceedingly  attractive  to  Mr.  Smith,  and  many  of  his 
admirers  think  he  has  done  his  best  work  as  a  painter 
in  water  colors.  He  has  traveled  widely,  viewed  life 
broadly,  and  studied  nature  closely;  and  he  has  suc- 
ceeded in  transferring  to  his  canvases  some  of  the  most 
charming  moods  of  the  outdoor  world.  His  sketches  of 
Venetian,  Dutch,  and  Turkish  scenes,  and  his  pictures 
of  other  European  and  Asiatic  coimtries,  as  well  as  of 
America,  have  won  wide  applause. 

Literatture  came  late  among  Mr.  Smith's  accomplish- 
ments, but  his  genius  is  none  the  less  surely  expressed 
in  this  form  of  art.  He  was  forty-seven  before  the  pub- 
lication of  his  first  book.  Old  Lines  in  New  Black  and 
White  (1885) .  Since  that  date  he  has  published  more  than 
twenty  other  works,  comprising  travel  sketches,  novels, 
short  stories,  essays,  and  criticism  on  art,  but  it  is  through 
his  stories  that  he  has  won  his  secure  place  in  American 
letters.  No  m.ore  delightful  characters  than  some  of 
Mr.  Smith's  have  appeared  in  American  fiction  within 
the  past  two  decades.  One  of  the  finest  and  subtlest 
pieces  of  himiorous  characterization  yet  produced  in 
the  South  is  that  of  Colonel  Carter  of  Cartersville  in  the 
novel  of  that  name — Mr.  Smith's  first,  and  to  many 
readers  his  best,  piece  of  fiction.  The  whole  book  has  a 
humorous  cast.  The  frankness,  the  truth,  the  reality  of 
the  portrayal  are  remarkable;  and  the  sly  twinkle  in  the 
story-teller's  eye  is  irresistible  as  he  lovingly  sets  forth 
all  the  foibles,  all  the  endearing  charms,  of  the  old-time 
Southern  gentleman.  Colonel  Carter's  old  body  servant, 
Chad,  is  an  excellent  delineation  of  negro  character.  The 
selection  given  here  illustrates  Mr.  Smith's  skillful  use 
of  dialect  and  his  keen  sense  of  humor.  Among  his  other 
stories  that  have  attained  wide  public  favor  are  The  For- 
tunes of  Oliver  Horn  and  Caleb  Westy  Master  Diver. 

In  one  other  field  Mr.  Smith  has  won  renown — namely, 
on  the  lecture  platform.  He  is  greeted  by  large  audi- 
ences wherever  he  goes,  and  his  histrionic  powers  seem  to 
indicate  that  had  he  turned  to  the  stage  he  would  have 
succeeded  as  well  before  the  foothghts  as  he  has  in  engi- 
neering, in  painting,  and  in  literature. 


THE   ONE-LEGGED   GOOSE 

It  was  some  time  before  I  could  quiet  the  old  man's 
anxieties  and  coax  him  back  into  his  usual  good  humor, 
and  then  only  when  I  began  to  ask  him  of  the  old  planta- 
tion days, 
s  Then  he  fell  to  talking  about  the  colonel's  father, 
General  John  Carter,  and  the  high  days  at  Carter  Hall 
when  Miss  Nancy  was  a  young  lady  and  the  colonel  a  boy 
home  from  the  university. 

* '  Dem  was  high  times.  We  ain't  neber  seed  no  time  like 
10  dat  since  de  war.  Git  up  in  de  mawnin'  an'  look  out  ober 
de  lawn,  an'  yer  come  fo'teen  or  fifteen  couples  ob  de  fust- 
est  quality  folks,  all  on  horseback  ridin'  in  de  gate.  Den 
such  a  scufflin'  round!  Old  marsa  an'  missis  out  on  de 
po'ch,  an'  de  little  pickaninnies  runnin'  from  de  quarters, 
15  an'  all  hands  helpin'  'em  off  de  horses,  an'  dey  all  smokin' 
hot  wid  de  gallop  up  de  lane. 

*'An'  den  sich  a  breakfast  an'  sich  dancin'  an'  co'tin'; 

ladies  all  out  on  de  lawn  in  der  white  dresses,  an'  de 

gemmen  in  fairtop  boots,  an'  Mammy  Jane  runnin'  round 

20  same  as  a  chicken  wid  its  head  off, — an'  der  heads  was  off 

befo'  dey  knowed  it,  an'  dey  a-br'ilin'  on  de  gridiron. 

"  Dat  would  go  on  a  week  or  mo',  an'  den  up  dey  '11  all 

git  an'  away  dey  'd  go  to  de  nex'  plantation,  an'  take  Miss 

Nancy  along  wid  'em  on  her  little  sorrel  mare,  an'  I  on 

25  Marsa  John's  black  horse,  to  take  care  bofe  of  'em.     Dem 

was  times ! 

"My  old  marsa," — and  his  eyes  glistened, — "my  old 
Marsa  John  was  a  gemman,  sah,  like  dey  don't  see  now- 
adays.    Tall,  sah,  an'  straight  as  a  cornstalk;  hair  white 

[328] 


The  One-legged  Goose  J2g 

an'  silky  as  de  tassel;  an'  a  voice  like  de  birds  was  singin',  30 
it  was  dat  sweet. 

"  'Chad,'  he  use'  ter  say, — you  know  I  was  young  den, 
an'  I  was  his  body  servant, — 'Chad,  come  yer  till  I  bre'k 
yo'  head' ;  an'  den  when  I  come  he  'd  laugh  fit  to  kill  hisself . 
Dat 's  when  you  do  right.  But  when  you  was  a  low-down  35 
nigger  an'  got  de  debbil  in  yer,  an'  ole  marsa  hear  it  an' 
send  de  oberseer  to  de  quarters  for  you  to  come  to  de  little 
room  in  de  big  house  whar  de  walls  was  all  books  an'  whar 
his  desk  was,  'twa'n't  no  birds  about  his  voice  den, — mo' 
like  de  thunder."  40 

"Did  he  whip  his  negroes?" 

"No,  sah;  don't  reckelmember  a  single  lick  laid  on 
airy  nigger  dat  de  marsa  knowed  of;  but  when  dey  got  so 
bad — an'  some  niggers  is  dat  way — den  dey  was  sold  to 
de  swamp  lan's.     He  would  n't  hab  'em  round  'ruptin'  his  45 
niggers,  he  use'  ter  say. 

"Hab  coffee,  sah?  Won't  take  I  a  minute  to  bile  it. 
Colonel  ain't  been  drinkin'  none  lately,  an'  so  I  don't 
make  none." 

I  nodded  my  head,  and  Chad  closed  the  door  softly,  so 
taking  with  him  a  small  cup  and  saucer,  and  returning  in 
a  few  minutes  followed  by  that  most  delicious  of  all  aromas, 
the  savory  steam  of  boiling  coffee. 

"My  Marsa  John,"  he  continued,  filling  the  cup  with 
the  smoking  beverage,  "never  drank  nufhn'  but  tea,  eben  55 
at  de  big  dinners  when  all  de  gemmen  had  coffee  in  de 
little  cups — dat's  one  ob  'em  you's  drinkin'  out  ob  now; 
dey  ain't  mo'  dan  fo'  on  'em  left.  Old  marsa  would  have 
his  pot  ob  tea:  Henny  use'  ter  make  it  for  him;  makes  it 
now  for  Miss  Nancy.  eo 

"Henny  was  a  young  gal  den,  long  'fo'  we  was  married. 
Henny  b 'longed  to  Colonel  Lloyd  Barbour,  on  de  next 
plantation  to  ourn, 


jjo  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"Mo'  coffee,  Major?"    I  handed  Chad  the  empty  cup. 
65  He  refilled  it,  and  went   straight  on  without   drawing 
breath. 

"Wust  scrape  I  eber  got  into  wid  old  Marsa  John  was 

ober  Henny.     I  tell  ye  she  was  a  harricane  in  dem  days. 

She  come  into  de  kitchen  one  time  where  I  was  helpin' 

70  git  de  dinner  ready  an'  de  cook  had  gone  to  de  spring 

house,  an'  she  says: — 

"'Chad,  what  ye  cookin'  dat  smells  so  nice?' 
"'Dat's  a  goose,'  I   says,  'cookin'  for  Marsa   John's 
dinner.    We  got  quality,'  say^s  I,  pointin'  to  de  dinin'- 
75  room  do'. 

"'Quality!'  she  says.     'Spec'  I  know  what  de  quality 
is.     Dat 's  for  you  an'  de  cook.' 

"Wid  dat  she  grabs  a  caarvin'  knife  from  de  table,  opens 
de  do'  ob  de  big  oven,  cuts  off  a  leg  ob  de  goose,  an'  dis'pears 
80  round  de  kitchen  corner  wid  de  leg  in  her  mouf . 

"'Fo'  I  knowed  whar  I  was  Marsa  John  come  to  de 

kitchen  do'   an'   says,  'Gittin'   late,   Chad;  bring  in  de 

dinner.'    You  see,  Major,  dey  ain't  no  up  an'  down  stairs 

in  de  big  house,  like  it  is  yer ;  kitchen  an'  dinin'-room  all 

85  on  de  same  fio'. 

"Well,  sah,  I  was  scared  to  def,  but  I  tuk  dat  goose  an' 
laid  him  wid  de  cut  side  down  on  de  bottom  of  de  pan 
'fo'  de  cook  got  back,  put  some  dressin'  an'  stuffin'  ober 
him,  an'  shet  de  stove  do'.     Den  I  tuk  de  sweet  potatoes 
90  an'  de  hominy  an'  put  'em  on  de  table,  an'  den  I  went  back 
in  de  kitchen  to  git  de  baked  ham.     I  put  on  de  ham  an' 
some  mo'  dishes,  an'  marsa  says,  lookin'  up: — 
"  'I  fought  dere  was  a  roast  goose,  Chad? ' 
"'I  ain't  yerd  nothin'  'bout  no  goose,'  I  says.     *I*11  ask 
95  de  cook.' 

"Next  minute  I  yerd  old  marsa  a-hollerin': — 
"  'Mammy  Jane,  ain't  we  got  a  goose? ' 


The  One-legged  Goose  jji 

'"Lord-a-massy!  yes,  marsa.  Chad,  you  wu'thless  nig- 
ger, ain't  you  tuk  dat  goose  out  yit?' 

*"Is  we  got  a  goose?'  said  I.  loo 

"  'Is  we  got  a  goose  f    Didn't  you  help  pick  it ? ' 

'*I  see  whar  my  hair  was  short,  an'  I  snatched  up 
a  hot  dish  from  de  hearth,  opened  de  oven  do',  an' 
slide  de  goose  in  jes  as  he  was,  an'  lay  him  down  befo' 
Marsa  John.  105 

***Now  see  what  de  ladies '11  have  for  dinner,'  says 
old  marsa,  pickin'  up  his  caarvin'  knife. 

"'What '11  you  take  for  dinner,  miss?'  says  I.  'Baked 
ham?' 

"'No,'  she  says,  lookin'  up  to  whar  Marsa  John  sat;  no 
*I  think  I  '11  take  a  leg  ob  dat  goose' — jes  so. 

"Well,  marsa  cut  off  de  leg  an'  put  a  little  stuffin'  an' 
gravy  on  wid  a  spoon,  an'  says  to  me,  'Chad,  see  what  dat 
gemman'll  have.' 

"'What '11  you  take  for  dinner,  sah?'  says  I.     'Nicens 
breast  o'  goose,  or  slice  o'  ham?' 

" ' No;  I  think  I  '11  take  a  leg  of  dat  goose,'  he  says. 

"I  didn't  say  nuffin',  but  I  knowed  bery  well  he  wa'n't 
a-gwine  to  git  it. 

"But,  Major,  you  oughter  seen  ole  marsa  lookin'  for  120 
der  udder  leg  ob  dat  goose!  He  rolled  him  ober  on  de 
dish,  dis  way  an'  dat  way,  an'  den  he  jabbed  dat  ole  bone- 
handled  caarvin'  fork  in  him  an'  hel'  him  up  ober  de  dish 
an'  looked  under  him  an'  on  top  ob  him,  an'  den  he  says, 
kinder  sad  like: —  125 

'    "'Chad,  whar  is  de  udder  leg  ob  dat  goose?' 

'"It  didn't  hab  none,'  says  I. 

" '  You  mean  ter  say,  Chad,  dat  de  gooses  on  my  planta- 
tion on'y  got  one  leg? ' 

"'Some  ob  em  has  an'  some  ob  'em  ain't.     You  see,  130 
marsa,  we  got  two  kinds  in  de  pond,  an'  we  was  a  little 


JJ2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

boddered  to-day,  so  Mammy  Jane  cooked  dis  one  'cause  I 
cotched  it  fust.' 

"'Well,'  said  he,  lookin'  like  he  look  when  he  send  for 

135  you  in  de  little  room,  '  I  '11  settle  wid  ye  after  dinner.* 

''Well,  dar  I  was  shiverin'  an'  shakin'  in  my  shoes,  an* 

droppin'  gravy  an'  spillin'  de  wine  on  de  table-cloth,  I  was 

dat  shuck  up ;  an'  when  de  dinner  was  ober  he  calls  all  de 

ladies  an'  gemmen,  an'  says, '  Now  come  down  to  de  duck 

140  pond.     I  'm  gwineter  show  dis  nigger  dat  all  de  gooses  on 

my  plantation  got  mo'  den  one  leg.' 

"I  followed  'long,  trapesin'  after  de  whole  kit  an'  b'ilin', 
an'  when  we  got  to  de  pond" — here  Chad  nearly  went 
into  a  convulsion  with  suppressed  laughter — "dar  was 
145  de  gooses  sittin'  on  a  log  in  de  middle  of  dat  ole  green 
goose-pond  wid  one  leg  stuck  down — so  —  an'  de  udder 
tucked  under  de  wing." 

Chad  was  now  on  one  leg,  balancing  himself  by  my 
chair,  the  tears  running  down  his  cheeks. 
150     "'Dar,  marsa,'  says  I,   'don't  ye  see?     Look  at  dat 
ole  gray  goose!     Dat's  de  berry  match  ob  de  one  we 
had  to-day.' 

"Den  de  ladies  all  hollered  an'  de  gemmen  laughed  so 
loud  dey  yerd  'em  at  de  big  house. 
155     " '  Stop,  you  black  scoun'rel! '  Marsa  John  says,  his  face 
gittin'  white  an'  he  a-jerkin'  his  handkerchief   from  his 
pocket.     '  Shoo ! ' 

"Major,  I  hope  to  have  my  brains  kicked  out  oy  a  lame 
grasshopper  if  ebery  one  ob  dem  gooses  didn't  put  down 
160  de  udder  leg ! 

'"Now,  you  lyin'  nigger,'  he  says,  raisin'  his  cane  ober 
my  head,  '  I  '11  show  you' — 

'"Stop,  Marsa  John!'  I  hollered;  "t ain't  fair,  't ain't 
fair.' 
165      " '  Why  ain't  it  fair  ? '  says  he. 


The  One-legged  Goose  jjj 

"'  'Cause,'  says  I,  'yo^  didn't  say  "Shoo!"  to  de  goose 
what  was  on  de  table.'" 

Chad  laughed  until  he  choked. 

*'And  did  he  thrash  you?" 

"  Marsa  John?     No,  sah.     He  laughed  loud  as  anybody;  170 
an'  den  dat  night  he  says  to  me  as  I  was  puttin'  some  wood 
on  de  fire: — 

"'Chad,  where  did  dat  leg  go?'     An'  so  I  ups  an'  tells 
him  all  about  Henny,  an'  how  I  was  lyin'  'cause  I  was 
'feared  de  gal  would  git  hurt,  an'  how  she  was  on'y  a-fool-  175 
in',  thinkin'  it  was  my  goose;  an'  den  de  ole  marsa  look 
in  de  fire  for  a  long  time,  an'  den  he  says :  — 

"'Dat's  Colonel  Barbour's  Henny,  ain't  it,  Chad?' 

**  'Yes,  marsa,'  says  I. 

"Well  de  next  mawnin'  he  had  his  black  horse  saddled,  iso 
an'  I  held  the  stirrup  for  him  to  git  on,  an'  he  rode  ober 
to  de  Barbotir  plantation,  an'  didn't  come  back  till  plumb 
black  night.  When  he  come  up  I  held  de  lantern  so  I 
could  see  his  face,  for  I  wa'n't  easy  in  my  mine  all  day. 
But  it  was  all  bright  an'  shinin'  same  as  a'  angel's.  i85 

"'Chad,'  he  says,  handin'  me  de  reins,  'I  bought  yo' 
Henny  dis  arternoon  from  Colonel  Barbour,  an'  she's 
comin'  ober  to-morrow,  an'  you  can  bofe  git  married  next 
Sunday.'" 


STARK  YOUNG 

Stark  Young  of  Mississippi  has  published  two  volumes 
of  verse,  The  Blind  Man  at  the  Window  and  Gueneverey 
a  Poetic  Drama.  His  work  shows  a  remarkable  tech- 
nique for  one  so  young,  and  displays  evidences,  too,  of 
a  poetic  genius  far  above  that  of  the  ordinary  verse 
maker.  Mr.  Young  was  bom  at  Como,  Mississippi, 
October  ii,  1881.  He  was  graduated  from  the  Uni- 
versity of  Mississippi  in  190 1.  In  1902,  after  a  year's 
study  in  the  graduate  school  of  Columbia  University, 
he  was  granted  the  degree  of  Master  of  Arts.  He  then 
went  abroad  for  study  and  inspiration,  sojourning  espe- 
cially in  Italy.  He  returned  to  his  native  state  in  1904, 
to  become  an  instructor  of  English  in  the  University  of 
Mississippi.  In  1907  he  was  invited  to  become  a  mem- 
ber of  the  teaching  staff  in  English  in  the  University 
of  Texas,  and  in  19 10  was  made  adjunct  professor  and 
put  in  charge  of  the  newly  created  school  of  General 
Literature.  • 

Though  Mr.  Young's  published  work  seems  meager  in 
bulk,  it  shows  a  wide  range  in  both  subject  matter  and 
verse  forms.  Among  his  productions  are  nature  lyrics, 
love  songs,  literary  ballads,  reflective  and  personal  poems, 
and  themes  from  classical  myths  and  medieval  romance. 
Recently  he  has  turned  his  attention  to  dramatic 
composition,  and  has  just  (19 12)  published  a  volume  of 
one-act  plays,  Addio,  Madretta,  and  Other  Plays.  His 
greatest  strength  seems  to  lie  in  his  nature  lyrics,  many 
of  which  are  very  beautiful,  and  in  his  classical  and 
medieval  themes.  Gordia,  which  is  here  reprinted  with 
Mr.  Young's  own  glosses,  is  a  good  example  of  his  artistic 
treatment  of  medieval  theme. 

Perhaps  Mr.  Young  has  not  yet  reached  his  full  matu- 
rity in  creative  work,  but  he  has  already  done  enough 
to  win  recognition  as  one  of  the  most  promising  of  our 
younger  Southern  poets. 

[334] 


GORDIA 

The  nightbird  crieth  a  long  wail, 
'Tis  a  ghostly  hour,  the  stars  are  pale, 
The  homed  moon  drifts  down  the  west, 
The  spectre  day  hath  stirred,  and  soon 
The  sea-mews  chatter  in  the  nest. 
Why  goeth  Prosper  on  the  sands? 
Lo !  phantom  mists  are  on  the  plain. 
Cold  the  wind  comes  from  off  the  main. 


Out  in  the  melancholy  stars 
The  ghosts  of  dear  lost  things  must  come 
And  many,  many  a  weary  day 
Prosper  hath  his  wont  to  roam. 
'Tis  follow,  follow,  ah,  welaway! 
Tarry,  young  Prosper,  and  go  pray; 
Light  thy  taper  and  tell  thy  beads, 
Criste's  moder  hath  ear  for  lovers'  needs. 


Between  the 
night  and  the 
coming  dawn 
Prosper 
roameth  the 
sands  of  the 
shore. 


'Tis  the  hour,  I  wis,  the  fisherfolk  say 

That  Gordia  comes  from  the  sea  to  the  rocks, 

And  singeth  her  piteous  lay. 

Weaving  her  garland  of  pale  sea-stocks. 

Strange  are  her  ballads  the  fishers  tell. 

For  mortal  men  not  well,  not  well. 

Some  say  she  is  a  sea-witch,  come 

To  bind  poor  sailors  to  her  will. 

Some  speak  her  fair,  a  princess  from 

The  palace  of  the  sea-king ;  still 

They  fear,  and  sometimes  in  a  ring 

[335] 


33^ 


Southern  Literary  Readings 


It  is  the  flsher- 
folk  that  tell  of 
the  sea-maiden 
and  of  the 
haunted  sands 
where  she 
waiteth  for  her 
lover  by  night. 


The  gossips  gather  whispering — 

It  is  a  grisly  crone  that  saith 

A  haunted  song  on  yesternight 

Hath  waked  her  from  a  dream  of  death, 

And  she  saw  through  the  moony  fog  the  Hght 

Gleam  on  the  robe  of  the  sea-maiden, 

And  how  her  song  was  sorrow-laden 

As  any  woman's  that  may  weep.     One  cries, 

"Nay,  nay,  'twas  never  a  song 

From  a  woman's  heart,  the  song  I  heard. 

But  a  wild  and  ringing  melodic 

Of  all  the  kingdoms  that  belong 

In  the  sea-king's  rich  demesne, 

Of  wreathed  pearls  and  gems  that  gird 

The  brows  of  his  maidens  under  the  sea 

And  their  golden  hair."   'Tis  three  have  seen 

Her  spread  her  mantle  of  fair  sea-lace 

Bossed  with  lilies  and  lithe  sea-dace. 

And  long  would  she  wave  at  a  passing  boat. 

Ah,  sailor,  bailor,  didst  not  hear? 

Alack,  then  hath  she  torn  away 

The  bright  pearls  from  her  swelling  throat ; 

And  children  later  playing  there 

Find  strange  sea-gems  and  a  broken  wreath, 

And  all-affrighted  hold  their  breath. 

"Thus  Gordia,"  they  say,  "doth  snare 

Poor  boatmen  to  their  death." 


But  late  young  Prosper  cometh  home, 
For  when  his  good  ship  sank  at  sea. 
Through  many  a  citie  did  he  roam 
And  many  a  far  countrie, 
Where  men  to  wondrous  ventures  come. 
Yet  plain  and  citie  must  he  scorn, 


Gordia 


337 


Knowing  she  waited,  sad,  lovelorn. 
But  when  he  cometh  to  the  bay, 
**  'Tis  seven  year  this  Whitsuntide 
She  waiteth  not,"  the  fishwives  say. 
But  no  man  knoweth  where  she  died. 


Prosper  he  is  mad  they  say, 
He  keepeth  but  his  cot  by  day, 
By  night  the  sands  and  the  cold  sea-air. 
The  long  waves  moan  unto  his  call, 
"Will  no  one  tell  me  where 's  my  love, 
Or  who  hath  her  in  thrall  ? " 
"Prosper  is  mad,"  the  fishwives  tell; 
"The  inlet  sands  he  maun  beware. 
For  on  a  night  will  ring  his  knell 
When  Gordia  singeth  there." 


The  wanderer 
seeketh  his 
love  by  the 
sea.  but  never 
flndeth  her. 


He  waiteth  not  to  hear  them  carp ; 

The  dunes  their  ghostly  shadows  throw. 

The  moon's  rim  droppeth  down  the  sky, 

He  paceth  ever  to  and  fro. 

*  *  Will  no  one  tell  ? ' '     The  wind  is  sharp, 

And  who  will  hear  his  cry? 

Alack,  what  charm  upon  him  fell? 

'Tis  never  mortal  throat  I  trow 

Singeth  so  wildly  well. 

Lo,  from  a  rock  'mid  scarce  sea-kale 

A  maiden  watcheth  yet  the  sea, 

And  beautiful  and  pale; 

But  on  her  cheeks  the  coral  hue. 

And  coral  on  her  full  lips  too, 

And  hiding  her  shoulders  everywhere. 

Half -hiding  e'en  her  bosom's  swell. 

And  twisting  seaweed-like  it  fell. 


85 

Sudden  in  the 
light  of  the 
moon  he 
beholdeth  the 
sea-maiden. 


22 


33S 


Southern  Literary  Readings 


The  treasure  of  her  golden  hair. 
With  it  the  bright  sea-gold  is  spun, 
And  up  and  down  her  fingers  run 
Loosing  the  tangles  there. 

And  at  her  waist  her  fair  white  flesh 
Glows  with  the  lustre  of  her  zone, 
Of  amber  and  pearls  in  knotted  mesh, 
And  unnamed  sea-stones  in  it  sewn ; 
Where  from  it  hangeth  half-aslant 
All  the  long  mantle,  fold  on  fold. 
Sinuous  and  undulant. 
Dim  twihghts  in  its  tissues  sleep. 
As  some  soft  wave  from  out  the  deep 
Were  woven  in  with  threads  of  gold 
And  broidered  flowers  of  wide  sea-wold. 


And  the 
beauty  of  the 
sea  is  in  her 
body  and  in 
her  dress  and 
in  the  voice 
of  her  song. 


116 


120 


Is  it  the  coral  and  sea-tints  there. 

The  green  of  her  mantle,  the  gold  of  her  hair, 

The  lines  of  her  body  flowing  free, 

The  swell  of  her  breasts  like  waves  at  sea 

Rising  ever  rhythmicly? 

Is  it  the  song  the  maiden  sings 

Bindeth  Prosper  motionless? 

Or  what  sea-magic  is 't  that  brings 

Into  his  eyes  the  blind  distress  ? 

Monotonous  and  swinging  slow 

Is  the  burthen,  like  a  wave. 

But  her  voice  is  rich  and  low, 

And  the  murmur  of  it  sweet, 

As  when  distant  surf  sounds  beat 

In  hollows  of  a  deep  sea  cave. 

"  When  the  wind  blows  in  across  the  hay^ 

^  T is  follow,  follow,  ah,  welaway! 


Gordia 


339 


For  her  that  waiteth  on  the  stone, 
Sailor,  make  moan. 

**When  a  lad  hath  sailed  upon  the  main 
And  never,  never  come  home  again, 
His  lass  must  rue,  the  way  is  wild, 
Ah,  Mary  Mother,  keep  thy  child 
Left  all  alone. 

"  There  was  one  who  sat  beside  the  shore 
And  watched  the  sea,  and  more  and  more 
But  no  sail  came.    And  by  and  by, 
When  in  the  bay  the  tide  was  high, 
They  came  and  found  her  not,  and  wept. 
But  still  the  sea  his  secret  kept — 
Sailor,  make  moan.'* 

'Tis  follow,  follow,  ah,  weladay, 

The  wind  hath  blown  her  voice  away — 

Prosper  listens  in  a  spell, 

The  chaunt  hath  broke,  and  only  the  sound 

Of  the  muffled,  distant  buoy-bell 

To  show  the  tide  is  gaining  ground. 

Ah,  sweet  the  bell,  some  witch's  spell 

Hath  surely  sounded  Prosper's  knell. 

For  still  he  moveth  never  on. 

Nay,  listen,  Hsten,  she  lifteth  yet 

Her  voice  above  the  bell's  far  ringing. 

And  Prosper,  standing  like  a  stone, 

Hearkeneth  her  singing. 

"Red  is  the  coral  under  the  sea. 
And  round  it  the  bright  fishes  swim: 
My  love  he  cometh  not  to  me 
And  ever  I  must  wait  for  him, 


Her  song 
seemeth  to  be 
of  an  earthly 
woman  who 
waited  on  the 
shore  for  her 
lover,  and  who, 
when  after 
long  watching 
she  found 
him  not, 
vanished  Into 
the  sea. 


The  tide 
Cometh  in, 
but  Prosper 
is  under  the 
spell  of  her 
singing  and 
heedeth  not. 


340 


Southern  Literary  Readings 


The  song  of 
one  who  yet 
walteth  in  the 
sea  for  her 
love. 


White  coral  grows  the  red  among. 
And  pale  sea-grasses  float  along. 
And  will  he  never  hear  my  song 
And  come  away  with  mef 


105 


Meseems  the  last  word  hath  not  died, 
Ere  Prosper  springeth  to  her  side, 
In  her  blue  eyes  he  hath  found 
Sea-lights  changing  momently, 
Her  silken  lashes  fringing  round 
Like  shadows  on  the  sea. 


"Dost  know  me  not ? "  she  saith. 
'Tis  long  I  waited  thee." 


Ah. 


me, 


The  lovers 
And,  each  lover 
his  beloved ; 
and  Prosper  Is 
wildered  at 
the  change  In 
his  beloved. 


"Nay,  the  first  song  showeth  thou  art  thou, 
Thou  that  didst  love  me,  even  thou, 
But  I  am  wildered  I  know  not  how. 
For  thou  singest  burthens  strange, 
Strange  are*  thy  garments,  all  is  strange. 
Sure  thou  hast  suffered  some  sea-change. " 


She  sayeth 
how  for  lack 
of  him  she 
called  on 
Death,  and 
how  she  sank 
down  to  the 
ocean  floor 
and  the  palace 
of  the  sea-king. 


"Thou  camest  not  for  evermore 

To  me  on  the  lone  shore. 

I  said,  *If  I  call  him  loud  he  will  hear 

Ere  the  long  day  come  and  go, 

Prospero,  Prospero. 

O  round  moon  rising  out  of  the  dark 

Bearest  my  love  in  thy  yellow  bark?* 

The  white-capped  breakers  have  heard  my  moan, 

The  breakers  whisper  under  their  breath 

'Death,  Death!* 

The  sad  sea- voices  moaned  and  called. 

'Twas  down,  down,  straight  down 


Gofdia 


341 


To  regions  where  the  shifting  air 

Was  Hquid  emerald. 

I  sat  by  the  sea-king's  windows  all  day 

And  saw  the  idle  sea-folk  pass, 

And  watched  the  haunted  wrecks  drift  by, 

But  thine  came  not,  alas. 

It  was  an  elvish  light  from  heaven, 

With  a  bright  blur  for  the  sun, 

And  the  charmed  moon  at  even 

Rising  through  the  unfathomed  green. 

Seemed  a  far-off  shadow-sheen. 

In  the  sea-groves  I  called  thee  loud  and  low, 

Prospero ! 

And  the  sea-king  hath  heard  my  cry,  and  saith 

*I  would  not  have  thee  sorrow  so. 

He  shall  have  sea-life  after  death, 


And  the  king 
of  the  sea 


And  come  home  to  thee,  never  fear,  ufvS^tolie?.'' 

If  thou  waitest  seven  year.' " 


Then  who  hath  known  him  greater  bliss, 

Or  dear  delight  to  follow  pain? 

For  heart  hath  never  joy,  I  wis, 

Like  lovers  met  again. 

The  dawn  is  in  the  pallid  skies, 

She  wreathes  a  circlet  on  his  brow 

Of  pearls  and  sea-anemones; 

She  leaneth  lower  to  him  now, 

And  long  she  kisseth  him,  till  lo! 

The  sea-lights  come  into  his  eyes. 

The  tide  it  crawleth  gradually, 

And  down  together  will  they  go 

To  the  green  fields  of  the  sea. 


Her  kiss 
changeth 
Prosper  to  a 
merman,  and 
together  they 
will  go  down 
to  the  fields  of 
the  sea. 


'Tis  follow,  follow,  ah,  welaway, 


^42  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Who  knoweth  when  'ti&trae  love's  day? 
Out  of  the  deeps  come  joy  and  pain, 
Into  the  deeps  forever  fain, 
Who  knoweth  when  they  go  again? 
The  fishers  on  the  lone  dun  sand 
Will  never  see  his  figure  looming; 
The  moon  it  riseth;  on  the  strand 
The  great  waves  booming,  booming! 


The  foolish 
folk  who  know 
not  'tis  true 
love's  day, 
will  say  that 
Gordia  hath 
wickedly 
enchanted 
young  Prosper. 


It  was  an  idle,  weary  day. 

Their  dim-flared  lanthorns  with  them  bringing. 

Homeward  they  turn  them  one  by  one. 

"  Jesu  pity  him,"  they  say, 

"For  this  with  her  wild,  witch's  singing 

Gordia  hath  done. ' ' 


TEXAS   HEROES 


Sons  of  a  land  betrayed  and  wronged  are  they," 
Whose  feet  are  set  to  the  immortal  height  — 
The  draggled  columns  in  whose  desperate  might 

The  Saxon  blood  hath  voiced  itself  to-day; 

And  thou,  Martin,  whose  thirty  cut  their  way 
Through  hostile  lines  with  succour  in  the  night ; 
And  thou,  brave  Bonham,  who  returned  to  fight 

And  die  beside  thy  comrades  in  the  fray; 
Mild  Austin,  who  of  duty  knew  the  worth. 

And  unto  others  gave  the  laurel  wreath; 

And  Houston,  burly  chief  of  wit  and  brawn, 
The  Atlas  of  his  little  Western  earth; 

And  Travis  last,  who  opened  unto  death 

As  one  that  heard  Christ  calling  through  the  dawn. 


From  a  photograph  by  Paul  Thompsun,  N.Y. 
O.  HENRY 


O.  HENRY 

The  real  name  of  O.  Henry  was  William  Sydney  Porter. 
He  was  born  in  Greensboro,  North  Carolina,  in  1864. 
Little  has  as  yet  been  published  about  his  life,  but  we 
know  that  sometime  in  his  teens  he  went  to  Texas,  where 
for  nearly  three  years  he  worked  on  a  sheep  ranch  in 
La  Salle  County.  Later  his  experience  here  stood  him 
in  good  stead,  for  the  scenes  of  some  of  his  best  stories 
are  laid  in  this  southwestern  ranch  country.  Will  Porter 
was  determined  to  improve  himself,  and  even  on  the 
ranch  he  kept  beside  him  constantly  a  copy  of  Webster's 
Dictionary,  poring  over  it  hour  after  hour  and  day  after 
day.  O.  Henry's  wonderfully  broad  and  accurate  vocabu- 
lary is  doubtless  due  in  large  measure  to  his  strange  habit 
of  reading  the  dictionary.  Besides,  from  childhood  he 
was  a  great  reader,  devouring  everything  that  came  in 
his  way,  from  Burton's  Anatomy  of  Melancholy  to  count- 
less modem  novels.  He  preferred  the  companionship 
of  books  to  the  sports  and  games  of  his  playfellows,  and 
was  always  ready  to  seek  the  shade  of  some  solitary 
tree  or  retire  to  the  loneliness  of  his  own  room  to  find 
opportunity  for  quiet  reading. 

When  a  chance  came  for  him  to  leave  the  ranch  and 
enter  upon  more  congenial  work  he  accepted  it.  He 
went  to  Austin,  Texas,  and  for  four  years  made  his  home 
with  the  family  of  Mr.  Joe  Harrell.  There  were  several 
boys  in  this  family,  who  used  to  tell  wonderftd  tales  of 
Will  Porter's  ability  to  spell  and  define  words.  At  this 
time  the  youth  also  developed  a  gift  for  sketching  with 
pen  and  ink.  After  working  for  a  few  years  in  the  State 
Land  Office  he  went  to  Houston,  where  he  became  a 
reporter  on  the  Post,  for  the  most  part  writing  material 
for  a  humorous  column.  Later  returning  to  Austin, 
he  attempted  to  establish  a  small  literary  and  political 
weekly,  which  he  called  the  Rolling  Stone.  He  wrote 
the  copy,  drew  the  cartoons,  set  the  type,  and  read  the 

[343] 


J44  Southern  Literary  Readings 

proof  for  this  paper  for  a  few  numbers;  but  in  spite  of 
its  cleverness,  the  publication  was  suspended  for  lack 
of  financial  support. 

A  position  in  the  old  First  National  Bank  of  Austin 
was  then  offered  to  the  young  man.  Here  misfortune 
overtook  him,  and  for  six  years  his  life  was  under  a  cloud. 
He  finally  left  Texas  and  went  to  Central  America  to 
engage  in  the  fruit  trade.  This  venture  proved  a  failure 
financially,  but  furnished  experiences  afterward  turned  to 
account  in  stories  dealing  with  Central  American  life, 
most  of  which  are  now  to  be  found  in  Cabbages  and  Kings. 

During  all  these  years  he  had  clung  to  his  ambition  to 
become  a  writer,  and  he  now  went  to  New  Orleans  to 
devote  himself  to  what  he  felt  was  his  life  calling.  Besides 
doing  some  local  newspaper  work,  he  tried  his  hand  at 
short  stories.  He  is  said  to  have  selected  his  pseu- 
donym haphazard,  choosing  *' Henry"  simply  because  his 
eye  chanced  to  fall  on  that  name  in  a  newspaper,  and 
prefixing  the  initial  O.  as  the  easiest  letter  to  form. 

From  New  Orleans  O.  Henry  was  attracted,  about 
1902,  to  New  York  City,  and  in  the  last  ten  years  of  his 
life  he  turned  out  with  amazing  rapidity,  considering  the 
quality  of  his  work,  piore  than  one  hundred  fifty  stories, 
covering  a  wide  range  of  scene,  character,  and  subject 
matter.  Concerning  his  method  of  work,  he  said  that  he 
first  studied  out  his  subject  carefully  and  knew  exactly 
what  he  was  going  to  say  before  he  began  to  write;  then 
he  wrote  his  manuscript  rapidly,  and  rarely  or  never 
revised. 

O.  Henry  died  in  New  York  in  19 10,  having  won  for 
himself  a  secure  if  not  a  lofty  place  in  the  world  of  Ameri- 
can fiction.  The  chief  qualities  of  his  work  are  natu- 
ralism and  realism  mingled  with  romance,  a  distinct 
note  of  original  humor,  a  warm  human  sympathy,  and 
an  occasional  touch  of  deep  pathos.  The  Four  Million, 
dealing  with  New  York  life,  and  Heart  of  the  West,  por- 
traying life  in  Texas  and  the  Southwest,  contain  some  of 
his  most  characteristic  work. 


THE   GIFT  OF  THE   MAGI 

One  dollar  and  eighty-seven  cents.  That  was  all.  And 
sixty  cents  of  it  was  in  pennies.  Pennies  saved  one  and 
two  at  a  time  by  bulldozing  the  grocer  and  the  vegetable 
man  and  the  butcher  until  one's  cheeks  burned  with  the 
silent  imputation  of  parsimony  that  such  close  dealing  5 
implied.  Three  times  Delia  counted  it.  One  dollar  and 
eighty-seven  cents.     And  the  next  day  would  be  Christmas. 

There  was  clearly  nothing  to  do  but  flop  down  on  the 
shabby  little  couch  and  howl.     So  Delia  did  it.     Which 
instigates  the  moral  reflection  that  life  is  made  up  of  sobs,  10 
sniffles,  and  smiles,  with  sniffles  predominating. 

While  the  mistress  of  the  home  is  gradually  subsiding 
from  the  first  stage  to  the  second,  take  a  look  at  the  home. 
A  furnished  fiat  at  $8  per  week.     It  did  not  exactly  beggar 
description,  but  it  certainly  had  that  word  on  the  lookout  15 
for  the  mendicancy  squad. 

In  the  vestibule  below  was  a  letter-box  into  which  no 
letter  would  go,  and  an  electric  button  from  which  no 
mortal    finger    could    coax    a    ring.     Also    appertaining 
thereunto  was  a  card  bearing   the   name   "Mr.  James  20 
Dillingham  Young." 

The  "Dillingham"  had  been  flung  to  the  breeze  during 
a  former  period  of  prosperity  when  its  possessor  was  being 
paid  $30  per  week.  Now,  when  the  income  was  shrunk 
to  $20,  the  letters  of  "Dillingham"  looked  blurred,  as 25 
though  they  were  thinking  seriously  of  contracting  to  a 
modest  and  unassuming  D.  But  whenever  Mr.  James 
Dillingham  Young  came  home  and  reached  his  fiat  above 
he  was  called  "Jim"  and  greatly  hugged  by  Mrs.  James 

[345] 


J4^  Southern  Literary  Readings 

80  Dillingham  Young,  already  introduced  to  you  as  Delia. 
Which  is  all  very  good. 

Delia  finished  her  cry  and  attended  her  cheeks  with  the 
powder  rag.  She  stood  by  the  window  and  looked  out 
dully  at  a  grey  cat  walking  a  grey  fence  in  a  grey  backyard. 

35  To-morrow  would  be  Christmas  Day,  and  she  had  only 
$1.87  with  which  to  buy  Jim  a  present.  She  had  been 
saving  every  penny  she  could  for  months,  with  this  result. 
Twenty  dollars  a  week  doesn't  go  far.  Expenses  had 
been  greater  than  she  had  calculated.     They  always  are. 

40  Only  $1.87  to  buy  a  present  for  Jim.  Her  Jim.  Many 
a  happy  hour  she  had  spent  planning  for  something  nice 
for  him.  Something  fine  and  rare  and  sterling — some- 
thing just  a  little  bit  near  to  being  worthy  of  the 
honour  of  being  owned  by  Jim. 

45  There  was  a  pier-glass  between  the  windows  of  the  room. 
Perhaps  you  have  seen  a  pier-glass  in  an  $8  fiat.  A  very 
thin  and  very  agile  person  may,  by  observing  his  reflection 
in  a  rapid  sequence  of  longitudinal  strips,  obtain  a  fairly 
accurate  conception  .of  his  looks.     Delia,  being  slender, 

soliad  mastered  the  art. 

Suddenly  she  whirled  from  the  window  and  stood  before 
the  glass.  Her  eyes  were  shining  brilliantly,  but  her  face 
had  lost  its  colour  within  twenty  seconds.  Rapidly  she 
pulled  down  her  hair  and  let  it  fall  to  its  full  length. 

55  Now,  there  were  two  possessions  of  the  James  Dilling- 
ham Youngs  in  which  they  both  took  a  mighty  pride. 
One  was  Jim's  gold  watch  that  had  been  his  father's  and 
his  grandfather's.  The  other  was  Delia's  hair.  Had  the 
Queen  of  Sheba  lived  in  the  fiat  across  the  airshaft,  Delia 

60  would  have  let  her  hair  hang  out  the  window  some  day 
to  dry  just  to  depreciate  Her  Majesty's  jewels  and  gifts. 
Had  King  Solomon  been  the  janitor,  with  all  his  treasures 
piled  up  in  the  basement,  Jim  would  have  pulled  out  his 


The  Gift  of  the  Magi  347 

watch  every  time  he  passed,  just  to  see  him  pluck  at  his 
beard  from  envy.  es 

So  now  Delia's  beautiful  hair  fell  about  her,  rippling  and  - 
shining  like  a  cascade  of  brown  waters.     It  reached  below 
her  knee  and  made  itself  almost  a  garment  for  her.     And 
then  she  did  it  up  again  nervously  and  quickly.     Once 
she  faltered  for  a  minute  and  stood  still  while  a  tear  or  two  70 
splashed  on  the  worn  red  carpet. 

On  went  her  old  brown  jacket ;  on  went  her  old  brown  hat. 
With  a  whirl  of  skirts  and  with  the  brilliant  sparkle  still 
in  her  eyes,  she  fluttered  out  the  door  and  down  the  stairs 
to  the  street.  75 

Where  she  stopped  the  sign  read:  *'Mme.  Sofronie. 
Hair  Goods  of  All  Kinds."  One  flight  up  Delia  ran,  and 
collected  herself,  panting.  Madame,  large,  too  white, 
chilly,  hardly  looked  the  ''Sofronie." 

"Will  you  buy  my  hair? "  asked  Delia.  so 

"I  buy  hair,"  said  Madame.  "Take  yer  hat  off  and 
let 's  have  a  sight  at  the  looks  of  it." 

Down  rippled  the  brown  cascade. 

"Twenty  dollars,"  said  Madame,  lifting  the  mass  with 
a  practiced  hand.  ss 

"Give  it  to  me  quick,"  said  Delia. 

Oh,  and  the  next  two  hours  tripped  by  on  rosy  wings. 
Forget  the  hashed  metaphor.  She  was  ransacking  the 
stores  for  Jim's  present. 

She  found  it  at  last.  It  surely  had  been  made  for  Jim  90 
and  no  one  else.  There  was  no  other  like  it  in  any  of  the 
stores,  and  she  had  turned  all  of  them  inside  out.  It  was 
a  platinum  fob  chain,  simple  and  chaste  in  design,  properly 
proclaiming  its  value  by  substance  alone  and  not  by 
meretricious  ornamentation — as  all  good  things  should  os 
do.  It  was  even  worthy  of  The  Watch.  As  soon  as  she 
saw  it  she  knew  that  it  must  be  Jim's.     It  was  like  him. 


J4S  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Quietness  and  value — the  description  applied  to  both. 
Twenty-one  dollars  they  took  from  her  for  it,  and  slie 

100  hurried  home  with  the  87  cents.  With  that  chain  on  his 
watch  Jim  might  be  properly  anxious  about  the  time  in  any 
company.  Grand  as  the  watch  was,  he  sometimes  looked 
at  it  on  the  sly  on  account  of  the  old  leather  strap  he  used 
in  place  of  a  chain. 

105  When  Delia  reached  home  her  intoxication  gave  way  a 
little  to  prudence  and  reason.  She  got  out  her  curling 
irons  and  lighted  the  gas  and  went  to  work  repairing  the 
ravages  made  by  generosity  added  to  love.  Which  is 
always  a  tremendous  task,  dear  friends — a  mammoth  task. 

110  Within  forty  minutes  her  head  was  covered  with  tiny, 
close-lying  curls  that  made  her  look  wonderfully  like  a 
truant  schoolboy.  She  looked  at  her  reflection  in  the 
mirror,  long,  carefully,  and  critically. 

" If  Jim  doesn't  kill  me,"  she  said  to  herself,  "before  he 

115  takes  a  second  look  at  me,  he  11  say  I  look  like  a  Coney 
Island  chorus  girl.  But  what  could  I  do — oh!  what 
could  I  do  with  a  dollar  and  eighty-seven  cents?" 

At  7  o'clock  the  coffee  was  made  and  the  frying-pan  was 
on  the  back  of  the  stove  hot  and  ready  to  cook  the  chops. 

120  Jim  was  never  late.  Delia  doubled  the  fob  chain  in  her 
hand  and  sat  on  the  corner  of  the  table  near  the  door  that 
he  always  entered.  Then  she  heard  his  step  on  the  stair 
away  down  on  the  first  flight,  and  she  turned  white  for 
just  a  moment.     She  had  a  habit  of  saying  little  silent 

125  prayers  about  the  simplest  everyday  things,  and  now  she 
whispered:  "Please,  God,  make  him  think  I  am  still 
pretty." 

The  door  opened  and  Jim  stepped  in  and  closed  it.     He 
looked  thin  and  very  serious.     Poor  fellow,  he  was  only 

130 twenty-two — and  to  be  burdened  with  a  family!  He 
needed  a  new  overcoat  and  he  was  without  gloves. 


The  Gift  of  the  Magi  J4g 

Jim  stopped  inside  the  door,  as  immovable  as  a  setter 
at  the  scent  of  quail.  His  eyes  were  fixed  upon  Delia,  and 
there  was  an  expression  in  them  that  she  could  not  read, 
and  it  terrified  her.  It  was  not  anger,  nor  surprise,  nor  135 
disapproval,  nor  horror,  nor  any  of  the  sentiments  that  she 
had  been  prepared  for.  He  simply  stared  at  her  fixedly , 
with  that  peculiar  expression  on  his  face. 

Delia  wriggled  off  the  table  and  went  for  him. 

"Jim,  darling,"  she  cried,  "don't  look  at  me  that  way.  140 
I  had  my  hair  cut  off  and  sold  it  because  I  couldn't  live 
through  Christmas  without  giving  you  a  present.  It'll 
grow  out  again — you  won't  mind,  will  you?  I  just  had  to 
do  it.  My  hair  grows  awfully  fast.  Say  'Merry  Christ- 
mas,' Jim,  and  let's  be  happy.  You  don't  know  what  a  145 
nice — what  a  beautiful,  nice  gift  I  've  got  for  you." 

"You've  cut  off  your  hair?"  asked  Jim  laboriously,  as 
if  he  had  not  arrived  at  that  patent  fact  yet,  even  after 
the  hardest  mental  labour. 

"Cut  it  off  and  sold  it,"  said  Delia.    "  Don't  you  like  me  150 
just  as  well,  anyhow?    I  'm  me  without  my  hair,  ain't  I ? " 

Jim  looked  about  the  room  curiously. 

"You  say  your  hair  is  gone? "  he  said,  with  an  air  almost 
of  idiocy. 

"You  needn't  look  for  it,"  said  Delia.  "It's  sold,  1 155 
tell  you — sold  and  gone,  too.  It's  Christmas  Eve,  boy. 
Be  good  to  me,  for  it  went  for  you.  Maybe  the  hairs  of 
my  head  were  numbered,"  she  went  on  with  a  sudden 
serious  sweetness,  "but  nobody  could  ever  count  my  love 
for  you.     Shall  I  put  the  chops  on,  Jim  ? "  leo 

Out  of  his  trance  Jim  seemed  quickly  to  wake.  He 
enfolded  his  Delia.  For  ten  seconds  let  us  regard  with 
discreet  scrutiny  some  inconsequential  object  in  the  other 
direction.  Eight  dollars  a  week  or  a  million  a  year — what 
is  the  difference  ?    A  mathematician  or  a  wit  would  give  les 


550  Southern  Literary  Readings 

you  the  wrong  answer.     The  magi  brought  valuable  gifts, 
but  that  was  not  among  them.     This  dark  assertion  will 
be  illuminated  later  on. 
Jim  drew  a  package  from  his  overcoat  pocket  and  threw 

170  it  upon  the  table. 

"Don't  make  any  mistake,  Dell,"  he  said,  "  about  me. 
I  don't  think  there  is  anything  in  the  way  of  a  haircut  or  a 
shave  or  a  shampoo  that  could  make  me  like  my  girl  any 
less.     But  if  you  '11  unwrap  that  package  you  may  see  why 

175  you  had  me  going  a  while  at  first." 

White  fingers  and  nimble  tore  at  the  string  and  paper. 
And  then  an  ecstatic  scream  of  joy;  and  then,  alas!  a 
quick  feminine  change  to  hysterical  tears  and  wails, 
necessitating  the  immediate  emplojrment  of  all  the  comf  ort- 

180  ing  powers  of  the  lord  of  the  flat. 

For  there  lay  The  Combs — the  set  of  combs,  side  and 
back,  that  Delia  had  worshipped  for  long  in  a  Broadway 
window.  Beautiful  combs,  pure  tortoise  shell,  with 
jewelled  rims — just  the  shade  to  wear  in  the  beautiful 

185  vanished  hair.  They  were  expensive  combs,  she  knew, 
and  her  heart  had  simply  craved  and  yearned  over  them 
without  the  least  hope  of  possession.  And  now,  they  were 
hers,  but  the  tresses  that  should  have  adorned  the  coveted 
adornments  were  gone. 

190  But  she  hugged  them  to  her  bosom,  and  at  length  she 
was  able  to  look  up  with  dim  eyes  and  a  smile  and  say: 
"My  hair  grows  so  fast,  Jim!" 

And  then  Delia  leaped  up  like  a  little  singed  cat  and 
cried,  "Oh,  oh!" 

195  Jim  had  not  yet  seen  his  beautiful  present.  She  held  it 
out  to  him  eagerly  upon  her  open  palm.  The  dull  precious 
metal  seemed  to  flash  with  a  reflection  of  her  bright  and 
ardent  spirit. 

"Isn't  it  a  dandy,  Jim?     I  hunted  all  over  town  to  find 


A  Chaparral  Prince  351 

it.    You  '11  have  to  look  at  the  time  a  hundred  times  a  day  200 
now.     Give  me-  your  watch.     I  want  to  see  how  it  looks 
on  it." 

Instead  of  obeying,  Jim  tumbled  down  on  the  couch 
and  put  his  hands  under  the  back  of  his  head  and  smiled. 

"Dell,"  said  he,  ''let 's  put  our  Christmas  presents  away  205 
and  keep  'em  a  while.     They'  re  too  nice  to  use  just  at  pres- 
ent.    I  sold  the  watch  to  get  the  money  to  buy  your  combs. 
And  now  suppose  you  put  the  chops  on." 

The  magi,  as  you  know,  were  wise  men — wonderfully 
wise  men — who  brought  gifts  to  the  Babe  in  the  manger.  210 
They  invented  the  art  of  giving  Christmas  presents.  Being 
wise,  their  gifts"  were  no  doubt  wise  ones,  possibly  bearing 
the  privilege  of  exchange  in  case  of  duplication.  And 
here  I  have  lamely  related  to  you  the  uneventful  chronicle 
of  two  foolish  children  in  a  flat  who  most  unwisely  sacrificed  215 
for  each  other  the  greatest  treasures  of  their  house.  But 
in  a  last  word  to  the  wise  of  these  days  let  it  be  said  that  of 
all  who  give  gifts  these  two  were  the  wisest.  Of  all  who 
give  and  receive  gifts,  such  as  they  are  wisest.  Every- 
where they  are  the  wisest.     They  are  the  magi.  220 


A  CHAPARRAL  PRINCE 

Nine  o'clock  at  last,  and  the  drudging  toil  of  the  day 
was  ended.  Lena  climbed  to  her  room  in  the  third  half- 
story  of  the  Quarrymen's  Hotel.  Since  daylight  she  had 
slaved,  doing  the  work  of  a  full-grown  woman,  scrubbing 
the  floors,  washing  the  heavy  ironstone  plates  and  cups, 
making  the  beds,  and  supplying  the  insatiate  demands  for 
wood  and  water  in  that  turbulent  and  depressing  hostelry. 

The  din  of  the  day's  quarrying  was  over — the  blasting 


j^2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

and  drilling,  the  creaking  of  the  great  cranes,  the  shouts 

10  of  the  foremen,  the  backing  and  shifting  of  the  flat- 
cars  hauling  the  heavy  blocks  of  limestone.  Down  in 
the  hotel  office  three  or  four  of  the  labourers  were  growl- 
ing and  swearing  over  a  belated  game  of  checkers.  Heavy 
odours  of  stewed  meat,  hot  grease,  and  cheap  coffee  hung 

15  like  a  depressing  fog  about  the  house. 

Lena  lit  the  stump  of  a  candle  and  sat  limply  upon  her 
wooden  chair.  She  was  eleven  years  old,  thin  and  ill- 
nourished.  Her  back  and  limbs  were  sore  and  aching. 
But  the  ache  in  her  heart  made  the  biggest  trouble.     The 

20  last  straw  had  been  added  to  the  burden  upon  her  small 
shoulders.  They  had  taken  away  Grimm.  Always  at  night, 
however  tired  she  might  be,  she  had  turned  to  Grimm  for 
comfort  and  hope.  Each  time  had  Grimm  whispered  to 
her  that  the  prince  or  the  fairy  would  come  and  deliver 

25  her  out  of  the  wicked  enchantment.  Every  night  she  had 
taken  fresh  courage  and  strength  from  Grimm. 

To  whatever  tale  she  read  she  found  an  analogy  in  her 
own  condition.  The  woodcutter's  lost  child,  the  unhappy 
goose  girl,  the  persecuted  stepdaughter,  the  little  maiden 

30  imprisoned  in  the  witch's  hut — all  these  were  but  trans- 
parent disguises  for  Lena,  the  overworked  kitchenmaid 
in  the  Quarrymen's  Hotel.  And  always  when  the  extrem- 
ity was  direst  came  the  good  fairy  or  the  gallant  prince 
to  the  rescue. 

85  So,  here  in  the  ogre's  castle,  enslaved  by  a  wicked  spell, 
Lena  had  leaned  upon  Grimm  and  waited,  longing  for  the 
powers  of  goodness  to  prevail.  But  on  the  day  before 
Mrs.  Maloney  had  found  the  book  in  her  room  and  had 
carried  it  away,  declaring  sharply  it  would  not  do  for  serv- 

40 ants  to  read  at  night;  they  lost  sleep  and  did  not  work 
briskly  the  next  day.  Can  one  only  eleven  years  old,  liv- 
ing away  from  one's  mamma,  and  never  having  any  time 


A  Chaparral  Prince  55J 

to  play,  live  entirely  deprived  of  Grimm  ?    Just  try  it  once, 
and  you  will  see  what  a  difficult  thing  it  is. 

Lena's  home  was  in  Texas,  away  up  among  the  little  45 
mountains  on  the  Pedernales  River,  in  a  little  town 
called  Fredericksburg.  They  are  all  German  people  who 
live  in  Fredericksburg.  Of  evenings  they  sit  at  little 
tables  along  the  sidewalk  and  drink  beer  and  play  pinochle 
and  scat.     They  are  very  thrifty  people.  50 

Thriftiest  among  them  was  Peter  Hildesmuller,  Lena's 
father.  And  that  is  why  Lena  was  sent  to  work  in  the 
hotel  at  the  quarries,  thirty  miles  away.  She  earned 
three  dollars  every  week  there,  and  Peter  added  her 
wages  to  his  well-guarded  store.  Peter  had  an  ambition  55 
to  become  as  rich  as  his  neighbour,  Hugo  Heffelbauer, 
who  smoked  a  meerschaum  pipe  three  feet  long  and 
had  wiener  schnitzel  and  hasenpfeffer  for  dinner  every 
day  in  the  week.  And  now  Lena  was  quite  old  enough 
to  work  and  assist  in  the  accumulation  of  riches.  But  eo 
conjecture,  if  you  can,  what  it  means  to  be  sentenced  at 
eleven  years  of  age  from  a  home  in  the  pleasant  little  Rhine 
village  to  hard  labour  in  the  ogre's  castle,  where  you  must 
fly  to  serve  the  ogres,  while  they  devour  cattle  and  sheep, 
growling  fiercely  as  they  stamp  white  limestone  dustes 
from  their  great  shoes  for  you  to  sweep  and  scour  with  your 
weak,  aching  fingers.  And  then — to  have  Grimm  taken 
away  from  you! 

Lena  raised  the  lid  of  an  old  empty  case  that  had  once 
contained  canned  corn  and  got  out  a  sheet  of  paper  and  70 
a  piece  of  pencil.  She  was  going  to  write  a  letter  to  her 
mamma.  Tommy  Ryan  was  going  to  post  it  ior  her 
at  Ballinger's.  Tommy  was  seventeen,  worked  in  the 
quarries,  went  home  to  Ballinger's  every  night,  and  was 
now  waiting  in  the  shadows  under  Lena's  window  for  her  75 
to  throw  the  letter  out  to  him.     That  was  the  only  way 

23 


j^4  Southern  Literary  Readings 

she  could  send  a  letter  to  Fredericksburg.    Mrs.  Maloney 
did  not  like  for  her  to  write  letters. 

The  stump  of  candle  was  burning  low,  so  Lena  hastily 
80  bit  the  wood  from  around  the  lead  of  her  pencil  and 
began.     This  is  the  letter  she  wrote  : 

"Dearest  Mamma: — I  want  so  much  to  see  you.  And  Gretel  and 
Claus  and  Heinrich  and  little  Adolf.  I  am  so  tired.  I  want  to 
see  you.     To-day  I  was  slapped  by  Mrs.  Maloney  and  had  no  supi- 

85  per.  I  could  not  bring  in  enough  wood,  for  my  hand  hurt.  She 
took  my  book  yesterday.  I  mean  'Grimms's  Fairy  Tales,'  which 
Uncle  Leo  gave  me.  It  did  not  hurt  any  one  for  me  to  read  the 
book.  I  try  to  work  as  well  as  I  can,  but  there  is  so  much  to  do. 
I  read  only  a  little  bit  every  night.     Dear  mamma,  I  shall  tell  you 

90  what  I  am  going  to  do.  Unless  you  send  for  me  to-morrow  to  bring 
me  home  I  shall  go  to  a  deep  place  I  know  in  the  river  and  drown. 
It  is  wicked  to  drown,  I  suppose,  but  I  wanted  to  see  you,  and  there 
is  no  one  else.  I  am  very  tired,  and  Tommy  is  waiting  for  the  let- 
ter.    You  will  excuse  me,  mamma,  if  I  do  it. 

95  "Your  respectful  and  loving  daughter, 

"Lena." 

Tommy  was  still  waiting  faithfully  when  the  letter  was 
concluded,  and  when  Lena  dropped  it  out  she  saw  him  pick 
it  up  and  start  up  the  steep  hillside.     Without  undressing, 

100  she  blew  out  the  candle  and  curled  herself  upon  the  mattress 
on  the  floor. 

At  10:30  o'clock  old  man  Ballinger  came  out  of  his  house 
in  his  stocking  feet  and  leaned  over  the  gate,  smoking 
his  pipe.     He  looked  down  the  big  road,  white  in  the 

105  moonshine,  and  rubbed  one  ankle  with  the  toe  of  his  other 
foot.  It  was  time  for  the  Fredericksburg  mail  to  come 
pattering  up  the  road. 

Old  man  Ballinger  had  waited  only  a  few  minutes  when 
he  heard  the  lively  hoofbeats  of  Fritz's  team  of  little  black 

110  mules,  and  very  soon  afterward  his  covered  spring  wagon 
stood  in  front  of  the  gate.     Fritz's  big  spectacles  flashed 


A  Chaparral  Prince  355 

in  the  moonlight  and  his  tremendous  voice  shouted  a 
greeting  to  the  postmaster  of  BalHnger's.  The  mail- 
carrier  jumped  out  and  took  the  bridles  from  the  mules, 
for  he  always  fed  them  oats  at  BalHnger's.  115 

While  the  mules  were  eating  from  their  feed  bags,  old 
man  BalHnger  brought  out  the  mail  sack  and  threw  it  into 
the  wagon. 

Fritz  Bergmann  was  a  man  of  three  sentiments — or  to 
be  more  accurate — four,  the  pair  of  mules  deserving  to  120 
be  reckoned  individually.     Those  mules  were  the  chief 
interest  and  joy  of  his  existence.     Next  came  the  Emperor 
of  Germany  and  Lena  Hildesmuller. 

"Tell  me,"  said  Fritz,  when  he  was  ready  to  start,  "con- 
tains the  sack  a  letter  to  Frau  Hildesmuller  from  the  125 
little  Lena  at  the  quarries?    One  came  in  the  last  mail 
to  say  that  she  is  a  little  sick,  already.     Her  mamma  is 
very  anxious  to  hear  again." 

"Yes,"  said  old  man   BalHnger,   "thar's  a  letter  for 
Mrs.  Helterskelter,  or  some  sich  name.     Tommy  Ryan  130 
brung  it  over  when  he  come.     Her  little  gal  workin'  over 
thar,  you  say?" 

"In  the  hotel,"  shouted  Fritz,  as  he  gathered  up  the 
lines;  "eleven  years  old  and  not  bigger  as  a  frankfurter. 
The  close-fist  of  a  Peter  Hildesmuller! — some  day  shall  1 135 
with  a  big  club  pound  that  man's  dummkopf — all  in  and 
out  the  town.  Perhaps  in  this  letter  Lena  will  say  that 
she  is  yet  feeling  better.  So,  her  mamma  will  be  glad. 
Auf  wiedersehen,  Herr  BalHnger — your  feets  will  take  cold 
out  in  the  night  air."  ho 

"So  long,  Fritzy,"  said  old  man  BalHnger.  "You  got 
a  nice  cool  night  for  your  drive." 

Up  the  road  went  the  little  black  mules  at  their  steady 
trot,  while  Fritz  thundered  at  them  occasional  words  of 
endearment  and  cheer.  145 


j^6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

These  fancies  occupied  the  mind  of  the  mail-carrier  until 
he  reached  the  big  post  oak  forest,  eight  miles  from 
Ballinger's.  Here  his  ruminations  were  scattered  by  the 
sudden  flash  and  report  of  pistols  and  a  whooping  as  if 
150  from  a  whole  tribe  of  Indians.  A  band  of  galloping  cen- 
taurs closed  in  around  the  mail  wagon.  One  of  them 
leaned  over  the  front  wheel,  covered  the  driver  with  his 
revolver,  and  ordered  him  to  stop.  Others  caught  at 
the  bridles  of  Bonder  and  Blitzen. 
155  "  Donnerwetter ! "  shouted  Fritz,  with  all  his  tremen- 
dous voice — "was  ist?  Release  your  hands  from  dose 
mules.    Ve  vas  der  United  States  mail!" 

"Hurry   up,    Dutch!"    drawled   a   melancholy    voice. 
"Don't  you  know  when  you're  in  a  stick-up?    Reverse 
160  your  mules  and  climb  out  of  the  cart." 

It  is  due  to  the  breadth  of  Hondo  Bill's  demerit  and  the 
largeness  of  his  achievements  to  state  that  the  holding 
up  of  the  Fredericksburg  mail  was  not  perpetrated  by  way 
of  an  exploit.    As  the  lion  while  in  the  pursuit  of  prey 
165  commensurate  to  his  prowess  might  set  a  frivolous  foot 
upon  a  casual  rabbit  in  his  path,  so  Hondo  Bill  and  his 
gang  had  swooped  sportively  upon  the  pacific  transport 
of  Meinherr  Fritz. 
The  real  work  of  their  sinister  night  ride  was  over. 
170  Fritz  and  his  mail   bag  and  his  mules  came  as  a  gentle 
relaxation,   grateful   after  the   arduous   duties  of  their 
profession.    Twenty  miles  to  the  southeast  stood  a  train 
with  a  killed  engine,  hysterical  passengers  and  a  looted 
express  and  mail  car.     That  represented  the  serious  occu- 
rs pation  of  Hondo  Bill  and  his  gang.    With  a  fairly  rich 
prize  of  currency  and  silver  the  robbers  were  making  a 
wide  detour  to  the  west  through  the  less  populous  country, 
intending  to  seek  safety  in  Mexico  by  means  of  some  ford- 
able  spot  on  the  Rio  Grande.     The  booty  from  the  train 


A  Chaparral  Prince  jj^ 

had   melted   the   desperate   bushrangers   to   jovial   and  iso 
happy  skylarkers. 

Trembling  with  outraged  dignity  and  no  httle  personal 
apprehension,  Fritz  climbed  out  to  the  road  after  replacing 
his  suddenly  removed  spectacles.  The  band  had  dis- 
mounted and  were  singing,  capering,  and  whooping,  thus  i85 
expressing  their  satisfied  delight  in  the  life  of  a  jolly  out- 
law. Rattlesnake  Rogers,  who  stood  at  the  heads  of 
the  mules,  jerked  a  little  too  vigorously  at  the  rein  of  the 
tender-mouthed  Bonder,  who  reared  and  emitted  a  loud, 
protesting  snort  of  pain.  Instantly  Fritz,  with  a  scream  loo 
of  anger,  flew  at  the  bulky  Rogers  and  began  to  assidu- 
ously pommel  that  surprised  freebooter  with  his  fists. 

"Villain!"  shouted  Fritz,  "dog,  bigstiff !  Dot  mule  he 
has  a  soreness  by  his  mouth.  I  vill  knock  off  your  shoul- 
ders mit  your  head — robbermans!"  195 

"Yi-yi!"  howled  Rattlesnake,  roaring  with  laughter 
and  ducking  his  head,  "somebody  git  this  here  sauerkrout 
off 'n  me!" 

One  of  the  band  yanked  Fritz  back  by  the  coat-tail,  and 
the  woods  rang  with  Rattlesnake's  vociferous  comments.    200 

"The  .  .  .  little  wienerwurst,"  he  yelled,  amiably. 
"He's  not  so  much  of  a  skunk,  for  a  Dutchman.  Took 
up  for  his  animile  plum  quick,  didn't  he?  I  like  to  see  a 
man  like  his  hoss,  even  if  it  is  a  mule.  The  dad-blamed 
little  Limburger,  he  went  for  me,  didn't  he!  Whoa,  now,  205 
muley — I  ain't  a-goin'  to  hurt  your  mouth  agin  any  more." 

Perhaps  the  mail  would  not  have  been  tampered  with 
had  not  Ben  Moody,  the  lieutenant,  possessed  certain 
wisdom  that  seemed  to  promise  more  spoils. 

"Say,  Cap,"  he  said,  addressing  Hondo  Bill,  "there '3210 
liable  to  be  good  pickings  in  these  mail  sacks.     I  've  done 
some  hoss  tradin'  with  these  Dutchmen  around  Fredericks- 
burg, and  I  know  the  style  of  the  varmints.     There 's  big 


j^8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

money  goes  through  the  mails  to  that  town.     Them  Dutch 

215  risk  a  thousand  dollars  sent  wrapped  in  a  piece  of  paper 
before  they  'd  pay  the  banks  to  handle  the  money. ' ' 

Hondo  Bill,  six  feet  two,  gentle  of  voice  and  impulsive 
in  action,  was  dragging  the  sacks  from  the  rear  of  the  wagon 
before  Moody  had  finished  his  speech.    A  knife  shone  in 

220  his  hand,  and  they  heard  the  ripping  sound  as  it  bit 
through  the  tough  canvas.  The  outlaws  crowded  around 
and  began  tearing  open  letters  and  packages,  enlivening 
their  labours  by  swearing  affably  at  the  writers,  who 
seemed  to  have  conspired  to  confute  the  prediction  of  Ben 

226  Moody.  Not  a  dollar  was  found  in  the  Fredericksburg 
mail. 

"You  ought  to  be  ashamed  of  yourself,"  said  Hondo  Bill, 
to  the  mail-carrier  in  solemn  tones,  "to  be  packing  around 
such  a  lot  of  old,  trashy  paper  as  this.     What  d'yoii 

230  mean  by  it,  anyhow?  Where  do  you  Butchers  keep  your 
money  at?" 

The  Ballinger  mail  sack  opened  like  a  cocoon  under 
Hondo's  knife.  It  contained  but  a  handful  of  mail. 
Fritz  had  been  fuming  with  terror  and  excitement  until 

235  this  sack  was  reached.  He  now  remembered  Lena's 
letter.  He  addressed  the  leader  of  the  band,  asking  that 
that  particular  missive  be  spared. 

"Much  obliged,  Dutch,"  he  said  to  the  disturbed  carrier. 
"I  guess  that's  the  letter  we  want.     Got  spondulicks  in 

240 it,  ain't  it?    Here  she  is.     Make  a  light,  boys." 

Hondo  found  and  tore  open  the  letter  to  Mrs.  Hildes- 
muller.  The  others  stood  about,  lighting  twisted-up 
letters  one  from  another.  Hondo  gazed  with  mute  dis- 
approval at  the  single  sheet  of  paper  covered  with  the 

245  angular  German  script. 

"Whatever  is  this  you've  himibugged  us  with,  Dutchy? 
You  call  this  here  a  valuable  letter?    That's  a  mighty 


A  Chaparral  Prince  j^g 

low-down  trick  to  play  on  your  friends  what  come  along 
to  help  you  distribute  your  mail. ' ' 

''That's  Chiny  writin,'  "  said  Sandy  Grundy,  peering 250 
over  Hondo's  shoulder. 

''You're  off  your  kazip,"  declared  another  pf  the  gang, 
an  effective  youth,  covered  with  silk  handkerchiefs  and 
nickel  plating.  "That's  shorthand.  I  seen  'em  do  it 
once  in  court."  255 

"Ach,  no,  no,  no — d^t  is  German,"  said  Fritz.  "It 
is  no  more  as  a  little  girl  writing  a  letter  to  her  mamma. 
One  poor  little  girl,  sick  and  vorking  hard  avay  from 
home.  Ach!  it  is  a  shame.  Good  Mr.  Robberman,  you 
vill  please  let  me  have  dot  letter  ? "  260 

"What  the  devil  do  you  take  us  for,  old  Pretzels?" 
said  Hondo  with  sudden  and  surprising  severity.  "You 
ain't  presumin'  to  insinuate  that  we  gents  ain't  possessed 
of  sufficient  politeness  for  to  take  an  interest  in  the  miss's 
health,  are  you?  Now,  you  go  on,  and  you  read  that  265 
scratchin'  out  loud  and  in  plain  United  States  language  . 
to  this  here  company  of  educated  society." 

Hondo  twirled  his  six-shooter  by  its  trigger  guard  and 
stood  towering  above  the  little  German,  who  at  once  began 
to  read  the  letter,  translating  the  simple  words  into  Eng-  270 
lish.     The  gang  of  rovers  stood  in  absolute  silence,  listen- 
ing intently. 

"How  old  is  that  kid?"  asked  Hondo  when  the  letter 
was  done. 

"Eleven,"  said  Fritz.  275 

"And  where  is  she  at?" 

"At  dose  rock  quarries — working.  Ach,  mein  Gott — 
little  Lena,  she  speak  of  drowning.  I  do  not  know  if  she 
vill  do  it,  but  if  she  shall  I  schwear  I  vill  dot  Peter  Hildes- 
muller  shoot  mit  a  gun."  280 

"You  Dutchers,"  said  Hondo  Bill,  his  voice  swelling 


j6o  Southern  Literary  Readings 

with  fine  contempt,  "make  me  plenty  tired.  Hirin'  out 
your  kids  to  work  when  they  ought  to  be  playin'  dolls 
in  the  sand.  ...     I  reckon  we'll  fix  your  clock  for  a 

285  while  just  to  show  what  we  think  of  your  old  cheesy 
nation.     Here,  boys!" 

Hondo  Bill  parleyed  aside  briefly  with  his  band,  and  then 

.  they  seized  Fritz  and  conveyed  him  off  the  road  to  one 
side.     Here  they  bound  him  fast  to  a  tree  with  a  couple 

290  of  lariats.     His  team  they  tied  to  another  tree  near  by. 
"We  ain't  going  to  hurt  you  bad,"  said  Hondo  reassur- 
ingly.   "  'T won't  hurt  you  to  be  tied  up  for  a  while.    We 
will  now  pass  you  the  time  of  day,  as  it  is  up  to  us  to 
depart.     Ausgespielt — nixcumrous,  Dutchy.     Don't   get 

295  any  more  impatience." 

Fritz  heard  a  great  squeaking  of  saddles  as  the  men 
mounted  their  horses.  Then  a  loud  yell  and  a  great 
clatter  of  hoofs  as  they  galloped  pell-mell  back  along  the 
Fredericksburg  road. 

300  For  more  than  two  hours  Fritz  sat  against  his  tree, 
tightly  but  not  painfully  bound.  Then  from  the  reaction 
after  his  exciting  adventure  he  sank  into  slumber.  How 
long  he  slept  he  knew  not,  but  he  was  at  last  awakened  by 
a  rough  shake.     Hands  were  untying  his  ropes.     He  was 

305  lifted  to  his  feet,  dazed,  confused  in  mind,  and  weary  of 
body.  Rubbing  his  eyes,  he  looked  and  saw  that  he  was 
again  in  the  midst  of  the  same  band  of  terrible  bandits. 
They  shoved  him  up  to  the  seat  of  his  wagon  and  placed 
the  lines  in  his  hands. 

310  "Hit  it  out  for  home,  Dutch,"  said  Hondo  Bill's  voice 
commandingly.  "You've  given  us  lots  of  trouble  and 
we 're  pleased  to  see  the  back  of  your  neck.  Spiel !  Zwei 
bier!  Vamoose!" 

Hondo  reached  out  and  gave  Blitzen  a  smart  cut  with 

315  his  quirt.     The  little  mules  sprang  ahead,  glad  to  be 


A  Chaparral  Prince  j6i 

moving  again.     Fritz  urged  them  along,  himself  dizzy  and 
muddled  over  his  fearful  adventure. 

According  to  schedule  time,  he  should  have  reached 
Fredericksburg  at  daylight.  As  it  was,  he  drove  down 
the  long  street  of  the  town  at  eleven  o'clock  a.m.  He  had  320 
to  pass  Peter  Hildesmuller's  house  on  his  way  to  the  post- 
office.  He  stopped  his  team  at  the  gate  and  called.  But 
Frau  HildesmuUer  was  watching  for  him.  Out  rushed  the 
whole  family  of  Hildesmullers. 

Frau  HildesmuUer,  fat  and  flushed,  inquired  if  he  had  a  32s 
letter  from  Lena,  and  then  Fritz  raised  his  voice  and  told 
the  tale  of  his  adventure.  He  told  the  contents  of  the 
letter  that  the  robber  had  made  him  read,  and  then  Frau 
HildesmuUer  broke  into  wild  weeping.  Her  little  Lena 
drown  herself !  Why  had  they  sent  her  from  home  ?  What  330 
could  be  done  ?  Perhaps  it  would  be  too  late  by  the  time 
they  could  send  for  her  now.  Peter  HildesmuUer  dropped 
his  meerschaum  on  the  walk  and  it  shivered  into  pieces. 

"Woman!"  he  roared  at  his  wife,  "why  did  you  let 
that  child  go  away?    It  is  your  fault  if  she  comes  home  335 
to  us  no  more." 

Every  one  knew  that  it  was  Peter  Hildesmuller's  fault, 
so  they  paid  no  attention  to  his  words. 

A  moment  afterward  a  strange,  faint  voice  was  heard 
to  call:  "Mamma!"  Frau  HildesmuUer  at  first  thought  it  340 
was  Lena's  spirit  calling,  and  then  she  rushed  to  the  rear 
of  Fritz's  covered  wagon,  and,  with  a  loud  shriek  of  joy, 
caught  up  Lena  herself,  covering  her  pale  little  face  with 
kisses  and  smothering  her  with  hugs.  Lena's  eyes  were 
heavy  with  the  deep  slumber  of  exhaustion,  but  she  345 
smiled  and  lay  close  to  the  one  she  had  longed  to  see. 
There  among  the  mail  sacks,  covered  in  a  nest  of  strange 
blankets  and  comforters,  she  had  lain  asleep  until  awakened 
by  the  voices  around  her. 


^62  Southern  Literary  Readings 

350     Fritz  stared  at  her  with  eyes  that  bulged  behind  his 
spectacles. 

*'Gott  in  Himmel!"  he  shouted.     ''How  did  you  get 
in  that  wagon?    Arn  I  going  crazy  as  well  as  to  be  mur- 
dered and  hanged  by  robbers  this  day?" 
355      "You  brought  her  to  us,  Fritz,"  cried  Herr  Hildes- 
muller.     "How  can  we  ever  thank  you  enough?" 

"Tell  mamma  how  you  came  in  Fritz's  wagon,"  said 
Frau  HildesmuUer. 

"I  don't  know,"  said  Lena.     "But  I  know  how  I  got 
360  away  from  the  hotel.     The  Prince  brought  me." 

"By  the  Emperor's  crown!"     shouted  Fritz,  "we  are 
all  going  crazy." 

"I  always  knew  he  would  come,"  said  Lena,  sitting 
down  on  her  bundle  of  bedclothes  on  the  sidewalk.  "  Last 
365  night  he  came  with  his  armed  knights  and  captured  the 
ogre's  castle.  They  broke  the  dishes  and  kicked  down 
the  doors.  They  pitched  Mr.  Maloney  into  a  barrel  of 
rain  water  and  threw  flour  all  over  Mrs.  Maloney.  The 
workmen  in  the  hotel  jumped  out  of  the  windows  and  ran 
370  into  the  woods  when  the  knights  began  firing  their  guns. 
They  wakened  me  up  and  I  peeped  down  the  stair.  And 
then  the  Prince  came  up  and  wrapped  me  in  the  bedclothes 
and  carried  me  out.  He  was  so  tall  and  strong  and  fine. 
His  face  was  as  rough  as  a  scrubbing  brush,  and  he  talked 
375  soft  and  kind  and  smelled  of  schnapps.  He  took  me  on 
his  horse  before  him  and  we  rode  away  among  the  knights. 
He  held  me  close  and  I  went  to  sleep  that  way,  and  did  n't 
wake  up  till  I  got  home. ' ' 

"  Rubbish ! ' '  cried  Fritz  Bergmann.    ' '  Fairy  tales !    How 
380 did  you  come  from  the  quarries  to  my  wagon?" 

"The  Prince  brought  me,"  said  Lena,  confidently. 
And  to  this  day  the  good  people  of  Fredericksburg 
haven't  been  able  to  make  her  give  any  other  explanation. 


HILTON  ROSS  GREER 

Hilton  Ross  Greer  was  bom  in  the  little  hamlet  of 
Hawkins,  in  the  heart  of  the  northeast  Texas  woods,  on 
December  lo,  1878.  He  was  left  fatherless  in  infancy, 
and  his  mother  removed  with  her  family  to  Pittsburg, 
Texas,  where  the  boy  spent  the  formative  period  of  his 
life.  Reared  under  the  tutelage  of  his  mother,  a  teacher 
of  rare  mental  attainments  and  moral  strength,  he  entered 
the  schoolroom  at  the  early  age  of  four  years.  He  fin- 
ished the  school  course  at  the  age  of  thirteen,  graduating 
as  the  youngest  in  his  class.  Young  Greer  was  at  once 
forced  into  the  commercial  life  of  his  home  town,  but  after 
a  few  years  he  entered  the  field  of  journalism  and  is 
now  managing  editor  of  the  Amarillo  News.  For  a  time 
Mr.  Greer,  like  O.  Henry,  was  employed  as  a  clerk  in  the 
State  Land  Office  at  Austin,  and  at  this  period  he  took 
up  some  special  work  in  the  University  of  Texas.  His 
health  began  to  fail,  however,  and  he  went  away  into 
the  southwest  Texas  country  for  rest  and  recuperation, 
but  soon  returned  to  active  newspaper  work.  During 
all  these  years  he  has  followed  consistently  his  bent 
toward  poetry,  writing  lyric  and  narrative  poems  that 
have  called  forth  cordial  commendation  from  reviewers 
in  this  country  and  abroad. 

The  chief  characteristics  of  Mr.  Greer's  verse  are  its 
lyrical  sweetness  and  rich  melody.  He  sings  with  a  spon- 
taneity and  rush  of  feeling  which  beget  confidence  and 
answering  melody  in  the  hearts  of  his  readers.  His 
ear  for  true  cadences  and  musical  combinations  is  very 
keen,  and  he  rarely  allows  a  false  note  or  discord  to  creep 
into  his  verses.  In  onomatapoeia  and  alliterative  effects 
he  reminds  one  of  Poe,  and  in  quaintness  of  diction  and 
turn  of  phrase  he  is  constantly  suggesting  Lanier. 


{363] 


A  PRAIRIE  PRAYER 

And  this  prayer  I  make 
Knowing  that  Nature  never  did  betray 
The  heart  that  loved  her. — ^Wordsworth. 

Not  crouched,  a-cloistered,  upon  servile  knee, 

With  dull,  down-groping  eyes — 

But  (no  less  reverently) 
Standing,  beneath  Thy  searching  noonday  skies. 
With  gaze  uplifted,  and  with  soul  laid  bare 
To  the  keen  cleansing  of  Thy  sun  and  air, 

I,  Lord,  with  free, 
Full,  frank,  unfaltering  tongue  would  speak  with  Thee: 

Worn  with  the  world,  with  man-made  wounds  a-smart, 

That  I  might  heal  my  heart, 
To  these  wide  prairie  solitudes  I  fled. 
Where — with  no  roof  save  Heaven  overhead, 
Green  Earth  my  house  by  day,  by  night  my  bed  — 
I  might  ungyve  my  soul,  too  long  unfree, 
And  with  clear  eye  that  did  but  dimly  see 
Through  the  Time's  trade-fogged,  creed-clogged  airs, 
Roving  fair  Nature's  face,  not  unawares 
Might  look  on  Thine,  O  Lord,  nor  blinded  be : 
And  with  tense  ear  might  heed  'neath  Nature's  tone 
The  deepmost  underword  that  is  Thine  own. 

And  I  have  heard  and  seen  Thee.     Earth  and  sky 
Close  confidants  of  spirit-ear  and  eye, 

Noon-clear  to  me 
Have  voiced  and  visioned  Thee  most  humanly. 

[364] 


A  Prairie  Prayer  365 

Yea,  e'en  the  least  of  slenderest  spears  that  stir 
Sunward  finds  tongue  as  Thine  interpreter : 
Blue  blossom-script  that  stars  the  page  I  scan, 
In  fragrant  phrase  proclaims  God  loveth  Man; 

And  outward,  lo ! 
Beyond  all  bounds  the  finite  thought  may  span, 
Sweep  these  vast  plains,  a  seeming  sea  that  rounds 
And  rounds — on — on — in  undulations  dim 
Toward  Earth's  last,  loneliest,  utmost,  edgemost  rim ! 
Yet  this  wide,  awful  sea  hath  certain  bounds — 
Thy  will  hath  fixed,  Thy  hand  hath  set  them  so: 

Only  Thy  love,  I  know. 
For  Thy  poor,  needy  kinsman,  cramped  below, 
Thy  pity  for  his  poignant  soul-distress. 
Thy  largeness,  shaming  all  his  littleness. 
Are  what  these  prairies  seem,  unbounded,  limitless ! 

This  have  Thy  prairies  taught.    And  ere  I  go 
Back  to  my  world  to  bear  a  braver  part. 
Let  me  ensky  them  ever  with  my  heart ! 
Nay,  Lord,  refashion  me,  reshape  me  so, 

My  soul,  new-made,  shall  be  >. 

A  prairie,  broad  and  free, 
With  sun- warmed  space  for  all  humanity : 
Let  winds  of  Purpose  sweep  it  clean  each  morn 
Of  ills  outworn  and  doubtings  shadow-bom : 
Let  Faith  spring  lushly  after  storms  of  pain,  ; 

As  grasses  after  rain : 
Let  selfless  aim  and  generous  intent 
Burst  into  blossom,  rich  and  redolent : 
Let  thoughts,  like  teeming  flocks,  find  large  increase, 

Full-rounded  grow,  and  strong,  j 

That  from  their  goodly  fleece 

The  honest  weaver,  Art, 


j66  Southern  Literary  Readings 

May  shape  some  rare  enduring  cloth  of  song, 
To  cloak  keen  winter  from  one  shrinking  heart : 
And  lastly,  let  such  deep  serenity 
As  this  rapt  peace  of  noonday  fold  it  in 
Throughout  all  times  of  tumult  that  may  be : 
Yea,  make  my  soul  a  prairie,  Lord.    Amen. 


A  MOCKBIRD  MATINEE 

Ever  spend  an  afternoon 
Of  a  day  in  jocund  June 
At  a  mockbird  matinee  ? 
Never  ?     Honest  ?    Well-a-day ! 
Where 've  you  lived,  sir,  anyway? 

There 's  no  hint  of  trade  or  town 
In  the  path  one  loiters  down ; 
Not  a  thought  of  shops  or  desks 
Where  the  sun  weaves  arabesques, 
Fragile-fair  and  fairy-hued. 
In  the  wood's  still  solitude; 
Not  a  thing  but  God's  pure  air. 
Shine  and  shadow  ever5rwhere ! 

Pick  yourself  a  mossy  seat 

In  some  dim  and  cool  retreat. 

And  with  sighs  of  deep  content. 

Settle  down,  all  indolent. 

With  your  head  against  the  trunk 

Of  some  hoary  forest  monk : 

Bare  your  forehead  while  the  breeze 

Plies  its  gentle  ministries : 


A  Mockhird  Matinee  ^6^ 

Close  your  eyes  in  rapture  deep, 

Feel  yourself  ^row  sleepy — -sleep — 

Then,  a-sudden — hist!  astir 

From  some  hidden  chorister, 

As  along  a  branching  spray 

Where  the  sunbeams  plash  and  play 

Fares  he  forth  in  modest  coat, 

Flinging  from  his  throbbing  throat 

Clear  cascades  of  tinkling  song, 

Silver-sweet  and  subtle-strong : 

Strains  of  soul-compelling  sound. 

Streams  of  symphony  unbound : 

Lures  of  lyric  riotry, 

Miracles  of  melody, 

Soft  at  times,  and  sweet  and  low 

As  the  slow  and  measured  flow 

Of  some  placid  river-tide 

Through  warm  meadows,  lush  and  wide : 

Or  some  breast  aflame,  afire. 

Wild  with  passion,  hot  desire. 

High  and  high  and  high  and  higher. 

Leap  the  frantic  notes  until 

Fen  and  forest,  haunt  and  hill. 

Pulse  and  pant  and  throb  and  thrill, 

Overawed  and  overcome 

By  the  keen  delirium ! 

Then,  as  if  such  riotings 

Had  consumed  symphonic  springs, 

For  a  solemn  space — a  hush!  i 

But  once  more  a  rhythmic  gush. 

Flashing  downward,  fleet  and  free, 

Mad  with  mirthful  minstrelsy : 

Ravishing  the  raptured  ear 


J  68  Southern  Literary  Readings 

With  a  cadence  crystal-clear 
As  the  laugh  of  limpid  rain 
In  autumnal  fields  of  grain : 
Stilling  spirit-strife  and  stress 
With  a  rune  of  restf ulness : 
Purging  blood  and  breast  and  brain 
Of  their  poignant  pangs  of  pain : 
Rousing  noble  aims  and  true 
In  the  slumbrous  soul  of  you ! 


WILLIAM   LAWRENCE   CHITTENDEN 

William  Lawrence  Chittenden,  the  poet-ranchman,  was 
born  in  Montclair,  New  Jersey,  March  23,  1862.  After 
receiving  a  common-school  education  in  his  native  town 
he  removed  to  St.  Louis,  Missouri,  to  go  into  business. 
When  he  was  twenty-five  the  fascination  of  ranch  life 
led  him  to  give  up  his  work  in  the  city  and  go  farther 
west. ,  He  took  charge  of  a  ranch  in  Jones  County,  Texas, 
and  here  for  more  than  a  dozen  years  he  lived  the  life  of 
a  "cowman,"  galloping  over  the  free  prairies,  following  the 
trail,  camping  on  the  Divide,  helping  at  the  roundups,  and 
attending  the  cowboys'  Christmas  balls.  But  all  this  time 
he  was  writing  verses,  "the  offsprings,"  as  he  says,  "of 
solitude — bom  in  idle  hours  on  a  Texas  ranch."  These 
were  published  in  various  newspapers  and  journals,  and 
in  1893  h^  gathered  the  best  of  them  into  a  volume  called 
Ranch  Verses.  The  vigor  and  freshness  of  material  and 
the  lively  and  rollicking  style  of  the  verse  attracted  favor- 
able notice ;  and  the  public  read  the  poems  with  evident 
relish  and  pleasure,  no  less  than  twelve  editions  being 
called  for  within  as  man}^  years. 

Mr.  Chittenden  has  written  society  verse,  personal 
poems,  and  some  lyrics,  but  in  his  portrayal  of  Western 
ranch  life  lies  his  surest  claim  to  literary  fame.  John  A. 
Lomax  in  an  essay  on  his  work  says:  "He  has  caught 
the  genuine  spirit  of  the  prairies  as  reflected  in  the  low- 
ing cattle;  the  hooting  owls;  the  howling  cayotes;  the 
whispering  mesquite  leaves;  the  moaning  northers;  the 
dull,  brown,  broad  expanse  of  the  wide-spread,  eternal 
plains,  dreary  and  big  with  the  loneliness  of  the  open  sea." 

Since  1900  Mr.  Chittenden  has  spent  his  time  traveling 
in  search  of  new  material  and  fresh  local  color  for  the 
poetry  which  he  is  continually  producing.  In  1909  he 
published  a  volume,  Bermuda  Verses,  voicing  the  beauties 
of  the  scenery  around  his  home  near  Bailey's  Bay  on  the 
Bermuda  Islands. 

24  [j6p] 


THE   RANCHMAN'S   RIDE 

Hurrah  for  a  ride  on  the  prairies  free, 

On  a  fiery,  untamed  steed, 
Where  the  curlews  fly  and  the  cayotes  cry, 
And  the  fragrant  breeze  goes  whispering  by ; 

Hurrah !  and  away  with  speed. 

With  left  hand  light  on  the  bridle-rein,  • 

And  saddle-girths  cinched  behind, 
With  lariat  tied  at  the  pommers  side, 
And  lusty  bronchos,  true  and  tried, 

We  11  race  with  the  whistling  wind. 

We  are  off  and  away,  like  a  flash  of  light 

As  swift  as  the  shooting  star, 
As  an  arrow  flies  towards  its  distant  prize. 
On !  on  we  whirl  toward  the  shimmering  skies ; 

Hurrah!  hurrah!  hurrah! 

As  free  as  a  bird  o'er  billowy  sea. 

We  skim  the  flowered  Divide, 
Like  a  seaniew  strong  we  fly  along, 
While  the  f;arth  resounds  with  galloping  song 

As  we  plunge  through  the  fragrant  tide. 

Avaunt  with  your  rides  in  crowded  towns ! 

Give  me  the  prairies  free, 
Where  the  curlews  fly  and  the  cayotes  cry. 
And  the  heart  expands  'neath  the  azure  sky; 

Ah !  that 's  the  ride  for  me. 

I370] 


Old  Fort  Phantom  Hill  j'/i 

OLD  FORT  PHANTOAl   HILL 

(An  abandoned  fort  in  Jones  County,  Texas.    Supposed  to  he  haunted.) 

To  THE  Veterans  of  the  Blue  and  the  Gray 

On  the  breezy  Texas  border,   on  the  prairies  far  away, 
Where  the  antelope  is  grazing  and   the  Spanish  ponies 

play; 
Where  the  tawny    cattle    wander    through    the    golden 

incensed  hours, 
And  the  sunlight  woos  a  landscape  clothed  in  royal  robes 

of  flowers ; 
Where  the  Elm  and  Clear  Fork  mingle,  as  they  journey  5 

to  the  sea, 
And  the  night-wind  sobs  sad  stories  o'er  a  wild  and  lonely 

lea; 
Where  of  old  the  dusky  savage  and  the   shaggy  bison 

trod, 
And  the  reverent  plains  are  sleeping  'midst  drowsy  dreams 

of  God; 
Where  the  twilight  loves  to  linger,  e'er  night's  sable  robes 

are  cast 
'Round  grim-ruined,  spectral  chimneys,  telling  stories  of  10 

the  past, 
There  upon  an  airy  mesa,  close  beside  a  whispering  rill, 
There   to-day   you'll   find   the    ruins   of   the    Old    Fort 

Phantom  Hill. 

Years    ago,    so    runs    the    legend,    'bout    the    year    of 

Fifty-three, 
This  old  fort  was  first  established  by  the  gallant  soldier, 

Lee; 
.And  to-day  the  restless  spirits  of  his  proud  and  martial  is 

band 


J  72  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Haunt  those  ghostly,  gloomy  chimneys  in  the  Texas  border 

land. 
There  once  every  year   at  midnight,  when  the  chilling 

Northers  roar, 
And    the    storm-king    breathes   its   thunder    from   the 

heights  of  Labrador, 
When    the    vaulted    gloom    re-echoes    with    the    owl's 

"  whit-tu-woo ! " 
20  And  the  stealthy  cayote  answers   with  his   lonely,   long 

"ki-oo!" 
Then    strange    phantoms   flit    in   silence    through    the 

weeping  mesquite  vale, 
And  the  reveilles  come  sounding  o'er  the  old  McKenzie 

Trail, 
Then  the  muffled  drums  beat  muster,  and  the  bugles  sadly 

trill, 
And  the  vanished  soldiers  gather  'round  the  heights  of 

Phantom  Hill. 

25  Then  pale  bivouac  fJres  are  lighted   and   those  gloomy 

chimneys  glow, 
While  the  grizzled  veterans  muster  from  the  taps  of  long  ago, 
Lee  and  Johnston  and  McKenzie,   Grant  and  Jackson, 

Custer,  too, 
Gather  there  in  peaceful  silence  waiting  for  their  last 

review ; 
Blue  and  gray  at  length   united  on  the  high  redoubts 

of  fame, 
80  Soldiers  all  in  one  grand  army,  that  will  answer  in  God 's 

name. 
Yes,  they  rest  on  heights  of  glory  in  that  fair,  celestial 

world, 
"Where  the  war-drum  throbs  no  longer,  and  the  battle- 
flags  are  furled." 


Old  Fort  Phantom  Hill  jyj 

And  to=day  the  birds  are  singing  where  was  heard  the 

cannon's  roar, 
For  the  gentle  doves  are  nesting  'midst  those  ruins  of  the 

war. 
Yes,  the  mocking-birds  re-echo:  "Peace  on  earth,  to  men  35 

good  will," 
And  the   "swords   are   turned   to  ploughshares"   in  the 

land  of  Phantom  Hill. 


HARRY  STILLWELL  EDWARDS 

One  of  the  most  popular  of  the  later  writers  of  fiction  in 
the  South  is  Harry  Stillwell  Edwards  of  Macon,  Georgia. 
He  was  born  in  that  city  on  April  3,  1855.  Thrown  on 
his  own  resources  at  an  early  age,  he  educated  himself 
largely  by  night  study  while  employed  as  a  government 
clerk  in  Washington,  D.  C.  He  returned  to  Macon  while 
yet  in  his  teens  and  became  a  bookkeeper.  He  continued 
his  night  study  and  put  in  a  part  of  his  time  at  Mercer 
University,  being  graduated  at  the  age  of  twenty-one 
from  the  law  department  of  that  university.  He  opened 
an  office,  but  he  seems  to  have  been  more  interested  in 
literature  than  in  his  law  practice,  and  for  several  years 
he  engaged  in  newspaper  w^ork.  In  1886  he  began  writing 
stories  for  the  magazines,  his  first  successful  effort  being 
Elder  Brown's  Backslide,  published  in  Harper's  Monthly. 
In  1896  his  mystery  story,  Sons  and  Fathers,  won  the  first 
prize  in  a  ten-thou^nd-dollar  prize-story  contest  con- 
ducted by  the  Chicago  Record.  He  published  another 
novel  shortly  after  this,  continuing  a  suggestion  made  in 
Sons  and  Fathers,  and  called  it  The  Marbeau  Cousins. 
Two  volumes  of  collected  short  stories  and  a  small  sheaf 
of  lyric  poems  complete  the  sum  of  Mr.  Edwards's  pub- 
lished work.  Much  of  his  prose  has  in  it  that  touch  of 
art  which  gives  it  rank  as  literature. 

Aside  from  Mr.  Edwards's  literary  work,  his  family 
and  his  home — a  beautiful  country  place  just  outside 
Macon — are  the  chief  joys  of  his  life.  He  is  especially 
fond  of  children,  and  it  is  said  that  every  child  in  Macon 
knows  him.  Since  1900  he  has  been  postmaster  of 
Macon;  but  his  leisure  moments  are  devoted  to  writing, 
and  we  may  yet  look  forward  to  many  excellent  stories 
and  poems  from  his  pen. 


[374] 


"SHADOW" 
A  Christmas  Story 

A  negro  convict,  awake,  lay  on  his  back  in  the  log  bar- 
racks. Wearied  fonns  stretched  out  in  slumber  in  long 
lines  to  the  right  and  left  of  him.  A  chain  ran  from  his 
shackles,  as  from  theirs,  to  a  stout  beam,  holding  him 
prisoner.  5 

He  was  only  a  boy  when  the  shackles  were  riveted  on  his 
ankles,  his  crime  an  error  born  of  ignorance  and  the  lack 
of  moral  training.  Six  years  had  passed  since,  dazed  and 
terrified,  he  had  been  led  from  the  courthouse,  and  at 
twenty  he  still  owed  the  State  of  Alabama  fourteen  years  10 
of  servitude.  Life  for  him  had  been  fierce  and  full  of 
agony.  Down  in  the  black  darkness  of  coal-mines  he  had 
labored  until  accident  made  him  useless  and  gave  him  back 
to  daylight  and  the  great  green  world  above.  Life  then 
settled  into  the  dull  routine  of  the  camp  and  a  hostler' s  is 
duties,  the  darkness  behind  him  a  nightmare,  the  days  of 
his  lost  freedom  a  dream.  The  freedom  to  come  was  too 
far  away  for  his  imagination  to  compass. 

From  the  right  and  left  of  him  came  the  deep  breathing 
of  tired  men.  Sleep  with  the  convict  is  rest  in  the  full  20 
and  perfect  significance  of  the  word,  and  he  plunges  into  it 
after  his  coarse  evening  meal  as  into  a  tide.  That  which 
kept  the  boy  awake  was  necessarily  something  novel.  It 
was  not  pain  Had  he  not  felt  the  lash  and  the  crush  of 
falling  coal?  Nor  sorrow;  for  behind  him,  among  the  25 
far-away  Georgian  hills,  was  a  cabin  about  which  as  a  child 
he  had  played,  as  all  children  play,  and  the  sad,  undying 
memory  of  it  shut  out  all  other  sorrows.     Nor  was  it  a 

[375] 


2j6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

mere  yearning  for  freedom;  that  had  long  since  given 

30  place  to  a  dull,  unlifting  despair.  All  these — sorrow, 
pain,  and  despair — had  been  the  companions  of  his  solitude 
in  many  a  night  of  gloom,  keeping  watch  as  he  slept. 
The  strange  new  companion  of  his  solitude,  from  whose 
divine  presence  this  night  all  others  withdrew,  was  Hope. 

35  As  he  lay,  the  darkness  fell  away  beyond  the  radiance 
of  his  visitor,  and  three  faces  shone  out  as  clearly  as  the 
white  cloudlets  in  the  blue  of  summer  skies.  Sunshine, 
Moonbeam,  and  Starlight  stood  by  his  side. 

Sunshine,    Moonbeam,   and   Starlight!    When   all   the 

40  branches  and  departments  of  the  State  government 
refugeed  into  the  highlands  away  from  the  fever  and 
beyond  the  vexations  of  quarantine,  the  convicts  came  to 
Wetumpka;  and  on  days  when  the  prison  commissioner 
came  to  inspect  the  camp,  with  him  were  the  three,  each 

45  less  than  a  dozen  years  of  age.  And  Sunshine  was  the 
youngest  of  them  all. 

"Take  care  of  them,  Shadow,"  he  said  to  the  hostler 
convict;  and  the  bldck  boy,  with  the  memory  of  his 
"own  white  folks"  far  away  filling  his  heart  with  joy,  took 

50  care  of  them  proudly  and  gratefully.  Six  years  had  passed 
since  he  had  looked  on  childhood.  Take  care  of  them? 
Aye,  if  necessary,  he  would  lay  down  his  life  for  them. 
Instead,  he  rigged  up  swings  of  plow-lines,  marked  off 
hop-scotch  diagrams  for  their  little  feet,  and  taught  them 

55  how  to  ride  on  the  back  of  a  superannuated  mule.  He 
filled  their  hours  with  excitement  and  pleasure,  and  when 
they  wearied  of  exercise,  lying  in  the  shade  of  a  great  oak, 
he  touched  their  hearts  with  the  story  of  his  misfortunes. 
He  drew  for  them  graphic  pictures  of  his  terrible  life  in 

60  the  coal-mines,  of  the  men  who  work  where  eternal  dark- 
ness reigns,  and  the  accidents  in  which  lives  go  out  like 
the  light  of  snuffed  candles.    And,  looking  over  the  hills,  he 


"Shadow''  377 

told,  too,  of  that  cabin  where  he  was  born;  of  his  mammy 
at  the  wash-tub,  singing  hymns  that  Hnger  now  as  the 
voices  of  dead  slaves  on  old  plantations;  and  of  the  "little  es 
miss"  and  her  child  friends  who  came  down  to  the  **big 
white  house"  in  the  summer,  and  thence  to  the  gin-house 
to  play  in  the  heaped-up  cotton.  Not  a  line  of  it  all  was 
gone  from  his  memory,  not  a  picture  was  blurred. 

And  Sunshine,  Moonbeam,  and  Starlight,  touched  by  the  70 
divine  pity  which  is  eloquent  in  the  hearts  of  women  old 
and  young,  looked  into  the  sad  black  face  of  their  friend. 

"  Good-by,  Shadow, ' '  they  said,  when  the  quarantine  was 
lifted  and  they  had  come  for  the  last  time.  **  Good-by. 
We  are  going  to  get  you  out  by  Christmas.  Only  you  75 
must  promise  to  be  good,  always.  Will  you?"  And 
Shadow,  with  tears  on  his  cheeks  from  eyes  long  dry, 
pledged  himself  before  the  good  God  looking  down  on 
them,  his  messengers,  to  be  perfect  forever  and  forever. 

And  the  memory  of  it  all  filled  the  darkness  with  a  flood  so 
of  beauty,  as  though  Sunshine,  Moonbeam,  and  Starlight 
were  indeed  by  his  side.  Not  for  a  moment  had  he  doubted 
them.  So  Hope  furled  her  wings  above  him  on  Christmas 
Eve,  and  he  lay  waiting  with  wide-opened  eyes.  Sunshine, 
Moonbeam,  and  Starlight,  where  were  they?  The  floor  ss 
vibrated  under  the  convict's  head,  a  lantern  flashed,  and 
a  guard  stood  over  him.  One  word  broke  the  silence  — 
one  word,  his  own  name. 

"Shadow!" 

It  was  the  day  before  Christmas,  and  nothing  had  been  90 
accomplished  for  Shadow.  Freeing  a  convict  was  not  the 
trivial  matter  imagined.  The  commissioner,  besieged  and 
wearied  out  of  discretion,  after  many  laughing  refusals 
referred  the  little  petitioners  to  the  governor.  They  knew 
the  governor.    Almost  daily  they  saw  him  pass  on  their  93 


57^  Southern  Literary  Readings 

block,  and  sometimes  he  laid  a  hand  on  a  curly  head  in 
passing.  But  he  never  transacted  lousiness  outside  his 
office,  he  said;  never.  And  always  he  smiled  and  passed 
along.     They  must  come  and  see  him,  he  said.     But  the 

100  governor  was  never  in  when  they  called,  timidly;  at  least 
he  was  never  in  sight.  Then  their  last  day  of  grace 
arrived,  and  they  charged  Capitol  Hill  once  more.  Ter- 
race and  portico  fell  quickly  before  their  assault.  The 
historic  spot  where  Jefferson  Davis  delivered  his  *'inaugu- 

105  ral "  over  the  cradle  of  the  great  Confederacy,  and  launched 
the  war  which  was  to  end  in  freedom  for  all  the  black 
people,  was  simply  space  to  be  crossed,  and  they  crossed  it. 
They  carried  their  advance  into  the  governor's  room. 
They  came  without  ceremony;  and  with  the  red  of  their 

110  country's  flag  on  their  cheeks,  its  blue  within  their  eager 

eyes,  and  within  their  parted  lips  its  gleaming  white,  they 

stormed  his  great   chair,  planted  their  victorious  arms 

about  him,  and  demanded  an  unconditional  surrender. 

The  governor  seemed  to  yield.     They  made  a  transient 

115  summer  in  the  still,  cbld  room  and  awoke  a  youth  that  long 
had  slept  within  his  heart — a  youth  full  of  romance  and 
of  love.  Romance,  love — are  not  these  born  ever  under 
the  sunshine,  the  moonbeams,  and  the  starlight?  The 
governor  seemed  to  yield;  he  stroked  each  curly  head  and 

120  learned  each  name.  He  remembered  when  their  respective 
parents  were  married.  He  knew  more  about  them  than 
did  the  little  ones  themselves.     Then  the  crash  came. 

"Pardon  a  convict?     No."     The  man  had  not  surren- 
dered.    The  smiling  face  faded  into  a  grave,  cold  face. 

125  The  governor  they  knew  had  vanished,  and  a  new  governor, 
grave,  courteous,  and  firm,  but  not  nearly  so  nice,  had 
taken  his  place. 

But  in  the  sunshine  the  ice  is  melted  at  last ;  and  in  the 
moonbeams  and  the  light  of  the  stars  love  finds  a  way. 


''Shadow''  J7P 

Reason  was  powerless,  refusal  impotent.  The  illogical  130 
trinity  sat  on  his  knees  and  the  arms  of  his  chair  and 
admitted  all  that  he  urged  to  be  true.  They  agreed  with 
him  in  his  conception  of  a  governor's  duty;  they  even 
recognized  the  claims  of  good  public  policy  to  be  against 
them ;  and  when  he  had  finished  they  put  their  arms  about  iss 
him  and  asked  mercy  for  their  friend  Shadow. 

"It  wotdd  not  be  so  bad," said  Sunshine,  "if  we  hadn't 
promised."    And  the  governor  laughed. 

How  potent  is  innocence,  how  weak  at  times  is  wisdom ! 
Driven  from  his  positions  one  by  one,  the  beleaguered  uo 
governor  took  refuge  behind  the  judicial  ermine.  Shadow 
had  been  placed  in  prison  by  the  judge.  The  judge  was 
really  the  man  to  be  seen.  It  would  never  do  for  the 
governor  arbitrarily  to  reverse  the  action  of  the  judge. 
And  then  he  sighed  a  great  sigh  of  relief.  Why  had  he  145 
not  thought  of  that  before? 

"Give  us  a  letter  to  the  judge,  then,"  said  Sunshine, 
sturdily.     And  she  handed  him  his  pen,  point  reversed. 

"Good!"  said  the  governor.  "Yes;  he  is  the  man 
you  should  see.     Do  you  know  the  judge?"  150 

Yes,  they  knew  the  judge.  Almost  daily  they  saw  him 
pass  on  their  block,  and  sometimes  he,  too,  laid  a  hand  on 
their  heads  in  passing.  But  they  had  never  thought  of 
asking  his  help  in  getting  Shadow  out. 

"If  the  judge  says  you  may  let  him  go,"  said  Sunshine,  155 
with  a  tremulous  little  note  in  her  voice,  "will  you  do  it?" 

"Aha!"  exclaimed  the  governor,  with  apparent  irrele- 
vancy. And  yet  it  was  pertinent  and  relevant.  It  meant, 
this  little  "  aha  "  spoken  to  himself  and  the  thoughts  within 
him,  that  the  logic  of  the  situation  had  hemmed  him  in.  100 
He  must  say  "Yes"  or  admit  that  he  had  been  insincere. 
Then  he  remembered  that  a  great  murder  trial  was  on, 
and  approaching  its  close,   and  that   even  a  telephone 


j8o  Southern  Literary  Readings 

message  could  hardly  make  its  way  into  the  courthouse, 
165  so  dense  was  the  crowd. 

"Yes,"  he  answered  guardedly,  "if  the  judge  says  I 

may,  I  shall  have  to  do  something  for  Shadow.     But," 

he  added,  pitying  their  situation,  "you  cannot  see  the 

judge  to-day.     He  is  engaged  in  trying  a  man  for  his  life, 

170  and  hopes  to  get  through  before  Christmas." 

The  three  answered  not.     Serenely  they  went  forth.     A 

friendly  Irishman  in  a  police  uniform  was  at  the  foot  of 

the  steps  dreaming  day-dreams,  perhaps  of  the  "childer" 

at  home.     His  smiling  face  was  an  invitation,  and  they 

175  asked  him  the  way  to  the  courthouse. 

"  Coourthouse  ? "  he  said.  "  Coourthouse  ?  An'  why 
should  the  likes  of  ye  babies  that  ye  arre  be  huntin'  for-r 
the  coourthouse  ? ' ' 

"They  are  trying  a  man  for  his  life,"  said  Sunshine, 
180 getting  her  logic  mixed,  "and  we  have  a  message  to  the 
judge  from  the  governor!"     The  Irishman  glanced  at  the 
official  envelope  and  whistled. 
"An'  is't  imporr'nl??"  he  said. 

"It  may  get  a  man  out  of  prison,"  said  Sunshine,  "if 
185  we  can  get  there  in  time." 

"It's  get  there  in  time  ye  will,"  said  the  Irishman, 
"if  I  have  to  carry  the  last  darlin'  of  ye  in  me  arms  an' 
on  me  head.     Come  along  wid  me ! " 

Every  corridor,  every  foot  of  courtroom  space,  was 
190  occupied  with  excited  men,  and  the  way  was  blocked. 
Over  the  murmur  of  their  voices  rang  the  voice  of  the 
defendant's  attorney  as  he  pleaded  for  his  client's  life. 
A  whisper  ran  through  the  crowd.  The  Irishman  started 
it.  They  looked  with  wonder  on  the  three  dainty  messen- 
i95gers,  and  opened  a  path  for  them.  "Message  from  the 
governor?"  What  could  it  mean?  The  tension  was  at 
its  highest  pitch.     The  sheriff,  lifting  his  hand  at  the 


"Shadow''  381 

entrance  \p  the  bar,  waited  until  the  judge's  gavel  fell, 
and  repeated  the  whisper  aloud — "a  message  from  the 
governor,  your  Honor!"  200 

And  up  the  aisle  trudged  the  children,  while  a  strange 
silence  settled  over  the  great  throng;  and  in  open  contempt 
of  court,  they  chmbed  up  to  the  judge  and  presented  their 
credentials,  all  talking  while  the  bewildered  official  read 
the  message.  A  smile  dawned  on  his  stern  face  which  205 
echoed  in  silence  from  the  crowd,  if  such  things  can  be, 
while  he  wiped  his  glasses. 

"Suspend  for  five  minutes,"  he  said  to  the  lawyer  who 
had  been  speaking.     The  lawyer  suspended  willingly,  and 
his  unchanging  gaze  fixed  on  the  children,  kept  the  eyes  210 
of  every  juror  riveted  there.     With  the  children  by  his 
side,  the  judge  examined  a  record  handed  up  by  the  clerk. 

"And  did  the  governor  send  you  to  me  with  the  note? " 
he  asked,  as  he  turned  the  pages. 

"Yes,  sir,"  said  Sunshine.     "And  he  laughed  too."  215 

"Oh,  he  laughed,  did  he?"  The  judge  laughed,  too. 
"I  see,  I  see."  And  then  he  read  from  the  record,  "  'twenty 
years  for  robbery ! '  And  he  was  a  boy  when  it  occurred ! ' ' 
He  shook  his  head.  "Yes,  the  sentence  was  too  severe — 
too  severe,  when  his  youth  is  considered."  His  pen  220 
swept  across  the  governor's  note  a  few  times,  he  smiled 
grimly,  a  path  opened  up  through  the  throng,  and  Sun- 
shine, Moonbeam,  and  Starlight  fading  from  the  scene, 
left  Justice  at  work  in  the  chill  and  gloom.  The  State 
lost  its  case  when  the  counsel  for  the  defense  resumed  225 
with  the  words:  "Children  like  those,  my  friends,  await 
their  father's  home-coming  this  Christmas  eve." 

But  they  knew  nothing  of  this.     Thirty  minutes  after 
leaving  the  governor's  room  they  entered  stormily,  glee- 
fully, and  planted  their  victorious  colors  over  the  citadel  230 
and  its  vanquished  custodian.     He  learned  their  story 


j82  Southern  Literary  Readings 

in  amazement,  and  looked  with  comic  gravity  on  their 
flushed  faces. 

"The  republican  form  of  government  is  a  failure,"  he 
235  said  at  length.     ''The  infantry  has  usurped  the  executive 
and  suspended  the  judiciary!'' 

"And  may  we  tell  Shadow  he  is  free?"  asked  Sunshine. 
"Yes;  let  freedom  be  his  Christmas  present."  The 
child's  eyes  swam  in  softer  light. 
240  '  *  Write  it  down  for  me,  please ! ' '  Again  she  handed  him 
the  pen,  this  time  point  foremost,  the  little  hS.nd  trembling 
with  excitement.  And  taking  his  pen,  the  chief  executive 
wrote  this,  the  strangest,  sweetest,  gentlest  public  docu- 
ment that  ever  issued  from  Alabama's  Capitol : 

245  "Dear  Sunshine:  I  have  looked  into  the  case  of  your  friend, 
vShadow,  from  Crenshaw  County,  and  am  inclined  to  think  that  his 
sentence  is  too  severe.  His  term  is  twenty  years  from  September  23, 
1893.  I  have  about  made  up  my  mind  to  cut  his  sentence  to  less  than 
one  third.  You  can  let  Shadow  know  this,  and  save  this  letter  to 
250  show,  if  needed.  He  had  three  mighty  nice  girls  to  beg  for  him,  and, 
you  see,  I  am  giving  him  on  more  than  four  years  for  each  girl. 

"Your  friend, 

"The  Governor." 

Late  that  night  Sunshine's  father  succeeded  in  getting 
255  connection  by  telephone  with  Wetumpka,  and  Shadow 
was  brought  into  the  superintendent's  ofhce. 

"Do  you  know  who  this  is.  Shadow?"  The  child's 
voice  annihilated  space  as  it  had  annihilated  opposition. 

"Mis'  Sunshine!" 
260      "Well,  Shadow,  the  governor  says  you  will  be  free  in 
the  morning,  and  I  am  so  glad." 

Back  over  the  wires  came  a  great  voice  shouting.  It 
was  the  wordless  expression  of  a  soul  whose  chains  had 
been  broken  asunder,  and  to  whom  the  whole  beautiful 


The  Vulture  and  His  Shadow  j8j 

world  came  back  as  a  Christmas  gift !  Was  there  ever  such  265 
a  gift!  One  other  sound  came  to  the  Hstening  child — the 
sound  of  a  falling  telephone  receiver.  Sunshine  turned 
away  with  her  eyes  full  of  tears.  The  city  clock  rang  out 
clearly  through  the  night  upon  the  first  stroke  of  twelve. 
Clapping  her  hands,  she  cried  aloud:  270 

"  It  is  Christmas !    Shadow  is  free ! ' ' 


THE  VULTURE  AND   HIS   SHADOW 

All  the  day  long  we  roam,  we  roam, 

My  shadow  fleet  and  I ; 
One  searches  all  the  land  and  sea, 

And  one  the  trackless  sky ; 
But  when  the  taint  of  death  ascends  5 

My  airy  flight  to  greet, 
As  friends  around  the  festal  board, 

We  meet !  we  meet !  we  meet ! 

Ah !  none  can  read  the  sign  we  read, 

No  eye  can  fathom  the  gales,  10 

No  tongue  can  whisper  our  secret  deed. 

For  dead  men  tell  no  tales. 
The  spot  on  the  plains  is  miles  away ; 

But  our  wings  are  broad  and  fleet  — 
The  wave-tossed  mote  in  the  eye  of  day  15 

Is  far — but  we  meet!  we  meet! 

The  voice  of  the  battle  is  haste,  oh,  hast€ ! 

And  down  the  wind  we  speed; 
The  voice  of  the  wreck  moans  up  from  the  deep, 

And  we  search  the  rank  sea- weed.  20 


j84  Southern  Literary  Readings 

The  maiden  listens  the  livelong  day 
For  the  fall  of  her  lover's  feet; 

She  wonders  to  see  us  speeding  by — 
She  would  die,  if  she  saw  us  meet! 

l'envoi 

Sweeping  in  circles,  my  shadow  and  I, 
Leaving  no  mark  in  the  land  or  sky, 
When  the  double  circles  are  all  complete, 
At  the  bedside  of  death  we  meet !  we  meet ! 


MADISON  CAWEIN 

In  the  many- voiced  choir  of  the  younger  American  poets 
no  note  has  been  heard  oftener,  none  has  carried  farther, 
and  none  is  sweeter  than  that  of  "the  Keats  of  Kentucky," 
Madison  Cawein.  He  has  pubhshed  no  less  than  twenty- 
seven  volumes  of  verse, — a  vast  amount  of  poetry  when 
we  consider  his  age  and  his  environment, — and  his  work 
is  well  known  wherever  English  is  read. 

Born  in  Louisville,  Kentucky,  on  March  23,  1865,  he 
lived  for  a  year  at  a  country  place  in  Oldham  County, 
Kentucky,  and  then — the  family  having  moved — for 
nearly  three  years  he  attended  school  and  played  among 
the  hills  and  meadows  and  woodlands  of  the  *'Knob" 
coimtry  near  New  Albany,  Indiana.  It  was  here  the 
embryo  poet  first  learned  to  know  and  love  nature,  and 
it  was  here  he  first  felt  the  raptures  of  poetic  inspiration. 
"If  ever  children  were  happy,"  Mr.  Cawein  says,  "they 
were  happy  there.  We  walked  two  and  a  half  miles  every 
school  day  from  fall  to  spring  to  the  New  Albany  district 
school;  but  we  enjoyed  it.  I  used  to  walk  along  by 
myself,  making  up  wonderful  stories  of  pirate  treasures 
and  adventures,  which  I  could  continue,  vSerial-wise,  from 
day  to  day  in  my  imagination  unendingly — dependent 
upon  no  publisher." 

In  1 88 1  the  family  returned  to  Louisville,  and  here 
young  Cawein  attended  the  city  schools.  He  completed 
the  course  at  the  Male  High  School,  and  though  he  did 
not  realize  his  ambition  of  pursuing  a  full  college  course, 
the  grade  of  work  which  he  did  at  the  city  high  school 
would  entitle  him  to  a  bachelor's  degree  at  many  of  our 
better  junior  colleges.  While  in  school  he  read  widely 
in  English  literature,  both  in  romantic  prose  and  poetry, 
and  was  constantly  turning  his  school  exercises  and  his 
experiences,  both  imaginary  and  real,  into  verse.  He 
wrote  the  class  poem  on  his  graduation  in  1886,  and  called 
it,  with  Coleridge  in  mind.  The  Manners.     Most  of  the 

2-^'  [385] 


jS6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

verse  written  by  him  at  this  time  was  in  imitation  of 
Scott,  Keats,  Coleridge,  Tennyson,  and  other  favorite 
poets  of  his  early  reading,  but  even  in  these  juvenile 
poems  there  were  occasional  gleams  of  originality,  poetic 
fancy,  and  quaint  phrasing,  which  gave  promise  of  the 
growing  genius  of  the  young  poet. 

Immediately  upon  graduation  he  accepted  a  clerical 
position  in  a  not  very  poetic  business  managed  by  his 
eldest  brother,  but  this  did  not  deter  him  from  further 
study  and  reading,  both  in  English  and  in  foreign  lan- 
guages, nor  from  composing  verse.  He  snatched  odd 
moments  from  his  onerous  and  confining  clerkship  to 
mount  his  Pegasus,  sitting  up  late  at  night  and  rising  early 
in  the  morning  to  write.  In  1887  he  published  the  best 
of  his  productions  under  the  title  Blooms  of  the  Berry. 
This  book  fell  under  the  eye  of  the  eminent  critic  William 
Dean  Howells,  who  hailed  its  writer  as  a  most  promising 
young  poet.  Others,  particularly  in  the  South,  were 
slower  to  recognize  Mr.  Cawein's  genius,  but  Mr.  Howells 
continued  to  praise  his  work  as  it  appeared  in  succeeding 
volumes;  and  now  editors  and  lovers  of  poetry  every- 
where recognize  in  him  a  poet  of  notable  gifts. 

Mr.  Cawein  is  too  ^cosmopolitan  and  too  much  of  an 
artist  to  be  strictly  local  in  his  appeal,  and  some  critics 
have  failed  to  find  in  his  work  what  they  would  denomi- 
nate the  distinctly  Southern  spirit.  He  is  a  worshiper  of 
beauty  wherever  he  finds  it,  in  Greek  myth,  in  Scandinavian 
saga,  in  medieval  lore,  in  Persian  legend,  in  Arabian  tale, 
but  especially  and  above  all  in  the  outdoor  world  of 
nature. 

He  has  shown  a  steady  and  a  virile  growth  in  his  poetic 
art,  gradually  lopping  off  his  youthful  excesses  and  crudi- 
ties, and  putting  more  and  more  of  originality,  compact- 
ness of  structure,  and  force  into  his  work.  He  is  now  in 
the  prime  of  life;  and  being  still  devoted  heart  and  soul 
to  the  muses,  doubtless  will  achieve  yet  greater  triumphs 
in  his  art.  But  even  if  he  has  already  given  us  the  best 
product  of  his  genius,  we  may  be  thankful  to  accept 
his  work  as  it  is  and  recognize  in  him  a  new  American 
poet  of  distinct  and  permanent  worth. 


THE   OLD  WATER-MILL 

Wild  ridge  on  ridge  the  wooded  hills  arise, 

Between  whose  breezy  vistas  gulfs  of  skies 

Pilot  great  clouds  like  towering  argosies, 

And  hawk  and  buzzard  breast  the  azure  breeze. 

With  many  a  foaming  fall  and  glimmering  reach 

Of  placid  murmur,  under  elm  and  beech, 

The  creek  goes  twinkling  through  long  glows  and  glooms 

Of  woodland  quiet,  poppied  with  perfumes: 

The  creek,  in  whose  clear  shallows  minnow-schools 

Glitter  or  dart ;  and  by  whose  deeper  pools 

The  blue  kingfishers  and  the  herons  haunt ; 

That,  often  startled  from  the  freckled  flaunt 

Of  blackberry-lilies — where  they  feed  and  hide — 

Trail  a  lank  flight  along  the  forestside 

With  eery  clangor.     Here  a  sycamore. 

Smooth,  wave-uprooted,  builds  from  shore  to  shore 

A  headlong  bridge;  and  there,  a  storm-hurled  oak 

Lays  a  long  dam,  where  sand  and  gravel  choke 

The  water's  lazy  way.     Here  mistflower  blurs 

Its  bit  of  heaven ;  there  the  oxeye  stirs 

Its  gleaming  hues  of  bronze  and  gold;  and  here, 

A  gray  cool  stain,  like  dawn's  own  atmosphere, 

The  dim  wild-carrot  lifts  its  crumpled  crest : 

And  over  all,  at  slender  flight  or  rest, 

The  dragon-flies,  like  coruscating  rays 

Of  lapis-lazuli  and  chrysoprase, 

Drowsily  sparkle  through  the  summer  days ; 

And,  dewlap-deep,  here  from  the  noontide  heat 

The  bell-hung  cattle  find  a  cool  retreat : 

[JS?] 


j88  Southern  Literary  Readings 

And  through  the  willows  girdling  the  hill, 
Now  far,  now  near,  borne  as  the  soft  winds  will, 
Comes  the  low  rushing  of  the  water-mill. 

Ah,  lovely  to  me  from  a  little  child, 
How  changed  the  place!  wherein  once,  undefiled, 
The  glad  communion  of  the  sky  and  stream 
Went  with  me  like  a  presence  and  a  dream. 
Where  once  the  brambled  meads  and  orchardlands 
Poured  ripe  abundance  down  with  mellow  hands 
Of  summer ;  and  the  birds  of  field  and  wood 

I     Called  to  me  in  a  tongue  I  understood ; 
And  in  the  tangles  of  the  old  rail-fence 
Even  the  insect  tumult  had  some  sense. 
And  every  sound  a  happy  eloquence ;   . 
And  more  to  me  than  wisest  books  can  teach, 

i     The  wind  and  water  said ;  whose  words  did  reach 
My  soul,  addressing  their  magnificent  speech. 
Raucous  and  rushing,  from  the  old  mill-wheel. 
That  made  the  rolling  mill-cogs  snore  and  reel. 
Like  some  old  ogre  in  a  fairy-tale 

»     Nodding  above  his  meat  and  mug  of  ale. 

How  memory  takes  me  back  the  ways  that  lead — 
As  when  a  boy — through  woodland  and  through  mead! 
To  orchards  fruited ;  or  to  fields  in  bloom ; 
Or  briary  fallows,  like  a  mighty  room, 

5     Through  which  the  winds  swing  censers  of  perfume. 
And  where  deep  blackberries  spread  miles  of  fruit; — 
A  splendid  feast,  that  stayed  the  ploughboy's  foot 
When  to  the  tasseling  acres  of  the  corn 
He  drove  his  team,  fresh  in  the  primrose  morn; 

»     And  from  the  liberal  banquet,  nature  lent, 
Took  dewy  handfuls  as  he  whistling  went. — 


The  Old  Water-mill  jSq 

A  boy  once  more  I  stand  with  sunburnt  feet 

And  watch  the  harvester  sweep  down  the  wheat ; 

Or  laze  with  warm  Hmbs  in  the  unstacked  straw 

Near  by  the  thresher,  whose  insatiate  maw  es 

Devours  the  sheaves,  hot  drawhng  out  its  hum  — 

Like  some  great  sleepy  bee,  above  a  bloom, 

Made  drunk  with  honey — while,  grown  big  with  grain, 

The  bulging  sacks  receive  the  golden  rain. 

Again  I  tread  the  valley,  sweet  with  hay,  70 

And  hear  the  bob-white  calling  far  away, 

Or  wood-dove  cooing  in  the  elder-brake ; 

Or  see  the  sassafras  bushes  madly  shake 

As  swift,  a  rufous  instant,  in  the  glen 

The  red-fox  leaps  and  gallops  to  his  den ;  75 

Or,  standing  in  the  violet-colored  gloam. 

Hear  roadways  sound  with  holiday  riding  home 

From  church,  or  fair,  or  bounteous  barbecue. 

Which  the  whole  country  to  some  village  drew. 

How  spilled  with  berries  were  its  summer  hills,  so 

And  strewn  with  walnuts  were  its  autumn  rills  — 

And  chestnut  burs !  fruit  of  the  spring's  long  flowers, 

When  from  their  tops  the  trees  seemed  streaming  showers 

Of  slender  silver,  cool,  crepuscular. 

And  like  a  nebulous  radiance  shone  afar.  as 

And  maples !  how  their  sappy  hearts  would  gush 

Broad  troughs  of  syrup,  when  the  winter  bush 

Steamed  with  the  sugar-kettle,  day  and  night, 

And  all  the  snow  was  streaked  with  firelight. 

Then  it  was  glorious !  the  mill-dam's  edge  90 

One  slant  of  frosty  crystal,  laid  a  ledge 

Of  pearl  across;  above  which,  sleeted  trees 

Tossed  arms  of  ice,  that,  clashing  in  the  breeze, 

Tinkled  the  ringing  creek  with  icicles, 


jQO  Southern  Literary  Readings 

95     Thin  as  the  peal  of  Elfland's  Sabbath  bells : 
A  sound  that  in  my  city  dreams  I  hear, 
That  brings  before  me,  under  skies  that  clear, 
The  old  mill  in  its  winter  garb  of  snow, 
Its  frozen  wheel,  a  great  hoar  beard  below, 

100     And  its  west  windows,  two  deep  eyes  aglow. 

Ah,  ancient  mill,  still  do  I  picture  o'er 
Thy  cob  webbed  stairs  and  loft  and  grain-strewn  floor ; 
Thy  door, — like  some  brown,  honest  hand  of  toil. 
And  honorable  with  labor  of  the  soil, — 

105      Forever  open;  through  which,  on  his  back 

The  prosperous  farmer  bears  his  bursting  sack. 

And  while  the  miller  measures  out  his  toll. 

Again  I  hear,  above  the  cogs'  loud  roll, — 

That  makes  stout  joist  and  rafter  groan  and  sway, — 

110     The  harmless  gossip  of  the  passing  day : 
Good  country  talk,  that  tells  how  so-and-so 
Has  died  or  married ;  how  curculio 
And  codling-moth  have  ruined  half  the  fruit, 
And  blight  plays  mischief  with  the  grapes  to  boot ; 

115      Or  what  the  news  from  town;  next  county  fair; 
How  well  the  crops  are  looking  everywhere : 
Now  this,  now  that,  on  which  their  interests  fix. 
Prospects  for  rain  or  frost,  and  politics. 
While,  all  around,  the  sweet  smell  of  the  meal 

120      Filters,  warm-pouring  from  the  grinding  wheel 
Into  the  bin;  beside  which,  mealy  white. 
The  miller  looms,  dim  in  the  dusty  light. 

Again  I  see  the  miller's  home,  between 
The  crinkling  creek  and  hills  of  beechen  green : 
125      Again  the  miller  greets  me,  gaunt  and  brown, 

Who  oft  o'erawed  me  with  his  gray-browed  frown 


Seasons  jgi 

And  rugged  mien :  again  he  tries  to  reach 

My  youthful  mind  with  fervid  scriptural  speech. — 

For  he,  of  all  the  country-side  confessed, 

The  most  religious  was  and  happiest ;  130 

A  Methodist,  and  one  whom  faith  still  led, 

No  books  except  the  Bible  had  he  read — 

At  least  so  seemed  it  to  my  younger  head. — 

All  things  in  earth  and  heav'n  he'd  prove  by  this, 

Be  it  a  fact  or  mere  hypothesis;  m 

For  to  his  simple  wisdom,  reverent, 

"The  Bible  says"  was  all  of  argument. — 

God  keep  his  soul !  his  bones  were  long  since  laid 

Among  the  svinken  gravestones  in  the  shade 

Of  those  black-lichened  rocks,  that  wall  around  uo 

The  family  burying-ground  with  cedars  crowned ; 

Where  bristling  teasel  and  the  briar  combine 

With  clambering  wood-rose  and  the  wild-grape 

vine 
To  hide  the  stone  whereon  his  name  and  dates 
Neglect,  with  mossy  hand,  obliterates.  uo 


SEASONS 

I 
I  heard  the  forest's  green  heart  beat 
As  if  it  heard  the  happy  feet 
Of  one  who  came,  like  young  Desire: 
At  whose  fair  coming  birds  and  flowers 
Sprang  up,  and  Beauty,  filled  with  fire, 
Touched  lips  with  Song  amid  the  bowers, 
And  Love  led  on  the  dancing  Hours. 


jp2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

II 
And  then  I  heard  a  voice  that  rang, 
And  to  the  leaves  and  blossoms  sang :  — 
"My  child  is  Life:  I  dwell  with  Truth: 
I  am  the  spirit  glad  of  Birth : 
I  bring  to  all  things  joy  and  youth: 
I  am  the  rapture  of  the  Earth. 
Come  look  on  me  and  know  my  worth." 

Ill 
And  then  the  woodland  heaved  a  sigh, 
As  if  it  saw  a  shape  go  by — 
A  shape  of  sorrow  or  of  dread, 
That  seemed  to  move  as  moves  a  mist, 
And  left  the  leaves  and  flowers  dead, 
And  with  cold  lips  my  forehead  kissed, 
While  phantoms  all  around  held  tryst. 

IV 

And  then  I  heard  a  voice  that  spoke 
Unto  the  fading  beech  and  oak :  — 
**I  am  the  spirit  of  Decay, 
Whose  child  is  Death,  that  means  relief: 
I  breathe — and  all  things  pass  away: 
I  am  Earth's  glory  and  its  grief. 
Come  look  on  me:  thy  time  is  brief." 


SOUNDS  AND   SIGHTS 

Little  leaves,  that  lean  your  ears 
From  each  branch  and  bough  of  spring, 
What  is  that  your  rapture  hears  ? 


Zyps  oj  Zirl  jpj 

Song  of  bird  or  flight  of  wing, 
All  so  eager,  little  ears  ? 

"Hush,  oh,  hush!    Oh,  don't  you  hear 
Steps  of  beauty  drawing  near  ? 
Neither  flight  of  bee  nor  bird — 
Hark!  the  steps  of  Love  are  heard!'* 

Little  buds  that  crowd  with  eyes 
Every  bush  and  every  tree, 
What  is  this  that  you  surmise? 
What  is  that  which  you  would  see, 
So  attentive,  little  eyes  ? 

"Look,  oh,  look!  Oh,  can't  you  see 
Loveliness  camps  'neath  each  tree  ? 
See  her  hosts  and  hear  them  sing, 
Marching  with  the  maiden  Spring!" 


ZYPS   OF  ZIRL 

The  Alps  of  the  Tyrol  are  dark  with  pines, 
Where,  foaming  under  the  mountain  spines. 
The  Inn's  long  water  sounds  and  shines. 

Beyond,  are  peaks  where  the  morning  weaves 
An  icy  rose ;  and  the  evening  leaves 
The  glittering  gold  of  a  thousand  sheaves. 

Deep  vines  and  torrents  and  glimmering  haze, 
And  sheep-bells  tinkling  on  mountain  ways. 
And  fluting  shepherds  make  sweet  the  days. 


jg4  Southern  Literary  Readings 

The  rolling  mist,  like  a  wandering  fleece, 
.  The  great  round  moon  in  a  mountain  crease, 
And  a  song  of  love  make  the  nights  all  peace. 

Beneath  the  blue  Tyrolean  skies 

On  the  banks  of  the  Inn,  that  foams  and  flies, 

The  storied  city  of -Innsbruck  lies. 

With  its  medieval  streets,  that  crook, 
And  its  gabled  houses,  it  has  the  look 
Of  a  belfried  town  in  a  fairy-book. 

So  wild  the  Tyrol  that  oft,  'tis  said, 

When  the  storm  is  out  and  the  town  in  bed, 

The  howling  of  wolves  sweeps  overhead. 

And  oft  the  burgher,  sitting  here 

In  his  walled  rose-garden,  hears  the  clear 

Shrill  scream  of  the  eagle  circling  near. 

i  And  this  is  the  tale  that  the  burghers  tell: — 

The  Abbot  of  Wiltau  stood  at  his  cell 
Where  the  Solstein  lifts  its  pinnacle, 

A  mighty  summit  of  bluffs  and  crags 
That  frowns  on  the  Inn ;  where  the  forest  stags 
I  Have  worn  a  path  to  the  water-flags. 

The  Abbot  of  Wiltau  stood  below ; 

And  he  was  aware  of  a  plume  and  bow 

On  the  precipice  there  in  the  morning's  glow. 

A  chamois,  he  saw,  from  span  to  span 
5  Had  leapt ;  and  after  it  leapt  a  man ; 

And  he  knew  'twas  the  Kaiser  Maxmilian. 


Zyps  of  Zirl  395 

But,  see !  though  rash  as  the  chamois  he, 

His  foot  less  sure.     And  verily 

If  the  King  should  miss   .    .    .   "  Jesu,  Marie! 

"The  King  hath  missed!" — And,  look,  he  falls! 
Rolls  headlong  out  to  the  headlong  walls. 
What  saint  shall  save  him  on  whom  he  calls? 

What  saint  shall  save  him,  who  struggles  there 

On  the  narrow  ledge  by  the  eagle's  lair. 

With  hooked  hands  clinging  'twixt  earth  and  air  ? 

The  Abbot,  he  crosses  himself  in  dread — 
"  Let  prayers  go  up  for  the  nearly  dead. 
And  the  passing-bell  be  tolled,"  he  said. 

"For  the  House  of  Hapsburg  totters;  see. 

How  raveled  the  thread  of  its  destiny, 

Sheer  hung  between  cloud  and  rock!"  quoth  he. 

But  hark !  where  the  steeps  of  the  peak  reply, 

Is  it  an  eagle's  echoing  cry? 

And  the  flitting  shadow,  its  plumes  on  high? 

No  voice  of  the  eagle  is  that  which  rings! 
And  the  shadow,  a  wiry  man  who  swings 
Down,  down  where  the  desperate  Kaiser  clings. 

The  crampons  bound  to  his  feet,  he  leaps 
Like  a  chamois  now ;  and  again  he  creeps 
Or  twists,  like  a  snake,  o'er  the  fearful  deeps. 

"By  his  cross-bow,  baldrick,  and  cap's  black  curl," 
Quoth  the  Abbot  below,  " I  know  the  churl! 
"  'Tis  the  hunted  outlaw  Zyps  of  Zirl, 


jg6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"Upon  whose  head,  or  dead  or  ahve, 
i  The  Kaiser  hath  posted  a  price. — Saints  shrive 

The  King!"  quoth  Wiltau.    "Who  may  contrive 

"To  save  him  now  that  his  foe  is  there? " — 
But,  Hsten!  again  through  the  breathless  air 
What  words  are  those  that  the  echoes  bear? 

"Courage,  my  King! — To  the  rescue,  ho!" 
The  wild  voice  rings  like  a  twanging  bow. 
And  the  staring  Abbot  stands  mute  below. 

And,  lo!  the  hand  of  the  outlaw  grasps 
The  arm  of  the  King — and  death  unclasps 
Its  fleshless  fingers  from  him  who  gasps. 

And  how  he  guides !  where  the  clean  cliffs  wedge 
Them  fiat  to  their  faces ;  by  chasm  and  ledge 
He  helps  the  King  from  the  merciless  edge. 

Then  up  and  up,  past  bluffs  that  shun 
The  rashest  chamois ;  where  eagles  sun 
Fierce  wings  and  brood ;  where  the  mists  are  spun. 

And  safe  at  last  stand  Kaiser  and  churl 

On  the  mountain  path  where  the  mosses  curl — 

And  this  the  revenge  of  Zyps  of  Zirl. 


SAMUEL   MINTURN   PECK 

Though  Samuel  Minturn  Peck's  parents  came  from 
Northern  states,  he  was  himself  born  and  for  the  most 
part  reared  and  educated  in  the  South,  and  his  temper- 
ament and  his  emotional  nature  have  been  so  largely 
influenced  by  his  environment  that  he  is  recognized  as 
thoroughly  Southern.  He  was  born  near  Tuscaloosa, 
Alabama,  November  4,  1854,  and  spent  all  but  a  few 
years  of  his  childhood  in  and  around  that  picturesque 
little  city.  He  attended  the  University  of  Alabama,  took 
his  master's  degree  in  1876,  and  afterward,  in  deference  to 
parental  advice,  studied  medicine.  But  he  never  practiced 
the  profession  that  was  imposed  upon  him  by  his  parents. 
His  inclinations  were  toward  the  sister  arts  of  music  and 
poetry,  and  to  these  he  devoted  his  leisure.  He  became  an 
excellent  amateur  performer  on  the  piano  and,  like  Sidney 
Lanier,  wished  to  become  a  professional  musician.  To 
this  his  parents  would  not  consent,  so  he  turned  to  the 
other  art,  poetry. 

He  had  written  verses  while  in  college,  and  received 
encouragement  from  several  of  his  teachers,  notably 
Professor  W.  C.  Richardson.  His  first  work  appeared  in 
local  newspapers  and  the  larger  Southern  dailies.  He 
was  finally  induced  by  Professor  Richardson  to  submit 
some  of  his  poems  to  Northern  journals.  They  were 
promptly  accepted,  and  Mr.  Peck  thus  began  his  career 
as  a  professional  literary  man.  His  first  volume.  Cap 
and  Bells,  published  in  1886,  was  remarkably  successful, 
running  through  five  or  six  editions.  His  other  volumes 
of  verse  are  Rings  and  Love-knots  (1892)  and  Rhymes 
and  Roses  (1895).  In  recent  years  Mr.  Peck  has  pub- 
Hshed  numerous  poems  in  the  leading  magazines,  and  it 
is  his  intention  to  gather  these  into  another  volume  some- 
time soon.  One  other  volume,  Alabama  Sketches,  com- 
posed of  light  love  stories,  is  also  to  be  put  down  to 
Mr.  Peck's  credit,  but  the  public  is  not  nearly  so  much  in- 
terested in  his  prose  as  in  his  delicate  and  quaint  lyrics. 

[397] 


AN  ALABAMA  GARDEN 

Along  a  pine-clad  hill  it  lies, 
O'erlooked  by  limpid  Southern  skies, 
A  spot  to  feast  a  fairy's  eyes, 

A  nook  for  happy  fancies. 
The  wild  bee's  mellow  monotone 
Here  blends  with  bird-notes  zephyr-blown, 
And  many  an  insect  voice  unknown 

The  harmony  enhances. 

The  rose's  shattered  splendor  flees 
With  lavish  grace  on  every  breeze, 
And  lilies  sway  with  flexile  ease 

Like  dryads  snowy-breasted; 
And  where  gardenias  drowse  between 
Rich  curving,  leaves  of  glossy  green, 
The  cricket  strikes  his  tambourine. 

Amid  the  mosses  nested. 

Here  dawn-flushed  myrtles  interlace, 
And  sifted  sunbeams  shyly  trace 
Frail  arabesques  whose  shifting  grace 

Is  wrought  of  shade  and  shimmer; 
At  eventide  scents  quaint  and  rare 
Go  straying  through  my  garden  fair, 
As  if  they  sought  with  wildered  air 

The  fireflies'  fitful  glimmer. 

Oh,  could  some  painter's  facile  brush, 
On  canvas  limn  my  garden's  blush, 

[398] 


The  Grapevine  Swing  jgg 

The  fevered  world  its  din  would  hush 

To  crown  the  high  endeavor; 
Or  eould  a  poet  snare  in  rhyme 
The  breathings  of  his  balmy  clime, 
His  fame  might  dare  the  dart  of  time 

And  soar  undimmed  forever! 


THE   GRAPEVINE   SWING 

When  I  was  a  boy  on  the  old  plantation, 

Down  by  the  deep  bayou, 
The  fairest  spot  of  all  creation, 

Under  the  arching  blue; 
When  the  wind  came  over  the  cotton  and  corn. 

To  the  long  slim  loop  I  'd  spring 
With  brown  feet  bare,  and  a  hat-brim  torn, 

And  swing  in  the  grapevine  swing. 

Swinging  in  the  grapevine  swing, 
Laughing  where  the  wild  birds  sing, 

I  dream  and  sigh 

For  the  days  gone  by. 
Swinging  in  the  grapevine  swing. 

Out — o'er  the  water-lilies  bonnie  and  bright. 

Back — to  the  moss-grown  tree; 
I  shouted  and  laughed  with  a  heart  as  light 

As  a  wild-rose  tossed  by  the  breeze. 
The  mocking-bird  joined  in  my  reckless  glee, 

I  longed  for  no  angel's  wing, 
I  was  just  as  near  heaven  as  I  wanted  to  be. 

Swinging  in  the  grapevine  swing. 


400  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Swinging  in  the  grapevine  swing, 
Laughing  where  the  wild  birds  sing, — 

Oh,  to  be  a  boy 

With  a  heart  full  of  joy, 
Swinging  in  the  grapevine  swing! 

I  'm  weary  at  noon,  I  'm  weary  at  night, 

I  'm  fretted  and  sore  of  heart, 
And  care  is  sowing  my  locks  with  white 

As  I  wend  through  the  fevered  mart. 
I  'm  tired  of  the  world  with  its  pride  and  pomp, 

And  fame  seems  a  worthless  thing. 
I  'd  barter  it  all  for  one  day's  romp. 

And  a  swing  in  the  grapevine  swing. 

Swinging  in  the  grapevine  swing. 
Laughing  where  the  wild  birds  sing, 

I  would  I  were  away 

From  the  world  to-day, 
Swinging  in  the  grapevine  swing. 


The  Notes 

The  Star-spangled  Banner 

INTRODUCTORY: 

The  history  of  the  composition  of  this  famous  patriotic  song  is 
given  in  full  in  the  sketch  of  Francis  Scott  Key. 

EXPLANATORY: 

4.  Ramparts.  Here,  the  embankments  before  Fort  McHenry  on 
Whetstone  Point,  just  below  the  city  of  Baltimore. 

5.  Rocket's  red  glare.  The  British  ships  attempted  to  pass  by  the 
fort  after  midnight,  and  the  brilliant  discharge  of  signal  rockets  and 
bursting  bombs  from  the  fort  and  from  the  vessels  made  a  beauti- 
ful but  awful  display  in  the  blackness  of  the  night. 

7.  Star-spangled  Banner.  This  beautiful  descriptive  phrase  has 
become  the  common  designation  of  our  flag,  but  we  must  not 
forget  to  give  Francis  Scott  Key  the  credit  of  coining  it,  or  at  least 
giving  it  popularity  and  currency. 

9.     Mists  of  the  deep.     See  the  sketch  for  an  explanation, 

II.  Towering  steep.  Fort  McHenry  is  on  the  promontory  of 
Whetstone  Point,  and  is  built  up  so  as  to  look  like  a  steep  mound. 

17.  So  vauntingly  swore.  Just  after  the  conclusion  of  the  inci- 
dent Key  wrote  to  his  friend  John  Randolph  of  Virginia:  "To 
make  my  feelings  still  more  acute,  the  admiral  had  intimated  his 
fears  that  the  town  must  be  burned,  and  I  was  sure  that  if  taken  it 
would  have  been  given  up  to  plunder.  I  have  reason  to  believe 
that  such  a  promise  was  given  to  their  soldiers.  It  was  filled  with 
women  and  children.  I  hope  I  shall  never  cease  to  feel  the  warmest 
gratitude  when  I  think  of  this  most  merciful  deliverance.  It  seems 
to  have  given  me  a  higher  idea  of  the  'forbearance,  long-suffering, 
and  tender  mercy'  of  God,  than  I  had  ever  conceived  before." 

30.  In  God  is  our  trust.  The  motto,  "In  God  we  trust,"  is 
stamped  on  practically  all  of  our  larger  American  coins. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Read  the  history  of  the  composition  of  the  song  (pp.  1-3) 
and  comment  on  the  realism  and  the  historic  fact  incorporated  in 
the  stanzas.  (2)  The  first  stanza  gives  the  anxious  anticipation 
of  the  watcher  as  at  dawn  he  scans  the  shore  in  search  of  the  flag 
after  the  terrific  battle  of  the  day  and  night  preceding;  the  second 
stanza  brings  the  flag  to  sight  in  the  first  gleam  of  the  morning  sun- 
light, and  shows  the  enemy's  vessels  lying  off  the  harbor  in  the 
"dread  silence"  of  defeat;    the  third  describes  the  carnage  visited 

26  I401] 


402  Southern  Literary  Readings 

upon  the  vaunting  foe;  the  cHmax  or  concluding  stanza  is  an  out- 
burst of  rehgious  fervor  and  thanksgiving  to  the  Power  which  had 
saved  our  nation.  Study  out  these  points  closely  and  condense  them 
into  an  outline.  (3)  By  what  rhetorical  means  is  the  anxiety 
of  the  watcher  expressed?  (4)  Note  how  the  poet  gradually  leads 
up  to  the  disclosure  of  the  flag,  and  how  lovingly  and  beautifully 
he  pictures  it  in  the  sun's  first  beams.  (5)  To  what  does  Key 
attribute  the  American  victory?  (6)  In  studying  the  form  of  the 
poem  note  the  anapaestic  rhythm  of  the  four-stress  lines.  Some 
of  the  feet  are  rather  heavy  and  cumbrous,  and  are  not  easily 
uttered  or  sung  rhythmically;  as,  "whose  broad  stripes."  Here 
we  have  three  full,  heavy  syllables,  and  it  is  difficult  to  utter  the 
first  two  words  in  the  short,  quick  time  which  the  rhythm  demands. 
But  the  awkwardness  of  the  movement  is  atoned  for  by  the  fervor 
and  sincerity  of  the  lines.  (7)  Work  out  the  rime  scheme  of  stanza  i . 
You  will  notice  the  first  quatrain  (or  four  lines)  is  composed  of 
alternately  riming  lines,  the  first  and  third  being  masculine,  and 
the  second  and  fourth  feminine.  See  if  this  scheme  is  followed 
throughout.  Now  note  the  duplication  of  the  rimes  in  the  second 
quatrain.  The  fifth  line  has  an  internal  rime,  glare,  air;  and  the 
sixth  line  rimes  with  it, — there.  See  if  this  scheme  is  carried  out 
in  the  other  stanzas.  The  last  couplet  is  the  refrain,  and  is  repeated 
with  but  slight  variation  throughout. 

The  Mocking-bird 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  and  the  following  selection  are  taken  from  Audubon's 
American  Ornithological  Biography,  the  text  made  to  accompany 
The  Birds  of  America  (1827-1838). 

EXPLANATORY: 

6.  Bignonias.  The  bignonia  is  a  genus  of  woody-fibered 
climbing  plants,  commonly  known  in  the  South  as  cross- vine.  Its 
stem  is  porous  and  splits  in  sections,  and  when  dry  is  often  used 
by  small  boys  as  a  harmless  substitute  for  cigarettes. 

8.  Stuartia:  A  plant  of  the  genus  camellia,  the  Southern 
tea  tree. 

39.  Hautboy.  An  oboe,  or  wooden  wind  instrument  of  the  reed 
type,  having  a  keen,  high-toned  register.  The  word  is  from  the 
French,  haul,  high,  and  hois,  wood.     Pronounced  ho'boi. 

141.  Philomel.  A  poetic  name  for  the  nightingale,  from  the 
Greek  phileo,  love,  and  melos,  song.  Compare  the  beautiful  pas- 
sage on  the  nightingale  in  Milton's  //  Penseroso,  beginning, 

"And  the  mute  Silence  hist  along 
'Less  Philomel  will  deign  a  song." 

A  soubrette  is  an  actress  who  sings  a  light  or  lively  part  in  an  opera. 

142.  Mozart.  A  German  musician  (i  756-1 791),  noted  for  the 
rich  melody  and  intricate  elaboration  of  his  compositions.  Pro- 
nounced mo'tsart. 

744.     Essays.     Attempts,  efforts. 


The  Notes  ■  40 j 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Outline  the  topics  discussed  in  each  paragraph.  (2)  Name 
over  the  plants  mentioned  b}''  Audubon  as  characteristic  of  the  nat- 
ural habitat  of  the  mocking  bird.  (3)  What  are  the  chief  features 
of  the  setting  in  which  he  would  place  the  bird?  Thus  he  implies 
that  the  rich,  exuberant,  varied,  tropical  plant  life  is  reproduced 
in  the  bird's  song.  (4)  How  is  the  general  description  of  the  place 
in  the  first  paragraph  answered  concretely  in  the  second?  (5) 
What  is  meant  by  Europe's  "adventurous  sons"?  (6)  How  does 
the  bird  mimic  nature?  (7)  What  sounds  have  you  heard  the 
mocking  bird  imitate?  (8)  According  to  your  observation,  is 
Audubon  accurate  in  his  description  of  the  nesting  habits  of  the 
mocking  bird?  (9)  Have  you  ever  noticed  mocking  birds  opening 
and  shutting  their  wings  while  hopping  along  the  ground?  Is 
this  a  winter  or  a  summer  habit?  (10)  Have  you  ever  noticed  that 
mocking  birds  migrate  ?  Do  they  go  in  flocks  ?  ( 1 1 )  Is  there  any  bird 
which  can  get  the  better  of  the  mocking  bird  in  a  fight?  (12) 
What  is  Audubon's  opinion  of  the  mocking  bird's  musical  powers 
as  compared  with  those  of  the  nightingale?  (13)  What  is  the  ante- 
cedent of  which  in  line  142?  If  the  relative  pronoun  were  intended 
to  refer  to  souhrette,  what  would  be  a  better  form?-.  Audubon 
may  after  all  mean  that  if  the  soubrette  could  study  under  Mozart 
she  might  in  time  become  very  interesting.  The  sentence  is  not 
clear  and  should  be  reconstructed. 

(Note.  A  few  liberties  have  been  taken  with  the  text  in  this  and  the  follow- 
ing selection  to  straighten  out  entangled  pronouns,  secure  concord,  and  the  like, 
but  the  quality  of  Audubon's  style  has  been  preserved  in  every  case.) 

The  Ruby-throated  Humming-bird 

EXPLANATORY: 

20.     Curious.     Careful.     From  the  Latin  ciira,  care. 

70.  Tyrant  fly-catcher.  The  kingbird,  commonly  called  bee 
martin  in  the  South. 

So.     Humble-bees.     We  usually  say  bumblebees. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 
(i)  What  topics  does  the  author  discuss  in  the  various  paragraphs? 

(2)  What  double  purpose  does  the  author  seem  to  have  in  view 
in  this  essay?     Is  there  emotional  appeal  as  well  as  information? 

(3)  Point  out  passages  in  this  selection  to  prove  that  Audubon 
was  an  enthusiastic  lover  of  birds.  (4)  If  you  have  ever  seen  a 
humming  bird  feeding  from  flowers,  describe  the  appearance  and 
movements  of  the  bird  as  it  darts  from  flower  to  flower.  In  what 
words  does  the  author  describe  all  this?  ■    (5)  What  is  meant  by  the 

returning  sun  "  ?  (6)  To  what  is  the  bird  compared  in  lines  20-2 1  ? 
What  is  the  force  of  curious  here?  (7)  Why  does  the  author  speak 
of  fanning  the  flowers,  cooling  them,  lulling  the  insects  to  repose,  etc.? 
(8)  Does  the  bird  go  far  north  in  the  summer?  When  does  it  return 
southward,  and  where  does  it  winter?  (9)  What  qualities  does 
the  observer  note  in  the  bird  during  the  mating  season?  (10)  De- 
scribe the  young  birds. 


404  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Lament  of  the  Captive 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  lyric  is  taken  from  an  unfinished  epic  based  on  the  experiences 
of  the  poet's  brother  in  the  Seminole  War  in  Florida.  From  its 
first  line,  which  is  usually  given  as  the  title  of  the  poem,  many  have 
been  led  to  interpret  the  stanzas  as  expressive  of  Wilde's  despond- 
ent and  sentimental  view  of  life.  To  understand  a  lyric  of  this 
kind,  we  must  read  it  not  as  an  expression  of  the  author's  own 
emotion,  but  as  his  conception  of  the  emotions  of  another — in  this 
instance  of  a  captive  who  dies  away  from  his  people,  many — per- 
haps all — of  whom,  as  he  believes,  have  fallen  before  the  conquering 
enemy. 

EXPLANATORY: 

18.     Tampa's  desert  strand.     Locate  Tampa  Bay. 
THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  three  comparisons  are  presented  in  the  three  stanzas? 
(2)  Is  each  stanza  devoted  exclusively  to  its  topic?  (3)  What  is 
the  unifying  thought  in  all  three  stanzas?  State  the  theme  of  the 
poem  in  a  single  sentence.  (4)  In  what  mood  does  the  author 
imagine  the  captive  to  be?  (5)  Study  the  parallelism  of  structure 
in  the  three  stanzas.  (6)  What  line  becomes  a  sort  of  refrain? 
(7)  What  image  in  the  first  stanza  suggests  the  use  of  weep  in  the 
last  line?  (8)  What  image  in  the  second  stanza  suggests  sigh? 
(9)  What  image  in  the  third  stanza  suggests  mourn?  (10)  The 
meter  is  four-stress  iambic.  Scan  the  first  stanza.  (11)  Analyze 
the  rime  scheme,  and  note  the  rime  that  is  repeated  in  all  three 
stanzas.  g 

The  Partisans 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  passage  is  taken  from  the  twenty-first  chapter  of  The  Partisan: 
A  Romance  of  the  Revolution,  first  published  in  1835.  Simms  tells 
us  that  he  spent  part  of  a  summer  with  a  friend  in  the  vicinity  of 
"the  once  beautiful  but  now  utterly  decayed  town  of  Dorchester," 
studying  the  scenery,  talking  with  the  old  settlers,  and  gathering 
material  for  the  historical  and  traditional  background  of  his  romance. 
He  also  says  in  the  preface  of  the  revised  edition  (1853):  "This 
story  will  be  found  to  comprise  the  leading  events  of  the  war  of  the 
Revolution  in  South  Carolina,  dating  from  the  fall  of  Charleston 
in  1780.  It  is  proposed  as  a  fair  picture  of  the  province — its  con- 
dition, prospects,  resources — pending  the  brief  struggle  of  Gates 
with  Cornwallis  and  immediately  after  the  disastrous  campaign  of 
1780."  Strictly  speaking,  Major  Robert  Singleton,  the  hero  of 
the  romance,  is  "the  partisan";  but  in  the  title  to  the  selection 
given  here  the  term  is  applied  to  those  famous  leaders,  Marion  and 
Sumter,  the  "Swamp  Fox"  and  the  "Game  Cock." 

It  will  be  better  for  the  pupil  to  consider  the  prose  selection  and 
The  Swamp  Fox  separately. 


The  Notes  40  j 

EXPLANATORY: 

1.  Ashley.  The  small  river  which  takes  its  rise  iti  Berkeley- 
County  and  flows  in  a  southeasterly  direction,  emptying  into  the 
Atlantic  at  Charleston.     Locate  it  on  your  map  of  South  Carolina. 

2.  Dorchester.  Formerly  a  thriving  village  some  twenty-five 
miles  northwest  of  Charleston,  in  what  is  now  Dorchester  county. 

45.  Their  chief  city  was  besieged  and  taken.  Charleston  sur- 
rendered to  the  British  under  Sir  Henry  Clinton  in  1780. 

80.  Sumter.  General  Thomas  Sumter  was  born  in  Virginia, 
but  moved  to  South  Carolina  at  an  early  age.  He  became  a  partisan 
leader  in  1780,  defeated  the  Tories  at  Hanging  Rock,  but  was  driven 
back  by  Tarleton's  British  regulars.  He  was  also  severely  defeated 
by  Tarleton  at  Fishing  Creek;  however,  he  turned  the  tables  on 
his  able  British  opponent  by  overwhelmingly  repulsing  him  at 
Blackstock  Hill  in  the  same  year.  Read  up  further  on  Sumter, 
and  his  career  in  war  and  in  peace,  in  any  good  encyclopedia  or 
biographical  dictionary. 

85.  Marion.  General  Francis  Marion  of  South  Carolina  was 
born  in  1732.  He  took  an  active  part  in  the  military  operations 
in  his  native  state  during  the  Revolution,  rising  from  the  rank  of 
captain  to  that  of  brigadier-general.  He  was  a  fine  strategist,  and 
early  in  his  career  earned  from  his  British  opponents  the  title 
"Swamp  Fox."  Marion,  Sumter,  Pickens,  Lee,  and  others  were 
called  partisan  leaders. 

102.     George  Dennison.    Probably  a  character  invented  b}'-  Simms 
as  a  means  of  introducing  some  of  his  own  poems  into  the  narrative. 
104.     Troubadours.     These    were    French    lyrical    poets    of    the 
twelfth  and  thirteenth  centuries  who  wandered  about  over  the  coun- 
try singing  of  love  and  war:  here  applied  to  local  poets  or  singers. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Give  a  topic  for  each  of  the  paragraphs  in  the  prose  selection. 
Note  how  the  author  progresses  from  the  description  of  the  scene 
around  Dorchester  to  the  historic  and  traditional  events  associated 
with  the  place,  leading  up  gradually  to  the  scene  of  the  battle  between 
the  patriots  and  the  British  invaders,  and  then  turning  to  the  partisan 
leaders,  Sumter  and  Marion.  The  last  paragraph  on  George  Denni- 
son, the  partisan  poet,  is  introduced  as  a  device  for  inserting  the  poem 
on  Marion.  (2)  Determine  as  nearly  as  you  can  the  exact  spot 
where  the  old  village  of  Dorchester  was  situated  on  the  Ashley 
River.  (3)  Give  a  sketch  of  the  partisan  warfare  carried  on  by 
Marion,  Sumter,  and  others.  (4)  Why  is  Washington  spoken  of  as 
colonel  in  the  second  paragraph?  (5)  Notice  that  the  description 
of  the  activities  of  the  partisan  bands  is  given  in  the  present  tense 
in  the  latter  part  of  paragraph  two  and  in  paragraph  three.  Why 
is  this  done?  (6)  How  is  contrast  employed  in  the  portraiture  of 
Sumter  and  Marion?  (7)  Explain  the  thought  in  the  third  sen- 
tence of  the  paragraph  on  George  Dennison.  (8)  The  latter  half 
of  this  paragraph  is  an  apostrophe  to  the  supposed  poet.  What 
is  the  effect  of  this  device,  and  in  what  respects  does  the  style 
of  this  section  differ  from  the  rest  of  the  selection? 


4o6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

The  Swamp  Fox 

EXPLANATORY: 

3.     Tarleton.     Colonel  Baiinastre  Tarletoii  was  a  distinguished 
British  officer  serving  under  Cornwallis. 

8.     Wild  and  hunted  men.     The  British  authorities  had  given 
Colonel  Tarleton  orders  to  destroy  Marion  and  his  followers. 

19.  Santee.  Locate  this  river  on  the  map  of  South  Carolina. 
Marion's  chief  activities  were  between  the  Santee  and  Pedee  rivers. 

38.  To  shy.  To  turn  quickly  and  retire;  an  uncommon  use  of 
the  word. 

43.  Colonel.  Marion  was  at  this  time  a  colonel,  though  later  he 
became  a  general. 

55.  Dry  potatoes.  An  interesting  story  is  told  of  an  English 
officer  who  visited  Marion's  camp  under  a  flag  of  truce  on  business 
connected  with  the  exchange  of  prisoners.  He  came  just  as  the  men 
were  preparing  dinner.  Marion  courteously  invited  the  officer  to 
remain  and  take  dinner  with  him.  That  officer  was  greatly  sur- 
prised when  the  servant  Tom  brought  them  some  roasted  sweet 
potatoes  on  a  piece  of  bark  and  served  the  dinner  on  a  log.  It  is 
said  that  he  reported  the  incident  to  his  friends  and  remarked  that 
the  British  could  never  conquer  a  country  defended  by  men  so  self- 
sacrificing  as  Marion  and  his  soldiers. 

62.  Cooter.     A  kind  of  water  turtle. 

63.  Plashing  light.  The  light  reflected  by  plashing  or  gently 
undulating  water.  Compare  splash,  which  is  a  more  violent  move- 
ment of  water  with  accompanying  spray. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  poem  consists^  of  a  series  of  pictures  descriptive  of  the 
daily  life,  the  tactics,  the  habits,  and  the  ideals  of  Marion's  men. 
Try  to  find  a  good  topic  for  each  of  the  stanzas.  (2)  Why  was 
Marion  called  the  "Swamp  Fox"?  (3)  Describe  the  camps  and  hid- 
ing places  of  the  partisans.  (4)  Describe  the  time  and  methods  of 
their  attacks.  (5)  Explain  the  meaning  of  the  line,  "The  twisted 
bore,  the  smiting  brand."  (6)  What  characteristics  of  the  men  are 
developed  in  stanza  5?  (7)  Read  William  Cullen  Bryant's  Song 
of  Marion's  Men  and  compare  it  closely  with  Simms's  poem. 
(8)  Determine  the  meter  and  rime  scheme  of  this  simple  poem,  and 
scan  a  typical  stanza. 

The  Grape-vine  Swing 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  swing  celebrated  in  this  poem  was.  Professor  Trent  tells 
us  in  his  Life  of  Simms,  to  be  found  near  "Woodlands,"  the  author's 
beautiful  plantation  home  about  halfway  between  Charleston,  South 
Carolina,  and  Augusta,  Georgia.  It  is  described  as  "a  wonderful 
swing  ...  for  the  vine  had  drooped  its  festoons,  one  below 
another,  in  such  a  way  that  half  a  dozen  persons  (so  says  an  appar- 
ently veracious  traveler)  could  find  comfortable  seats;  and  yet 
not  one  of  them  be  sitting  on  a  level  with  his  neighbor,  nay,  could 


The  Notes  40'/ 

not  only  sit,  but  could  hold  a  book  in  one  hand  and  reach  ripe 
grapes  with  the  other.  " 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  first  stanza  is  descriptive;  the  second  suggests  personal 
associations;  the  third  is  reminiscent.  Read  the  poem  with  this 
analysis  in  mind,  and  outline  for  yourself  the  topics.  (2)  Study 
the  imaginative  touches  in  stanza  i .  In  the  last  four  lines  work  out 
the  apt  comparisons  to  various  wild  things.  (3)  Note  the  romantic 
associations  of  the  lovers  in  stanza  2  and  point  out  expressions  that 
suggest  tender  sentiments.  Why  are  the  lovers  pictured  as  boy  and 
girl  rather  than  as  man  and  woman?  (4)  Why  does  the  poet  call 
the  swing  "giant  strange"?  (See  the  introductory  note  above.) 
(5)  Where  is  the  poet  as  he  now  thinks  of  the  swing?  What  cordage 
does  he  playfully  grasp?  (6)  Study  the  verse  structure.  The  rime 
is  alternate,  and  the  rhythm  is  a  combination  of  anapaestic 
and  iambic  feet,  with  some  irregularities,  as  the  omission  of  the 
introductory  light  stresses  in  lines  1,2,  and  others.  Do  you  think 
the  rhythm  is  suggestive  of  the  movement  of  the  swing?  (7)  There 
is  a  good  deal  of  tone-color  obtained  by  alliterative  and  riming 
pairs,  as  "lithe  and  long,"  "springing  and  clinging."  Point  out 
others,  and  study  the  musical  effects  thus  brought  out. 

The  Gold  Bug 

INTRODUCTORY: 

The  Gold  Bug  was  a  prize  story  first  published  in  the  Philadelphia 
Dollar  Newspaper,  June  21  and  28,  1843.  Poe  wrote  it  for  Graham's 
Magazine  while  he  was  editor  of  that  periodical;  but  when  the  new 
publication,  the  Dollar  Newspaper,  advertised  a  prize  contest, 
he  went  to  Mr.  Graham  and  offered  to  substitute  another  manu- 
script for  the  one  already  handed  in,  explaining  frankly  that  he  felt 
confident  he  could  earn  considerably  more  money  by  entering  his 
story  in  the  contest.  Mr.  Graham  generously  consented  that  Poe 
withdraw  the  manuscript,  and  it  easily^  won  the  first  prize.  The 
Gold  Bug  belongs  to  the  group  of  Poe's  analytical  ratiocinative  sto- 
ries having  an  element  of  mystery.  Since  its  first  appearance  it  has 
been  a  favorite  among  Poe's  readers,  particularly  young  people.  Poe 
was  for  some  years  just  prior  to  the  writing  of  this  story  greatly 
interested  in  secret  writing  of  all  kinds.  In  Graham 's  Magazine  for 
July,  1 841,  he  published  an  essay,  A  Feiv  Words  on  Secret  Writing, 
explaining  the  antiquity  of  cryptography  and  discussing  the  various 
types  of  cipher  writing.  He  pronounced  the  dictum:  "  Human  in- 
genuity cannot  concoct  a  cipher  which  human  ingenuity  cannot 
resolve";  and  in  order  to  prove  his  assertion,  he  agreed  to  solve 
any  and  all  examples  of  secret  writing  sent  him.  He  is  said  to  have 
received  about  one  hundred  puzzling  cryptograms,  all  of  which, 
with  one  single  exception,  he  immediately  solved,  and  the  exception 
he  proved  to  have  no  meaning  whatever,  being  a  mere  jargon  made 
up  at  random.  For  a  full  account  of  this  wonderful  exploit  read, 
in  Vol.  XIV  of  Professor  James  A.  Harrison's  edition  of  Poe's  Works, 
the  article  above  referred  to  and  the  correspondence  it  provoked. 


4o8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

EXPLANATORY: 

What  ho!  Note  how  this  quotation  suggests  the  action  of  Legrand 
after  he  had,  according  to  Jupiter,  "bin  bit  somewhere  bout  de  head 
by  dat  goole-bug,"  p.  40.  The  passage  is  presumably  quoted  from 
a  comedy,  All  in  the  Wrong,  adapted  from  the  French  of  Des- 
louche  by  the  British  playwright,  Arthur  Murphy  (i  727-1 805);  but 
Professor  W.  P.  Trent  examined  All  in  the  Wrong  and  failed  to 
find  the  quotation.  Poe  may  have  been  quoting  from  memory; 
or  he  may  have  made  up  a  passage  to  suit  the  occasion,  as  he 
frequently  did, 

2.  Huguenot.  The  Huguenots,  or  French  Protestants,  were 
granted  civil  and  religious  liberty  by  the  Edict  of  Nantes  (1598), 
but  by  the  revocation  of  that  edict  in  1685  thousands  of  them  were 
driven  into  exile,  many  coming  to  America.  Why  did  Poe  select 
the  name  Legrand?  Does  the  date  of  the  exile  of  the  Huguenots 
coincide  with  the  date  of  Captain  Kidd's  activity?  Compare  note 
1042  below. 

16.  Fort  Moultrie.  Situated  on  an  island  in  Charleston  Harbor. 
What  historical  events  are  associated  with  this  fort? 

39.  Swammerdamm.  A  Dutch  physician  and  naturalist  of  the 
seventeenth  century,  noted  for  his  study  of  anatomy  and  entomology 
and  for  his  large  collection  of  insects. 

140.     ScarabcEus  caput  hominis.     Man's  head  or  skull  beetle. 

166.  Exacerbate.  Aggravate.  Look  up  the  etymology  of  this 
learned  word.  Look  up  also  the  following  words  of  Latin  or  French 
origin,  and  make  notes  on  their  formation  and  history:  coppice, 
entomologist,  grandiloquent,  obstreperous,  pertinacity,  prevarica- 
tion, vociferate,  curvet,  caracole,  extravagant,  vagary,  aversion, 
demented,  caprice,  caloric,  scrutiny,  corrosion,  relevancy,  collation, 
collocation,  cognizance,  coadjutor.  Add  others  to  the  list  as  you 
find  them  in  your  study. 

205.  Syphon.  What  is  Jupiter  trying  to  say?  Spell  it  cor- 
rectly. 

257.  Brusquerie.  A  French  word  meaning  bluntness  or  rudeness 
of  manner  or  speech. 

266.     Solus.     A  Latin  word  meaning  alone. 

305.  Empressement.  A  French  word  meaning  eagerness,  earnest- 
ness. 

430.  Tulip-tree.  The  poplar,  so  called  because  of  its  tulip-shaped 
blossoms.  Notice  how  fully  and  accurately  the  tree  is  described 
in  lines  463-468. 

694.  Madness  .  .  .  7nethod.  Compare  Hamlet,  Act  II,  Sc.  ii: 
"Though  this  be  madness,  yet  there  's  method  in  't." 

716.     Vagaries.     The  accent  is  on  the  second  syllable. 

814.  Guineas.  English  coins  worth  a  little  more  than  five 
dollars  each;  so  called  because  first  coined  (about  1663)  from  gold 
brought  from  Guinea. 

834.  Bacchanalian.  Pertaining  to  the  bacchanalia,  or  festivals 
of  Bacchus,  the  Roman  god  of  wine;  hence,  reveling. 

837.  Avoirdupois.  Why  does  the  author  use  avoirdupois 
instead  of  troy  weight  in  measuring  jewels  and  gold? 


The  Notes  40Q 

loii.     Zaffre  (or  zaffer).     Blue  coloring  matter. 

1 01 2.  Aqua  regia.  Nitro-hydrochloric  acid.  Literally,  "royal 
water. ' ' 

1014.  Reguliis.  A  Latin  alchemical  term,  meaning  "little 
king,"  applied  first  to  antimony  and  later  to  any  intermediary 
metallic  sulphide.  Nitre,  or  niter,  is  commonly  known  as  saltpeter. 
Notice  how  Poe  parades  his  learning  here. 

1042.  Captain  Kidd.  A  noted  English  pirate  who  lived  in  the 
latter  half  of  the  seventeenth  century  (1650-1701).  For  many 
years  it  was  supposed  that  he  had  buried  immense  treasures  some- 
where on  the  coast  of  the  Southern  Colonies,  and  various  attempts 
were  made  to  discover  the  exact  spot. 

1044.  Hieroglyphical.  Pertaining  to  signs  or  pictures  as  used 
in  early  systems  of  writing. 

1 121.  Golconda.  A  city  in  India,  formerly  famous  as  a  center 
of  diamond  industries. 

1 130.  Cryptographs.  Cryptograph,  meaning  a  cipher  or  secret 
writing,  is  from  the  Greek  kryptos,  hidden,  and  graphe,    writing. 

1290.  Rationale.  A  logical  system  of  reasoning.  Pronounced 
rS,sh-wn-a'lg. 

1 37 1.  Twenty-one.  First  printed  forty-one,  but  later  changed 
to  twenty-one.  What  other  changes  would  be  necessitated  in 
other  parts  of  the  story? 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

I.  ^  General,  (i)  Into  what  two  large  divisions  may  the  story 
be  divided?  Indicate  the  exact  point  of  division.  (2)  In  which 
is  Poe's  main  interest,  the  discovery  of  the  treasure  or  the  solution 
of  the  cryptogram?  (3)  What  is  the  scene  of  the  story?  Locate  it 
on  a  map  and  tell  how  Poe  became  familiar  with  this  locality.  (4) 
What  is  the  time  of  the  event  related?  Why  does  Poe  use  a  blank 
in  line  52  for  the  exact  date?     Look  up  other  places  where  he  uses 

blanks,  as  "Lieutenant  G "  (line  80)  and  "My  Dear ," 

(line  255),  and  try  to  explain  each  case.  (5)  Does  the  information 
that  Jupiter  has  been  manumitted  (line  41)  help  to  fix  the  time 
any  more  definitely?  Does  the  fact  that  Jupiter  calls  Legrand 
"Massa  Will"  help?  Remember  that  the  story  was  published  in 
June,  1843.  (6)  What  was  the  time  of  the  burying  of  the  treasure? 
(7)  How  much  time,  then,  has  elapsed  since  it  was  buried?  What 
is  the  age  of  the  tulip  tree?  (8)  Who  are  the  principal  characters 
in  the  story?  (9)  Is  Jupiter's  way  of  speaking  like  that  of  negroes 
whom  you  have  heard  talk?  How  do  you  account  for  the  differ- 
ences? (10)  Make  a  list  of  the  characteristics  of  Legrand  as  indi- 
cated by  his  actions,  and  from  these  write  a  character  sketch  of 
the  hero.  (11)  Do  you  think  the  story  teaches  any  lesson?  What 
is  its  purpose,  then?  Compare  it  with  The  Masque  of  the  Red  Death 
in  this  respect.  (12)  Does  it  appeal  primarily  to  the  heart  or  to 
the  intellect? 

II.  Specific,  (i)  How  many  paragraphs  are  given  to  the 
description  of  the  setting  of  the  story?  (2)  Why  are  we  told  that 
the  vegetation  of  the  island  is  scant  or  dwarfish?     (3)  What  are 


410  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Legrand's  chief  occupations?  Why  was  it  necessary  to  make  him  a 
collector  of  shells  and  entomological  specimens?  (4)  Why  was  it 
necessary  to  elaborate  the  idea  of  chilliness  (line  62)?  Notice  the 
details  of  the  "overcoat,"  the  "fine  fire,"  etc.  (5)  Why  are  scara- 
bcEUs,  antenncB,  etc.,  printed  in  italics?  Does  Poe  often  use  italics  for 
other  purposes?  Point  out  several  instances.  Nowadays  the  use  of 
italics  for  emphasis  is  not  nearly  so  common,  (6)  Why  is  the  heavi- 
ness of  the  gold  bug  developed  here?  (7)  Why  is  the  lack  of  writing 
paper  introduced?  (8)  Why  is  the  interruption  caused  by  the  dog 
necessary  at  this  point  (line  no)?  Notice  that  the  narrator  is  still 
seated  by  the  fire.  Look  up  the  further  details  of  the  situation  as 
explained  later  (lines  995-1004).  What  further  part  does  the  dog 
play  in  the  story?  (9)  Why  does  the  visitor  say  that  Legrand  is  a 
poor  artist?  (10)  Describe  the  effect  on  Legrand  when  he  takes  back 
the  parchment.  (11)  Why  is  the  visitor  allowed  to  depart  on  the 
night  of  his  arrival?  (12)  How  does  the  conversation  on  pp.  64-65 
advance  the  action?  (13)  Notice  how  the  bug  is  made  the  cause  of 
Legrand's  peculiar  actions ;  also  how  the  method  of  catching  the  bug 
in  the  paper  is  more  fully  detailed  on  p.  61 .  (14)  How  does  the  letter 
repeat  and  emphasize  part  of  what  Jupiter  has  just  been  telling? 
(15)  Why  has  Jupiter  bought  three  spades?  (16)  In  what  sense 
does  Legrand  mean  that  the  bug  is  of  real  gold?  (17)  Describe  the 
situation  of  the  tulip  tree.  (18)  Describe  Jupiter's  ascent  of  the 
tree.  (19)  What  is  suggested  by  the  fact  that  the  limb  is  rotten? 
How  much  longer  would  it  have  been  before  all  chance  to  discover 
the  gold  had  passed?  (20)  Why  does  Legrand  become  so  excited 
when  Jupiter  announces  he  is  near  the  end  of  the  limb?  (21) 
Jupiter  says  the  face  of  the  skull  is  outward.  How  then  can  he 
drop  the  beetle  through  the  eye  socket?  Do  you  suppose  the  top 
of  the  skull  has  been  sawed  off?  How  can  the  skull  have  been 
nailed  to  the  limb  otherwise?  (22)  How  do  they  happen  to  miss 
the  treasure  at  the  first  digging?  (23)  Account  for  the  difference 
in  the  behavior  of  the  dog  at  the  second  digging.  (24)  Explain 
the  presence  of  the  three  or  four  loose  coins.  Why  is  Legrand 
disappointed?  (25)  Why  was  it  necessary  to  suggest  that  the 
wooden  box  had  been  subjected  to  some  mineralizing  process? 
(26)  "There  was  no  American  money."  Why?  (27)  What  is 
suggested  by  the  decayed  hull  of  a  ship's  longboat  near  where  the 
piece  of  parchment  has  been  picked  up?  (28)  Why  did  Poe  make 
the  narrator  somewhat  doubtful  and  always  ready  to  question 
during  Legrand's  explanation  concerning  the  cryptograph?  (29) 
Why  are  the  letters  "  j "  and  "v"  left  out  of  the  alphabet  as  given 
on  p.  69?  (30)  How  do  you  suppose  bishop's  hostel  became  Bessop's 
Castle?  Did  Captain  Kidd  make  the  mistake  or  were  the  words 
changed  in  the  mouths  of  the  people?  (31 )  Draw  on  the  playground 
a  diagram  of  the  position  of  the  ti"ee  and  the  two  positions  of  the 
shot,  and  extend  lines  through  them  for  fifty  feet  (reduced  scale 
if  necessary),  and  see  how  far  the  two  circles  of  four  or  five  feet  in 
dianieter  would  be  from  each  other.  (32)  What  does  "poetical 
consistency"  (lines  1445-1446)  mean?  (33)  Is  every  point  in  the 
story  explained  to  your  entire  satisfaction?     What  becomes  of  the 


The  Notes  411 

treasure?     Would  it  have  been  better  to  tell- this,  or  is  it  more 
artistic  to  leave  it  to  the  imagination  of  the  reader? 

The  Haunted  Palace 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  first  appeared  in  the  Baltimore  Museum,  April,  1839. 
A  few  months  later,  Poe  incorporated  it  in  his  story  The  Fall  of  the 
House  of  Usher,  which  appeared  in  Burton's  Gentleman's  Magazine, 
September,  1839.  In  the  story  the  authorship  of  the  poem  is 
appropriately  assigned  to  Roderick  Usher,  who,  in  his  fits  of  intense 
mental  excitement,  composes  on  his  guitar  impromptu  fantasias 
as  accompaniments  to  weird  songs  such  as  this.  Read  the  story 
for  its  own  sake  as  well  as  to  see  how  skillfully  the  poem  is  intro- 
duced and  how  well  it  shows  Usher's  mental  condition. 

EXPLANATORY: 

3,     A  fair  and  stately  palace.     That  is,  a  gifted  man. 
5.     The  monarch  Thought's  dominion.     Poe  was  himself  a  mon- 
arch in  the  intellectual  realm,  and  some  believe  that  he  is  here 
describing  himself  as  well  as  his  hero  Roderick  Usher.     What  is 
the  figure  of  speech? 

20.  To  a  lute's  well-tuned  law.  The  lute  is  an  old-fashioned  musi- 
cal instrument  of  the  guitar-mandolin  type;  used  here  as  typical 
of  poetical  genius. 

22.  Porphyrogene.  The  name  of  the  lord  of  the  stately  palace, 
the  literal  meaning  being  "born  to  the  purple."  Determine  the 
pronunciation  by  the  rime. 

29.  Echoes.  In  Greek  mythology  Echo  was  a  beautiful  Oread, 
or  mountain  nymph.  (Look  up  the  story  of  Narcissus  and  Echo.) 
Poe  here  pluralizes  the  word,  using  it  to  represent  all  sweet  sounds 
issuing  from  the  mouth  of  the  poet  or  singer. 

33.     Evil  things.     Sin  in  its  various  forms. 

42.  Red-litten.  We  should  now  say  lit  or  lighted.  What  is  the 
effect  of  the  archaic  participle? 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  poem  is  to  be  interpreted  allegorically  as  the  picture 
of  a  noble  or  gifted  man,  a  king  in  the  realm  of  thought,  who  has 
lost  his  mind  and  so  had  his  kingdom  taken  away  from  him. 
(2)  Why  is  the  palace  placed  in  Thought's  dominion?  (3)  What  do 
the  yellow  banners  represent?  (4)  What  is  the  effect  of  placing  the 
story  in  "the  olden  time  long  ago"?  (5)  What  does  the  image  of  the 
"ramparts  plumed  and  pallid"  suggest?  (6)  Who  are  the  wander- 
ers?' (7)  Interpret  the  "two  luminous  windows."  (8)  What  are 
represented  by  the  spirits?  (9)  Why  are  they  pictured  as  dancing 
around  Porphyrogene 's  throne  to  the  music  of  the  lute?  (10) 
Interpret  the  fair  palace  door.  Why  is  it  described  as  formed  of 
pearl  and  ruby?  (11)  What  do  Echoes  represent?  (12)  Suggest 
some  specific  interpretations  for  "evil  things."  (13)  What  condi- 
tions do  lines  37  to  40  describe?  (14)  Construe  entombed.  (15) 
Contrast  the  pictures  presented  in  stanzas  3  and  6.     (16)  What 


412  Southern  Literary  Readings 

does  "red-litten  windows"  suggest  to  your  imagination?  What 
physical  condition  do  red,  bloodshot  eyes  indicate?  (17)  Why 
is  the  door  now  described  as  pale?  (18)  What  sort  of  laughter 
is  that  in  which  there  is  no  smile?  (19)  Make  a  plain  prose  state- 
ment of  the  argument  of  the  entire  poem.  (20)  Classify  the  poem. 
Is  it  capable  of  adaptation  to  music?  (21)  The  rhythm  is  typically 
trochaic,  but  the  sudden  variations  and  irregularities  of  the  meter 
are  rather  difficult  for  young  students.  The  artistic  modulations 
and  charming  melody  of  the  lines,  however,  make  the  poem  a 
favorite  with  all  readers.  The  musical  devices  of  frequent  feminine 
or  double  rime,  abundant  alliteration,  and  skillful  repetition,  as 
well  as  the  richness  and  variety  of  vowel  concord  and  harmony, 
are  characteristic  of  Poe  at  his  best.  (22)  There  are  a  number  of 
slightly  "wrenched"  accents  for  the  sake  of  the  rime;  for  example, 
tenanted  line  2,  where  ed  must  be  accented  to  bring  out  the  rime 
with  head.  Find  similar  wrenched  accents  in  stanzas  3,  5,  and  6. 
(23)  Are  valleySf  palace  (lines  i,  3)  and  river,  forever  (lines  45,  47) 
good  rimes?  (24)  Find  several  good  examples  of  alliteration. 
(25)  In  what  tone  and  with  what  movement  should  the  poem  be 
read? 

The  Raven 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  Raven  appeared  in  the  Evening  Mirror  of  New  York,  January 
29,  1845,  from  advance  sheets  of  the  American  Whig  Review, 
where  it  was  formally  published  in  the  February  number.  In  March 
it  was  reprinted  in  The  Southern  Literary  Messenger,  and  later 
in  The  Broadway  Journal,  and  it  also  appeared  in  Poe's  volume  of 
1845,  The  Raven  and  Other  Poems.  The  Raven  may  be  classed  as 
a  "melancholy,  melodramatic,  reflective  lyric  of  love  and  sorrow," 
based  on  a  distinct  narrative.  Its  fundamental  theme  is  the  sepa- 
ration of  lovers  by  death.  There  have  been  various  allegorical 
interpretations  suggested  as  to  its  real  meaning,  but  Poe's  own 
idea  that  the  raven  is  emblematical  of  a  lover's  "mournful  and 
never-ending  remembrance"  of  his  lost  mistress  is  perhaps  the 
best  interpretation.  An  explanation  of  the  genesis  and  devel- 
opment of  the  poem  is  given  by  the  author  in  the  essay  on  The 
Philosophy  of  Composition,  which  will  be  found  immediately  follow- 
ing this  selection.  Though  the  poem  was  finished  about  two  years 
before  the  death  of  his  young  wife,  Virginia  Clemm  Poe,  it  is 
practically  certain  that  Poe  intended  Lenore  to  represent  her. 
The  whole  poem,  then,  is  based  on  Poe's  premonitions  of  what  his 
feelings  would  be  when  she  died,  for  it  was  already  well  known 
that  she  could  not  live  long. 

EXPLANATORY: 

10.  Surcease.     Complete  cessation.     An  archaic  or  poetic  word. 

11.  Lenore.  Burger,  a  German  lyric  poet,  wrote  a  ballad  under 
this  title.  Poe  was  particularly  fond  of  the  name.  Notice  how 
frequently  the  word  is  repeated  in  this  poem. 

38.  Stately  Raven.  The  raven  is  a  large  crow-like  bird,  noted  for 
its  intelligence  and  for  its  ability  to  speak  when  trained.     It  has  long 


The  Notes  413 

been  siiperstitiously  regarded  as  an  omen  of  death  or  calamity. 
Look  up  the  effective  use  of  the  raven  as  presaging  the  murder  of 
King  Duncan  in  Macbeth,  Act  I,  Sc.  v;  and  find  out  also  the  part 
played  by  the  raven  in  Dickens's  Barnaby  Rudge. 

41.  Pallas.  Another  name  for  Minerva  or  Athene,  the  goddess 
of  wisdom. 

45.  Shorn  and  shaven.  The  raven  is  not  ordinarily  bald,  but 
here  the  poet  so  conceives  him  for  grotesque  effect. 

47.  Nighfs  Plutonian  shore.  Pluto  was  the  god  of  the  lower 
regions.  Hence  the  adjective  Plutonian  is  suggestive  of  the  intense 
darkness  of  the  night.     Be  careful  not  to  confuse  Pluto  with  Plato. 

76.  Gloated.  To  gloat  means  to  look  upon  with  some  evil 
influence,  but  Poe  seems  to  use  the  word  here  in  the  sense  of  look  or 
shine  upon  exultingly  or  lovingly. 

82.  Respite.  Rest.  Nepenthe  was  a  drug  or  magic  drink  sup- 
posed by  the  ancients  to  free  one  from  sorrow  and  make  one  forget 
his  troubles.  The  poet  here  desires  to  forget  his  sorrow  on  account 
of  the  death  of  his  beloved  Lenore.     Pronounce  ne  pen'the. 

89.  Balm  in  Gilead.  "Is  there  no  balm  in  Gilead;  is  there  no 
physician  there?"  {Jeremiah,  viii.  22.)  That  is,  is  there  no  con- 
solation, no  remedy  for  the  sorrows  suffered  here?  Balm  or  balsam 
is  a  soothing  or  healing  medicine  extracted  from  the  plant  of  that 
name;  it  flourished  in  Gilead,  a  district  of  Canaan  lying  east  of  the 
Jordan. 

93.    Aidenn.     A  fanciful  variant  of  Eden  for  the  sake  of  the  rime. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Tell  the  story  briefly  in  your  own  words.  (2)  Is  there  unity 
of  effect?  Is  there  anything  in  the  poem  that  could  be  omitted  with- 
out loss?  (3)  Point  out  some  of  the  many  noble  lines  that  are  easily 
separated  from  the  context.  (4)  What  is  the  dominant  tone?  (5) 
Seek  to  gather  the  total  impression  of  the  poem.  Visualize  as 
clearly  as  you  can  every  image.  (6)  How  does  the  first  stanza  set 
forth  time,  place,  and  incident?  (7)  What  conception  do  you  get 
of  the  student?  How  is  he  engaged?  (8)  Notice  how  the  furnish- 
ings of  the  room,  as  they  appear  later,  accord  with  his  tastes  and 
mode  of  life.  (9)  What  is  there  in  the  last  line  of  stanza  i  to  excite 
the  reader's  curiosity?  (10)  How  is  the  time  more  definitely  stated 
in  the  second  stanza?  (11)  How  do  the  weather  conditions,  the 
incident  of  the  raven's  entrance,  and  the  quiet  and  luxury  of  the 
interior  scene  help  to  create  the  dominant  tone  of  the  poem?  (12) 
Notice  how  suggestive  of  the  sound  of  moving  silk  are  the  words  in 
the  first  line  of  stanza  3.  (13)  What  is  the  cause  of  the  student's 
sorrow?  In  what  line  is  it  stated?  What,  then,  is  the  theme  of  the 
poem?  (14)  Why  does  he  hesitate  to  open  the  door  at  first?  (15) 
What  is  the  effect  of  the  last  line  of  stanza  4?  (16)  Of  what  do  you 
think  the  student  is  dreaming  as  he  looks  out  into  the  darkness?  (17) 
What  is  suggested  by  ' '  all  my  soul  within  me  burning  "  ?  (18)  What 
do  you  think  of  the  rimes  that  is,  lattice,  thereat  is?  (19)  Why  is  it 
more  effective  to  have  the  raven  come  in  at  the  window  than  at  the 
door?     Is  there  anything   unnatural  or  grotesque  in   this?     (20) 


414  Southern  Literary  Readings 

"With  many  a  flirt  aud  flutter,  in  there  stepped  a  stately  Raven." 
How  does  this  image  impress  you?  (21)  How  do  you  think  the 
black  raven  on  the  marble  bust  would  look?  (22)  You  see  in  the 
first  line  of  the  eighth  stanza  what  effect  this  picture  has  on  the  lover. 
Explain  it.  (23)  What  sort  of  question  does  the  lover  first  put  to 
the  raven?  (24)  Why  is  the  "Nevermore"  of  this  stanza  and  the 
next  written  with  a  capital?  Explain  the  use  of  the  capital  or  small 
letter  in  this  word  in  other  stanzas.  (25)  In  what  tone  do  you  think 
the  raven  utters  the  word?  (See  line  56.)  (26)  Does  the  scholar 
doubt  that  this  is  the  bird's  name?  (27)  In  the  tenth  stanza  (line 
58)  the  student  apparently  classes  the  raven  among  his  friends. 
Does  he  seem  to  regret  the  probable  flight  of  the  bird?  (28)  What 
hopes  of  his  have  flown  before?  (29)  How  does  Poe's  own  experience 
compare  with  that  of  the  student  as  set  forth  here?  (30)  Why 
is  the  bird  called  ominous?  (See  note  on  line  38.)  (31)  In  what 
state  of  mind  is  the  student  as  he  sinks  into  his  velvet  cushions? 
(32)  Why  do  the  bird's  fiery  eyes  burn  into  his  soul?  (33)  Why 
is  he  afraid  of  the  bird?  (34)  Why  is  she  italicized?  To  whom 
does   Poe  refer?     (35)  Why  does  the  air  seem  to  grow  denser? 

(36)  Can  you  fix  clearly  in  your  mind  the  image  of  tinkling  footfalls? 

(37)  To  whom  does  wretch  refer?     Who  speaks,   and  to  whom? 

(38)  How  is  he  affected  by  the  raven's  startling  answer  to  his  solilo- 
q'^y?  (39)  In  what  tone  does  he  appeal  to  the  raven  to  know  if 
there  is  balm  in  Gilead?  What  is  there  to  show  that  he  is  highly 
excited  now?  (40)  Do  you  think  he  has  already  guessed  the  answer 
the  raven  will  give?  (41)  Poe  says  he  wrote  stanza  16  (lines  91-96) 
first  and  intended  it  to  be  the  climax  of  the  poem.  How  does  the 
whole  poem  seem  to  center  in  this  stanza?  (42)  Why  in  the  next 
stanza  does  the  lover  shriek  and  order  the  bird  back  into  the  night? 

(43)  What  is  the  meaning  of  "take  thy  beak  from  out  my  heart"? 

(44)  What  is  implied  in  the  raven's  answer  to  this  appeal?  (45) 
How  many  times  does  the  line  "Quoth  the  Raven,  'Nevermore,'" 
occur?  (46)  How  does  the  lover's  mood  change  in  the  last  stanza? 
(47)  What  is  meant  by  the  last  two  lines?  Does  the  lover  give  up 
all  hope  of  forgetting  his  lost  Lenore?  Does  he  also  give  up  hope 
of  gaining  surcease  of  his  sorrow?  (48)  Some  have  criticized  the 
poem  here  because  the  shadow  could  not  have  fallen  on  the  floor 
unless  the  lamp  were  on  the  wall  above  the  bird.  Poe  said  his 
idea  was  that  there  was  a  bracket  candelabrum  on  the  wall  high 
above  the  bust  and  the  door.  Does  he  make  this  idea  quite  clear 
anywhere  in  the  poem?  (49)  The  typical  foot  is  trochaic,  and  the 
number  of  stresses  is  eight  except  in  the  last  line  of  the  stanza, 
which  has  four  stresses.  The  lines  ending  in  the  masculine  rime 
-ore  are  catalectic;  that  is,  they  lack  one  syllable  of  filling  out  the 
trochaic  rhythm.  (See  Poe's  own  remarks  on  the  meter,  pp.  95-96, 
and  the  note,  p.  416.)  Scan  the  first  two  lines.  The  pause  after 
dreary  really  divides  the  line  into  two  tetrameter  or  four-stress 
lines,  and  the  internal  rime  {dreary,  weary)  emphasizes  the  break. 
But  in  many  other  lines  there  is  no  pause  at  this  point,  and  the 
rime  is  much  less  emphatic.  Find  examples.  (50)  Study  out 
fully  the  rime  scheme  of  the  whole  poem.     Notice  that  the  only 


The  Notes  41^ 

masculine  or  single-syllable  rime  is  on  the  deep  o-vowel  in  combina- 
tion with  r,  as  in  -ore.  How  often  and  where  does  this  rime  occur? 
What  is  the  effect  of  the  feminine  rimes,  like  weary,  dreary,  napping 
tapping,  rapping  ?  Find  other  examples  of  feminine  rimes  repeated 
two,  three,  and  even  four  times.  (51)  Notice  how  repetition  and 
refrain  are  constantly  employed,  as  in  lines  4  and  5,  and  21  and  22. 
Point  out  several  other  instances.  The  whole  poem  may  be  said 
to  be  a  study  in  refrain  effects.  (52)  Alliteration  is  another  kind 
of  rime  or  sound  agreement,  in  which  the  first  consonant  sounds  of 
words  or  accented  syllables  are  the  same.  Examples  are  "rare  and 
radiant,"  "silken,  sa,6.,  uncertain,"  "grim,  ungainly,  ghostly,  gaunt." 
Find  others.  All  of  this,  together  with  the  rich,  deep  vowel  com- 
binations, adds  to  the  sonorousness  and  melody  of  the  poem.  (53) 
Besides  this  abundant  tone  quality,  there  is  much  to  make  the  poem 
richly  sensuous.  Take,  for  example,  the  quaint  and  curious  volume, 
the  curtains  of  purple  silk,  the  sculptured  bust  of  Pallas,  the  seats  of 
cushioned  velvet,  the  gloating  lamplight,  the  perfume,  etc.  The 
luxurious,  the  beautiful,  the  fantastic,  the  weird,  the  grotesque,  are 
wonderfully  blended  throughout. 

The  Philosophy  of  Composition 

INTRODUCTORY: 

The  Philosophy  of  Composition  appeared  in  Graham's  Magazine, 
April,  1846,  about  fourteen  months  after  the  first  appearance  of 
The  Raven.  The  poem  had  sprung  at  once  into  wide  popularity,  and 
the  author  was  thus  justified  in  choosing  that  well-known  compo- 
sition as  the  subject  of  his  analysis.  All  appearances  of  egotism  or 
self-praise  are  carefully  avoided,  and  the  essay  thus  becomes  of 
permanent  interest  as  an  example  of  Poe's  critical  acumen  and 
analytical  power.  There  is  the  same  careful  and  full  logic  here 
which  we  have  already  noticed  as  one  of  the  chief  characteristics 
of  the  style  of  The  Gold  Bug.  Every  detail  is  carefully  elaborated, 
and  no  point  in  the  process  of  composition  or  in  the  mechanism  of 
the  poem  is  left  in  doubt.  If  we  are  to  accept  with  full  credence 
all  that  Poe  has  to  say  in  this  essay,  we  are  forced  to  the  conclusion 
that  The  Raven  was  composed  almost  mechanically.  But  the  fire 
of  genius,  the  glow  of  spontaneous  production,  the  light  of  inspira- 
tion, are  apparent  everywhere  in  the  poem,  and  it  rises  far  above 
the  mere  mechanical  type  of  poetical  composition.  It  must  be 
remembered  that  the  analysis  was  written  something  over  a  year 
after  the  poem  was  published,  and  hence  contains,  doubtless,  some 
ideas  that  came  subconsciously  into  the  author's  mind  simultane- 
ously with  or  subsequently  to  the  actual  composition  of  the  poem. 

The  essay  should  be  read  only  after  a  careful  study  and  analysis 
of  the  poem  itself. 

EXPLANATORY: 

3.  "  Barnaby  Rudge."  In  the  Saturday  Evening  Post,  in  1841, 
Poe,. who  had  seen  the  serial  parts  of  the  first  volume  of  Barnaby 
Rudge,  predicted  the  plot  of  the  novel  with  such  absolute  preci- 
sion as  to  startle  its  author.     Dickens  was  amazed  by  Poe's  powers 


4i6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

of  concentrated  reasoning  and  his  perfect  prevision  in  analysis. 
Says — .  Notice  how  frequently  Poe  employs  the  dash  where 
modern  usage  would  require  a  comma  or  some  other  mark  of  punc- 
tuation. Notice  also  his  frequent  use  of  the  comma  for  a  rhetorical 
or  elocutionary  pause  in  the  reading,  where  the  sense  or  construction 
would  not  require  it,  and  hence  where  modern  usage  would  omit  it. 
Make  a  careful  study  of  the  punctuation  of  this  essay. 

4.  Godwin.  William  Godwin  was  a  noted  novelist,  philosopher, 
and  miscellaneous  writer  of  the  late  eighteenth  and  early  nineteenth 
century.  His  best-remembered  production  is  the  novel  Caleb 
Williams ,  published  in  1794. 

16.  Denouement.  Unraveling  of  plot,  ending;  a  French  word 
found  frequently  in  this  essay.     Pronounced  da-noo'maN. 

65.     Histrio.     Actor.     A  Latin  word. 

75.  Desideratum.  Thing  to  be  desired.  Latin.  Modus  ope- 
randi, just  below,  is  another  bit  of  Latin,  meaning  method  of  pro- 
cedure or  operation.  Make  a  complete  list  of  the  foreign  words 
and  phrases  and  their  meanings,  and  consider  their  general  effect 
on  the  style  of  the  essay. 

96.  Ceteris  paribus.  Other  things  being  equal.  From  what 
language? 

104.    Psychal.    Of  the  soul. 

140.  A  few  words.  The  verb  phrase  has  been  intentionally 
omitted.     Supply  the  full  sense. 

328.  Less  of  invention  than  negation.  The  meaning  apparently 
is  that  originality  consists  more  in  the  negative  mental  action  of 
refusing  to  follow  established  models  than  in  the  positive  mental 
action  required  in  finding  or  inventing  entirely  new  forms.  Do  you 
agree  with  this?  t 

331.  Acatalectic.  Not  curtailed  or  cut  short.  Catalectic  means 
cut  short  by  one  syllable. 

464.  ^  Transcendentalists.  Those  who  held  to  transcendentalism, 
a  doctrine  of  philosophy  setting  forth  intuitive  or  immediate  com- 
prehension of  truth  without  the  intervention  of  experience  or 
reason.  They  stood  generally  for  a  sort  of  idealism,  mysticism, 
and  liberalism,  in  art  and  in  life. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  type  of  composition  is  this?  (2)  How  may  it  be 
divided  into  large  divisions?  Consider  the  first  seven  paragraphs 
as  one  part  and  the  remainder  of  the  composition  as  another.  (3) 
Now,  how  may  the  subheads  be  arranged  under  each  part?  Consider 
the  following  as  merely  suggestive : 

A .  General  discussion  of  methods  of  composing. 

1 .  How  to  begin  a  work  of  art. 

2.  Different  methods  of  constructing  a  story. 

B.  Application  to  a  specific  composition:  The  Raven. 

1.  First  aim,  universality  of  appeal. 

2.  Extent  or  length  of  the  poem  determined.     (Make  several 

subdivisions  here.) 

3.  The  impression  or  effect  to  be  attained. 


The  Notes  41 "/ 

4.  Sadness  the  proper  tone. 

5.  Artistic  piquancy  to  be  attained  by  the  device  of  the  refrain. 

6.  The  nature  of  the  proposed  refrain. 

7.  The  method  of  monotonous  repetition  determined  and  the 

raven  selected  as  the  means. 

8.  The  most  poetical  thing  in  the  world. 

9.  Combining  the  raven  and  the  bereft-lover  motives. 

10.  The  actual  composition  beginning  with  the  end. 

1 1 .  The  versification  determined ;  the  stanza  original. 

12.  The  setting. 

13.  The  use  of  contrast. 

14.  The  end  of  the  narrative  proper. 

15.  The  metaphorical  application. 

(4)  What  does  Poe  condemn  in  the  usual  method  of  beginning  the 
composition  of  a  story?  (5)  What  is  his  own  method  of  beginning? 
(6)  Why  does  he  insist  that  a  poem  should  not  be  too  long  to  be 
readat  one  sitting?  (7)  Did  he  ever  write  a  long  poem?  (8)  In  an- 
other essay  Poe  said:  "I  hold  that  a  long  poem  does  not  exist.  I 
maintain  that  the  phrase  'a  long  poem'  is  simply  a  flat  contradiction 
in  terms."  Do  you  agree  entirely  with  him  in  this?  Do  you  accept 
the  statement  that  Paradise  Lost  is  deprived  by  its  length  of  totality 
or  unity  of  effect?  (9)  In  what  sense  does  the  author  insist  that 
beauty  is  the  sole  legitimate  province  of  the  poem?  What  nine- 
teenth-century English  poet  held  practically  the  same  view?  The 
following  quotations  are  from  this  poet:  "A  thing  of  beauty  is  a 
joy  forever";  "Beauty  is  truth,  truth  beauty — that  is  all  ye  know 
on  earth,  and  all  ye  need  to  know. "  (10)  Do  you  think  that  sadness 
is  the  most  poetical  of  all  moods?  Another  English  poet  has  said, 
"Our  sweetest  songs  are  those  which  tell  of  saddest  thought."  Can 
you  name  the  poet  and  place  this  quotation?  (11)  Poe  says  "the 
long  o  is  the  most  sonorous  vowel"  and  "r  the  most  producible 
consonant."  Exactly  what  does  he  mean  by  this?  (12)  Why  did 
the  poet  write  first  the  stanza  containing  the  climax?  (13)  Do  you 
understand  what  Poe  has  to  say  5,bout  the  verse?  Scan  a  stanza 
of  the  poem  and  thus  test  your  knowledge.  (14)  In  what  points 
of  technique  does  he  claim  some  originality?  (15)  Note  the  distinct 
change  in  tone,  in  the  passages  quoted,  to  illustrate  the  grotesque 
or  fantastic  element  and  that  in  which  profound  seriousness  is 
dominant.  (16)  How  do  the  last  stanzas  differ  from  the  rest  of 
the  poem?  (17)  Explain  what  the  author  means  by  "the  first 
metaphorical  expression."  (18)  What  does  he  set  forth  as  the 
final  allegorical  meaning  of  the  whole  poem?  How  is  this  thought 
expressed  in  the  poem?  Is  it  literal,  metaphorical,  or  suggestive? 
(19)  Now  read  the  poem  through  again,  recalling  all  you  can  of  the 
analysis  as  presented  in  the  essay  just  studied. 

The  Bells 

INTRODUCTORY: 

The  Bells  was  first  published  in  the  April  number  of  the  Home 
Journal,  1849.  It  also  appeared  in  Sartain's  Union  Magazine  in 
November  of  the  same  year. 

27 


4i8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

EXPLANATORY: 

10.  Runic  rhyme.  A  rune  is  an  early  type  of  alphabetic  char- 
acter used  by  the  Germanic  peoples  before  the  introduction  of  the 
Roman  characters.  Runes  were  looked  upon  as  mysterious  signs; 
hence  the  meaning  of  the  adjective  here  is  mystic,  mysterious. 

11.  Tintinnabulation.  An  example  of  onomatapoeia,  or  the 
adaptation  of  sound  to  sense.  Note  how  well  the  word  expresses 
the  ringing  or  tinkling  of  bells. 

20.  Molten-golden.  Melted  gold,  as  though  the  notes  were  made 
of  liquid  gold. 

23.  Turtle-dove.  Emblematic  of  love.  Poe  seems  to  use  gloat 
in  the  sense  of  to  gaze  steadily  on,  with  no  connotation  of  malign 
or  evil  influence.     Compare  the  note  on  line  76  of  The  Raven. 

72.  Monody.  A  melancholy  poem  or  ode  sung  by  one  voice; 
here  used  as  representative  of  the  single  tone  or  note  of  the  bell 
tolling  for  the  dead.     Compare  "muffled  monotone"    just  below. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Outline  the  poem,  giving  a  suitable  heading  for  each  of  the 
stanzas.  (2)  Notice  with  what  period  of  life  each  stanza  deals. 
The  poem,  then,  is  an  allegorical  presentation  of  human  life — youth, 
marriage,  misfortune,  death.  Prove  this.  (3)  In  this  view  is  appar- 
ent its  perfect  unity.  What  other  unifying  devices  do  you  discover? 
Examine  the  opening  and  closing  lines  of  each  stanza.  (4)  What 
further  parallelisms  do  you  notice  in  the  structure  of  the  stanzas? 
(5)  How  many  lines  are  there  in  each  stanza?  (6)  Do  you  find 
any  cumulative  refrain  effects  as  the  stanzas  increase  in  length? 
(7)  Why  is  this  artistic?  The  whole  poem  may  be  considered  as 
a  kind  of  study  of  climaK,  increasing  in  intensity  and  rapidity  of 
movement  continuously  to  the  close.  (8)  How  would  you  classify 
this  poem,  now  that  you  understand  its  meaning  somewhat  more 
fully?  (9)  Examine  the  poem  for  musical  effects.  Note  how  many 
fine  examples  of  onomatapoeia  there  are  in  it.  Point  out  several. 
(10)  What  onomatapoetic  words  are  used  to  distinguish  the 
different  kinds  of  bells?  (11)  What  various  metals  does  the  poet 
select  for  the  different  subjects  treated?  Why  is  each  appro- 
priate? (12)  How  do  you  think  the  paired  words,  jingling  and 
tinkling,  jangling  and  wrangling,  clamor  and  clangor,  moaning  and 
groaning,  etc.,  help  to  create  the  desired  effect?  (13)  Study  the 
rimes  carefully,  noticing  how  many  of  them  are  feminine,  like 
sprinkle,  twinkle.  (14)  Find  several  examples  of  internal  rime, 
like  swinging,  ringing,  line  31.  (15)  What  rime  sound  is  most  fre- 
quently repeated  in  the  poem?  Notice  how  suggestive  it  is  of  the 
sound  of  bells.  Compare  its  continuous  use  with  that  of  the  -ore 
rime  in  The  Raven.  (16)  Why  are  certain  words  so  many  times 
repeated?  (17)  Study  the  numerous  examples  of  alliteration 
throughout  the  poem,  such  as  merriment  .  .  .  melody,  in  line  3.  (18) 
Study  also  the  assonance  or  vowel  concord,  as  in  "jcy  air  of  m'ght. " 
(19)  Notice  the  predominance  of  the  light  i,  1,  and  e,  e  vowels  in  the 
first,  the  broad,  full  a,  o,  and  a  vowels  in  the  second,  the  rapid  con- 
trasts and  clashes  of  various  vowels  in  the  third,  and  the  deep, 


The  Notes  /fig 

sonorous  o  sounds  in  the  fourth  stanza.  (20)  What  movements 
would  you  assign  to  the  different  stanzas?  How  would  you  read 
each?  (21)  What  time  is  noted  in  each  stanza?  How  does  this 
help  to  unify  and  emphasize  the  general  effect?  Why  are  sounds 
better  heard  at  night?  (22)  How  is  night  conceived  of  in  such 
expressions  as  "the  startled  ear  of  night"?  (23)  What  is  the 
difference  between  the  terror  in  stanza  3  and  the  affright  in  stanza  4? 
(24)  In  the  original  manuscript  the  eighth  line  of  the  fourth  stanza 
read,  "From  out  their  ghostly  throats."  Why  is  the  line  in  the 
text  an  improvement  over  this?  What  does  rust  suggest  to  the 
imagination?  (25)  How  and  why  is  the  loneliness  of  the  bell- 
tollers  emphasized?  (26)  What  is  suggested  by  lines  84  and  85? 
(27)  Why  are  the  people  who  toll  the  bells  called  ghouls?  (28)  Why 
do  they  seem  to  rejoice  in  tolling  death  knells?  (29)  Why  is  the 
king  of  ghouls  introduced?  (30)  How  are  the  first  and  last  stanzas 
organically  and  technically  united  in  the  latter  part  of  the  last 
stanza? 

Annabel  Lee 
INTRODUCTORY: 

In  this  poem  Poe  celebrates  his  love  for  his  cousin  Virginia  Clemm, 
who  while  yet  a  mere  child  became  his  wife,  and  over  whom  he 
watched  and  for  whom  he  cared  with  a  pathetic  tenderness  through 
her  long  struggle  against  that  terrible  monster  consumption.  She 
died  in  1847,  and  the  poem  may  have  been  written  shortly  after 
her  death.  It  was  not  published,  however,  until  1849,  the  year  of 
Poe's  death,  when  it  appeared  in  the  New  York  Tribune,  October  9. 

EXPLANATORY: 

12.  Coveted.  Compare  envying  in  line  22,  and  mark  the  slight 
distinction  in  the  meanings  of  the  two  words. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  is  the  theme  of  the  lyric?  Sum  up  the  whole  poem 
in  one  sentence.  (2)  What  time  is  indicated  in  line  i,  and  what 
is  the  effect  of  this?  (3)  Why  did  the  author  choose  the  indefinite 
"kingdom  by  the  sea"?  (4)  What  do  you  suppose  led  him  to  select 
the  name  Annabel  Lee?  Repeat  it  aloud  several  times;  notice 
how  often  it  occurs  in  the  poem.  (5)  What  is  the  meaning  of  lines 
15,  16?  (6)  How  is  this  thought  made  more  emphatic  in  lines  25, 
26?  (7)  How,  then,  does  the  speaker  explain  the  death  of  his 
loved  one?  (8)  How  does  he  console  himself  in  the  last  lines  (30- 
41)?  (9)  How  are  sweetness  and  melody  increased  in  these  last 
lines?  (Study  the  sound  and  position  of  the  words  ever,  dissever, 
never;  beams,  dreams;  rise,  eyes;  tide,  side,  bride.)  (10)  How  many 
words  and  phrases  are  repeated  for  musical  effect?  (11)  How 
should  the  poem  be  read?  (Loudly,  softly,  rapidly,  slowly,  moder- 
ately?) (12)  What  is  the  principal  emotion  expressed?  (13)  The 
movement  of  this  poem  is  typically  anapaestic,  that  is,  usually 
two  light  or  unaccented  syllables  precede  each  accented  or  stressed 
syllable  in  the  line ;  and  usually  the  lines  of  four  accented  or  stressed 
syllables  are  followed  by  lines  of  three  stresses.     (14)  Point  out 


420  Southern  Literary  Readings 

several  substitutions  of  iambic  for  anapaestic  feet.  This  gives 
variety  and  prevents  mechanical  monotony  in  the  rhythm.  (15) 
Occasionally  the  rhythm  seems  reversed,  that  is,  dactylic  instead 
of  anapaestic.  Examine  and  scan  lines  7,  10,  26.  It  is  perhaps 
better  to  assume  omitted  syllables  at  the  beginning  of  the  line  and 
thus  preserve  the  anap^stic  rhythm  throughout. 

The  Masque  of  the  Red  Death 

INTRODUCTORY: 

The  Masque  of  the  Red  Death  was  first  published  in  Graham's 
Magazine,  May,  1842,  and  later  appeared  in  a  somewhat  revised 
form  in  the  Broadway  Journal,  II,  2.  It  belongs  to  the  group  of 
horror  stories  by  Poe,  and  is  an  excellent  example  of  vivid  and  imagi- 
native descriptive  and  narrative  writing,  rich  in  color  and  subtle 
suggestiveness,  and  eminently  characteristic  of  Poe's  genius  at  its 
best. 

EXPLANATORY: 

Masque.  This  is  a  variant,  after  the  French  spelling,  of  mask. 
It  is  used  here  in  the  sense  of  a  masquerade  or  masked  ball, 

I.  Red  Death.  Poe  invented  this  disease,  though  it  may  have 
been  suggested  by  smallpox,  which  was  at  the  time  he  wrote  much 
more  fatal  in  its  effect  than  now. 

3.  A  vatar.  This  word  means  literally  a  descent,  and  was  applied 
in  the  original  Sanscrit  to  the  descent  of  a  Hindu  deity  to  earth  in  a 
natural  form,  that  is,  a  form  manifest  to  human  beings.  Hence 
the  meaning  here  is  visible  manifestation  or  sign.  Pronounced 
av'd-tar'. 

7.  Pest  ban.  A  barp  is  a  proclamation  or  edict;  here  it  is  used 
as  a  sign  of  the  curse  or  interdiction  which  was  set  upon  one  attacked 
by  the  pest. 

II.  Prince  Prospero.  The  name  is  suggested  by  Shakspere's 
character  in  The  Tempest,  the  Duke  of  Milan,  who  was  shipwrecked 
on  an  island  and  there  learned  to  work  enchantments  througl.i 
Ariel  and  other  spirits. 

16.  Castellated  abbeys.  Castellated  means  provided  with  towers 
and  battlements.  An  abbey  is  literally  the  residence  of  an  abbot, 
or  a  group  of  buildings  inhabited  by  monks.  Here  it  is  used  for 
king's  palace  or  castle. 

28.  Improvvisatori.  Musicians  or  poets  who  made  up  their 
entertainment  spontaneously  or  without  previous  practice  or  study. 
The  plural  form  here  used  is  the  Italian.  Pronounced  im'prov-ve'- 
zato're.     Why  does  Poe  use  this  form? 

39.  Suite.  A  French  word.  Literally,  following;  here,  a  series 
of  connected  apartments.     How  is  the  word  pronounced? 

112.  Decora.  Customs,  outward  proprieties.  The  Latin  plural 
of  decorum. 

123.  Hernani.  A  romantic  drama  by  Victor  Hugo.  It  has 
several  scenes  of  fantastic  and  grotesque  effect.  Arabesque  means 
fanciful,  after  the  manner  of  the  Roman  and  Renaissance  ornamen- 
tation known  as  arabesque,  so  termed  because  most  successfully 


The  Notes  421 

employed  by  Arabian  artists.  Poe  called  the  collection  in  which 
The  Red  Death  appeared  Tales  of  the  Grotesque  and  Arabesque,  a 
finely  descriptive  title,  as  this  story  amply  illustrates. 

149.  Their  ears.  An  objective  genitive;  more  properly  "the 
ears  of  those." 

175.  Out-Heroded  Herod.  Herod  was  the  ruler  of  Judea  about 
the  time  of  the  birth  of  Christ.  In  old  plays  in  which  he  was 
represented,  his  role  was  characterized  by  ranting  and  boisterous 
acting.  So  the  phrase  "out-Herod  Herod,"  first  used  in  Shakspere's 
Hamlet,  developed  the  meaning  of  surpass  or  outdo. 

THOUGHT  .QUESTIONS  AND   LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Read  the  opening  and  the  closing  sentence,  and  then  recall 
the  progress  of  the  story,  noticing  how  perfectly  the  whole  is  unified. 
(2)  State  the  theme  in  one  sentence.  (3)  Is  there  any  lesson  taught? 
(4)  Is  there  any  definite  time  fixed  for  the  story?  Any  definite 
place?  (5)  In  what  country  do  you  imagine  the  scene  is  laid? 
Do  the  tastes  of  the  prince  and  the  descriptions  of  his  luxurious 
surroundings  offer  any  suggestion?  (6)  How  is  the  Red  Death 
described  in  the  first  paragraph?  (7)  How  is  the  character  of  the 
prince  set  forth?  (8)  Has  he  taken  the  thousand  of  his  knights 
and  dames  to  protect  them  from  the  plague,  or  to  gratify  himself? 
(9)  Why  do  they  weld  the  bars  in  the  iron  gates?  (10)  Explain 
ingress  and  egress,  and  make  a  list  of  similar  words  that  are  inter- 
esting for  their  etymology.  (11)  What  part  of  the  narrative  begins 
at  the  third  paragraph?  (12)  Describe  the  scene  of  the  masquerade. 
(13)  What  is  the  dominant  tone  in  all  the  description?  (14)  Why 
is  a  new  paragraph  devoted  to  the  ebony  clock?  Why  ebony?  (15) 
What  do  you  think  of  the  sounds  issuing  from  this  clock?  (16)  How 
do  they  affect  the  musicians  and  masqueraders?  (17)  How  is  this 
motive  worked  up  to  a  climax?  Notice  how  many  times  the  strik- 
ing of  the  clock  is  mentioned.  (18)  Why  does  the  author  insert 
the  parenthetical  remark  about  the  three  thousand  and  six  hundred 
seconds?  (19)  Does  this  seem  to  be  the  first  intimation  of  unhap- 
piness  or  coming  disaster?  (20)  What  is  the  general  character  of 
the  costumes?  Is  the  dominant  tone  continually  subserved  in 
these  details?  (21)  What  is  the  effect  of  calling  the  mummers 
dreams?  (22)  What  happens  at  the  stroke  of  twelve  by  the  ebony 
clock?  (23)  What  emotions  are  aroused  here?  (24)  Why  do  the 
revelers  object  to  having  an  image  or  mask  of  the  Red  Death  among 
them?  (25)  Describe  in  detail  the  costume  of  the  strange  mummer. 
What  is  the  effect  on  your  feelings?  (26)  Why  is  the  word  blood 
italicized?  (27)  A  separate  paragraph  is  devoted  to  Prince  Pros- 
pero's  emotion  on  seeing  the  strange  mummer.  Why?  (28)  Why 
did  the  author  put  the  scene  of  this  outbreak  in  the  eastern  room? 
(29)  Why  do  the  courtiers  refuse  to  seize  the  intruder?  (30)  Do 
the  colors  of  the  rooms  as  here  given  follow  the  order  as  set  forth 
on  p.  107?  (31)  What  is  the  prince's  purpose  in  rushing  after  the 
strange  mummer?  (32)  How  do  you  explain  his  death  in  the 
black-draped,  scarlet-lit  room?  (33)  Why  do  the  other  revelers 
finally  follow  the  mummer?     (34)  What  do  they  find  in  the  mask 


/122  Southern  Literary  Readings 

and  grave-clothes?  Can  you  explain  this?  (35)  What  does  the 
figure  really  typify?  (36)  Can  you  offer  any  solution  of  the  mystery 
of  the  ebony  clock  and  the  appearance  of  the  Red  Death  inside  the 
castle?  (37)  Compare  this  story  with  Lady  Eleanore's  Mantle, 
a  similar  tale  by  Hawthorne,  in  Twice-told  Tales. 

Land  of  the  South 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  song  is  introduced  in  a  long  patriotic  poem  of  mediocre 
quality,  called  The  Day  of  Freedom,  which  the  poet  read  at  a  celebra- 
tion held  in  Tuscaloosa,  Alabama,  July  4,  1838. 

EXPLANATORY: 

19.     Helvyn's  hills.     The  Swiss  Alps. 

21.  Tempe.  The  valley  between  Mounts  Olympus  and  Ossa  in 
Thessaly,  northern  Greece,  famous  for  its  idyllic  beauty. 

33.  Heaven's  best  gift.  Quoted  with  slight  changes  from  Milton's 
Paradise  Lost,  V,  18. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND   LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  is  the  theme  of  this  lyric,  and  how  is  it  repeated  in  every 
stanza?  (2)  Select  a  suitable  topic  for  each  of  the  six  stanzas,  and 
thus  construct  a  simple  outline  of  the  poem.  (3)  What  natural 
scenic  beauties  are  mentioned  in  stanzas  i  and  2  ?  (4)  What  is  the 
force  of  the  comparisons  in  stanza  3?  (5)  Did  the  wish  or  hope 
expressed  in  the  last  stanza  remain  unfulfilled?*  Did  Meek  carry 
out  the  resolution  expressed  in  the  last  two  lines?  (6)  The  me- 
ter is  iambic  four-  and  three-stress  verses,  with  alternate  rime 
throughout  the  stanza  except  in  the  fifth  and  seventh  lines,  which 
are  unrimed.  , 

The  Mocking-bird 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  excellent  lyric  is  given  the  second  place  in  Judge  Meek's 
Songs  and  Poems  of  the  South.  Dr.  Charles  Hunter  Ross  speaks  of 
it  as  "the  best  poem  of  Meek's  collection,"  and  he  adds  that  his 
friend  Professor  Morgan  Callaway,  Jr.,  who  has  made  a  special  study 
of  a  large  number  of  poems  on  the  mocking  bird,  considers  Meek's 
superior  to  any  of  the  others. 

EXPLANATORY: 

12.     Mime.     An  imitator  or  mimic. 

16.  Crusader.  A  medieval  Christian  knight  who  went  on  one 
of  the  various  military  expeditions  against  the  Saracens  in  the  Hol>^ 
Land. 

25.  Petrarch.  One  of  the  greatest  of  the  Italian  lyric  poets 
(1304-1374).  His  love  sonnets  to  his  proud  mistress  Laura  be- 
came the  model  for  many  imitations  in  both  Italian  and  English 
literature. 

32.  Anacreon.  A  Greek  lyric  poet  (563[?]-478  B.C.)  who  wrote 
principally  on  themes  of  love  and  sensuous  pleasure. 

38.  Troubadour.  An  early  French  lyric  poet  of  the  Provencal 
district,  who  sang  principally  of  love  and  war.     See  note  104,  p.  405. 


The  Notes  423 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND   LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  poem  is  properly  classified  as  a  nature  or  bird  lyrie, 
though  in  reality  it  may  also  be  called  a  love  song.  Why?  (2) 
At  what  time  does  the  poet  hear  the  bird?  Is  this  true  to  the  habits 
of  the  mocking  bird?  (3)  Where  does  the  poet  imagine  himself, 
and  who  is  with  him?  (4)  What  trees  are  mentioned  for  local  color 
effect  in  stanza  i?  (5)  Why  is  the  bird  called  "wild  poet"  and 
"mime  and  minstrel"?  (6)  Explain  the  allusion  to  Petrarch  and 
Laura,  and  say  just  what  is  meant  by  "sylvan  Petrarch"  and 
"woodland  Laura."  (7)  Why  is  the  mocking  bird  called  "winged 
Anacreon"  and  "troubadour"?  (8)  Does  the  poem  rise  to  a  fitting 
climax?  Explain.  (9)  The  meter  is  trochaic  four-stress  with  an 
eight-line  stanza  and  a  four-line  refrain,  all  alternately  rimed. 
Which  lines  have  feminine  and  which  masculine  rimes?  (10)  In 
which  stanza  is  the  feminine  rime  lacking  in  the  first  and  third 
lines?  (11)  Find  two  examples  of  imperfect  rime,  and  say  whether 
or  not  you  think  they  seriously  mar  the  poem.  (12)  Compare  this 
poem  with  the  one  by  Hilton  Ross  Greer  on  p.  366. 

The  Bivouac  of  the  Dead 

EXPLANATORY: 

I.     Muffled  drum.     Drums  are  usually  muffled  when  used  in 
beating  the  funeral  march. 

20.  Shroud.  A  soldier  who  falls  in  battle  is  honored  by  being 
shrouded  or  wrapped  in  his  country's  flag. 

36.  Serried.  Drawn  up  rank  upon  rank  in  battle  array.  The 
foe  was  led  by  Santa  Anna,  the  great  Mexican  commander,  who  had 
over  twenty  thousand  men  as  against  less  than  five  thousand  under 
the  American  general,  Zachary  Taylor. 

47.  Chieftain.  General  Zachary  Taylor.  In  the  next  stanza 
(lines  53-56)  reference  is  made  to  General  Taylor's  career  in  the 
War  of  1 812,  in  which  he  commanded  a  company  of  Kentuckians 
in  the  campaigns  against  the  Indian  allies  of  England. 

57.  Norther.     A  cold  northern  wind  in  winter. 

58.  Angostura.  Literally  "the  narrows,"  a  pass  leading  from 
the  south  to  the  plateau  of  Buena  Vista  ("beautiful  view"),  where 
the  battle  was  fought. 

65.  Dark  and  Bloody  ground.  This  is  said  to  be  the  meaning  of 
-the  Indian  word  Kentucky. 

75.  Spartan  mother.  Sparta  was  the  southern  province  of  ancient 
Greece  and  was  notable  for  her  heroic  soldiers.  The  Spartan 
mothers  sent  their  sons  to  war  with  the  command  to  return  "with 
their  shields  or  on  them."  The  large,  old-fashioned  shields  were 
made  to  cover  the  entire  body,  and  were  sometimes  used  as  stretchers 
on  which  to  bear  off  the  slain  from  the  battle  field. 

83.     Impious.     Irreverent.     Accent  the  first  syllable. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  type  of  poem  is  this?  See  the  sketch  of  O'Hara. 
(2)  Outline    the    progress  ot  the  thought  in  the  poem.     Put  the 


424  Southern  Literary  Readings 

first  four  stanzas  under  one  heading,  the  fifth  to  the  eighth  under 
another,  and  the  last  four  under  a  third,  supplying  such  subheadings 
as  you  think  appropriate.  (3)  Determine  the  tone  of  the  poem. 
(4)  Is  this  tone  preserved  throughout?  (5)  Show  that  there  is 
unity  of  thought  and  subject  matter  as  well  as  of  tone.  (6)  What 
military  figures  are  appropriately  used  in  the  first  stanza?  (7) 
What  is  meant  by  silent  tents ^  line  6?  (8)  Explain  the  figure  of 
speech  illustrated  in  Life's,  Fame's,  Glory.  (9)  Does  this  descrip- 
tion of  soldier  life  appeal  to  you  vividly?  (10)  Look  up  in  your 
history  all  you  can  find  on  the  battle  of  Buena  Vista  and  General 
Zachary  Taylor.  (11)  What  figure  is  in  fines  33-36?  (12)  What 
is  the  subject  of  had  waged,  line  43?  (13)  What  is  the  meaning  of 
"vengeful  blood  of  Spain,"  line  44?  (14)  Restate  in  prose 
order  lines  47  and  48.  (15)  Explain  the  thought  in  lines  53-56. 
(16)  What  is  the  significance  of  laurels,  line  54?  (17)  Give  the 
prose  equivalents  of  norther's  breath,  and  pitying  sky  has  wept,  lines 
57  and  59.  (18)  How  does  the  poet  conceive  of  the  battle  field  in 
lines  61-64?  (19)  Why  is  the  air  called  heedless  in  line  68?  (20) 
How  is  Kentucky  conceived  of  in  lines  75-76?  (21)  What  is  meant 
by  line  89?  (22)  Memorize  the  first,  fourth,  eleventh,  and  twelfth 
stanzas.  (23)  Examine  the  stanza  for  its  structure,  determining 
the  rime  scheme,  the  meter,  and  the  rhythm.  (24)  Is  the  rime  true 
in  lines  9  and  11?  How  should  advance  be  pronounced  to  make  the 
rime  approximately  true?  Find  similar  slightly  faulty  rimes  in 
stanzas  3  and  5.  (25)  Notice  how  hurricane  would  have  to  be 
accented  to  make  lines  33  and  35  really  rime.  Find  in  stanza  10  a 
similar  instance  of  wrenched  accent.  (26)  How  should  wind  in  line 
10  be  pronounced?  (27)  The  meter  is  called  "double  common 
meter"  in  hymnody;  that  is,  there  are  two  quatrains  of  alternate 
four-  and  three-stress  lines  in  each  stanza.  The  four-stress  lines  are 
denominated  "long  meter,"  the  three-stress  lines  "short  meter," 
but  the  combination  of  four  and  three  is  called  "common  meter." 
(28)  The  rhythm  is  iambic.  Determine  how  many  syllables  should 
be  pronounced  in  bivouac  (line  8),  warriors  (line  14),  plumed  (line  18), 
flower  (line  51),  beloved  (line  51).  (29)  There  are  numerous  examples 
of  reversed  accent,  particularly  at  the  beginning  of  a  line,  as  in 
line  53. 


The  Daughter  of  Mendoza 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  lyric  was  found  among  President  Lamar's  papers  after  his 
death.  The  poem  celebrates  the  charms  of  a  beautiful  South 
American  woman  from  the  province  of  Mendoza,  in  the  Argentine 
Republic.  The  name  Mendoza  is  a  noted  one  in  Spanish  history, 
and  the  Indian  girl  who  attracted  President  Lamar's  notice  is  thought 
to  have  been  a  descendant  of  Don  Pedro  de  Mendoza,  the  Spanish 
explorer  who  founded  the  city  of  Buenos  Aires.  The  name  is  prop- 
erly pronounced  mSn-dO'tha,  though  men-do'sa  is  more  commonly 
heard. 


The  Notes  425 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Classify  the  poem.  (2)  What  is  the  unit  of  thought  in  the 
first  stanza?  In  the  second?  (3)  The  last  two  stanzas  change  the 
point  of  view  from  simple  objective  description  to  personal  address. 
What  is  the  effect  of  this?  (4)  What  comparisons  are  made  in 
stanza  3?  (5)  Is  there  much  sorrow  expressed  at  the  prospect  of 
separation?  (6)  Do  you  think  this  is  a  love  poem,  or  merely  a  poem 
of  admiration  for  "a  thing  of  beauty"?  Remember  that  President 
Lamar  lost  his  young  wife  before  he  left  Georgia,  and  seventeen 
years  later  married  again ;  and  he  was  nearly  sixty  years  old  when  he 
wrote  this  poem.  (7)  How  has  the  poet  in  a  way  fulfilled  the  proph- 
ecy of  the  last  two  lines?  (8)  Notice  the  striking  and  individual 
combination  of  rimes  in  this  excellent  stanza.  The  first  and  third 
lines  are  consistently  rimed  in  double  or  feminine  sounds,  and  the 
fifth,  sixth,  and  seventh  make  a  triplet  of  masculine  rimes.  The  last 
line  is  a  repetend  or  refrain  with  a  slight  change  in  the  last  two 
stanzas.  Verify  this  rime  scheme  throughout  the  poem.  (9)  The 
meter  is  alternate  iambic  four-stress  and  three-stress  verse,  the  short 
lines  having  an  extra  final  syllable  on  account  of  the  feminine  rimes. 
Scan  a  stanza. 

A  Health 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  has  been  classed  by  some  as  a  convivial  lyric,  but 
it  is  simply  a  love  song  cast  in  the  form  of  a  toast,  and  there 
is  nothing  of  the  liveliness  and  jollity  of  the  typical  drinking  song 
in  the  lyric.  Professor  F.  V.  N.  Painter  says:  "The  flowing  and 
lilting  melody  of  this  .  .  .  song  is  quite  remarkable.  It  is  trace- 
able to  the  skillful  use  of  liquid  consonants,  and  the  avoidance 
of  harsh  consonant  combinations."  The  poem,  says  Weber,  was 
written  in  honor  of  Mrs.  Rebecca  Somerville  of  Baltimore.  Though 
it  is  usually  printed  in  the  eight-line  stanzaic  arrangement,  we  have 
preferred  here  the  four-line  arrangement  as  given  in  the  Library  0/ 
Southern  Literature. 

EXPLANATORY: 

8.     Burthened.     An  older  form  of  burdened. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

'  (l)  Why  is  the  poem  called  A  Health?  (2)  What  general 
description  is  given  in  stanza  i  ?  (3)  What  is  the  topic  of  the  second 
stanza?  Of  the  third?  (4)  How  does  the  fourth  stanza  summarize 
the  topics  of  the  preceding  stanzas  and  come  to  a  fitting,  if  somewhat 
hyperbolic,  climax?  (5)  In  what  way  does  the  last  stanza  echo  the 
first  and  thus  make  a  definite  conclusion?  (6)  In  what  meter  is  the 
poem  written?  (7)  Study  the  rime  scheme,  noting  particularly  the 
additional  internal  rime  in  the  first  and  fourth  lines  of  each  stanza. 
In  which  stanza  does  the  poet  fail  to  make  this  double  internal  rime 
in  one  line? 


426  Southern  Literary  Readings 

Florence  Vane 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  was  written  in  1839  and  in  1840  was  first  printed  in 
the  March  number  of  Burton's  Gentleman'' s  Magazine,  then  under 
the  editorship  of  Poe.  Professor  Painter  quotes  one  of  Cooke's 
unpubhshed  letters  written  in  1 841,  in  which  the  poet  says:  "Tell 
Mary  [his  sister]  that  the  little  piece  of  verse  'Florence  Vane,'  that 
I  wrote  two  years  ago,  is  getting  me  an  amusing  reputation  among 
the  ladies  far  and  near.  Hewitt,  the  Baltimore  composer,  is  about 
to  set  it  to  music,  and  Russell  has  done  so  in  New  York.  ...  It 
was  a  lucky  little  bark,  and  the  winds  and  waters  have  been  favorable 
to  it.  I,  who  built  it,  know  that  it  was  no  great  thing,  and  that 
I  can  build  a  better  any  day.  I  think  I  will  write  some  more  of 
these  little  pieces  this  winter."  In  the  Southern  Literary  Messenger 
of  June,  1850,  a  letter  on  Florence  Vane  by  J.  Hunt,  Jr.,  addressed 
"from  the  Banks  of  the  Ohio,  March  19th,  1850,"  is  reprinted  from 
the  Cincinnati  Gazette.  Mr.  Hunt  explains  that  he  had  named 
his  baby  daughter  Florence  Vane  and  had  requested  the  poet  to 
send  him  a  manuscript  copy  of  the  poem.  This  Cooke  did,  adding 
a  note  on  the  manuscript,  a  part  of  which  follows:  "The  idea 
contained  in  the  two  lines  of  the  third  stanza, 

"  'Thy  heart  was  as  a  river 
Without  a  main' — 

is  not  clearly  expressed.  .  .  .  My  meaning,  I  suppose,  was  that 
Florence  did  not  lack  the  capacity  to  love,  but  directed  her  love 
to  no  object.  Her  passion  went  flowing  like  the  currents  of  a  lost 
river.  .  .  .  When  little  Florence  Vane  comes  after  a  while,  in 
inquiring  how  her  name*  originated,  to  read  this,  she  may  care  to 
know  that  'Florence  Vane'  came  into  my  mind  one  spring  day  as 
I  walked  in  a  flower-garden  and  heard  my  young  wife  sing  from  a 
window  of  an  old  country  house." 

EXPLANATORY: 

13.  Elysian.  Pertaining  to  Elysium,  the  Greek  paradise; 
hence  perfect,  blessed. 

19.     Closes.     Poetical  cadences. 

22.     Main.     Sea.     See  the  introductory  note  above. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  How  is  the  tone  of  the  whole  poem  struck  in  the  first  stanza? 
(2)  Tell  the  story  as  it  is  related  in  the  poem.  (3)  Why  is  the  former 
meeting  place  of  the  lovers  now  described  as  lone  and  hoary?  (4) 
What  three  comparisons  are  made  in  the  third  stanza?  (5)  Even 
though  Florence  Vane  had  disdained  his  love,  what  wish  does  the 
lover  express  in  the  last  stanza?  (6)  The  meter  is  a  combination 
of  three-stress  and  two-stress  iambic  lines,  the  longer  lines  having 
double  or  feminine  rimes,  and  the  shorter  ones  masculine  rimes. 
Is  this  a  pleasing  combination?  (7)  The  emphasis  on  the  title  words 
is  strongly  brought  out  both  by  repetition  and  by  a  metrical  device. 
Explain  just  what  this  metrical  device  is.     (8)  Of  the  three  poems, 


The  Notes  42  y 

The  Daughter  of  Mendoza,  A  Health,  atid  Florence  Vane,  which  do 
you  Hke  best? 

Every  Year 

INTRODUCTORY: 

Ihe  poem  was  written  in  the  sad  period  immediately  succeeding 
the  Civil  War.  At  first  there  were  only  seven  stanzas,  but  there 
were  added  from  time  to  time  additional  ones  until  there  are  now  in 
sor  3  editions  thirteen,  and  one  of  these  has  been  shown  to  be  taken 
bodily  from  the  English  poet  A.  C.  Swinburne's  Garden  of  Proserpine. 
Professor  C.  Alphonso  Smith  thinks  that  this  was  interpolated  by 
some  irresponsible  editor  without  the  knowledge  or  consent  of  the 
author.  The  poet's  daughter,  Mrs.  Lilian  Pike  Roome,  asserts  that 
the  stanzas  given  here  are  the  only  authentic  ones. 

At  best  the  poem,  even  as  it  appears  in  the  authorized  editions, 
is  diffuse  and  lacking  in  unity  and  compactness  of  structure.  The 
form,  however,  is  exceedingly  attractive,  and  this  is  doubtless  what 
has  given  it  so  prominent  a  place  in  the  popular  esteem.  The  tone 
is  almost  pessimistic,  but  we  could  hardly  expect  it  to  be  otherwise, 
coming  to  light,  as  it  did,  in  the  gloomy  years  of  the  Reconstruc- 
tion period. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  poem  may  be  analyzed  as  the  expression  of  a  gloomy  or 
pessimistic  mood,  each  stanza  repeating  some  phase  of  loss,  sorrow,  or 
misfortune.  The  last  stanza  is  the  only  one  in  which  a  note  of  hope 
is  struck,  and  that  is  hope  for  happiness  beyond  the  grave.  The 
last  stanza  may  be  said,  then,  to  constitute  the  second  or  concluding 
section  of  the  poem.  Try  to  summarize  the  stanzas  separately, 
and  notice  how  unity  is  violated,  many  of  the  ideas  being  repeti- 
tions from  preceding  stanzas.  (2)  The  meter  is  at  base  iambic 
three-stress,  but  there  are  numerous  inversions,  substitutions  of 
anapaestic  feet,  and  other  irregularities.  Throughout  the  poem 
anacrusis,  or  the  addition  of  an  extra  syllable  at  the  end  of  the  longer 
lines,  is  employed  in  order  to  make  the  constant  recurrence  of 
feminine  rimes.  The  third  and  fourth  stanzas  are  fairly  regular; 
scan  these.     (3)  What  is  the  effect  of  the  refrain? 


Music  in  Camp 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  is  said  to  be  based  on  an  actual  incident  of  the  battle 
of  Fredericksburg,  December  10  to  13,  1862.  But  Thompson  has 
made  the  setting  in  the  summer  rather  than  the  winter,  and  some 
doubt  is  expressed  as  to  the  exact  identity  of  the  battle  referred  to. 

EXPLANATORY: 

2.     Rappahannock's  waters.     Trace  this  river  through  Virginia. 

8.  Embrasure.  An  opening  through  which  a  cannon  may  be 
fired.  Each  dread  gun  refers,  of  course,  to  the  thunder  hidden  away 
in  the  clouds. 


428  Southern  Literary  Readings 

65.  Iris.  The  rainbow.  In  Greek  mythology  Iris  was  the 
goddess  of  the  rainbow  and  a  messenger  of  the  gods. 

76.  One  touch  of  Nature.  "One  touch  of  Nature  makes  the  whole 
world  kin."     Shakspere,  Troilus  and  Cressida,  Act  III,  Sc.  iii. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  is  the  fundamental  theme  of  the  ballad?  (See  the  last 
stanza.)  (2)  Analyze  this  simple  ballad,  or  narrative  poem,  by 
dividing  it  into  setting,  first  minor  incident,  second  minor  incident, 
main  incident,  and  conclusion.  (3)  What  two  armies  are  camped 
on  opposite  banks  of  the  Rappahannock?  (4)  Explain  the  figures 
of  speech  in  stanza  2.  Why  are  the  military  figures  appropriate? 
(5)  At  what  time  of  day  does  the  incident  occur?  Explain  how  the 
poet  uses  this  circumstance  effectively.  (6)  Why  does  the  Federal 
band  play  all  the  selections?  Do  you  imagine  the  Confederates  had 
a  band?  (7)  Describe  the  tone  of  the  first  two  airs  played.  (8) 
What  tone  is  given  to  the  third  selection?  (9)  What  effect  has  the 
last  selection  on  the  soldiers?  Why  do  you  think  they  are  thus 
moved?  (10)  The  meter  is  the  ballad  measure  of  iambic  four- 
and  three-stress  lines  in  alternately  rimed  quatrains,  the  second 
and  fourth  lines  having  an  extra  syllable  on  account  of  the 
feminine  rimes.  (11)  How  would  the  following  words  have  to  be 
pronounced  to  make  pure  rimes:  embrasure,  splendor,  cymbal, 
fairy,  creature? 

Little  Giflfen 
INTRODUCTORY: 

Miss  Michelle  Ticknor  says  that  this  poem  is  based  on  fact  in 
every  detail.  It  first  appeared  in  The  Land  We  Love,  a  paper 
published  in  Charlotte,  North  Carolina.  Mrs.  Rosalie  Nelson 
Ticknor,  who  is  still  living,  tells  how  she  found  little  Giffen  in  one 
of  the  improvised  hospitals  in  Columbus,  where  she  went  daily  to 
minister  to  the  wounded  and  sick  soldiers.  She  begged  her  hus- 
band. Dr.  Ticknor,  to  have  the  boy  moved  to  Torch  Hill,  where  she 
might  care  for  him,  for  the  helplessness  of  this  emaciated  lad  of 
sixteen  had  appealed  strongly  to  her  sympathies.  With  careful 
nursing  and  nourishing  food  the  boy  slowly  regained  his  health, 
and  during  his  convalescence  Mrs.  Ticknor  taught  him  to  read  and 
write.  His  full  name  was  Isaac  Newton  Giffen.  He  was  the  son 
of  a  Tennessee  blacksmith,  and  had  joined  General  Joseph  E. 
Johnston's  army  early  in  the  war.  It  was  in  September,  1863, 
that  Giffen  was  brought  to  Torch  Hill,  and  in  the  following  March, 
when  he  heard  that  his  old  leader  was  hard  pressed. at  the  front, 
he  went  forward  to  join  Johnston's  command.  Nothing  further 
was  ever  heard  of  him,  and  there  is  no  doubt  of  his  death  in  some 
battle  immediately  following.  With  the  true  poet's  insight  the 
Good-Samaritan  doctor  saw  the  supreme  heroism  displayed  by  this 
simple  blue-eyed  country  boy,  and  wrote  the  poem  of  which  Maurice 
Thompson  said,  "If  there  is  a  finer  lyric  in  the  whole  realm  of  poetry, 
I  should  be  glad  to  read  it,"  and  of  which  Professor  C.  Alphonso 
Smith  declares,  "In  the  simplicity  of  its  pathos,  the  intensity  of 


The  Notes  429 

its  appeal,  and  the  dramatic  concentration  of  its  thought  Little 
Giffen  ranks  among  the  best  short  poems  in  American  literature." 

EXPLANATORY: 

I .     Focal.    Central,  situated  at  the  focus  or  central  point.     Fire 
is  here  used  for  the  firing  line  in  battle. 

12.  Lazarus.  Look  up  the  story  in  Luke,  xvi,  19-31.  Lazarus 
is  the  Greek  form  of  the  Hebrew  name  Eleazar,  meaning  "whom 
God  aids." 

26.  Johnston.  This  was  General  Joseph  E.  Johnston,  who  with 
inadequate  and  poorly  equipped  forces  conducted  a  masterly  retreat 
across  Georgia  before  General  Sherman's  army. 

30.     Fight.     Perhaps  the  battle  of  Atlanta,  July,  1864. 

32.  King.  Referring  to  King  Arthur,  a  legendary  British  king. 
What  do  you  know  of  him? 

33.  Golden  Ring.     The  Round  Table. 

36.    The  best.    That  is,  "the  best  of  all  my  knights." 

THO UGHT  Q UESTIONS  A ND  LITERA RY  ANAL YSIS: 

(i)  What  virtue  does  this  poem  celebrate?  (2)  Is  there  any- 
thing remarkable  in  the  courage  of  one  so  young  as  "Little  Giffen"? 
(3)  Tell  the  story  of  the  boy's  life,  filling  in  such  details  as  you  think 
appropriate.  (4)  Explain  and  analyze  the  force  of  the  striking 
phrase  in  the  first  line.  (5)  Why  do  the  surgeons  in  the  hospital  so 
readily  give  the  wounded  soldier  up?  (6)  Describe  his  condition. 
(7)  Does  the  boy  whine  and  shed  tears  during  his  sufferings?  (See 
line  28.)  (8)  Explain  the  allusion  in  line  12.  (9)  What  war  is 
referred  to  in  line  13?  (10)  How  long  does  it  take  him  to  recover 
from  his  wounds  and  illness?  (11)  Can  you  think  of  any  battle 
fought  in  Tennessee  in  which  he  may  have  been  wounded?  (Pro- 
fessor Painter  suggests  Murfreesboro,  Dec.  31,  1862,  to  Jan.  2,  1863.) 

(12)  What  do  we  learn  in  the  fourth  stanza  of  the  boy's  education? 

(13)  To  whom  does  he  write?  What  fine  element  in  his  character  is 
shown  by  this?  What  pathetic  situation  in  his  far-away  Tennessee 
home  is  suggested?  (14)  What  does  the  captain's  answer  tell  us  of 
Giffen's  comrades?  (15)  What  is  Giffen's  reputation  in  that  corn- 
pany?  In  how  many  battles  has  he  fought?  (16)  Explain  what  is 
meant  by  "Johnston  pressed  at  the  front."  (17)  What  effect  does 
this  news  have  on  the  boy  soldier?  (18)  Why  does  he  shed  a  tear 
at  parting?  Is  it  true  that  often  a  stern  man  will  shed  tears  when  his 
heart  is  touched  by  some  act  of  kindness?  (19)  Why  do  you  think 
the  poet  would  willingly  exchange  any  of  King  Arthur's  knights 
for  "Little  Giffen "?  (20)  Is  the  style  of  the  poem  smooth  or  jerky? 
What  is  the  effect  of  the  broken  and  incomplete  sentences?^  (21) 
Is  it  verbose  or  condensed  in  expression?  Notice  how  much  is  told 
in  a  few  words.  (22)  Is  the  movement  rapid  or  slow?  What  effect 
on  the  movement  has  the  omission  of  verbs  and  connective  words? 
(23)  Mark  the  tone  of  martial  bravery  in  the  verses  and  how  sug- 
gestive they  are  of  the  march,  the  battle,  the  carnage  of  war.  (24) 
What  can  you  say  of  the  originality  of  the  poem?  Have  you  ever 
read  one  like  it?  Read  Browning's  An  Incident  of  the  French  Camp. 
(25)  The  meter  of  this  poem  is  somewhat  irregular,  but  the  typical 


430  Southern  Literary  Readings 

foot  is  dactylic,  as  in  line  i.  Naturally  in  a  measure  like  this  we 
expect  a  good  many  irregularities,  such  as  the  substitution  of  one 
type  of  foot  for  another,  as  in  the  third  foot  where  a  trochee  is  used ; 
catalexis,  or  truncation  of  light  syllables,  especially  at  the  end  of 
the  lines  for  the  sake  of  the  rime;  inversions  of  the  rhythm,  as  in 
line  10.  (26)  Point  out  the  fine  examples  of  alliteration  in  this 
poem.  (27)  Can  you  find  an  example  of  "perfect  rime";  that  is, 
a  rime  where  exactly  the  same  consonant  and  vowel  sounds  occur, 
though  the  words  are  of  different  meaning?  (28)  Two  stanzas  have 
seven  lines  each.  Where  is  the  extra  rime  placed  in  these?  (29) 
What  line  in  the  last  stanza  echoes  one  in  the  first?  Does  this 
improve  the  structural  unity  of  the  poem? 

The  Lily  Confidante 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  dainty  poem  of  sentiment  appeared  in  the  first  volume  of 
Timrod's  poems,  published  in  i860.  None  but  a  poet  of  the  most 
delicate  imagination  could  have  conceived  this  fanciful  conversation 
between  the  lover  and  the  lily. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Classify  the  poem,  saying  whether  it  is  lyric,  epic,  or  dramatic. 
(2)  Divide  it  into  its  two  perfectly  balanced  parts.  (3)  Does  the 
lover  talk  as  though  he  were  giving  away  a  great  secret?  Deter- 
mine the  best  way  to  read  his  speech.  (4)  What  two  objects 
does  he  confide  in?  Why  are  these  appropriate?  (5)  Why  is  the 
flute  called  wordless?  (6)  What  makes  the  lover  hesitate  when  he 
comes  to  repeat  the  girl's  name?  Note  that  since  no  name  is  given, 
any  may  be  supplied.*  (7)  How  does  the  poet  make  a  unified  impres- 
sion in  his  description  of  the  maiden?  (8)  Do  you  think  the  lily 
gives  the  lover  good  advice?  Quote  some  of  the  best  lines  from  the 
lily's  speech.  (9)  The  rhythm  of  this  poem  is  trochaic.  Deter- 
mine the  number  of  stresses  or  feet  in  each  line,  and  compare  the 
stanzaic  form  and  the  rhythm  with  those  of  the  Ode  on  page  154. 
Note  particularly  the  difference  in  the  quality  of  the  verse  on  account 
of  the  difference  in  rhythm. 

Storm  and  Calm 
INTRODUCTORY: 

Storm  and  Calm  was  included  in  the  "Additional  Poems"  of  the 
edition  of  Timrod's  Poems  published  in  1873.  It  probably  first 
appeared  in  some  one  of  the  newspapers  with  which  Timrod  was 
connected.  It  is  a  fine,  vigorous  poem  for  young  readers  to  study. 
Nothing  could  better  illustrate  the  doctrine  of  struggle  against 
adversity,  and  the  mystery  of  suffering  out  of  which  comes  great 
character  than  Timrod's  own  checkered  life. 

EXPLANATORY: 

I.     South.     The  south  wind,  which  with  its  soft,  warm  zephyrs 
is  supposed  to  bring  the  balmy  days  of  spring. 


The  Notes  4JI 

9.  North.  The  north  wind,  whose  fierce  wintry  blasts  bring 
storms  and  cold. 

15.  Berg  .  .  .  fioe.  The  iceberg  and  the  flat  mass  of  floating 
polar  ice.     Note  the  imaginative  quality  of  this  line. 

18.  Fiend.  Evil  spirit,  devil.  Shrouds  is  another  word  for 
sails.     Why  is  it  effective  here? 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Point  out  the  two  contrasting  sections  of  the  poem,  and  give 
the  main  thought  in  each.  (2)  Which  part  receives  more  emphasis? 
Why?  The  main  theme  is  cast  in  the  form  of  an  apostrophe  to  the 
fierce  spirit  of  the  north  wind.  With  this  thought  in  mind,  we 
might  analyze  the  poem  as  consisting  of  an  introductory  thought  of 
calm,  typified  in  the  gentle  south  wind;  the  body  of  the  poem, 
a  cry  to  the  fierce  spirit  of  the  north  wind,  in  which  is  set  forth  the 
doctrine  of  struggle  and  suffering  as  the  source  of  strong  human 
character;  and  a  brief  reversion  to  the  introductory  thought  in  the 
two  concluding  lines.  (3)  Now  study  each  stanza  in  detail, 
marking  the  emphatic  words  and  strongest  and  most  suggestive 
lines.  (4)  By  what  means  does  the  poet  suggest  the  soft,  luxurious 
tone  of  the  first  division?  (5)  Explain  fully  the  thought  in  stanza 
2.  (6)  Note  the  change  of  tone  in  the  opening  line  of  stanza  3. 
What  is  the  effect  of  the  change?  (7)  From  this  point  on  to  the 
end  of  the  poem  count  the  lines  that  open  with  a  strong  imperative 
word.  This  requires  an  inversion  of  the  rhythm,  and  great  emphasis 
is  thus  gained,  (8)  Explain  the  figurative  expression  in  lines  1 1 
and  12.  (9)  What  is  the  force  of  Arctic  in  line  17?  How  long  is  the 
arctic  night?  (10)  Point  out  some  of  the  facts  of  Timrod's  life  that 
seem  to  verify  the  teaching  of  this  poem.  (11)  The  metrical  form 
of  these  verses  is  simple  but  very  effective.  The  rhythm  is  iambic, 
but  there  are  numerous  inversions  in  the  first  foot  to  throw 
strong  emphasis  on  the  opening  syllable,  which  is  usually  a  mono- 
syllabic word  in  the  imperative  mood.  Point  out  these  inversions. 
(12)  What  is  the  effect  of  the  triplet  rime  in  the  last  stanza?  (13) 
Can  you  point  out  two  slightly  false  rimes? 

Carolina 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  was  composed  in  1861  and  published  widely  in  the 
Southern  newspapers  in  the  early  years  of  the  Civil  War.  Among 
the  martial  songs  of  our  Southern  literature  there  is  none  that  sur- 
passes Carolina  in  depth  of  patriotic  sentiment  and  fineness  of 
artistic  quality.  The  poem  celebrates  the  spirit  of  Timrod's  native 
state,  and  the  poet's  friend  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne  has  said  that  the 
"lines  are  destined  perhaps  to  outlive  the  vitality  of  the  state 
whose  antique  fame  they  celebrate." 

EXPLANATORY: 

I,     Despot.     The  Federal  soldier.     Compare  Huns,  line  45. 
2j.     Eutaw's  battle-bed.     In  the  Revolutionary  battle  fought  at 
Eutaw   Springs   in    1781,   the   Continentals  under  General  Greene 


432  Southern  Literary  Readings 

defeated  the  British  under  General  Stewart.  Name  several  other 
Revolutionary  battles  fought  in  South  Carolina. 

31.  Rutledge.  .  .  Laurens.  John  Rutledge,  born  in  Charleston 
in  1739,  was  elected  President  of  South  Carolina  in  1776,  and 
Governor  in  1779.  He  was  one  of  the  most  famous  of  Southern 
statesmen.  Colonel  John  Laurens,  a  youthful  and  gallant  Caro- 
linian, was  killed  at  the  head  of  his  regiment  in  a  battle  at 
Combahee,  South  Carolina,  in  1782. 

34.  Marion's  bugle-blast.  The  famous  partisan  leader  Francis 
Marion,  known  as  the  "Swamp  Fox,"  was  in  the  battle  of  Eutaw 
Springs,  in  1781.     See  Simms's  poem,  p.  25. 

45.  Huns.  The  Huns  were  the  fiercest  of  the  ruthless  barbarian 
tribes  who  swept  down  on  Rome  from  the  fastnesses  of  northern 
Germany.     Here  the  allusion  is  to  the  Federal  soldiers. 

46.  Festal  guns.     Guns  fired  in  joyous  or  festive  salutation. 

50.  Sachem's  Head  to  Sumter's  wall.  Sachem's  Head  is  probably 
another  name  for  Caesar's  Head,  a  peak  in  the  Blue  Ridge  range 
in  the  extreme  northwestern  part  of  South  Carolina.  Fort  Sumter 
is  the  famous  naval  fort  in  Charleston  Harbor  in  the  southeastern 
portion  of  the  state. 

79.  Armorial  trees.  The  coat  of  arms  of  South  Carolina  bears  a 
palm  tree. 

81.  Gauntlet.  A  leathern  glove  covered  with  steel  plates  as  a 
part  of  the  armor  covering  the  hand;  to  throw  down  the  gauntlet  is 
a  challenge  to  battle. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  is  the  purpose  of  such  a  lyric  as  this?  (2)  In  what  form 
is  the  poem  cast?  (In  answering  this  question,  note  the  continual 
use  of  the  nominative  of  address,  "Carolina,"  throughout  the  poem.) 
(3)  The  poem  may  be  divided  into  two  movements  with  a  conclusion. 
The  first  three  stanzas  set  forth  the  appeal;  the  fourth,  fifth,  and 
sixth  indicate  the  answer  that  the  people  of  the  state  will  make  to 
this  appeal,  and  the  seventh  stanza  prophesies  or  suggests  the 
complete  triumph  of  the  cause  for  which  the  poet  pleads.  Taking 
this  analysis  as  suggestive,  give  proper  topics  for  each  of  the  seven 
stanzas.  (4)  Why  does  the  poet  begin  with  a  description  of  Carolina 
in  the  hands  of  her  enemies?  (5)  What  does  the  poet  mean  by 
"lances  of  the  palm,"  and  "a  spot  ...  on  thy  garment's 
rim"?  (6)  Interpret  line  18.  (7)  What  sentiment  is  set  forth  in 
the  third  stanza?  Had  Carolina  taken  a  worthy  part  in  Revolu- 
tionary history?  Give  some  of  the  facts.  (8)  Why  does  the  poet 
begin  in  stanza  4  with  the  murmur  of  the  waves  and  the  swell 
of  the  ocean?  (9)  Stanza  5  shows  the  ready  answer  of  the  people 
to  the  call  to  arms.  Explain  the  figurative  language  in  lines  57-59. 
(10)  In  stanza  6  the  poet  suggests  that  Carolina  may  be  crushed 
but  never  conquered.  Explain  the  thought  of  lines  65-72  concern- 
ing the  women  and  children  of  the  state.  (11)  The  bold  and 
vigorous  conclusion  indicates  that  no  power  shall  be  able  to  quell 
the  indomitable  will  of  the  sons  of  Carolina.  The  outcome  of  the 
war  literally  disproved  this  prophecy,  but  the  spirit  of  the  poem 


The  Notes  433 

still  strongly  stirs  our  souls.  Read  the  poem  through  again  with 
this  thought  in  mind.  (12)  Study  now  the  form  of  the  verse. 
Notice  the  three  triplets  of  four-stress  lines  in  iambic  meter,  with 
the  one- word  refrain  of  two  trochaic  feet  repeated  after  each  triplet. 
Perhaps  Timrod  received  a  suggestion  from  Tennyson's  The  Ballad 
of  Oriana,  the  first  stanza  of  which  reads: 

"My  heart  is  wasted  with  my  woe, 

Oriana. 
There  is  no  rest  for  me  below, 

Oriana. 
When  the  long  dun  wolds  are  ribb'd  with  snow, 
And  loud  the  Norland  whirlwinds  blow, 

Oriana, 
Alone  I  wander  to  and  fro, 

Oriana." 

Timrod's  arrangement  seems  equally  artistic  and  musical.  In  fact, 
there  is  not  a  false  rime  or  halting  line  in  the  whole  poem.  Though 
simple  and  chaste  in  language,  the  lines  are  full  of  the  fire  and  intense 
passion  of  patriotism. 

Ode 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  Ode  was  sung  in  Magnolia  Cemetery,  Charleston,  in  1867, 
on  the  occasion  of  the  memorial  service  held  on  the  day  set  apart 
for  decorating  the  graves  of  the  Confederate  dead.  It  is  one  of  the 
last  productions  of  Timrod,  and  may  in  a  sense  be  called  his  swan 
song.  In  its  classic  restraint  and  finished  beauty  it  may  well  be 
considered  his  finest  poem.  It  is  called,  simply,  Ode,  because  of  its 
elevated  quality  and  its  seriousness  of  tone;  but  in  reality  it  is  a 
song-lyric  of  the  elegiac  or  commemorative  type.  The  English  poet 
William  Collins  wrote  a  poem  very  similar  in  form  and  theme,  which 
he  called  Ode  Written  in  the  Beginning  of  the  Year  1746,  commemo- 
rating the  British  soldiers  who  fell  in  the  War  of  the  Austrian 
Succession.  Timrod  has  often  been  compared  with  Collins,  in  his 
life  and  poetic  temperament  as  well  as  in  individual  poems,  so  it 
seems  desirable  to  reproduce  here  Collins 's  Ode,  that  the  two  poems 
may  be  more  closely  compared. 

ODE 
Written  in  the  Beginning  of  the  Year  1746 

"How  sleep  the  brave  who  sink  to  rest 
By  all  their  country's  wishes  blest! 
When  Spring,  with  dewy  fingers  cold. 
Returns  to  deck  their  hallowed  mould. 
She  there  shall  dress  a  sweeter  sod 
Than  Fancy's  feet  have  ever  trod. 

"By  fairy  hands  their  knell  is  rung, 
By  forms  unseen  their  dirge  is  sung; 
There  Honour  comes,  a  pilgrim  grey. 
To  bless  the  turf  that  wraps  their  clay; 
And  Freedom  shall  awhile  repair, 
To  dwell  a  weeping  hermit  there  1" 

EXPLANATORY: 

2.  Fallen  cause.  The  cause  of  State  Sovereignty,  or  the  right 
of  the  Southern  States  to  secede  and  form  a  Confederacy.  See  the 
date  of  the  poem,  and  give  the  date  of  the  close  of  the  war. 

28 


434  Southern  Literary  Readings 

3.  Marble  column.  A  bronze  figure  of  a  color-bearer  upon  a 
granite  base  has  since  been  erected  as  a  soldiers'  monument  in 
Magnolia  Cemetery. 

5.  In  seeds  of  laurel.  The  laurel  or  bay  has  been  from  ancient 
times  a  symbol  of  honor.  The  poet  here  conceives  that  the  honor 
due  to  the  Southern  soldiers  is  yet  only  in  the  seed,  but  in  imagina- 
tion he  sees  the  full-blown  blossoms,  even  while  the  seeds  are  still 
in  the  earth. 

9.     Behalf.    A  poetical  condensation  for  "in  behalf  of." 
10.     Storied.     Containing  or  suggestive  of  the  stories  of  valor. 
Compare  Gray's  use  of  the  word  in  his  famous  Elegy,  where  storied 
means  pictured  images  or  inscriptions: 

"Can  storied  urn  or  animated  bust 
Back  to  its  mansion  call  the  fleeting  breath?" 

13.     Shades.    Spirits. 

15.  Cannon-moulded  pile.  A  lofty  commemorative  monument 
made  or  molded  from  the  brass  cannon  used  in  the  wars. 

16.  Bay.    Charleston  Bay.     Locate  it  on  your  map. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  concrete  object  is  given  strong  emphasis  in  line  i  ?  This 
may  be  called  the  initial  impulse  or  occasion  of  the  emotion  of 
sorrowful  reverence  for  the  dead  heroes.  (2)  Give  a  phrase  for  the 
principal  thought  in  each  of  the  five  stanzas.  Notice  that  stanzas  I 
and  2  belong  to  the  first  thought  movement,  while  3  and  4  are 
the  answering  thought,  and  in  stanza  5,  the  most  beautiful  of  all, 
the  two  thought  movements  are  united  into  a  grand  climax. 
(3)  What  figure  is  suggested  by  the  word  craves  ?  (4)  Can  you  think 
of  a  full-blown  blossom  in  a  seed  that  is  yet  in  the  earth?  Can  you 
think  of  a  shaft  in  thfe  stone  "waiting  for  its  birth"?  This  is  an 
extremely  imaginative  stanza.  (5)  What  does  the  poet  mean  by 
"blossom  of  your  fame"?  (6)  Has  the  prophecy  of  stanza  2  been 
realized?  (7)  Explain  "your  sisters."  (8)  Interpret  fully  the 
thought  in  stanza  4.  (9)  Exactly  what  do  the  words  valor  and 
beauty  mean?  Notice  the  fine  effect  of  the  two  adjectives  used  with 
these  words.  (10)  Study  closely  the  sad,  solemn  beauty  of  the 
picture  in  stanza  4.  (11)  The  stanzaic  structure  is  extremely 
simple  and  natural,  but  this  very  simplicity  and  naturalness  adds 
to  the  subdued  tone  and  chaste  imagery  of  the  whole  lyric.  Deter- 
miae  the  rhythm  and  the  number  of  stresses  in  the  lines,  and  read 
the  poem  slowly  and  quietly,  to  bring  out  fully  its  tonal  quality. 
(12)  Memorize  the  last  stanza.  (13)  In  a  brief  composition  make 
a  comparison  of  Collins's  Ode  (see  the  introductory  note  above) 
with  Timrod's. 

The  Death  of  Stonewall  Jackson 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  selection  comprises  the  one  hundred  thirty-first  and  part 
of  the  one  hundred  thirty-second  chapter  of  Cooke's  most  successful 
novel,  Surry  of  Eagle's- Nest,  published  in  1866  and  since  reprinted 
many  times.     Though  the  story  is  purely  imaginary,  the  author 


The  Notes  4J5 

has  put  much  of  his  own  actual  experience  and  much  real  history 
into  his  narrative.  The  selection  given  here  is  based  on  fact  in 
almost  every  detail.  The  student  should  read  Chapters  XXXIV 
to  XL  of  Cooke's  Life  of  Thomas  Jonathan  Jackson  for  the  fuller 
historical  account  of  the  battle  of  Chancellorsville  and  the  fatal 
accident  which  deprived  the  South  of  one  of  her  greatest  soldiers. 

EXPLANATORY: 

I.  My  memoirs.  Colonel  Surry,  "having  returned  to  'Eagle's- 
Nest'  and  hung  up  a  dingy  gray  uniform  and  a  battered  old  saber 
for  the  inspection  of  his  descendants,"  is  supposed  to  be  writing  his 
memoirs,  recounting  his  experiences  as  a  staff  officer  under  General 
Stuart  during  the  war.  Cooke  was  himself  a  member  of  Stuart's 
staff. 

II.  The  hero  of  a  hundred  battles.  General  Thomas  Jonathan 
Jackson,  son  of  a  West  Virginia  farmer,  was  born  January  21,  1824. 
After  graduating  at  West  Point  he  served  in  the  Mexican  War. 
He  resigned  from  the  army  in  1852  to  fill  the  chair  of  physics  and 
artillery  tactics  in  the  Virginia  Military  Institute,  Lexington,  Vir- 
ginia. At  the  beginning  of  the  war  he  joined  the  Confederate 
Army,  and  as  a  brigadier-general  made  a  reputation  at  the  first 
battle  of  Manassas  or  Bull  Run,  the  sobriquet  "Stonewall"  being 
always  afterward  associated  with  his  name.  Promoted  to  major- 
general,  he  was  the  hero  of  many  engagements  in  the  Shenandoah 
Valley,  with  the  Federal  generals  Shields  and  Banks ;  he  participated 
actively  in  the  Peninsular  Campaign,  defeated  Banks  at  Cedar 
Mountain,  captured  Harpers  Ferry,  took  part  in  the  bloody  battles 
of  Antietam  and  Fredericksburg;  was  made  lieutenant-general. 
Then  came  the  tragedy  at  Chancellorsville,  following  the  successful 
attempt  of  Jackson  to  cut  off  Hooker's  right  from  his  main  force. 

15.  Last  scene  of  all.  Quoted  from  Shakspere's  As  You  Like  It, 
Act  II,  Sc.  vii. 

22.  General  Fitz  Lee.  General  Fitzhugh  Lee,  nephew  of  Gen- 
eral R.  E.  Lee,  a  brave  soldier  and  a  wise  counselor,  died  in  1905. 

37.  Rodes's,  Colston's,  and  A.  P.  HilVs  divisions.  Robert 
Emmett  Rodes  and  Raleigh  Edward  Colston  were  both  graduates 
of  the  Virginia  Military  Institute.  Each  joined  the  Confederate 
Army  and  rose  to  the  rank  of  brigadier-general.  A.  P.  Hill,  a  Vir- 
ginian closely  associated  with  Jackson,  was  a  major-general  at  this 
time.  He  rose  to  the  rank  of  lieutenant-general  and  was  killed  before 
Petersburg  in  1865.  The  subordinate  officers  mentioned  in  the 
narrative  are  all  historic. 

60.  Hooker.  The  Federal  general,  "Fighting  Joe"  Hooker, 
commander  of  the  army  of  invasion,  was  severely  defeated  at  the 
battle  of  Chancellorsville,  and  was  soon  relieved  of  the  command 
of  the  Army  of  the  Potomac. 

93.  Sombre  and  lugubrious  Wilderness.  Dark  and  funereal 
forest.  The  undergrowth  was  so  thick  round  about  Chancellors- 
ville that  the  country  was  called  the  Wilderness.  Cooke  is  fond  of 
using  the  word  lugubrious.     Note  where  it  occurs  again. 

251.    General  Pender.    He   was  a   North   Carolinian  and  was 


43^  Southern  Literary  Readings 

educated  at  West  Point.  He  resigned  from  the  United  States  Army 
and  joined  the  Confederate  Army  in  1861,  rose  to  the  rank  of  major- 
general,  was  wounded  at  the  battle  of  Gettysburg,  and  died  a  few 
days  afterward. 

292.  The  man  of  Manassas  and  Port  Republic.  Manassas  is 
a  small  town  in  Virginia  about  thirty  miles  southwest  of  Washing- 
ton, D.  C,  where  the  Confederates  repelled  the  first  advance  on 
Richmond  in  1861,  and  where  Jackson  was  given  the  sobriquet 
"Stonewall."  At  Port  Republic,  a  place  on  the  Shenandoah  River, 
ninety  miles  northwest  of  Richmond,  Jackson  defeated  the  Federals 
under  General  Shields. 

320.  Stuart.  Lieutenant-general  J.  E.  B.  Stuart,  the  intrepid 
cavalry  leader  in  General  Lee's  army,  was  only  twenty-seven  years 
old  when  he  left  the  United  States  Army  and  joined  the  Confederacy. 
He  was  bold  and  daring,  but  possessed  of  fine  military  judgment, 
and  was  remarkably  successful  in  his  forays.  Like  Jackson  and 
Lee,  he  was  a  pure-minded  Christian,  carrying  his  mother's  Bible 
with  him  always,  and  never  allowing  profanity  or  excessive  drinking 
among  his  men.  He  was  put  in  command  of  Jackson's  corps 
after  Jackson  and  General  A.  P.  Hill  were  wounded,  and  it  was  Stuart 
who  led  the  fighting  when  Hooker's  army  was  dislodged. 

434.  Lexington.  General  Jackson  was  buried  at  Lexington, 
Virginia,  the  scene  of  his  labors  in  the  Virginia  Military  Institute. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  This  narrative  selection  should  be  studied  as  a  succession  of 
incidents  or  movements  leading  to  a  climax.  The  death  of  Jackson 
is  made  a  sort  of  after-catastrophe  in  the  whole  novel,  but  here  the 
selection  must  be  studied  as  a  complete  composition  within  itself. 
Make  an  outline  of  th^  selection,  filling  in  the  details  if  time  permits. 
(2)  Point  out  phrases  which  help  to  make  a  solemn  or  lugubrious 
background  for  the  tragedy  which  is  to  follow.  Note  particularly 
the  "pallid  moon,"  the  cry  of  the  whippoorwills,  the  dark  Wilder- 
ness, all  of  which  are  repeated  in  some  form  on  page  166.  (3) 
Describe  in  your  own  words  just  how  the  fatal  accident  occurred. 
(4)  What  is  the  effect  of  introducing  the  strange  horseman  (lines 
154-155)?  Do  you  think  this  horseman  was  a  Confederate  or  a 
Federal?  Why?  (5)  What  is  the  reason  for  introducing  the 
capture  of  the  two  Federal  soldiers  at  this  point?  The  incident 
is  historic.  (6)  Why  did  the  friends  of  Jackson  wish  to  conceal 
theidentity  of  the  wounded  general?  (7)  Do  you  get  a  vivid  picture 
of  Jackson  as  he  moves  painfully  to  the  rear?  Give  some  of  the 
most  striking  details.  (8)  Describe  Jackson's  death,  and  inter- 
pret his  last  words.  (9)  Give  your  estimate  of  his  character. 
(10)  Read  in  connection  with  this  selection  Margaret  Junkin 
Preston's  poem  The  Shade  of  the  Trees,  p.  188. 

Lyric  of  Action 
INTRODUCTORY: 

In  his  History  of  Southern  Literature  Professor  Carl  Holliday  says 
of  this  poem:    "His  Lyric  of  Action  should  delight  every  admirer  of 


The  Notes  437 

sturdy  manhood.  Persevering  vigor  sounds  through  every  line  of 
it,  and  coming  as  it  does  from  a  man  reduced  from  great  wealth 
to  great  poverty  and  exiled  from  refined,  congenial  society  to  a 
silent  wilderness,  the  poem  should  stand  as  one  of  the  most  remark- 
able exhortations  in  American  literature." 

EXPLANATORY: 

21.  The  seraph,  etc.  Uriel  (pronounced  a'ri-el),  signifying  in 
Hebrew  "the  light  of  God."  This  angel  was  represented  by  Milton 
in  Paradise  Lost  (Book  III,  line  648ff)  as  the  regent  of  the  sun. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  kind  of  poem  is  this?  (2)  Is  the  hortative  style  char- 
acteristic of  any  other  selections  from  Hayne  here  given?  (3)  Is 
exhortation  or  preaching  good  subject-matter  for  poetry?  (4)  How 
does  the  poet  express  the  hopes  and  aspirations  of  youth?  (5)  What 
influence  does  he  appeal  to  as  still  potent  to  give  one  renewed 
courage?  (6)  Interpret  lines  8-1 1.  (7)  Point  out  a  poetic  word 
form  in  the  second  stanza.  (8)  What  state  of  mind  is  represented 
in  the  exclamation  "Too  late"?  (9)  How  does  the  last  stanza 
unify  and  apply  the  theme  of  the  whole  poem?  Do  you  feel  that 
the  repetition  of  lines  from  stanza  i  gives  a  tone  of  finality  to  the 
conclusion  of  the  poem?  (10)  Make  a  close  comparison  of  this 
Lyric  of  Action  with  Longfellow's  Psalm  of  Life,  and  note  the  simi- 
larity of  the  two  poems  in  thought  and  tone. 

Aethra 

INTRODUCTORY: 

Aethra  illustrates  Hayne's  power  to  tell  a  legendary  story  tersely, 
dramatically,  and  in  beautiful  blank  verse.  In  fact,  it  seems  to  the 
present  editor  that  this  poem  in  its  classical  finish  and  restraint, 
in  its  clearness,  forcefulness,  and  beauty  of  style,  surpasses  all  the 
other  narrative  poetry  produced  by  its  author.  The  legend  is,  so 
far  as  we  know,  original  with  Hayne. 

EXPLANATORY: 

Aethra.  Though  Hayne  wrote  the  word  thus,  both  meter  and 
etymology  show  that  it  would  be  more  correct  to  spell  it  ^thra,  and 
pronounce  it  in  two  syllables,  e'thra.  The  meaning  of  the  Greek 
word  cBthra  is  "  a  clear,  bright  sky;  fair  weather. "  In  Greek  mythol- 
ogy Mtlwa,  was  the  mother  of  the  great  Attic  hero  Theseus. 

5.     Philantus.     The  name  is  formed  from  the  Greek   phileo, 
love,  and  is  used  here  to  typify  the  hero  as  one  who  loved  his  wife. 

31.  Tarentum.  The  modern  Taranto  in  southern  Italy  was 
anciently  called  "Tarenturn,"  and  was  supposed  to  have  been 
founded  by  a  body  of  Spartan  immigrants  about  708  B.C. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  type  of  poem  is  this?  (2)  What  is  the  verse  form? 
(3)  Tell  the  story  in  your  own  words.  (4)  What  lines  are  purely 
introductory?  (5)  By  whom  and  to  whom  is  the  story  supposed  to 
be  related?     (6)  Look  up  the  etymology  of  cordial  in  line  4,  and 


438  Southern  Literary  Readings 

thus  determine  why  the  word  is  used  here.  (7)  Give  the  date  of 
the  story.  (8)  Under  what  circumstances  did  the  ancient  Greeks 
consult  the  oracles?  (9)  Give  the  principal  traits  of  character  of 
the  hero  and  heroine  of  this  legend. 

Sonnets 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  sonnet  is  a  poem  consisting  of  fourteen  lines  of  iambic  five- 
stress  verse,  the  rimes  being  arranged  according  to  a  definite,  yet 
somewhat  widely  varying,  scheme.  This  verse  form  was  introduced 
from  the  Italian  by  Sir  Thomas  Wyatt  in  the  sixteenth  century, 
and  under  the  improved  forms  practiced  by  his  friend  and  co-author, 
Henry  Howard,  Earl  of  Surrey,  the  sonnet  became  extremely 
popular  toward  the  end  of  the  century.  When  the  original  Italian 
models  are  more  or  less  closely  followed,  we  have  what  is  called  the 
regular  or  Italian  sonnet.  This  consists  of  an  octave,  or  eight  lines, 
usually  made  up  of  two  quatrains  or  four-line  groups  on  two  rime 
sounds,  namely  ahha  abba,  and  a  sestet  or  six  lines,  usually  arranged 
in  two  tercets,  or  three-line  groups,  on  two  or  three  rimes  variously 
interlaced,  as  cde  cde,  cdc  dcd,  etc.  Occasionally  a  third  and  even  a 
fourth  rime  is  introduced  in  the  octave,  and  this  leads  to  the  Eng- 
lish or  irregular  sonnet,  sometimes  called  also  the  Shaksperean 
sonnet,  because  Shakspere  practiced  this  form  exclusively.  It 
consists  of  three  quatrains  with  a  final  couplet,  the  rime  scheme 
usually  running  abab,  cdcd,  efef,  gg.  Hayne  rarely  practiced  this 
form.  The  sonnet  entitled  My  Study  in  the  group  here  chosen  is 
composed  of  three  quatrains,  but  it  does  not  conclude  with  the 
couplet  as  does  the  irregular  or  Shaksperean  sonnet. 

Great  Poets  and  Small 
EXPLANATORY: 

6.  Empyreal.  Pertaining  to  the  empyrean.  _  In  the  ancient 
conception  of  the  universe  the  empyrean  was  the  highest  heaven,  or 
region  of  pure  fire. 

II.  Russet  linnet.  A  small  European  song  bird  of  reddish  or 
yellowish  brown  coloration. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  question  is  asked  in  the  first  quatrain?  (2)  How  is  it 
echoed  in  the  second  quatrain?  (3)  Explain  exactly  what  is  meant 
by  "anointed  pinion  of  song's  radiant  king."  (4)  How  is  the 
thought  of  the  octave  applied  in  the  sestet?  (5)  What  conclusion, 
then,  does  the  poet  reach?  (6)  What  two  birds  does  he  select  to 
typify  poets  of  moderate  ability?  (7)  What  two  does  he  select  to 
denote  poets  of  supreme  gifts?  (8)  Does  the  skylark  suggest  any 
particular  poet  to  you?  Hayne  was  a  great  admirer  of  Percy 
Bysshe  Shelley  and  addressed  one  of  his  best  sonnets  to  that 
poet.  Read  Shelley's  Ode  to  the  Skylark.  (9)  What  rime  in  the 
octave  is  carried  over  to  the  sestet?  This  carrying  over  of  a  rime 
from  the  octave  to  the  sestet  is  not  allowable  in  the  strictest 
Italian  models. 


The  Notes  4jg 

Poets 
EXPLANATORY: 

g.  Parnassus.  A  mountain  in  Greece  sacred  to  Apollo  and  the 
Muses;  hence,  the  domain  of  poetry. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  This  sonnet  has  been  placed  after  the  preceding  one  as  illus- 
trative of  the  poet's  ability  to  treat  the  same  theme  from  two  distinct 
points  of  view.  Contrast  and  compare  these  two  points  of  view. 
(2)  What  three  types  or  kinds  of  poets  does  the  author  speak  of  in 
this  sonnet?  (3)  How  is  the  thought  developed  through  the  octave? 
(4)  The  first  tercet  in  the  second  part  of  the  sonnet  treats  of  what 
group  of  poets?  (5)  What  is  the  final  thought  or  application?  It 
is  practically  the  same  as  that  reached  in  the  preceding  sonnet. 
What  two  examples  of  assonance  are  noticeable  between  the 
octave  and  the  sestet?  This  is  considered  a  flaw  by  the  more 
fastidious  practitioners  of  the  strict  Italian  sonnet,  the  basis  of 
the  criticism  being  that  the  two  systems  should  be  kept  absolutely 
distinct  from  each  other,  both  in  thought  and  in  structure.  To  the 
ordinary  English  ear,  however,  this  is  no  blemish. 

My  Study 
EXPLANATORY: 

8.  Tendance.  The  act  of  holding  in  the  attention,  attendance; 
an  archaic  or  poetic  form. 

12.     Mammon.     Of  Mammon,  the  ancient  Syrian  god  of  riches. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Why  does  the  poet  call  his  study  his  "world"?  (2)  What 
does  he  mean  by  owning  a  "princely  service"?  Contrast  these 
imaginary  luxuries  with  the  real  conditions  of  his  life.  (3)  How  does 
the  poet  express  his  freedom  from  the  thraldom  of  modern  com- 
mercialism? (4)  Point  out  several  words  which  help  to  give  a 
romantic  or  imaginative  touch  to  the  thought  and  feeling  of  the 
poem.     (See  the  notes.)     (5)  Find  one  faulty  rime. 

To  Henry  W.  Longfellow 
EXPLANATORY: 

2.     Lam  el-crown.     Laurel  is  emblematical  of  poetical  honors. 
4.     Prescient.     Foreknowing,  suggesting  here  foreknowledge  of 
death. 

II.  Immaculate.  Without  spot  or  blemish,  pure.  The  "new 
note"  referred  to  is  doubtless  that  of  William  Cullen  Bryant,  who 
died  June, 1 2,  1878.  Longfellow  was  then  over  seventy-one  years 
old.     He  lived  to  be  seventy-five. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  For  what  does  the  poet  express  his  unbounded  admiration? 
(2)  What  figure  of  speech  does  he  use  to  convey  this  idea?  (3) 
What  is  the  exact  meaning  of  "prescient  night"?  (4)  In  line  6 
what  attitude  does  Hayne  take  toward  Longfellow?     What  was 


440  Southern  Literary  Readings 

the  difference  in  the  ages  of  the  two  poets?  (5)  What  two  phases 
of  the  thought  of  the  sonnet  are  set  forth  in  the  first  eight  lines? 
(6)  How  many  lines  are  there  in  the  first  phase,  and  how  many  in 
the  second?  Is  this  the  usual  division  of  the  octave?  This  is  not 
a  serious  flaw  in  the  structure,  for  the  form  or  technique  must 
always  give  way  to  the  logical  divisions  of  the  thought  when  there 
is  a  conflict.  (7)  What  question  is  propounded  in  the  first  tercet? 
(8)  What  wish  is  expressed  in  the  second?  (9)  What  image  is  in 
the  poet's  mind  when  he  speaks  of  "the  altar,"  "golden  dreams 
ascending,"  "thoughts  of  fire"?  (10)  This  sonnet,  with  the  single 
minor  exception  of  the  overlapping  of  the  thought  between  the  first 
and  second  quatrains,  is  practically  a  perfect  example  of  the  Italian 
or  regular  form,  the  rime  scheme  being  abba  abba,  cde  cde.  There  is 
one  slight  blemish  in  the  rime,  grown  being  merely  an  eye  rime 
and  not  making  real  concord  of  sound  with  renown,  etc.  If  you 
have  access  to  the  complete  edition  of  Hayne's  poems,  read  the 
sonnet  To  Longfellow  {On  Hearing  He  Was  III)  and  the  double  sonnet 
Longfellow  Dead. 

The  Mocking-bird  amid  Yellow  Jasmine 
EXPLANATORY: 

3.  Queen  of  Fairies*  tiring  hour.  Probably  the  poet  had  in  mind 
Titania,  queen  of  the  fairies  in  Shakspere's  Midsummer  Night's  Dream. 
Her  tiring  hour,  or  attiring  hour,  is  the  hour  at  which  she  makes 
her  dainty  toilet. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  No  title  was  given  by  the  author  for  this  sonnet.  Can  you 
think  of  a  better  one  tjian  that  supplied  here?  (2)  What  is  the 
subject  or  picture  presented  in  the  first  quatrain?  (3)  Of  the 
second?  (4)  Of  what  three  elements  is  the  complete  picture,  as 
set  forth  in  the  octave,  made  up?  (5)  What  transforming  element 
is  introduced  in  the  first  tercet?  (6)  What  climax  is  reached  in 
the  second  tercet  as  a  result  of  this?  (7)  How  does  the  poet  strive  to 
express  in  the  last  line  the  whole  beauty  and  passion  of  the  poem? 
Explain  the  figure  of  speech  and  give  your  opinion  of  it.  (8)  Write 
out  the  rime  scheme  of  the  sonnet.  (9)  In  order  to  bring  out  the 
rime  clearly,  what  word  in  line  4  would  have  to  be  accented  abnor- 
mally— that  is,  on  a  syllable  which  would  not  ordinarily  be  accented? 
This  is  called  wrenched  accent. 

Maryland!  My  Maryland! 

INTRODUCTORY: 

Oliver  Wendell  Holmes  once  said  that  he  was  the  more  anxious 
to  visit  Baltimore  because  that  city  had  produced  the  three  best 
things  of  their  kind:  The  Raven,  The  Star-spangled  Banner,  and 
Maryland!  My  Maryland!  The  last-named  poem  was  written  on 
April  23,  1861,  while  Randall  was  professor  of  English  at  Poydras 
College,  Pointe  Coupee,  Louisiana.  It  was  published  three  days 
later  in  the  New  Orleans  Delta,  and  was  widely  copied  in  the  news- 
papers throughout  the  South.     To  appreciate  the  spirit  of  the  poem, 


The  Notes  441 

the  student  should  try  to  recall  the  situation  and  the  feeling  that  was 
everywhere  present  in  the  hearts  of  Southerners  as  they  contem- 
plated the  progress  of  the  Federal  Army  southward.  Such  clashes 
between  citizens  and  soldiers  as  that  which  occurred  on  the  streets 
of  Baltimore,  April  19,  1861,  were  inevitable.  But  in  thus  recalling, 
as  we  read  and  admire  the  fiery  and  impassioned  war  songs,  the 
spirit  of  resistance  as  it  was  expressed  in  the  South,  we  should  find 
no  reason  for  loving  our  united  country  any  the  less ;  rather  should 
we  love  it  the  more  because  of  the  complete  healing  of  wounds  and 
the  complete  reconciliation  after  the  bitter  quarrel  of  the  Civil  War 
period.    As  one  of  our  Georgia  poets,  Frank  L.  Stanton,  expresses  it: 

After  all, 
One  country,  brethren!  We  must  rise  or  fall 
With  the  Supreme  Republic.     We  must  be 
The  makers  of  her  immortality; 

Her  freedom,  fame. 

Her  glory,  or  her  shame — 
Liegemen  to  God  and  fathers  of  the  free! 

After  all, 
Hark!  from  the  heights  the  clear,  strong,  clarion  call 
And  the  command  imperious:  "Stand  forth. 
Sons  of  the  South  and  brothers  of  the  North ! 

Stand  forth  and  be 

As  one  on  soil  and  sea — 
Your  country's  honor  more  than  empire's  worth! " 

After  all, 
'Tis  Freedom  wears  the  loveliest  coronal; 
Her  brow  is  to  the  morning;  in  the  sod 
She  breathes  the  breath  of  patriots ;  every  clod 

Answers  her  call 

And  rises  like  a  wall 
Against  the  foes  of  liberty  and  God! 

For  a  brief  note  on  the  adaptation  of  Maryland!  My  Maryland! 
to  music,  see  the  sketch  of  Randall,  and  for  a  fuller  account  see  the 
history  of  the  poem  as  given  by  Matthew  P.  Andrews  in  his  intro- 
duction to  the  1910  edition  of  Randall's  poems. 

EXPLANATORY: 

I .  Despot's  heel.  Compare  a  similar  use  of  the  word  in  the  first 
line  of  Timrod's  poem  Carolina. 

5.  Patriotic  gore.  On  April  19,  1861,  in  a  clash  between  the 
citizens  of  Baltimore  and  the  soldiers  of  the  Sixth  Massachusetts 
Regiment,  four  soldiers  and  twelve  private  citizens  were  killed  and 
many  more  wounded.  One  of  Randall's  college  mates  was  among 
the  dead. 

7.  Battle  queen  of  yore.  Evidently  referring  to  the  resistance 
made  by  Baltimore  against  the  English  fleet  under  Admiral  Cockburn 
in  the  War  of  18 12.  In  this  connection  see  Key's  Star-spangled 
Banner. 

9.  Exiled  son.  Throughout  his  life  Randall  looked  upon  himself 
as  an  exile  and  a  wanderer  from  his  native  state. 

21.  Carroll's  sacred  trust.  Charles  Carroll,  a  noted  statesman  of 
Revolutionary  times,  an  active  member  of  the  Maryland  Convention 
of  June  21,  1776,  which  declared  America  ought  to  be  free  and 


442  Southern  Literary  Readings 

independent,  and  of  the  Continental  Congress  which  declared  our 
independence.  This  last  is  probably  the  trust  referred  to,  though 
Carroll  represented  his  state  in  many  positions  of  trust. 

22.  Howard's  warlike  thrust.  Colonel  John  E.  Howard  won  fame 
at  the  battle  of  Cowpens  by  ordering  his  men  to  charge  with  the 
bayonet.     He  was  afterward  Governor  of  Maryland. 

29.  Ringgold.  Major  Samuel  Ringgold  was  an  artillery  com- 
mander in  the  Mexican  War.  He  was  personally  directing  the  fire 
of  his  squad  in  the  battle  of  Palo  Alto,  1846,  when  he  was  shot 
through  the  hips.  When  his  friends  offered  to  take  him  to  the  rear 
for  medical  attention,  he  insisted  that  they  leave  him  alone,  as  they 
were  needed  at  the  front. 

30.  Watson.  Colonel  William  H.  Watson  was  killed  in  Mexico 
at  the  head  of  his  regiment  in  the  battle  of  Monterey,  September 
24,  1846. 

31.  Lowe  .  .  .  May.  Governor  Lowe  and  Henry  May  were 
strong  defenders  of  states'  rights  and  vigorous  opposers  of  the 
Federal  war  measures  imposed  upon  Maryland  in  1861. 

39 .  And  chaunt  thy  dauntless  slogan  song.  This  line  was  originally 
written,  "And  add  a  new  Key  to  thy  song";  the  pun  in  allusion  to 
Francis  Scott  Key,  author  of  the  Star-spangled  Banner,  was  criticized 
by  Oliver  Wendell  Holmes  and  others,  and  Randall  changed  the  line 
to  read  as  in  the  text.     The  improvement  is  noteworthy. 

46.  Sic  semper  tyrannis.  "  Thus  always  with  tyrants,"  a  Latin 
phrase  on  the  coat  of  arms  of  Virginia. 

62.  Bowl.  Though  the  meaning  is  not  easily  apparent,  the  word 
probably  refers  to  a  method  of  inquisitorial  torture  in  which  the 
victim  was  placed  in  a  wooden  vessel  filled  with  spikes.  The  exi- 
gency of  rime  accounts  fpr  the  use  of  this  particular  word. 

67.  Old  Line's  bugle,  fife,  and  drum.  A  reference  to  the  Con- 
tinental or  Revolutionary  soldiers.  See  Willard's  famous  painting, 
"The  Spirit  of '76." 

70.  Northern  scum.  This  harsh  expression  should  be  inter- 
preted figuratively.  Mr.  Andrews,  apparently  quoting  Randall, 
says,  "To  the  poet,  Maryland  was  'a  rock  able  to  withstand  a  mighty 
sea  of  invasion  and  repel  it  in  foam  or  scum  at  its  base.'"  Some 
modern  editors  omit  this  stanza,  but  with  injustice  to  the  poet 
and  to  the  spirit  of  the  lyric.  Hard  words  were  the  natural  result 
of  the  fierce  passions  that  moved  men's  hearts  in  those  terrible  days. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Study  the  gradual  rise  of  emotion,  and  try  to  read  the  poem 
in  inil  realization  of  the  poet's  patriotic  fervor.  (2)  In  what  form 
does  the  poet  conceive  of  his  native  state  throughout  the  poem? 
(3)  Give  the  occasion  and  the  history  of  the  poem.  (4)  Why  did 
Randall  call  himself  an  exile?  (5)  Explain  the  historical  allusions  in 
stanzas  3  and  4.  (6)  What  is  meant  by  "Virginia  should  not  call 
in  vain"?  (7)  Discuss  the  imaginative  touches  in  the  final  stanza. 
(8)  Explain  the  following  words  from  the  poem:  panoplied,  dal- 
liance, slogan,  minions.  Vandal.  (9)  Compare  this  poem  with 
Timrod's  Carolina^  and  try  to  determine  from  a  purely  literary 


The  Notes  443 

point  of  view  which  is  the  better  poem.  In  this  exercise  try  not  to 
take  into  account  the  added  force  and  popular  appeal  which  the 
music  has  given  to  Randall's  poem,  (10)  Each  stanza  is  built  on 
a  single  riming  sound  with  the  refrain  interspersed.  Test  the  rime 
scheme  to  see  if  it  is  consistently  followed.  (11)  The  meter  is 
iambic  tetrameter,  or  four-stress  verse.  Scan  a  stanza.  Notice 
that  the  refrain  necessarily  omits  the  initial  light  syllable. 

Pelham 
INTRODUCTORY: 

Colonel  John  Pelham,  one  of  six  brothers  who  enlisted  in  the  Con- 
federate Army,  was  born  in  Calhoun  County,  Alabama,  September 
7,  1838.  He  left  West  Point  just  before  his  graduation,  in  order  to 
join  the  Confederate  forces,  and  he  was  immediately  put  in  command 
of  a  detachment  of  artillery.  It  has  been  said  that  he  was  the  most 
capable  and  brilliant  commander  of  artillery  in  the  South.  He  was 
in  many  hard-fought  engagements.  At  Fredericksburg  his  work 
was  so  remarkable  that  he  was  referred  to  by  General  Lee  in 
his  report  of  the  battle  as  "the  gallant  Pelham,"  by  which  title 
he  has  since  been  known.  He  was  killed  at  Kelly's  Ford  on  the 
Rappahannock,  March  17,  1863.  His  body  was  carried  to 
Alabama,  where  it  was  seen  by  Randall,  and  buried  in  the 
beautiful  little  town  of  Jacksonville  in  the  mountains  of  northern 
Alabama. 

EXPLANATORY: 

8.     Marcellus.     A  Roman  general  and  consul,  a  spirited  and 
noble  young  patriot  mentioned  by  Vergil  in  the  ^neid.  Book  VI. 

28.  Divine  surprise.  That  is,  his  surprise  at  the  fame  and  glory 
which  he  received  in  heaven.  Compare  Milton's  famous  passage 
on  fame  in  Lycidas,  ending 

"Of  so  much  fame  in  heav'ti  expect  thy  meed." 

35.  Amaranthine  wreath.  The  amaranth  in  Greek  lore  is  an 
imaginary  plant  or  flower  which  never  withers  or  fades.  Explain 
the  application  here. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  This  elegy  may  be  said  to  receive  its  initial  impulse  from 
line  25,  when  the  poet  gazes  upon  the  dead  form  of  the  hero.  Taking 
this  seventh  stanza,  then,  as  the  climax,  we  may  analyze  the  lyric 
as  a  poetic  exposition  or  description  of  Pelham's  death.  In  the  first 
stanza  the  time  and  occasion  are  dealt  with,  and  then  follows  a 
comparison  of  Pelham  with  Marcellus.  A  suggestive  or  poetic 
portrayal  of  the  actual  death  scene  is  then  given.  The  last  two 
stanzas,  treating  of  the  hero's  entrance  into  heaven  and  his  assured 
fame,  are  added  for  the  comfort  of  the  weeping  mother.  Follow  this 
analysis  through  the  poem.  (2)  Why  is  the  spring  spoken  of  as 
laughing?  (3)  Explain  "April  of  historic  life,"  and  compare  with 
Pelham's  actual  age  and  the  date  of  his  death.  (4)  Explain  the 
figure  of  speech  in  Hne  7.  Do  you  like  it?  (5)  Study  carefully 
stanzas  5  and  6  as  an  imaginative  portrayal  of  Pelham's  death.     Is 


444  Southern  Literary  Readings 

the  portrayal  artistic?  (6)  Stanza  7  was  greatly  admired  by  the 
eminent  critic  Clarence  Stedman.  What  do  you  see  in  the  stanza 
to  elicit  such  admiration?  (7)  Explain  the  thought  of  the  last 
stanza.  (8)  The  meter  is  alternate  five-  and  three-stress  iambic. 
Scan  a  stanza  or  two,  and  account  for  the  frequent  inversions  in  the 
first  foot. 

Gone  Forward 
INTRODUCTORY: 

In  her  journal  for  the  year  1870  Mrs.  Preston  makes  the  following 
entry:  "November  7th:  Wrote  a  little  poem  about  General  Lee 
called  Gone  Forward.  Began  it  after  eleven  o'clock,  and  finished  it 
before  dinner,  'standing  on  one  foot,'  as  Horace  says.  I  don't  know 
whether  it  is  good  or  not.  Writing  it  made  the  cold  perspiration 
break  out  over  me,  which  is  a  token  that  I  was  'i'  the  vein.'  "  After 
the  Civil  War  General  Lee  had  been  called  to  the  presidency  of 
Washington  College,  and  during  the  five  years  of  his  service  there 
Mrs.  Preston  was  thrown  into  constant  association  with  him;  so 
she  was  well  prepared  to  write  in  the  brief  space  of  an  hour  or  so  this 
almost  perfect  poem  on  the  great  man's  life  and  character.  In  her 
reminiscences  of  General  Lee  published  in  the  Century  Magazine 
nearly  twenty  years  after  his  death,  Mrs.  Preston  wrote  this  excellent 
summary  of  his  character:  "As  a  man,  physically,  intellectually, 
morally,  and  socially,  we  people  of  the  South  think  his  equal  has 
never  been  seen.  He  was  a  superb  specimen  of  manly  beauty, 
grace,  and  elegance.  His  military  life  gave  no  stiffness  to  his 
manner ;  there  was  about  him  a  stately  dignity,  a  calm  poise,  absolute 
self-possession  with  entire  absence  of  self-consciousness,  and  a 
beautiful  consideration  for  all  about  him  which  made  a  combination 
not  to  be  surpassed.  His  tall  erect  figure,  his  fine  coloring,  his 
sparkling  hazel  eye,  his  perfect  white  teeth  (for  he  never  used 
tobacco),  his  engaging  smile,  his  chivalry  of  bearing,  the  rnusical 
sweetness  of  his  perfectly  true  voice,  were  attributes  never  to  be 
forgotten  by  those  who  had  once  met  him." 

EXPLANATORY: 

I.  Let  the  tent  be  struck.  Colonel  William  Preston  Johnston, 
who  witnessed  the  death  scene,  said  that  a  Southern  poet  (referring 
to  Mrs.  Preston)  had  celebrated  the  significant  words  "Strike  the 
tent";  but  the  last  words  Lee  uttered  were," Tell  Hill  he  must  come 
up!"     General  Lee  died  of  heart  trouble,  October  12,  1870. 

15.  Call  of  duty.  General  Lee  is  given  credit  for  the  aphorism, 
"Duty  is  the  sublimest  word  in  the  English  language." 

27.  Red-cross  knights.  The  Templars  or  other  medieval  knights 
who  wore  the  red  cross  as  their  emblem.  In  Spenser's  Faery  Queene, 
Book  I,  the  Red-cross  knight  represents  Faith,  and  this  is  probably 
the  source  of  the  allusion  here. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  poem  is  an  elegy  or  dirge,  taking  General  Lee's  dying 
words  as  a  starting  point,  but  presenting  in  deep-toned,  solemn, 
beautiful  lyric  music  a  summary  of  a  noble  character.     (2)  What 


The  Notes  44^ 

day  is  the  poet  describing  in  stanza  i  ?  (3)  General  Lee  surrendered 
to  General  Grant  at  Appomatox,  April  9,  1865.  How,  then,  do  you 
explain  the  first  line  of  stanza  2?  (4)  Name  the  qualities  of  General 
Lee's  character  mentioned  in  stanza  2.  (5)  "All  hearts  grew  sudden 
palsied."  Why?  (6)  What  was  General  Lee's  ideal  as  expressed 
in  stanza  3?  (7)  Why  should  we  not  weep  for  him?  (8)  What 
kind  of  soldier  is  spoken  of  in  stanza  5?  (9)  How  do  you  interpret 
the  beautiful  and  imaginative  image,  "Thick-studded  with  the  calm, 
white  tents  of  peace"?  (10)  Now  study  the  structure  of  the  verse 
which  brings  out  such  grand,  solemn  music.  Notice  first  the  rime 
scheme,  the  feminine  or  double  rimes  in  lines  i  and  3,  the  single 
masculine  rime  sound  in  lines  2,  4,  and  5,  and  the  final  line  with  no 
rime  but  with  constant  repetition  of  the  word  "forward"  from  stanza 
to  stanza  as  a  unifying  refrain.  See  if  this  scheme  is  consistently 
carried  out,  naming  the  riming  words  in  each  stanza.  (11)  The 
meter  is  straightforward  iambic  with  one  extra  light  syllable  at  the 
end  of  the  first,  third,  and  sixth  lines  of  each  stanza.  There  is  no 
effort  at  over-ornamentation,  excessive  alliteration,  or  rich  sound 
effects,  but  the  deep,  slow  tones  are  wonderfully  well  adapted  to  the 
theme.    How  should  the  poem  be  read? 

The  Shade  of  the  Trees 

INTRODUCTORY: 

The  editor  has  been  unable  to  find  just  when  this  poem  was 
written.  No  mention  is  made  of  it  in  Mrs.  Preston's  journal  for 
1863.  The  following  entry  concerning  the  news  of  Jackson's  death 
is  found,  however:  ^' May  12th:  Tuesday:  Last  night  I  sat  at 
this  desk  writing  a  letter  to  General  Jackson,  urging  him  to  come  up 
and  stay  with  us,  as  soon  as  his  wound  would  permit  him  to  move.  I 
went  down  stairs  early  this  morning,  with  the  letter  in  my  hand,  and 
was  met  by  the  overwhelming  news  that  Jackson  was  dead!  .  .  . 
My  heart  overflows  with  sorrow.  The  grief  in  this  community  is 
intense;  everybody  is  in  tears.  What  a  release  from  his  weary  two 
years'  warfare!  To  be  released  into  the  blessedness  and  peace  of 
heaven!  .  .  .  How  fearful  the  loss  to  the  Confederacy!  The 
people  made  an  idol  of  him,  and  God  has  rebuked  them.  No  more 
ready  soul  has  ascended  to  the  throne  than  was  his.  Never  have  I 
known  a  holier  man.  Never  have  I  seen  a  human  being  so  thoroughly 
governed  by  duty.  He  lived  only  to  please  God;  his  daily  life  was 
a  daily  offering  up  of  himself."  Perhaps  the  thought  of  writing  this 
poem  came  to  Mrs.  Preston  after  she  had  written  the  powerful  poem 
Gone  Forward  suggested  by  the  last  words  of  General  Lee.  The 
poem  on  Jackson's  last  words  may  be  found  in  the  volume  called 
Cartoons  (1875),  immediately  following  that  on  Lee. 

EXPLANATORY: 

3.  Let  us  .  .  .  trees.  These  are  the  very  last  words  spoken 
by  General  Jackson.  See  John  Esten  Cooke's  account  of  the  whole 
scene,  p.  170. 

19.  Assoiled  ones.  The  redeemed,  those  saved  and  set  free  from 
all  earthly  pollution.     Walking  in  white:  See  Revelations^  iii.  4,  5. 


44^  Southern  Literary  Readings 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  is  the  initial  idea  of  this  poem?  (2)  From  this  initial 
idea  what  three  divisions  of  the  body  of  the  poem  are  apparent? 

(3)  Do  the  words  or  images  in  stanza  3  make  you  hear  the  water 
distinctly?     What  devices  are  used  to  make  the  suggestion  vivid? 

(4)  Explain  "soft  sheen  of  the  Thitherward  Shore,"  (5)  What 
picture  is  conveyed  in  stanza  5?  (6)  Why  was  it  best  for  Jackson 
to  pass  over  the  river  and  rest?  Was  it  best  for  the  Confederacy? 
Be  sure  of  your  ground  before  you  answer  this  last  question.  (7) 
What  rime  sound  is  repeated  in  each  stanza  and  why?  (8)  The 
necessity  of  repeating  the  exact  words  of  Jackson  determines  the 
meter  and  the  rhythm  of  the  poem.  The  rhythm  is  dactylic  with 
the  two  final  syllables  omitted  throughout  for  the  sake  of  the  rime. 
Count  the  stresses. 

The  Color-bearer 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  is  found  in  Mrs.  Preston's  first  volume  of  collected  short 
poems,  Old  Songs  and  New,  published  in  1870.  The  volume  contains 
poems  on  Hebrew  and  Greek  story,  ballads,  sonnets,  and  other 
verse.  The  Color-bearer  is  one  of  the  ballads.  It  is  doubtless  one 
of  Mrs.  Preston's  earlier  poems,  and  perhaps  was  written  before  the 
war ;  but  she  revised  all  her  pieces  when  she  prepared  the  manuscript 
for  her  book  in  1870,  and  in  the  later  conception  of  the  hero  of  this 
ballad  she  must  have  thought  of  some  youthful  Southern  soldier  as 
the  color-bearer. 

EXPLANATORY: 

5.     Phalanx.     The  'old   Greek  phalanx  was  the  line  of  heavy 

infantry  several  ranks  deep,  which  presented  an  unbroken  front  to 

the  enemy.     Here  the  word  is  used  generically  for  the  line  of  battle. 

87.     The  ordered  remnant  slow  retired.     That  is,  the  remnant  of 

the  company  retired  in  slow  and  orderly  fashion. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  poem  divides  itself  naturally  into  four  divisions:  analyze 
it.  (2)  Why  are  not  the  place  and  time  of  the  battle,  the  name  of 
the  company,  commander,  or  soldiers  definitely  given?  (3)  How 
is  the  carnage  of  the  battle  pictured  in  stanza  i?  Do  you  get  a 
vivid  picture  in  stanza  2  ?  Give  some  of  the  best  images.  (4)  The 
first  two  stanzas  give  a  general  picture  of  the  battle.  What  specific 
narrative  is  begun  in  stanza  3?  Recount  the  progress  of  the  com- 
pany. (5)  What  effect  does  the  fall  of  their  colors  have  on  the 
company?  What  soldier  leaps  to  restore  the  flag?  (6)  What 
makes  the  boy  pause  so  long?  (7)  Read  the  two  stanzas  describing 
the  boy's  home,  mother,  and  sister.  Why  are  these  introduced? 
(8)  "The  touch  dissolved  the  spell."  Explain  this  line,  and  connect 
it  with  a  preceding  stanza.  (9)  Explain  lines  55,  56.  (10)  In  line 
68  what  is  meant  by  "blood-red  trail  of  light"?  (11)  How  are  the 
boy's  bravery  and  devotion  to  his  country  finally  shown?  Give 
your  estimate  of  his  character.     (12)  The  poem  is  written  in  the 


The  Notes  447 

simple  ballad  quatrain  of  alternate  four-  and  three-stress  lines,  the 
second  and  fourth  riming.  ^  Test  this  formula  by  scanning  a  stanza, 
but  do  not  read  the  poem  in  a  singsong  fashion. 

The  Conquered  Banner 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  Conquered  Banner  first  appeared  on  March  21,  1868,  in  The 
Banner  of  the  South,  a  journal  founded  at  Augusta,  Georgia,  shortly- 
after  the  Civil  War.  The  poem  voiced  the  shattered  hopes  of  loyal 
Southerners  everywhere,  and  at  once  became  and  has  since  remained 
one  of  the  favorites  among  the  short  poems  by  Southern  authors. 
It  is  natural  that  the  poem,  coming  as  it  did  straight  from  the  heart 
of  the  soldier-priest  so  shortly  after  the  defeat  and  overthrow  of  the 
Confederacy,  should  be  modulated  to  a  tone  of  sadness  and  even 
of  hopelessness. 

EXPLANATORY: 

I .  That  Banner.  The  Confederate  flag,  of  which  there  were  several 
kinds.  The  battle  flag  was  a  diagonal  cross  of  blue  filled  with 
thirteen  stars,  on  a  red  ground.  The  "Stars  and  Bars"  had  as  a 
ground  three  bars — red,  white,  and  red — with  a  blue  square  in  the 
upper  left-hand  corner  decorated  with  a  circle  of  seven  stars.  The 
national  flag  consisted  of  the  battle-flag  design  on  a  field  of  white 
or  of  red  and  white. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  seems  to  be  the  theme  of  the  poem?  (2)  In  what 
mood  do  you  judge  the  author  to  have  been  when  he  wrote  it? 
(3)  Are  thought  unity  and  emotional  unity  preserved?  (4)  Is 
there  structural  unity?  Do  the  slight  variations  in  the  forms 
of  the  stanzas  mar  the  structural  unity?  (5)  How  does  each 
stanza  begin?  Does  repetition  act  as  a  binding  device  between 
the  stanzas?  (6)  What  elements  of  pathos  are  found  in  the  poem? 
(7)  In  what  lines  are  the  dead  soldiers  mentioned?  (8)  In  line  35 
the  poet  speaks  of  pardoning  the  enemy.  Who  first  taught  this 
noble  sentiment?  (9)  How  has  the  prophecy  in  line  40  been  fulfilled? 
(10)  Do  you  think  we  as  Americans  love  our  national  flag  any  the 
less  because  we  revere  the  memory  of  the  "bonny  blue  flag"  of  the 
Confederacy?  (11)  What  is  the  meter  of  the  poem?  Scan  the  first 
and  third  lines.  Notice  that  the  first  line  is  acatalectic;  that  is, 
it  is  not  cut  short  but  has  four  full  trochaic  feet.  The  third  lino 
is  catalectic,  having  the  final  Hght  or  unaccented  syllable  omitted. 
Compare  this  meter  with  that  of  The  Sword  of  Robert  Lee,  just 
following,  and  with  other  trochaic  measures  in  this  volume.  (12) 
Where  do  feminine  rimes  occur?  Are  these  demanded  by  the  tro- 
chaic rhythm?  These  double  rimes  add  to  the  musical  effect  if 
not  overdone,  while  the  masculine  or  single  rimes  break  the  monotony 
and  afford  good  opportunities  for  pauses  in  the  flow  of  the  verse  and 
in  the  thought.  (13)  The  poet  sometimes  repeats  his  rimes  too 
often.  Examine  the  first  stanza  and  see  if  you  think  the  rime  is 
overdone.     Find  another  stanza  where  there  is  inartistic  excess  of 


44^  Southern  Literary  Readings 

rime.     (14)  Where  is  the  answering  rime  to  so  in  Hne  37?     Do  you 
think  there  is  a  flaw  in  the  structure  of  this  stanza? 

The  Sword  of  Robert  Lee 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem,  like  the  preceding  and  also  like  many  other  of  Father 
Ryan's  productions  of  this  period,  first  appeared  in  The  Banner  of 
the  South,  being  published  April  4,  1868.  Father  Ryan  was  a  great 
admirer  of  General  Lee,  placing  him  first  among  the  heroes  of  fame, 
and  reverencing  him  as  one  of  the  noblest  men  who  had  ever  lived. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Is  the  theme  expressed  fully  in  the  title?  Suppose  you  state 
it  somewhat  more  fully.  (2)  In  what  situations  does  the  poet  con- 
ceive the  sword?  (3)  Notice  how  the  poem  is  structurally  unified 
by  the  opening  line  of  each  stanza.  Why  is  the  line  varied  slightly? 
(4)  How  would  you  read  the  poem?  Compare  it  with  The  Con- 
quered Banner  for  mood  and  tone.  (5)  Mark  the  note  of  sadness 
in  the  midst  of  exulting  admiration  for  the  peerless  leader.  (6) 
In  line  5  what  is  the  sword  compared  with  and  why?  _  What  figure 
of  speech  is  this?  (7)  How  is  the  sword  conceived  of  in  lines  8  and 
9?  What  figure  of  speech  is  this,  and  how  does  it  differ  from  the 
preceding  figure?  (8)  What  is  indicated  to  your  mind  by  "the 
battle's  song,"  line  9?  (9)  What  effect  did  the  sight  of  the  sword 
have  on  the  soldiers  (lines  16-18)?  (10)  In  which  stanza  is  the 
climax  in  thought  and  emotion  reached?  (11)  Why  is  the  fourth 
stanza  more  effective  than  the  preceding  ones  in  its  musical  effects? 
Study  the  parallelism,  repetition,  internal  rime,  alliteration,  etc. 
(12)  In  line  33  what  image  is  suggested?  (13)  How  is  the  sword 
associated  with  the  fallen  soldiers  in  the  last  stanza?  (14)  Study 
out  the  stanzaic  form  and  see  if  it  is  maintained  throughout.  (15) 
How  do  the  meter,  rhythm,  and  stanza  of  this  poem  compare  with 
those  of  The  Conquered  Banner  ? 

Eulogy  on  Charles  Sumner 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  famous  speech  was  delivered  in  the  United  States  House  of 
Representatives,  April  28,  1874.  Lamar  had  been  selected  from  the 
Democratic  side  to  second  the  resolutions  offered  by  Representative 
Hoar  of  Massachusetts,  for  the  suspension  of  public  business  out 
of  respect  to  the  memory  of  Senator  Sumner.  It  was  a  critical 
moment  in  the  history  of  the  nation  when  Lamar,  a  Southerner 
and  secessionist  of  the  "fire-eating"  type,  rose  to  eulogize  Charles 
Sumner,  the  man  who  was  so  bitterly  antagonistic  to  the  ideas  for 
which  the  South  stood.  Ex-Chancellor  Mayes  says:  "The  House  .  .  . 
was  thronged;  on  the  one  side  friends,  full  of  misgivings;  on  the 
other,  opponents,  _  cold,  curious,  critical.  ...  As  he  proceeded 
with  the  address,  it  was  evident  that  something  unusual  was  going 
on.  The  House  became  hushed  and  reverent.  The  faces  of  the 
members  and  of  the  vast  auditory  were  turned,  rapt  and  •attentive, 
upon  the  speaker,  as  he  stood,  in  an  attitude  of  easy  grace,  in  the 


The  Notes  44Q 

first  aisle  beyond  the  center,  on  the  left  of  the  chamber.  The  still- 
ness of  the  House  and  galleries  became  oppressive.  The  Speaker, 
Mr.  Blaine,  sat  motionless,  his  face  turned  away,  with  tears  stealing 
down  his  cheeks.  On  both  sides  of  the  House  members  wept. 
The  scarred  veterans  of  a  hundred  fields,  and  the  callous  actors  in 
a  hundred  debates.  Democrats  and  Republicans  alike,  melted  into 
tears.  Said  one  spectator  afterwards:  'Those  who  listened  some- 
times forgot  to  respect  Sumner  in  respecting  Lamar.'  When  he 
closed,  all  seemed  to  hold  their  breath,  as  if  to  prolong  a  spell;  and 
then  a  spontaneous  burst  of  applause  broke  out  from  all  the  floor 
and  all  the  galleries,  coming  up  heartily  and  warmly,  especially  from 
the  Republican  side." 

The  great  speech  was  telegraphed  to  all  parts  of  the  country,  and 
Lamar's  name  was  on  every  tongue.  It  has  been  asserted  by  many 
that  sectional  animosity  received  in  this  speech  its  deathblow. 
The  press  everywhere  lauded  the  chaste  eloquence,  the  sincere 
and  abiding  charity,  the  exalted  spirituality  of  the  utterance. 

EXPLANATORY: 

Charles  Sumner.  This  eminent  statesman  was  born  in  Massa- 
chusetts in  181 1,  educated  at  Harvard,  and  sent  to  the  United 
States  Senate  in  1851.  He  at  once  took  rank  as  one  of  the 
leaders  in  the  movement  for  the  abolition  of  slavery.  On  one 
occasion  so  severe  was  his  arraignment  of  Senator  Butler  of  South 
Carolina  that  he  was  assaulted  and  painfully  injured,  on  the  floor 
of  the  Senate  Chamber  by  a  certain  Southern  Representative  who 
was  a  relative  of  Senator  Butler's.  He  was  bitterly  hated  by  the 
South  for  many  years,  both  for  his  anti-slavery  politics  before  the 
war,  and  for  his  insistence  that  the  negroes  be  given  full  recognition 
and  equal  privileges  in  hotels,  theaters,  and  the  like,  after  the  war. 

17.     Johnson's  felicitous  expression.     What  follows  is  a  transla- . 

tion  of  a  phrase  in  Dr.  Samuel  Johnson's  Latin  epitaph  for  Oliver 

Goldsmith.     The  original  words  are  Nullum  quod  tetigit  non  ornavit. 

24.     Singularly  dramatic  career.     See  the  note  on  Sumner  above. 

131.  Amnesty  to  the  vanquished.  Sumner  had  supported  the 
act  which  granted  general  amnesty  or  pardon  to  all  who  took 
part  in  the  Civil  War  except  those  who  by  their  prominence  gained 
recognition  as  leaders.  The  officers  were  pardoned  only  on  special 
application. 

145.  A  point  to  him  so  vital.  Even  at  the  time  of  his  death, 
Sumner  was  pressing  through  Congress  his  Civil  Rights  Bill  which 
proposed  to  place  the  negro  on  the  level  of  the  white  man  in  respect 
to  all  civil  privileges. 

163.  A  gracious  act.  In  1872  Sumner  had  introduced  in  Congress 
a  bill  forbidding  the  perpetuation  by  record  or  inscription,  on  the 
army  register  or  the  regimental  colors,  of  the  victories  won  over 
fellow  citizens.  He  lost  some  of  his  popularity  among  the  extremists 
of  the  North  on  account  of  the  generous  spirit  of  magnanimity 
manifested  toward  the  feelings  of  the  South  in  this  matter. 

168.  Internecine.  Characterized  by  mutual  slaughter.  Look 
up  the  etymology  and  the  pronunciation. 

29 


4j0  Southern  Literary  Readings 

247.  Abandon.  A  French  word  meaning  ease  or  unconstraint. 
Pronounced  a-baN'd6N'. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Ex-Chancellor  Mayes  in  his  Life,  Times,  and  Speeches  of 
L.  Q.  C.  Lamar,  treating  of  the  occasion  of  this  speech,  says:  "Per- 
haps no  one  expected  aught  but  a  purely  perfunctory  performance, 
an  unwilling  tribute  to  a  dead  foe  exacted  by  the  good  breeding  of 
civilization."  Do  you  find  in  the  spirit  of  the  speech  anything  of 
the  kind?  (2)  What  is  the  significant  statement  in  the  first  para- 
graph? (3)  Why  does  the  speaker  make  only  passing  reference  to 
Sumner's  intellectual  and  cultural  attainments?  (4)  Upon  what 
traits  does  he  propose  to  dwell?  Why?  ^  (5)  In  paragraph  2  notice 
how  skillfully  Lamar  summarizes  the  intellectual  attainments  of 
Sumner  while  feigning  to  say  nothing  of  them.  How  does  he  pass 
from  the  intellectual  to  the  moral  phases  of  Sumner's  character? 
(6)  What  is  the  first  strong  characteristic  treated  of  under  this 
head?  (Third  paragraph.)  (7)  What  qualities  does  the  orator 
find  combined  with  this  characteristic  ?_  (8)  In  what  way  did  this 
characteristic  find  concrete  expression  in  Sumner's  life?  (9)  Does 
Lamar  give  a  favorable  or  an  unfavorable  picture  of  slavery  as  it 
existed  in  America?  (10)  What  is  meant  by  "the  organic  law  of 
the  republic  "?  (11)  How  does  the  last  sentence  of  the  fourth  para- 
graph lead  up  to  the  phase  of  Sumner's  character  which  is  next  to 
be  treated?  (12)  Summarize  carefully  the  thought  of  the  fifth 
paragraph.  (13)  What  topic  is  treated  of  in  the  sixth?  Have 
Sumner's  views  on  this  question  been  sanctioned  by  posterity? 
(14)  What  specific  instance  of  Sumner's  magnanimity  toward  the 
South  is  pointed  out?  X^S)  With  what  generous  idea  does  Lamar 
meet  this  magnanimity?  (Paragraph  8.)  (16)  What  do  you 
imagine  was  the  effect,  on  both  sides,  of  Lamar's  admission  that  he 
had  often  felt  the  impulse  to  go  to  Sumner  and  express  his  gratitude? 
Would  such  an  admission  disarm  a  critically  disposed  person? 
(17)  At  this  point  in  the  tenth  paragraph  we  reach  the  real  message 
that  Lamar  had  to  deliver  to  his  countrymen,  North  and  South. 
State  this  message  carefully  in  your  own  words.  (18)  Examine 
the  last  two  magnificent  sentences  in  the  eleventh  paragraph. 
Notice  the  balance  and  the  striking  antithesis  or  contrast. 

Song  of  the  Chattahoochee 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  first  appeared  in  Scott's  Magazine,  Atlanta,  Georgia,  in 
1877.  It  is  perhaps  the  most  widely  known  of  all  Lanier's  works; 
and  naturally,  for  it  is  so  simple  and  beautiful  in  its  conception  and 
so  musical  and  artistic  in  its  execution  that  even  the  youngest 
readers  find  pleasure  in  it.  Professor  Callaway  speaks  of  this  as 
"  Lanier's  most  finished  nature  poem  .  .  .  the  most  musical  of  his 
productions." 
EXPLANATORY: 

I,  2.  Habersham  .  .  ,  Hall.  Locate  these  counties  in  Georgia, 
and  trace  the  entire  course  of  the  Chattahoochee. 


The  Notes  4^1 

6.  Or  .  .  .  or.  Used  for  either  .  .  .  or,  as  often  in  poetry. 
See  if  you  can  find  in  your  reading  a  similar  use  of  nor  .  .  .  nor  for 
neither  .    .    .  nor. 

17.  For  to.  An  archaic  form,  used  also  in  line  43.  Can  you  point 
out  instances  of  the  use  of  this  idiom  in  the  King  James  version  of  the 
Bible? 

38.  Made  lures.  Offered  allurements  for  the  water  to  stop. 
The  idea  seems  to  be  that  the  water  pouring  over  the  stones  makes 
them  more  dazzling  and  attractive. 

43.     Fain.     Willing,  yearning. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Make  an  outline  of  the  poem  by  stanzas,  using  the  five 
questions  following  this  one  for  suggestions.  (2)  How  much  of  the 
river's  course  is  summarized  in  stanza  i?  (3)  What  objects  are 
described  in  stanza  2  as  delaying  the  water?  (4)  What  objects 
attract  the  river  in  stanza  3?  (5)  What  objects  offer  allurements 
in  stanza  4?  (6)  What  moral  is  drawn  in  stanza  5?  (7)  Who 
speaks  throughout  the  poem?  Does  this  give  the  poet  the  oppor- 
tunity to  imitate  the  sound  of  the  water  in  his  verse?  Why  is  the 
name  of  the  river  not  given  in  the  poem?  (8)  Is  there  a  similarity 
of  tone  in  the  first  and  last  stanzas?  How  does  this  help  to  unify 
the  whole?  (9)  The  meter  is  typically  four-stress  trochaic,  but  there 
are  many  variations  and  irregularities  for  artistic  effect.  Scan  the 
poem.  (10)  Professor  Kent  in  his  analysis  of  this  poem  says: 
"In  five  stanzas,  of  ten  lines  each,  alliteration  occurs  in  all  save 
twelve  lines."  Prove  this  statement  by  actual  count,  marking 
the  non-alliterative  lines.  (The  lines  in  which  Hall  occurs  alliterate 
with  the  preceding  lines  containing  Habersham.)  (11)  He  also  says: 
"In  eleven  of  these  twelve  lines  internal  rhyme  occurs,  sometimes 
joining  the  parts  of  a  line,  sometimes  uniting  successive  lines." 
Point  out  the  single  line  which  has  n6  internal  rime.  (12)  Mem- 
orize the  poem.     (13)  Compare  it  with  Tennyson's  The  Brook, 

A  Ballad  of  Trees  and  the  Master 
INTRODUCTORY: 

Lanier  wrote  this  poem  at  Baltimore  in  November,  1880,  only  a 
few  months  before  his  death.  It  is  one  of  the  most  exquisite  nature 
lyrics  in  our  language.  For  other  beautiful  passages  on  trees,  see 
the  opening  lines  of  Sunrise  and  The  Marshes  of  Glynn. 

EXPLANATORY: 

2.     Forspent.    Exhausted,  entirely  spent;  an  archaic  word. 
THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  To  whom  does  Master  refer?  (2)  What  event  in  Christ's 
life  is  described?  In  what  garden  did  it  take  place?  (3)  Why  was 
He  "forspent"?  (4)  What  two  trees  are  mentioned  in  the  first 
stanza?  Of  what  events  are  they  typical  or  suggestive  in  Christ's 
life?  (5)  The  use  of  they  in  line  5  is  an  example  of  pleonasm.  Ex- 
plain the  figure  and  show  why  it  is  justifiable  in  poetry.     (6)  What 


4S2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

difference  in  tone  is  there  between  the  first  and  the  second  stanza? 
(7)  Why  was  Christ  content  when  he  came  out  of  the  garden?  (8) 
What  does  tree  mean  in  line  15?  (9)  The  meter  is  iambic,  but  it  is 
varied  by  inversions  (trochaic  feet),  as  in  lines  i,  9,  11;  by  substi- 
tutions of  anap^stic  feet,  as  in  lines  5,  6,  8,  14,  16.  Try  to  point 
out  these  variations.  In  line  "2  there  is  a  syllable  omitted  in  the 
first  foot.  This  omission  is  similar  in  effect  to  a  rest  in  music,  as 
Lanier  explains  in  his  Science  of  English  Verse.  The  line  should  be 
read  slowly  so  as  to  fill  the  full  time  interval.  (10)  The  lines  some- 
times have  three,  sometimes  four  stresses ;  which  lines  have  four  and 
which  three  feet?  (11)  What  rimes  are  repeated  throughout  the 
two  stanzas?  Does  such  repetition  add  to  the  music  of  the  lyric? 
(12)  How  do  the  rime  words  in  lines  2  and  10  help  to  emphasize 
the  contrasted  moods  of  the  two  stanzas?  (13)  What  movement 
do  you  assign  to  this  lyric? 

My  Springs 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  beautiful  love  poem  addressed  to  the  poet's  wife  was  written 
in  1874  while  Lanier  was  living  in  Baltimore.  In  a  letter  to  Mrs. 
Lanier,  dated  March,  1874,  the  poet  says:.  "Of  course  since  I 
have  written  it  to  print,  I  cannot  make  it  such  as  I  desire  in  artistic 
design;  for  the  forms  of  to-day  require  a  certain  trim  smugness  and 
clean-shaven  propriety  in  the  face  and  dress  of  a  poem,  and  I  must 
win  a  hearing  by  conforming  in  some  degree  to  these  tyrannies,  with 
a  view  to  overturning  them  in  the  future.  Written  so,  it  is  not  nearly 
so  beautiful  as  I  would  have  it,  and  I  therefore  have  another  still 
in  my  heart,  which  I  will  some  day  write  for  myself." 

EXPLANATORY: 

3.    Lucent.    Look  up  the  meaning  and  etymology  of  this  word. 
16.     Very  verity.     Real  or  true  form. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  poem  is  a  love  lyric  set  in  allegory.  What  are  the 
springs  ?  (2 )  Why  are  they  placed  in  the ' '  heart  of  the  Hills  of  Life ' '  ? 
(3)  What  does  the  "soul's  far  Lake  of  Dreams"  signify?  (4) 
Explain  in  what  way  the  springs  "mirror  all  of  life  and  time."  (5) 
What  abstract  quality  is  represented  in  stanza  4?  Do  you  conceive 
of  this  abstract  idea  in  a  concrete  form?  Explain  the  thought  of 
the  stanza.  (6)  What  three  familiar  figures  known  as  the ' '  Christian 
graces"  appear  in  stanzas  5  and  6?     See  /  Corinthians,  xiii.  13. 

(7)  What  particular  form  of  art  was  Lanier  thinking  of  in  stanza  7? 

(8)  Recalling  the  story  of  Lanier's  life,  say  how  you  think  his  wife 
helped  him  most.  (9)  Notice  that  the  latter  half  of  the  poem  is 
more  emotional  than  the  first,  the  poet's  love  being  expressed  in  a 
sort  of  climax  or  crescendo  toward  the  end.  (10)  Enumerate  the 
characteristics  of  the  wife  as  set  forth  in  the  various  love  lights 
which  played  in  her  eyes.  (11)  Why  does  the  poet  use  the 
figure  of  dovecotes  with  gray  doves?  (12)  Why  are  Magdalen  and 
Ruth  singled  out  as  objects  of  the  good  wife's  love?     (13)  The  last 


The  Notes  453 

stanza  has  been  spoken  of  as  one  of  Lanier's  purest  gems  of  poetry 
and  one  of  the  finest  compUments  ever  paid  by  a  husband  to  a 
wife.  Memorize  this  stanza.  (14)  Analyze  the  structure  of  the 
poem,  dividing  it  into  two  parts  and  giving  appropriate  sub- 
divisions. _  (15)  Point  out  the  marked  parallelism  of  structure  and 
the  repetition  in  stanzas  4  to  8.  What  advantages  are  thus 
gained?  (16)  Study  carefully  the  deep  and  sincere  emotion  which 
permeates  the  whole  poem.  (17)  Read  for  comparison  Washington 
Irving's  picture  of  The  Wife  in  The  Sketch-hook. 

Stanzas  from  "Corn" 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  poem  from  which  these  three  stanzas  are  taken  appeared  in 
Lippincott's  Magazine  for  February,  1875,  and  was  the  first  of 
Lanier's  productions  to  attract  wide  public  notice.  The  poem  is 
dated  Sunnyside,  Georgia,  August,  1874.  Mrs.  Lanier  says  that  it 
was  the  first  outcome  of  her  husband's  consciously  developing  art 
life.  Of  the  background  of  the  poem  she  adds,  "His  'fieldward- 
faring  eyes  took  harvest,'  'among  the  stately  corn-ranks,'  in  a 
portion  of  middle  Georgia  sixty  miles  to  the  north  of  Macon.  It  is 
a  high  tract  of  country  from  which  one  looks  across  the  lower 
reaches  to  the  distant  Blue  Ridge  Mountains,  whose  wholesome 
breath,  all  unobstructed,  here  blends  with  the  woods-odors  of  the 
beech,  the  hickory,  and  the  muscadine." 
EXPLANATORY: 

I.    Zigzag-cornered.    The  old-fashioned  rail    fence  is   laid   in 
zigzag  or  worm  fashion. 

12.  Tilth.     Tillage,  plowing:  an  Anglo-Saxon  word. 

13.  Quintuple.  Fivefold.  This  word  is  used  to  sum  up  the 
five  things  mentioned  as  harvests  above — namely,  dignities ^  benigni- 
ties, insights,  graces,  majesties. 

19.  Type.     Typify,  be  a  type  of:  a  noun  used  as  a  verb. 

20.  Vanward.     The  forward  section,  the  vanguard. 
23.     Increment.     Increase,  addition. 

29.  Four  wild  elements.  This  is  a  reference  to  the  older  phi- 
losophy, which  held  that  everything  in  nature  was  composed  of  the 
four  elements,  water,  fire,  air,  earth. 

40.     Writ.     An  old  past  tense,  now  used  only  in  poetry. 
THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Give  a  topic  for  each  of  the  three  stanzas.  (2)  Describe  in 
your  own  words  the  first  picture  the  poet  paints.  (3)  What  meta- 
phor is  developed  in  the  first  stanza?  (4)  Point  out  and  define  the 
military  terms  used.  (5)  What  is  the  thought  that  the  poet  wishes 
to  impress  by  this  figure?  (6)  In  the  second  stanza  the  poet  stops 
to  develop  another  thought,  but  he  uses  the  word  corn-ranks  to 
keep  the  military  figure  in  mind.  Explain  just  how  the  poet  takes 
harvest.     (7)  Develop  carefully  the  thought  of  lines  11,  12,  and  13. 

(8)  In  line  14  the  poet  returns  to  his  military  figure,  but  centers  his 
attention  on  one  single  conception.     Why  is  this  device  effective? 

(9)  Explain  "waves  his  blades."     (10)  Why  is  the  battling  hedge 


4S4  Southern  Literary  Readings 

mentioned  again?  (ii)  Line  i8  does  not  rime  with  any  other  line, 
but  it  has  three  words  riming  within  itself.  Point  these  out.  (^2) 
Lanier  now  compares  the  corn-captain  to  the  poet-soul.  Notice 
how  he  first  uses  a  military  idea,  "sings  up  cowards";  and  then, 
repeating  the  word  soul  at  the  beginning  of  three  different  lines, 
he  develops  three  comparisons  between  the  poet-soul  and  the 
cornstalk:  namely,  calmness,  unselfish  grace,  and  sweetness.  (13) 
Explain  selfless  chivalry,  and  curves  of  courtesy.  Notice  the  assonance 
in  the  last  phrase.  (14)  Paraphrase  line  31.  (15)  Why  does  the 
poet  say  the  corn  stands  in  its  grave?  (16)  Explain  the  thought 
in  lines  38  and  39.  (17)  What  lesson  may  be  drawn  from  the  last 
line?  How  can  we  become  our  own  monument?  (18)  Study  the 
melodious  phrasing,  the  rich  rime  combinations,  the  varying  rhythms, 
and  try  to  cultivate  your  ear  for  a  keener  appreciation  of  the  musical 
qualities  of  Lanier's  verse. 

Three  Letters 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  first  of  these  letters  is  taken  from  Lanier's  correspondence 
with  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne,  which  extended  over  the  years  from 
1867  to  Lanier's  death  in  1881;  the  next,  taken  from  the  more 
personal  letters  to  Mrs.  Lanier,  describes  the  poet's  first  rehearsal 
as  a  member  of  the  Peabody  Symphony  Orchestra,  Baltimore; 
the  third  is  one  from  Lanier  to  Bayard  Taylor,  written  while  the 
former  was  seeking  to  improve  his  health  by  a  winter  spent  in 
Florida. 

Since  personal  letters  are  normally  of  an  easy,  natural,  and  unstud- 
ied character,  there  is  no  need  for  an  attempt  at  literary  analysis 
here;  but  the  student  sliould  note  the  grace  and  fluency  of  style 
and  intimacy  of  tone  necessary  to  produce  a  pleasing  effect  in  this 
difficult  kind  of  writing.  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne  says  of  the  letters 
which  Lanier  wrote  to  him:  "Their  quaintness  of  thought  and 
phraseology  seemed  at  first  to  indicate  affectation — an  affectation 
of  archaism;  but  soon  I  learned  to  understand  that  this  style  was 
as  natural  to  Lanier  as  breathing." 

EXPLANATORY: 

I 

I.  Mr.  Hayne.  In  the  Critic  of  1886,  Paul  Hamilton  Hayne 
printed  with  personal  comment  a  group  of  letters  which  Lanier 
had  written  him  during  their  long  friendship.  He  says  in  introduc- 
ing this  letter:  "The  next  letter  seems  to  me  a  striking  one. 
One  part  of  it  is  a  prose-poem,  touched  by  an  exquisite  delicacy  of 
fancy;  and  another  part  foreshadows  that  trenchant  critical  force, 
combining  fine  analysis  with  truly  philosophical  generalization, 
displayed  so  conspicuously  at  a  subsequent  period,  in  Lanier's 
lectures  at  Johns  Hopkins  University,  Baltimore." 

II 

In  1873  the  position  of  first  flute  in  the  Peabody  Symphony 
Orchestra  of  Baltimore  was  offered  to  Lanier  by  the  director,  Asger 


The  Notes  4^^ 

Hamerick.  Lanier  accepted  the  position,  and  this  letter  describes 
his  feehngs  as  he  went  through  the  first  rehearsal.  The  archaic 
style  of  the  letter  gives  it  a  quaint  and  poetic  tone  throughout. 
The  fact  that  Lanier  was  not  lacking  in  humor  is  also  illustrated  here. 
2.  Flauto  Primo,  First  flute.  Note  the  use  and  the  effect  of 
the  Italian  musical  terms  introduced  here  and  there"  in  the  letter. 
62.  Niels  Gade  's  Ossian  Overture.  Niels  Gade  was  a  noted  Danish 
conductor  and  composer.  Ossian  was  the  old  Gaelic  bard  to  whom 
James  Macpherson  (i  738-1 796)  attributed  the  authorship  of  the 
epic  poem  Fingal.  Macpherson's  work  was  later  found  to  be  fabri- 
cations of  his  own  on  certain  fragments  of  Gaelic  poetry  which  he 
had  heard  in  the  Highlands  of  Scotland. 

Ill 

2.  Mr,  Taylor.  The  relations  between  Bayard  Taylor  and 
Sidney  Lanier  were  extremely  cordial.  The  series  of  letters  which 
passed  between  them  not  only  throws  much  light  on  the  life  of  both 
writers,  but  affords  an  excellent  example  of  a  literary  correspondence 
of  an  eminently  practical  and  helpful  kind. 

II.  Pen.  Changed  from  "few,"  which  was  evidently  a  mis- 
print. 

25.  The  poem.  Doubtless  the  poem  referred  to  is  The  Waving 
oj  the  Corn,  which  appeared  in  Harper's  Magazine  in  1877. 

27.  International  Review.  In  reply  Mr.  Taylor  condemned 
the  International  Review;  he  sent  the  poem  entitled  To  Beethoven  to 
the  Galaxy.     Lanier  received  twenty-five  dollars  for  this  lyric. 

35.  Mr.  Eggleston.  George  Gary  Eggleston,  who  was  at  this  time 
literary  editor  of  the  New  York  Evening  Post. 

Christmas -night  in  the  Quarters 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  operetta  or  collection  of  negro  melodies  and  flashlight  pic- 
tures of  negro  life  on  the  old  Southern  plantation  has  received  high 
praise  from  students  of  dialect  poetry  and  negro  character.  It  was 
published  in  Scribner  's  Magazine,  January,  1 878.  Read  on  page  228 
what  Joel  Chandler  Harris  has  to  say  about  this  production. 

EXPLANATORY: 

Quarters.  On  the  old  plantations  the  negro  cabins  were  built 
close  together  at  some  convenient  point  near  the  "big  house,"  or 
home  of  the  planter.  This  group  of  cabins  was  known  as  the 
"quarters." 

4.  ** Christmas  gift."  The  custom  of  the  negroes  and  of  the 
Southern  children  of  crying,  "Christmas  gift,"  and  demanding  a 
present  of  the  one  who  is  "caught,"  or  greeted  first,  is  still  in 
vogue  to  some  extent,  though  it  seems  to  be  passing. 

28.  Star  .  .  .  Yee-bawee.  Star  is  a  common  name  for  a 
steer  with  a  blazed  face.  Buck  is  a  common  name  for  an  ox. 
Compare  Buck-Kannon  (Buchanan),  line  46.  Yee-bawee  probably 
means  "Go  Forward." 

31.    Huss.    Hearse. 


4^6  Southern  Literary  Readings 

41.     Polly tishners.     Spell  the  word  correctly. 
46.     W90  bahgh.     Whoa,  back! 

57.     Twistin'.    The  favorite  method  of  making  a  "suUed"  ox 
move  is  to  twist  its  tail. 

76.  Brudder    Brown,     The    negro    minister    is    always  called 
"Brother." 

77.  Quarter  race.     Gambling  was,  of  course,  largely  indulged 
in  at  these  second-class  quarter-mile  races. 

96.     Isrul's  prophet  king.    Who? 

116.  Kwattillion.  CotHlion.  The  "set-caller"  is  the  person  who 
calls  out  the  movements  or  figures  of  the  dance.  Here,  as  often, 
the  fiddler  is  both  musician  and  caller. 

153.  Still  chorused.  The  dogs  that  have  followed  their  masters 
to  the  party  are  pictured  as  howling  on  the  outside  in  that  doleful 
way  dogs  have  of  doing  when  they  hear  certain  musical  sounds. 

189.     Herald.    The  Vicksburg  Herald. 

191.     Natchez.    A  famous  steamboat  of  the  early  days. 

198.  Morgan.  A  breed  of  draft  horses.  The  name  is  often 
given  specifically  to  any  large,  strong  horse,  and  is  usually  pro- 
nounced Moggin  by  the  negroes. 

201.  Lebbee.  The  levee,  or  embankment  thrown  up  along  the 
lower  Mississippi. 

203.  Bitters.-  A  cheap  grade  of  whisky.  There  is  usually  some 
one  on  the  steamer  who  handles  or  mixes  the  bitters. 

206.     Painters.     Panthers. 

208.  Ham.  One  of  Noah's  sons,  the  traditional  father  of  the 
negro  race.     In  Hebrew  the  word  means  swarthy. 

238,  Pass.  Slaves  were  often  given  written  passes,  with  limited 
dates,  to  go  from  one  plantation  to  another. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  When  and  where  is  the  scene  laid?  (2)  Describe  the  gathering 
of  the  negroes  at  the  dance.  (3)  What  opportunity  for  "local  color  " 
does  the  ox  team  afford  the  author?  (4)  What  is  the  main  thought 
of  Jim's  comparison  of  the  team  with  the  United  States?  What 
does  he  mean  by  the  steers  "stalling"?  Interpret  the  idea  in  lines 
50-57.  (5)  What  is  the  principal  element  of  humor  in  "Brudder" 
Brown's  prayer?  What  does  he  mean  by  "let  de  time  excuse  de 
sin  "  ?  Explain  the  blunder  "dem  sheriffs  in  de  sky."  (6)  Point  out 
several  striking  lines  in  the  prayer.  Examine  particularly  lines 
88,  89;  95;  98,  99;  100,  loi.  (7)  On  what  basis  is  the  decision  as 
to  the  best  dancer  made?  (8)  How  is  the  evening  spent  after 
the  supper?  Give  the  various  groups  of  characters  as  you  imagine 
them  placed.  (9)  What  humorous  touch  is  intended  in  line  173? 
(10)  How  is  the  banjo  introduced?  (The  banjoist  is  also  the  host. 
See  line  7.)  (11)  What  is  the  banjoist 's  attitude  toward  the 
fiddler?  (12)  Tell  the  legend  as  to  why  the  possum's  tail  is  bare. 
Turn  the  dialect  into  as  good  English  as  you  can  command.  (13) 
What  is  the  effect  of  mixing  Noah's  flood  with  local  matters  such 
as  the  Herald,  the  steamer  Natchez,  Morgan  colt,  Jersey  cattle,  etc.  ? 
(14)  Does  the  pun  in  line  216  seem  likely  to  have  been  made  by 


The  Notes  457 

a  negro?  (15)  What  is  meant  by  "wash-day-dinner  graces"?  (16) 
Why  is  Santa  Claus  pictured  as  departing  in  grief  and  tears?  (17) 
Now  review  the  piece  as  a  whole  and  give  the  various  impressions 
and  pictures  of  negro  Hfe  in  the  order  of  their  presentation. 
(18)  The  introductory  and  concluding  passages  and  the  connecting 
links  or  the  descriptive  or  explanatory  sections  are  written  in  con- 
tinuous four-stress  iambic  couplets  with  an  occasional  feminine  or 
double  rime.  Sometimes  these  rimes  give  an  intentional  familiar, 
humorous,  or  grotesque  effect,  as  in  lines  76,  79,  156,  and  159.  This 
rhythm  is  used  effectively  by  Whittier  in  his  idyl  of  New  England 
farm  life.  Snow-hound.  (19)  Notice  the  feminine  rimes  in  Jim's  song 
on  his  ox  team.  What  effect  is  gained  by  the  use  of  these?  How 
many  stresses  are  there  in  the  lines  of  Jim's  song?  (20)  The  prayer 
and  the  banjo  song  are  in  the  old  seven-stress  line  so  frequently 
used  in  the  early  ballads.  Notice  the  absence  of  the  feminine 
rimes  in  the  prayer,  and  the  organic  use  of  them  in  the  banjo  song. 
Is  there  any  difference  in  the  effect? 

Business  in  Mississippi 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  is  in  the  form  of  a  dramatic  monologue — the  form  which 
Browning  perfected  and  used  in  some  of  his  most  noteworthy  poems. 
We  have  here  a  picture  of  one  phase  of  negro  life  and  character  done 
to  a  turn.  The  quiet  humor,  the  sly  wit,  the  pretended  innocence 
and  skillful  shifts  of  the  old  negro  make  this  a  delightful  bit  of  char- 
acter study. 
EXPLANATORY: 

I.  Mahsr  Johnny.  Just  after  the  war,  the  negroes  applied  the 
title  "Master"  to  every  white  man  of  any  dignity  or  material 
prosperity. 

4.  Refugees.  Probably  referring  to  the  flight  of  the  people 
before  Sherman's  army  in  his  famous  march  through  Georgia. 

14.     Seditions.     Conditions.     Note  the  humorous  effect. 
THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Picture  to  yourself  the  scene  and  the  characters.  (2)  What 
is  a  dramatic  monologue?  (3)  What  do  you  suppose  the  merchant 
says  at  various  points?  Can  you  get  the  characteristics  of  the  white 
man  as  well  as  of  the  negro?  Name  some  of  the  qualities  that  you 
imagine  "Mahsr  Johnny"  possessed.  (4)  Analyze  the  character 
of  the  negro;  do  you  think  he  had  any  good  qualities?  (5)  What  is 
implied  in  his  choosing  a  young  or  inexperienced  merchant?  (6) 
Why  does  he  begin  by  begging  a  favor  ?^  Would  the  negroes  you 
know  say  "tobacco"?  Point  out  other  differences  in  the  dialect  as 
you  know  it  and  as  it  is  given  here.  (7)  What  methods  of  flattery 
are  employed  in  the  second  stanza?  This  prepares  for  the  bargaining 
which  begins  in  stanza  3.  (8)  Why  do  you  think  the  negro  would 
rather  sell  to  "Mahsr  Johnny"?  (9)  Do  you  suppose  the  buyer 
raises  the  price  on  the  strength  of  the  earnest  pleadings  in  lines 
17-20?  (10)  What  loud  protestations  does  the  negro  make  in  lines 
22-26?     Is  it  true  that  those  who  boast  the  loudest  are  often  weakest 


458  Southern  Literary  Readings 

in  those  very  things  about  which  they  boast?  (ii)  How  does  the 
negro's  quick  wit  save  him  in  the  first  deception  in  which  he  is 
caught?  Do  you  think  "Mahsr  Johnny"  accepts  his  explanation 
as  true?  (12)  Why  is  the  negro  so  anxious  to  get  rid  of  his  cotton 
just  after  this  first  disclosure?  What  movement  do  you  imagine 
the  merchant  has  made?  (13)  Why  are  the  protests  urged  so 
eloquently  against  the  use  of  the  auger?  (14)  How  does  the  negro 
escape  from  the  last  discovery?  What  makes  this  such  a  good 
stroke  of  humor?     Compare  lines  28  and  40  for  a  suggestion  here. 

Mahsr  John 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem  was  published  in  the  old  Scrihner^s  Magazine  for  May, 
1877.  It  has  in  it  a  delightful  mingling  of  the  imaginative  exaggera- 
tion and  the  subtle  sympathy  and  fidelity  so  characteristic  of  the 
old-time  darky.     The  poem  may  be  called  a  monologue  or  a  soliloquy. 

EXPLANATORY: 

II.  GaVry.  Gallery.  In  the  South  "gallery"  was  formerly 
almost  universally  and  is  still  widely  used  for  veranda  or  porch. 

22.    Loozyan.     Louisiana. 

24.     Oberseahs.     Overseers. 

32.     'Tic'lar  sarcumsiance.     Spell  out  both  words  correctly. 

37.    Sullybrated.     Spell  the  correct  form. 

39.  'Lows.  Allows.  Allow  is  used  by  many  uneducated  people 
in  the  sense  of  to  declare  as  one's  opinion  or  belief. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Divide  the  poem  into  two  movements,  giving  an  appropriate 
name  to  each  division.  (2)  The  first  stanza  may  be  called  the 
initial  or  introductory  thought.  What,  then,  is  the  initial  impulse 
that  arouses  the  old  negro's  defense  of  his  Mahsr  John?  (3)  Stanzas 
2  to  8  inclusive  are  the  negro's  reminiscent  description  of  Mahsr 
John  in  antebellum  days.  Give  the  topics  for  each  of  these  stanzas. 
(4)  The  last  two  stanzas  form  the  conclusion  and  give  us  a  picture 
of  the  changed  condition  of  Mahsr  John  since  the  war.  Give  the 
topics  of  these  two  stanzas.  (5)  Note  the  pathetic  and  loving 
tone  of  these  last  stanzas,  and  contrast  this  tone  with  the  exag- 
gerated braggadocio  of  the  preceding  stanzas.  (6)  In  what  way 
does  the  last  stanza  echo  the  thought  of  the  opening  stanza?  This 
adds  unity  and  completeness  to  the  composition,  the  poem  return- 
ing to  its  initial  impulse  and  completing,  as  it  were,  the  circle  of 
the  thought  movement.  (7)  Now  study  the  lines  more  in  detail. 
Why  does  the  poet  select  Washington  and  Franklin  to  contrast 
with  Mahsr  John?  (8)  Tell  just  what  sort  of  man  you  think  Mahsr 
John  was.  (9)  Does  the  negro  reveal  his  own  character  in  por- 
traying his  old  master?  Give  your  notion  of  the  old  servant.  (10) 
Do  you  get  a  fairly  comprehensive  picture  of  Southern  plantation 
life  before  the  war?  Mention  some  of  the  details  that  are  most 
suggestive.  (11)  You  will  find  that  there  are  seven  iambic 
feet  to  each  line,  and  the  four-line  stanzas  are  made  up  of  two 


The  Notes  4^g 

couplets  of  these  seven-stress  lines.     Notice  how  easy  and  regular 
the  rhythm  is.     Do  you  find  any  irregularities  in  the  rhythm? 

Nebuchadnezzar 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  is  one  of  the  best  known  of  Russell's  poems,  and  has  been 
used  many  hundreds  of  times  as  a  popular  recitation.  It  first 
appeared  in  the  old  Scribner's  Magazine  for  June,  1876. 

EXPLANATORY: 

I.  Nebuchadnezzah.  The  name  of  the  old  negro's  mule.  There 
is  perhaps  some  humor  intended  in  giving  him  this  name,  for  Nebu- 
chadnezzar was  afflicted  with  a  peculiar  type  of  insanity  and  went 
about  on  all-fours  in  the  pasture  as  a  grazing  animal.  See  the 
Bible  story  in  Daniel,  iv.  28-34. 

7.  Advancin'.  A  year's  provision  was  provided  for  the  free 
negroes  when  they  worked  a  crop  on  shares  with  the  owner  of  the 
land.  This  was  called  advancing,  because  the  negroes  were  rarely 
or  never  able  to  pay  for  their  provisions  until  the  cotton  crop  was 
gathered  and  sold. 

27.     Fotch  a  mighty  jigger.     Bring  a  large  price. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Who  is  speaking  and  to  whom,  in  this  monologue?  (2)  Divide 
the  poem  into  two  main  thought  movements  and  a  conclusion  or 
catastrophe.  (3)  The  last  stanza  (it  may  be  called  the  conclusion 
or  catastrophe)  is  a  strict  soliloquy.  In  this  how  does  it  differ 
from  the  preceding  stanzas?  (4)  How  is  the  spirit  of  braggadocio 
developed  in  the  first  two  stanzas?  (5)  How  does  the  author 
suggest  that  the  mule  is  given  to  kicking?  (6)  How  is  the  negro's 
confidence  in  the  gentleness  of  the  mule  developed  in  stanzas  3 
and  4?  Give  some  of  the  phrasings  that  are  most  suggestive  of  this. 
(7)  Why  is  it  well  to  put  the  line,  "An'  nebber  thinks  of  kickin'," 
at  the  very  end  of  the  plowman's  confidential  analysis  of  the  mule's 
character?  (8)  What  do  you  imagine  is  happening  at  line  32  when 
the  negro  yells,  *^Whoa  dar!  Nebuchadnezzah''}  (9)  What  has 
happened  to  the  old  negro  to  make  him  ask  so  many  questions  at 
the  opening  of  the  fifth  stanza?  (10)  In  the  last  two  lines  is  there 
any  explanation  given  of  the  mule's  peculiar  actions?  Does  the 
old  negro  seem  to  be  proud  of  Nebuchadnezzar's  intelligence?  (11) 
Study  the  arrangement  of  the  rimes.  Note  the  two  sets  of  feminine 
triplets  tied  together  by  a  masculine  rime  in  the  fourth  and  eighth 
lines.  This  makes  a  compact  and  musical  stanzaic  structure.  (12) 
Read  the  poem  through  until  you  can  pronounce  all  the  dialect  words 
in  a  natural  and  easy  manner.  Imitate  the  negro's  tones  as  well  as 
you  can.  (13)  Make  a  list  of  twenty  of  the  dialect  words  and  give 
the  correct  spelling. 

The  New  South 
INTRODUCTORY: 

At  the  annual  banquet  of  the  New  England  Society  of  New  York, 
December  6,  1 886  (the  occasion  of  the  speech  from  which  this  selection 


460  Southern  Literary  Readings 

is  taken),  Mr.,  Grady  was  expected  to  reply  in  a  formal  way  to  the 
toast  "The  South";  but  as  he  thought  of  the  luxury  and  comfort 
of  the  conquering  and  the  poverty  and  hardships  of  the  conquered 
section,  he  felt,  as  he  afterward  said,  inspired  to  deliver  a  message 
to  the  sons  of  New  England.  His  effort  was  received  with  unbounded 
enthusiasm ;  the  staid  New  Englanders  are  said  to  have  risen  to  their 
feet  and  shouted  themselves  hoarse  in  applause  of  the  stirring  words 
of  the  young  Southern  orator.  A  reporter  took  down  the  speech, 
and  the  next  day  the  news  of  Grady's  triumph  swept  over  the 
country. 

EXPLANATORY: 

I.  The  new  South.  This  phrase,  which  was  made  popular  by 
Grady,  was  based  on  the  words  of  the  Georgia  senator  and  orator, 
Benjamin  H.  Hill,  namely:  "There  was  a  South  of  slavery  and 
secession — that  South  is  dead.  There  is  a  South  of  union  and 
freedom — that  South,  thank  God,  is  living,  breathing,  growing  every 
hour."     Enamored  oj  means  in  love  with. 

21.  A  brave  and  simple  man.  Grady's  father,  William  S.  Grady, 
who  was  killed  in  one  of  the  battles  about  Petersburg,  Virginia. 

35.  This  message.    That  is,  his  speech. 

36.  The  city.  Atlanta.  Look  up  in  your  United  States  History 
the  references  to  the  various  engagements  fought  in  and  around 
Atlanta  in  the  Civil  War. 

76.     Those  opened  eyes,  etc.     Look  up  this  quotation  in  Shak- 
spere's  /  Henry  IV,  Act  I,  Sc.  i. 
79.     Intestine  shock.     CivH  strife. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  new  work  is  referred  to  in  line  i?  (2)  To  what  does 
Grady  attribute  the  South's  defeat?  (3)  Is  there  anything  of  an 
apologetic  tone  in  the  manner  in  which  Grady  admits  that  he  is 
glad  slavery  has  been  abolished?  (4)  Are  all  sections  now  in  accord 
with  Grady's  sentiment  that  the  valor  of  Southern  soldiers  is  a 
hallowed  heritage  to  the  whole  nation?  Compare  the  expressions 
of  Presidents  McKinley  and  Roosevelt  on  this  subject.  (5)  What 
answer  is  expected  to  the  rhetorical  interrogations  in  the  first  half  of 
the  last  paragraph?  (6)  Study  this  paragraph  for  balance,  antithe- 
sis, and  parallel  structure.  Why  are  these  devices  effective  in 
an  oration? 

The  Farmer*s  Home 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  extract,  which  is  complete  in  itself,  is  taken  from  The  Farmer 
and  the  Cities,  a  speech  delivered  at  the  Farmers'  Alliance  barbecue 
held  at  Elberton,  Georgia,  in  June,  1889.  Joel  Chandler  Harris  in 
his  memorial  sketch  of  Grady  says:  "I  think  there  is  no  passage  in 
our  modern  literature  equal  in  its  effectiveness  and  pathos  to  his 
picture  of  a  Southern  farmer's  home.  It  is  a  matter  on  which  his 
mind  dwelt.  There  was  that  in  his  nature  to  which  both  sun  and 
soil  appealed.  The  rain  falling  on  a  fallow  field,  the  sun  shining 
on  the  bristling  and  waving  corn,  and  the  gentle  winds  of  heaven 


The  Notes  461 

blowing  over  all — he  was  never  tired  of  talking  of  these,  and  his  talk 
always  took  the  shape  of  a  series  of  picturesque  descriptions.  He 
appreciated  their  spiritual  essence  as  well  as  their  material  meaning, 
and  he  surrendered  himself  entirely  to  all  the  wholesome  suggestions 
that  spring  from  the  contemplation  of  rural  scenes."  Grady  used 
this  picture  of  the  farmer's  home  on  other  occasions,  but  he  always 
varied  it  to  suit  the  audience  and  the  occasion.  For  another 
version  of  the  passage,  the  student  is  referred  to  the  impromptu 
address  made  before  the  Bay  State  Club  in  Boston  in  1889.  (See 
page  202  of  the  memorial  volume  of  Grady's  Life,  Writings,  and 
Speeches.) 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Outline  this  passage,  noting  particularly  the  contrast  devel- 
oped. (2)  Study  the  parallelism  of  phrases  in  the  first  paragraph. 
(3)  Notice  the  realism  and  yet  the  poetic  idealism  of  the  de- 
scription _  of  the  Southern  home.  (4)  Read  the  passage  aloud 
several  times,  or,  better  still,  memorize  it  and  recite  it. 

The  Wounded  Soldier 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  speech  from  which  this  extract  is  taken  was  delivered  at  the 
State  Fair  in  Dallas,  Texas,  October  26,  1887,  Less  than  a  year 
before,  the  speech  on  The  New  South  had  carried  Grady's  name 
on  the  wings  of  fame  to  every  nook  and  corner  of  the  country;  hence 
the  vast  audience  gathered  here  in  the  heart  of  one  of  his  own  South- 
ern States  was  prepared  for  something  great,  and  his  hearers  were 
in  nowise  disappointed.  If  the  first  speech  opened  the  eyes  of  the 
Northern  audience  to  the  reviving  spirit  of  a  new  South,  the  second 
revealed  to  the  South  the  stupendous  tasks  which  lay  before  her  in 
solving  the  race  problem  and  the  no  less  important  industrial  prob- 
lems of  the  section.  The  peroration  of  this  Dallas  speech  is,  perhaps, 
the  most  intensely  emotional  and  thoroughly  imaginative  utterance 
that  fell  from  the  lips  of  the  inspired  young  orator.  Grady  had,  at 
the  instigation  of  his  friends,  carefully  prepared  the  manuscript, 
and  had  left  a  copy  in  Atlanta  for  publication  on  the  morning  after 
the  delivery  of  the  speech.  When  he  rose  to  speak,  however,  he 
discarded  the  written  speech,  following  it  only  in  outline  and  using 
only  such  parts  as  seemed  desirable  in  the  inspiration  of  the  moment. 
He  was  thus  put  under  the  necessity  of  telegraphing  back  to  his  own 
paper  to  suppress  the  copy  he  had  left  in  Atlanta. 

EXPLANATORY: 

4.  Thermopylce.  Look  up  in  your  history  the  story  of  King 
Leonidas  with  his  band  of  Spartans  at  Thermopylae. 

7.  Alamo.  The  famous  fort  at  San  Antonio,  Texas,  where 
Bowie,  Fanning,  Travis,  Crockett,  and  others  were  massacred.  The 
Spanish  word  alamo  means  cottonwood,  and  the  fort  is  said  to  have 
been  named  for  a  clump  of  cottonwood  trees  which  stood  near  by. 
II.  Goliad  .  .  .  San  Jacinto.  Look  up  these  battles  in  the 
history  of  Texas. 


462  Southern  Literary  Readings 

24.  Forum.  That  is,  the  Halls  of  Congress  during  the  debates 
preceding  the  Civil  War. 

26.     Arbitrament.   Authoritative  and  final  settlement  or  decision. 
40.     From.     Apparently  equivalent  to  "on  account  of." 
46.     Aftermath.     Literally,  an  "after"  or  second  mowing. 
82.     Will.     Properly  shall.     Will  is  the  common  form  in  con- 
versation and  impromptu  speech. 

115.  Held  on  the  staunch.  That  is,  held  the  floodgate,  stanched 
the  blood. 

123.  Great  Physician.  Christ.  The  term  is  not  found  in  the 
Bible. 

138.     The  hoy.     His  son,  Henry  Woodfin  Grady,  Jr. 

181.    Arcturus.     A  brilliant  star  in  the  constellation  Bootes. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

'  (i)  How  many  years  was  it  after  the  close  of  the  Civil  War  that 
this  speech  was  delivered?  Is  there  any  note  of  bitterness  in  the 
passage  here  reproduced?  What  was  Grady's  chief  message  to  his 
countrymen  in  this  connection?  (2)  What  preparation  for  the 
picture  of  the  wounded  soldier  is  there  in  the  sentences  just  preceding 
it?  Can  the  audience  tell  at  first  just  what  application  was  to  be 
made  of  the  illustration?  Why  is  it  effective  for  an  orator  to  keep 
his  hearers  in  suspense  at  times?  (3)  Name  in  order  the  five  visions 
that  came  to  the  soldier.  (4)  How  does  the  speaker  apply  the 
picture  of  the  wounded  soldier  to  the  South?  How  and  when 
was  the  South  thus  sorely  wounded?  (5)  Point  out  passages  in 
which  Grady  shows  his  love  for  the  Union.  (6)  Compare  the 
picture  of  the  soldier's  home  life,  as  here  presented,  with  the  picture 
of  the  Southern  farmer's  home  life  in  the  preceding  selection.  What 
seems  to  be  the  general  relationship  between  the  two?  (7)  Is  the 
glowing  vision  of  the  South's  future  prosperity  and  happiness  any 
nearer  realization  now  than  it  was  when  Grady  spoke  these  words? 
(8)  Do  you  think  the  last  paragraph  might  have  been  dispensed 
with?  Why?  (9)  Is  the  last  sentence  of  all  well  constructed? 
Why  is  an  orator  to  be  excused  for  making  an  occasional  loose  or 
incoherent  sentence? 

Earth  Shield  and  Earth  Festival 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  passage,  though  complete  in  itself,  is  the  prelude  or  intro- 
duction to  the  story  called  The  Bride  of  the  Mistletoe,  published  in 
1909.  It  gives  us  an  imaginative  description  of  Kentucky  and  of 
the  Christmas  festival. 

EXPLANATORY: 

6.  Kentucky.  An  Indian  name  said  to  mean  "the  dark  and 
bloody  ground."  This  makes  the  figure  of  the  battle-piece  still 
more  appropriate. 

10.  Set  the  stream  of  ocean.  Compare  the  Iliad,  Book  XVIII 
(Pope's  translation). 

12.     Father  of  Waters.     Explain. 


The  Notes  46 j 

12.  Along  the  edge  for  a  space  she  bound  a  bright  river.  What 
river  is  this,  and  on  what  edge? 

15.     Shaggy  mountains.     What  mountains  are  referred  to? 

21.     A  tough  skin  of  verdure.     Referring  to  the  blue  grass. 

37.  Hephaistos  .  .  .  Achilles  .  .  .  Thetis.  Hephaestus  or 
Vulcan,  the  blacksmith  of  the  gods,  was  the  son  of  Jupiter  and 
Juno.  Being  lame,  he  was  cast  out  of  heaven  by  Juno,  but  he  was 
befriended  by  Thetis,  the  mother  of  Achilles,  in  gratitude  for  whom 
Hephaestus  afterward  forged  the  wonderful  shield.  See  the  Iliad, 
BookXVni. 

39.  Sprang  like  a  falcon  from  snowy  Olympus.  Olympus  was  the 
seat  of  the  gods,  and  here  Hephaestus  made  the  shield  and  gave  it 
to  Thetis  to  bear  to  her  son.     Compare  the  Iliad,   Book  XVHI. 

44.  Espousals  and  marriage  feasts.  All  of  these  scenes  are  pic- 
tured by  Homer  as  being  embossed  by  Hephaestus  on  the  shield 
which  he  made  for  Achilles. 

83.     Sightless  orbs  of  Homer.     Explain  the  allusion. 
loi.     Sun  seems  farthest  from  the  planet.     The  winter  solstice  oc- 
curs December  21.     Is  the  sun  reaUy  farthest  from  the  earth  then? 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  title  suggests  the  two  main  divisions  of  the  selection. 
Mark  out  the  subdivisions  or  paragraph  topics  under  each  of  these 
divisions  and  construct  an  outline.  The  following  questions  will 
be  found  suggestive.  (2)  Why  is  Kentucky  compared  to  an  ancient 
shield?  (3)  Describe  the  tilt  of  the  shield  or  the  drainage  system 
of  Kentucky.  (4)  Give  a  suggestive  review  of  the  natural  history 
of  the  state.  (5)  How  does  the  author  introduce  the  elaborate 
comparison  with  another  famous  ancient  shield?  (6)  Enumerate 
some  of  the  life  scenes  wrought  upon  the  shield,  noting  how  closely 
the  author  has  followed  the  description  given  in  the  Iliad.  (7) 
Compare  the  scenes  on  the  shield  of  Achilles  with  the  living  scenes 
in  Kentucky.  (8)  What  single  festival  is  selected  for  fuller  develop- 
ment in  the  second  large  division?  (9)  How  is  this  spectacle  both 
new  and  old?  (10)  Why  is  it  remembered  throughout  the  year? 
(11)  What  is  the  time  of  this  festival?  Compare  this  with  the  exact 
date  of  the  winter  solstice.  (12)  Give  a  condensed  history  of  the 
meaning  of  the  festival.  (13)  What  evergreens  are  associated  with 
Christmas,  and  what  symbolic  lesson  does  the  author  draw  from  this 
circumstance?  (14)  Indicate  some  of  the  most  striking  and  melo- 
dious phrasings.  (15)  Spell  and  define  these  words,  locating  them  in 
the  text:  colossal,  artificer,  embossed,  emerged,  espousals,  plaited, 
pageants,  changing,  vernal,  solstice,  succor,  symbolic,  warring. 

The  Tale  of  the  Crystal  Bell 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  story  is  found  in  Wally  Wanderoon  and  His  Story-telling 

Machine.  Two  children,  Buster  John  and  Sweetest  Susan,  with 
their  negro  companion  Drusilla,  live  on  their  grandfather's  planta- 
tion in  the  South,  just  after  the  Civil  War.  The  children  go  through 
the  woods  to  make  a  visit  to  Billy  Biscuit,  a  funny  little  negro  boy, 


464  Southern  Literary  Readings 

at  the  home  of  Mr.  Bobbs.  On  their  way  they  meet  a  strange 
Httle  man  with  very  short  legs,  wearing  a  tall  hat  and  a  coat  with 
tails  that  reach  almost  to  the  ground.  After  going  on  to  Mr.  Bobbs's 
house  and  adding  Billy  Biscuit  to  their  party,  they  come  back  to 
learn  more  of  this  peculiar  man.  They  find  him  waiting  as  though 
he  expected  them,  and  they  soon  learn  that  his  name  is  Wally 
Wanderoon.  The  strange  little  man  keeps  poking  and  prodding 
with  his  cane  in  the  fence  corners  as  though  he  had  lost  something. 
The  children  inquire  what  he  is  looking  for,  and  he  replies,  "I  am 
looking  for  the  Good  Old  Times  we  used  to  have."  Presently 
Wally  takes  the  children  by  a  miraculous  route  through  the  air  to 
his  far-away  country,  where  there  are  many  queer  things — among 
them  an  old-fashioned  story-telling  machine.  This  machine  is  a 
tall,  narrow  box  made  like  a  hand  organ,  and  all  one  has  to  do  to 
make  it  tell  a  story  is  to  turn  the  handle,  whereupon  the  story  comes 
out  of  an  orifice  near  the  top.  The  children  soon  discover  that 
there  is  a  man  in  the  box,  who,  it  seems,  can  tell  any  kind  of  story 
that  is  desired.  One  story  after  another  is  called  for,  and  The  Tale 
0}  the  Crystal  Bell  is  told  in  answer  to  Sweetest  Susan's  request  for 
an  old-fashioned  fairy  tale. 
EXPLANATORY: 

8.     Simples.     Medicinal  plants. 

488.    Halberds.     Ornamented  battle  axes  on  long  spear  shafts: 
used  chiefly  in  processional  displays. 
THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  story  is  extremely  simple  both  in  style  and  in  structure, 
and  hence  there  is  little  need  of  elaborate  analysis.  Make  a  brief 
outline  showing  the  chief  incidents.  (2)  Describe  the  life  led  by 
Lizette  and  her  parents.  (3)  Where  do  you  imagine  they  lived? 
Can  you  tell  partly  by  the  occupation,  the  religion,  the  dress,  etc.? 
(4)  Where  does  the  action  of  the  story  properly  begin?  (5)  Relate 
the  incident  of  the  finding  of  the  old  woman  and  of  her  transforma- 
tion. What  traits  of  Lizette's  character  are  brought  out  by  this 
incident?  Do  you  see  any  allegorical  meaning  in  this  part  of  the 
story?  (6)  Why  is  the  incident  of  the  butterfly  caught  in  the  spider's 
web  reverted  to  here?  What  is  the  spider  intended  to  typify? 
(7)  Why  is  it  important  to  mention  the  fact  that  the  spider  is  not 
killed?  (8)  Why  is  the  hag  so  anxious  to  get  possession  of  the  bell? 
(9)  Why  does  the  old  woman  show  so  much  animosity  toward 
Lizette?  (10)  Connect  this  with  a  preceding  incident.  (11) 
Account  for  the  further  troubles  that  Lizette  has  in  returning  to 
her  parents'  cottage.  (12)  Why  does  the  butterfly  once  have 
to  rise  over  the  tops  of  the  trees?  (13)  Why  does  the  lady  who 
has  taken  charge  of  Lizette  arrange  to  have  the  prince  meet 
Lizette  without  disclosing  his  identity?  (14)  Why  do  you  sup- 
pose the  prince  chooses  Lizette  when  she  is  not  a  candidate 
and  has  not  provided  a  rare  trinket  as  a  dowry?  (15)  Why  is 
the  butterfly  introduced  in  the  conclusion?  (16)  What  do  you 
think  is  represented  by  the  crystal  bell  which  Lizette  wears  next 
to  her  heart? 


The  Notes  465 

Taking  the  Blue  Ribbon  at  the  County  Fair 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  is  one  of  Miss  Murfree's  earlier,  though  none  the  less  charac- 
teristic, mountain  stories,  the  scene  being  laid  in  the  Great  Smoky- 
Mountains  in  east  Tennessee,  the  setting  of  so  many  of  her  stories. 
It  was  first  published  in  Appleton's  Summer  Book  for  1880,  though 
probably  it  was  written  a  few  years  earlier.  It  is  to  be  found  now 
in  a  volume  of  Miss  Murfree's  stories,  The  Mystery  of  Witchface 
Mountain,  published  in  1895. 

EXPLANATORY: 

70.  Old  Bear.  One  of  the  subordinate  ranges  in  the  Great 
Smoky  Mountains. 

96.  Kildeer  County  .  .  .  Colbury.  Fictitious  names  used  to 
delocalize  the  story,  though  the  location  of  the  n^ountains  in  east 
Tennessee  gives  a  sufficiently  definite  setting. 

109.  Jersey.  A  well-known  breed  of  fine  dairy  cattle  originally 
from  the  Island  of  Jersey  in  the  English  Channel. 

111.  Berkshires.  A  breed  of  swine  originally  from  Berkshire, 
England. 

112.  Merinos.  A  Spanish  breed  of  sheep,  having  long,  closely 
set,  silky  wool. 

189.  Diana.  The  goddess  of  the  chase  or  hunting;  also  called 
the  moon-goddess  and  the  protectress  of  virgins.  She  is  usually 
represented  as  wearing  a  crescent  crown  and  with  a  bow  and  quiver 
slung  across  her  shoulders. 

487.  The  rhododendro7i,  the  azalea,  the  Chilhowee  lily.  Familiar 
mountain  flowering  plants. 

598.  Sylvan  deity.  Wood  nymph:  applied  here  to  the  moun- 
tain girl. 

714.     High  dudgeon.     Intense  feeling  of  resentment  or  anger. 

827.  Eclat.  Showiness,  exciting  or  brilliant  circumstances:  a 
French  word,  pronounced  a-kla/. 

THO UGHT  Q UESTIONS  A ND  LITERA RY  ANAL YSIS: 

(i)  After  reading  through  the  story,  summarize  the  plot  in  a 
single  paragraph  of  about  one  page.  (2)  Study  the  structure  of 
the  story,  dividing  the  material  into  five  sections.  Let  the  student 
mark  out  as  exactly  as  possible  the  dividing  lines  between  the 
larger  sections  and  the  subdivisions.  (3)  Repeat  some  of  the  most 
striking  details  in  the  pen  picture  of  Jenks.  (4)  Describe  the  home. 
(5)  Contrast  the  appearance  and  character  of  Mrs.  Hollis  and  her 
husband.  (6)  Notice  how  the  paragraph  beginning  "His  inner 
life"  leads  up  to  the  exposition  of  the  animosity  between  the  village 
or  valley  folk  and  the  mountaineers.  Why  is  it  essential  to  the 
interest  of  the  story  to  develop  this  feeling  of  animosity  so  fully? 
(7)  The  transitional  paragraph  beginning,  "And  to-day,  compla- 
cently enough,"  returns  precisely  to  the  scene  of  the  opening  para- 
graph. Point  out  the  exact  words  in  this  and  the  second  paragraph 
following  it  which  are  repeated  from  the  first  paragraph,  and  say 
why  this  device  is  employed.     (8)  Describe  fully  Cynthia's  dress 

30 


466  Southern  Literary  Readings 

and  appearance.  (9)  In  the  opening  of  this  description  of  Cynthia 
mention  is  made  of  her  slumberous  eyes.  Point  out  other  uses  of 
this  word  in  the  story,  and  note  the  effect  thus  gained.  (10)  Begin- 
ning with  "She  was  the  central  figure  of  the  landscape,"  the  author 
develops  the  midday  atmosphere  of  the  mountain  scene  in 
five  paragraphs.  Give  appropriate  topics  for  these.  (11)  Why 
is  Jenks  Hollis's  appearance  among  the  riders  made  an  occasion 
of  merriment  and  applause?  (12)  Can  you  guess  why  Jacob  Brice 
enters  the  contest?  (13)  Explain  how  the  contestants  are  gradually 
reduced  to  three.  How  does  this  increase  the  interest  in  the  out- 
come? (14)  What  device  does  Jacob  use  to  make  Cynthia  come 
to  a  decision?  (15)  What  makes  Jacob  pause  so  long  after  he  had 
addressed  her  with  the  words,  "Look  hyar,  Cynthy"?  (16)  Point 
out  the  exact  climax  of  the  story.  (17)  Do  you  think  Jenks  Hollis 
really  wins  the  prize?  Point  out  passages  to  support  your  opinion. 
(18)  Are  Hollis  and  his  wife  very  greatly  distressed  to  lose  their 
daughter  thus?  Give  your  reasons  for  thinking  as  you  do.  (19) 
What  is  the  effect  of  having  Cynthia  come  home  to  help  her  mother 
do  the  winter  weaving  and  spinning?  (20)  How  does  the  speech  of 
Mrs.  Hollis  in  the  last  paragraph  help  to  unify  the  two  main  strands 
of  the  plot  of  the  story?  (21)  Spell  and  define  the  following  words: 
oracular,  mosaic,  interlocutor,  puncheon,  exuberant,  portentously, 
scrupulous,  deficiencies,  sedate,  uncouth,  vista,  resonant,  prema- 
turely, squalor,  concomitant,  inertia,  invidious,  incongruous, 
integrant,  cerulean,  unceremonious,  athletic,  immobility,  furtive, 
demeanor,  effulgence,  lethargy,  precipitous,  ambient,  serrated, 
aberration,  denizeqs,  nonchalant,  hilarity,  interloper,  vendetta, 
manoeuvres,  volubility,  recreant,  ignominious,  labyrinth,  didac- 
tically, irrelevantly,  cogitation,  reiterated,  ineffably,  caparisoned, 
rubicund,  vociferated,  dudgeon,  explicit,  translucent,  mirage, 
horizon,  eclat. 

The  One-legged  Goose 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  story,  though  complete  in  itself,  is  imbedded  in  Colonel 
Carter  of  Carter sville,  a  novel  published  in  1891.  Chad  (short  for 
Nebuchadnezzar,  and  hence  pronounced  cad),  the  old  negro  body 
servant  of  Colonel  Carter,  has  accompanied  his  master  to  New  York 
to  serve  him  while  he  is  trying  to  float  bonds  for  a  railroad  scheme 
which  will  give  Cartersville — in  the  Colonel's  opinion  "the  Garden 
Spot  of  Virginia  " — an  outlet  to  the  sea.  It  is  to  one  of  the  Colonel's 
friends,  denominated  "the  Major,"  who  drops  in  to  dinner  one 
evening  a  few  minutes  before  the  Colonel  returns  to  his  residence, 
that  Chad  tells  the  story  of  the  "one-legged  goose."  Mr.  Smith 
says  in  a  footnote:  "This  story,  and  the  story  of  the  'Postmaster' 
in  a  preceding  chapter,  I  have  told  for  so  many  years  and  to  so  many 
people,  and  with  such  varied  amplifications,  that  I  have  long  since 
persuaded  myself  that  they  are  creations  of  my  own.  I  surmise, 
however,  that  the  basis  of  the  'Postmaster'  can  be  found  in  the 
corner  of  some  forgotten  newspaper,  and  I  know  that  the  'One- 
legged  Goose'  is  as  old  as  the  'Decameron,'" 


The  Notes  467 

EXPLANATORY: 

7.  Miss  Nancy.  The  beautiful,  self-sacrificing  maiden  aunt 
of  the  Colonel,  "a  true  Southern  lady,"  who  pays  all  the  Colonel's 
bills  and  eventually  gives  him  a  fortune  in  coal  lands. 

14.  Quarters.  See  the  first  note  on  Irwin  Russell's  poem,  Christ- 
mas-night in  the  Quarters,  p.  455. 

45.  Swamp  lan's.  Unruly  Virginia  negroes  were  sometimes 
sold  to  the  rice  planters  of  South  Carolina. 

142.  Whole  kit  an'  b'ilin'.  The  whole  crowd:  a  Southern 
provincial  expression.  The  word  kit,  meaning  a  chest  of  varied 
sorts  of  tools  or  the  like,  is  probably  associated  with  the  dialect 
pronunciation  of  kettle,  kittle;  hence  the  addition  of  an'  b'ilin'  for 
and  boodle  (or  kaboodle)  used  in  other  sections  of  the  United  States. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Make  an  outline,  dividing  the  story  into  its  logical  parts. 
(2)  What  tone  does  the  old  negro  assume  toward  the  antebellum 
days?     (3)  Do  you  get  a  clear  conception  of  the  old  plantation  life? 

(4)  What  sort  of  man  do  you  imagine  Marsa  John  to  have  been? 
Compare  him  with  Mahsr  John  in  Irwin  Russell's  poem,  p.  241. 

(5)  At  what  point  in  the  narrative  is  Henny  introduced?  Why 
just  at  this  point?  (6)  How  does  Chad  first  try  to  conceal  the  loss 
of  the  leg?  (7)  Why  does  he  suggest  to  the  guests  to  have  ham  or 
breast  of  goose?  (8)  What  is  Chad's  second  lie,  and  why  does  he 
tell  it?  (9)  Rewrite  the  story  in  your  own  words,  using  good 
English,  and  correcting  the  dialect  spelling  throughout. 

Gordia 

INTRODUCTORY: 

■Gordia  is  a  mystical,  ballad-like  poem  dealing  with  supernatural 
material.  Its  inspiration  came,  the  author  says,  from  a  vivid  dream. 
The  glosses,  made  after  the  model  of  Coleridge's  device  in  The  Rime 
of  the  Ancient  Mariner,  summarize  or  condense  the  story  in  quaint 
and  poetic  prose ;  but  these  should  not  be  read  other  than  as  inter- 
pretative hints,  for  the  main  thing  is  the  poem  itself. 

EXPLANATORY: 

I.     Nightbird.     The  owl. 

5.  Sea-mells.     Sea  mews  or  gulls. 

6.  Prosper.  A  name  chosen  for  its  romantic  associations.  It 
appears  in  many  medieval  romances. 

15.  Tell.     Count  the  beads  or  say  the  prayers  of  the  rosary. 

16.  Criste's  moder.  Christ's  mother.  These  Middle  English 
word  forms  are  used  for  poetic  or  archaic  effect.     Point  out  others. 

17.  Wis.     Know,  think. 

20.  Sea-stocks.  A  stock  is  an  old-fashioned  garden  flower,  here 
transferred  to  the  sea. 

40.  Demesne.  Realm.  Pronounced  here  d^-men'.  It  rimes  with 
seen  three  lines  below. 

45.  Bossed.  Ornamented  with  raised  figures.  Sea-dace  is  a  kind 
of  sea  perch. 


468  Southern  Literary  Readings 

63.  Whitsuntide.  The  week  beginning  with  Whitsunday,  which 
is  the  seventh  Sunday  after  Easter.  This  church  festival  celebrates 
the  coming  of  the  Holy  Spirit  at  Pentecost.  Why  is  the  season 
appropriate? 

73.     Maun.     Must.     An  old  form  still  in  use  among  the  Scotch. 
85.     Sea-kale.     An  edible  coastal  plant  of  the  cabbage  variety. 

107.     Sea-wold.     Wold  is  an  archaic  word  meaning  field  or  wood. 

143.  Buoy-hell.  A  warning  bell  fixed  in  a  floating  tower  and 
rung  by  the  tossing  waves.  Pronounced  preferably  as  though 
spelled  boy.  Metrically  the  diphthong  is  equivalent  to  two  syllables 
here. 

171.  Burthens.  The  refrains  or  choruses  in  the  old  songs  were 
called  burdens.     Notice  the  archaic  form  of  the  word. 

173.  Suffered  some  sea-change.  Consciously  borrowed  from 
Ariel's  song  in  The  Tempest,  Act  I,  Sc.  ii. 

210.  Sea-anemones.  Soft-bodied  sea  animals  resembling  •  the 
anemone  or  windflower.     Pronounced  d-nem'o-nfe. 

227.  Lanthorns,  An  old  variant  spelling  of  lanterns.  Look  up 
the  interesting  history  of  this  form. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Point  out  the  details  of  the  setting  of  the  poem.  Is  it  evening 
or  early  morning?  Why  is  the  moon  called  horned?  (2)  In  what 
age  and  in  what  land  do  you  suppose  the  events  recorded  took  place? 
(3)  What  is  the  dominant  tone?  What  words  in  the  first  sixteen 
lines  determine  the  tone?  (4)  Why  does  Prosper  so  often  go  out 
alone  under  the  stars?  (5)  Give  instances  of  the  superstition  of 
fisher-folk  and  sailors.  (6)  What  do  the  old  fisherwomen  think 
of  Gordia?  (7)  How  can  you  tell  what  religion  these  simple  folk 
profess?  (8)  In  what  ways  do  Prosper  and  Gordia  differ  from  the 
common  fisher-folk?  (9)  How  and  why  did  Gordia  disappear? 
(10)  Why  do  you  suppose  Prosper  left  her,  to  go  on  the  sea  voyage? 
What  delayed  his  return?  (11)  Give  the  picture  of  the  appearing 
of  the  mermaid  to  Prosper  in  the  moonlight.  (12)  Explain  why  the 
lines  and  the  colors  of  Gordia's  body  and  mantle  are  made  to  follow 
the  movements  and  tints  of  the  sea.  (13)  Of  what  does  Gordia 
sing  in  her  first  song?  In  her  second?  (14)  Give  the  pictures 
as  seen  by  Gordia  from  the  king's  palace  under  the  sea.  How  do 
everyday  objects  like  the  sun  and  moon  appear  when  seen  from 
under  the  sea?  (15)  How  long  does  Prosper  seek  for  his  lost  love 
before  he  finds  her?  Why  is  this  number  chosen?  (16)  What  is 
it  that  changes  Prosper  to  a  merman?  (17)  How  do  the  common 
fisher-folk  interpret  the  disappearance  of  Prosper?  How  do  you 
interpret  it?  (18)  In  the  next  to  the  last  stanza  note  the  return 
to  the  lonely  sights  and  sounds  of  the  ocean.  Does  this  device  sat- 
isfy the  requirements  of  unity  in  the  poem?  (19)  You  will  find, 
perhaps,  that  the  vague,  mysterious,  supernatural  quality  of  the 
legend  will  not  take  hold  of  your  imagination  until  you  have  studied 
the  poem  carefully  and  read  it  attentively  three  or  four  times. 
The  quality  is  very  similar  to  that  found  in  Coleridge's  The  Rime  of 
the  Ancient  Mariner  Sind.  in  Matthew  Arnold's  The  Forsaken  Merman. 


The  Notes  46Q 

Compare  the  three  poems.  (20)  The  rhythm  of  the  poem  is 
typically  iambic,  but  anapaestic  movements  are  inserted  for  the 
sake  of  variety.  Compare  the  passage  beginning,  "  'Tis  the  hour, 
I  wis,"  line  17,  for  the  anapaestic  effect.  Notice  how  this  change  of 
rhythm  marks  the  transition  into  the  legend  proper,  or  the  body  of 
the  narrative. 

Texas  Heroes 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  is  the  second  in  a  series  of  eleven  sonnets  so  far  composed 
by  Mr.  Young  on  themes  connected  with  Texas  history.  These 
sonnets  have  not  as  yet  been  published,  but  those  who  have  had  the 
opportunity  of  seeing  the  manuscript  pronounce  them  of  a  quality 
and  finish  that  will  give  them  a  secure  place  among  American  works 
of  this  kind.  The  one  given  here  illustrates  the  epigrammatic 
terseness,  the  restrained  power,  the  imaginative  force,  the  artistic 
finish,  and  the  historic  truth  which  characterizes  the  whole  sequence. 

EXPLANATORY: 

1.  A  land  betrayed  and  wronged.  Because  they  were  so  different 
in  every  way,  the  Texans  and  Mexicans  never  understood  each 
other.  Texas  belonged  to  Mexico,  but  had  been  settled  largely  by 
Americans;  hence  the  Mexicans  feared  that  the  Texans  would  raise 
a  rebellion  and  annex  their  territory  to  the  United  States.  Natur- 
ally the  Mexican  government  tried  to  prevent  this,  with  the  result 
that  the  Texans  were  aroused  to  resistance.  There  is  no  question 
that  from  their  point  of  view  the  settlers  were  "betrayed  and 
wronged." 

2.  Immortal  height.  The  height  of  patriotic  glory  and  martyrdom 
for  their  country. 

4.  Saxon  blood.  The  Americans  who  settled  in  Texas  were 
largely  of  Anglo-Saxon  descent. 

5.  Martin.  Colonel  William  B.  Travis,  who  was  defending  the 
Alamo  with  only  one  hundred  fifty  men  against  Santa  Anna's 
army,  sent  out  an  urgent  appeal  for  help,  and  on  February  23, 
1836,  Captain  Albert  Martin  and  thirty-one  men  left  Gonzales, 
Texas,  to  go  to  his  relief.  On  March  i,  before  daylight,  they  forced 
their  way  through  the  Mexican  lines  and  added  their  strength  to  the 
brave  band  of  Texans  under  Travis. 

7.  Brave  Bonham.  Colonel  J.  B,  Bonham,  a  South  Carolinian, 
one  of  the  defenders  of  the  Alamo,  was  sent  to  Goliad  for  reenf  or  ce- 
ments, but  being  unable  to  obtain  immediate  help,  he  returned  to 
the  Alamo  to  "die  beside  his  comrades." 

9.  Mild  Austin.  Stephen  F.  Austin,  who  did  so  much  for  Texas 
in  settling  up  the  grants  obtained  by  him  from  the  Mexican  govern- 
ment, in  leading  the  revolutionary  forces,  and  in  guiding  the 
destinies  of  the  young  nation  with  his  wise  counsel,  was  born  in 
Virginia  in  1793  and  died  in  Texas,  1836.  He  has  been  called  the 
"Father  of  Texas."  When  the  first  president  was  to  be  chosen, 
he  was  the  logical  man  for  the  place,  but  he  gave  way  to  General 
Sam  Houston ;  and  when  the  latter  asked  him  to  become  Secretary 
of  State,  he  gracefully  accepted  because  he  thought  Texas  still  had 


470  Southern  Literary  Readings 

need  of  his  services.  "He  literally  gave  his  life  to  the  state,  and  his 
noble  example  will  serve  forever  to  inspire  the  gratitude  and  unselfish 
patriotism  of  every  true  Texan."  {History  oj  Texas.  Barker,  Potts, 
and  Ramsdell.) 

II.  Houston.  General  Sam  Houston,  the  great  chieftain  who 
conquered  Santa  Anna  at  San  Jacinto,  April  21,  1836,  and  was 
chosen  first  President  of  the  Republic  of  Texas  in  that  same  year,  is 
one  of  the  most  romantic  characters  in  American  history.  For 
the  facts  of  his  life  see  any  good  encyclopedia  or  history  of  Texas. 

13.  Travis.  Colonel  William  B.  Travis,  an  Alabamian,  was 
placed  in  command  of  the  Alamo.  The  story  of  his  heroic  defense 
of  this  citadel  and  of  his  brave  death  on  March  6,  1836,  with  all  his 
men,  is  known  as  the  most  glorious  incident  in  Texas  history,  and 
one  of  the  most  thrilling  in  all  history. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Note  that  there  is  but  a  single  thought  developed  in  this 
sonnet.  State  it  in  a  phrase.  (2)  The  first  quatrain  (four  lines) 
states  the  theme,  and  the  remainder  of  the  poem  particularizes, 
giving  two  lines  to  each  of  the  heroes  mentioned.  Not  all  of  the 
Texas  heroes  could  be  named  in  a  single  sonnet,  of  course,  but  those 
given  are  typical.  Outline  the  poem,  and  tell  what  you  know  of 
each  of  the  heroes  mentioned.  (3)  What  is  meant  by  "draggled 
columns"?  (4)  Give  the  exact  meaning  of  line  4.  (5)  Why  is 
Austin  called  "mild"?  (6)  Explain  the  meaning  of  line  10.  (7) 
Explain  "burly  chief  of  wit  and  brawn."  (8)  Why  iS|  Houston 
called  "Atlas  of  his  little  earth"?  (9)  Why  is  Travis  reserved  for 
the  last?  Do  you  note  an  ascending  order  in  the  arrangement  of 
the  heroes?  (10)  What  is  a  sonnet?  Study  out  the  rime  scheme 
of  this  sonnet  (abba  abba,  cdecde),  and  note  that  it  is  Italian  or 
Petrarchan  in  form.  (11)  Wreath  and  death  do  not  make  a  perfect 
ear  rime,  but  such  eye  rimes  are  permissible. 

The  Gift  of  the  Magi 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  Gift  of  the  Magi  first  appeared  in  the  New  York  World  in 
1905,  and  was  later  included  in  the  volume  of  stories  dealing  with 
New  York  life,  The  Four  Million.  It  was  reissued  by  Doubleday, 
Page  &  Company  as  a  holiday  booklet  in  19 11,  and  has  since  grown 
rapidly  in  favor  as  one  of  the  sweetest  and  most  human  of  American 
Christmas  stories. 
EXPLANATORY: 

The  magi.  See  the  explanation  given  at  the  end  of  the  story. 
Pronounced  ma'ji. 

3.  Bulldozing.  This  is  a  modern  slang  word,  but  such  words 
give  the  desired  tone  for  a  story  of  this  kind.  Note  other  slang  and 
colloquial  expressions  which  help  to  give  a  realistic  tone  to  the 
conversation. 

59.     Queen  of  Sheba   .    .    .  King  Solomon.     See  I  Kings,  iv. 
76.     Mme.  Sofronie.     Madame  Sofronie. 

115.     Coney  Island.     Famous  pleasure  resort  near  New  York  City. 


The  Notes  4.JI 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Summarize  the  plot  of  the  story  in  a  single  brief  paragraph. 
(2)  This  is  a  typical  modern  short  story.  Its  chief  interest  lies  in 
its  unity  of  impression  and  the  surprise  climax  at  the  close.  The 
story  may  be  divided  into  five  sections  as  follows: 

/.  Introduction:    Theme  stated  and  setting  developed. 

//.  First  movement  of  the  plot  action:    Delia  decides  to  sell  her 
hair  (beginning  "Suddenly  she  whirled"). 
///.  Second  movement:    The  purchase  of  the  watch  fob. 

IV.  Third  movement:  Preparation  for  Jim's  home-coming. 
V.  Fourth  or  climax  movement:  The  revelation  scene. 
Point  out  the  exact  division  lines  between  the  movements.  (3)  Give 
the  setting  (time  and  place)  in  your  own  words.  (4)  Why  is  so 
much  made  of  the  $1.87  in  the  opening  of  the  story?  What  other 
facts  are  given  to  show  the  poverty  of  the  young  couple?  (5) 
Just  what  sort  of  people  do  you  imagine  Jim  and  Delia  to  be?  (6) 
The  first  movement  of  the  story  proper  is  arrested  for  a  moment 
to  explain  the  two  most  valued  possessions  of  Delia  and  Jim.  Why 
was  this  necessary?  (7)  Do  you  get  a  vivid  picture  of  Delia?  Give 
some  of  the  details  of  the  description  and  note  just  what  points  are 
most  emphasized.  (8)  "Two  hours  tripped  by  on  rosy  wings."  Ex- 
plain why  the  author  calls  this  a  "hashed  metaphor."  (9)  Why 
was  a  platinum  fob  chosen  by  Delia?  (10)  What  is  the  effect 
of  the  little  prayer  that  Delia  utters  just  before  Jim  comes  in? 
(11)  Explain  the  allusion  "Maybe  the  hairs  of  my  head  are  num- 
bered." (12)  What  was  it  that  caused  Jim  such  consternation  when 
he  saw  Delia?  (13)  Notice  how  well  the  revelation  scene  is  man- 
aged. Study  this  section  closely  to  see  just  how  the  different  ele- 
ments are  taken  up  so  as  to  create  surprise  on  the  part  of  both  the 
characters  and  the  reader.  (14)  What  lesson  is  drawn  in  the 
conclusion?  (15)  Point  out  elements  of  lively  narration,  sly 
humor,  and  vigorous  diction  in  the  style.  (16)  Locate,  spell,  and 
define  the  following  words:  imputation,  parsimony,  instigates, 
mendicancy,  nervously,  laboriously,  arrived,  meretricious,  discreet, 
scrutiny,  ecstatic,  hysterical,  necessitating. 

A  Chaparral  Prince 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  story  may  be  called  a  modern  reaHstic  fairy  tale.  The 
chief  merit  of  the  plot  is  the  delightful  and  amusing  mingling  of 
the  actual  and  the  romantic,  the  jostling  together  of  the  everyday 
hardships  and  realities  of  crude  Western  life  with  the  imaginary 
happenings  in  the  fairyland  of  Grimm's  folk  tales.  The  heroine 
identifies  herself  with  the  mistreated  and  unhappy  girl  heroines  of 
Grimm,  and  in  the  midst  of  her  drudgery  she  confidently  expects 
the  coming  of  her  prince.  The  landlady  of  the  hotel  becomes 
the  cruel  mistress  of  the  hostile  castle,  and  the  rough  laborers 
become  the  ogres  who  devour  sheep  and  cows  while  the  captive  girl 
waits  upon  them.  There  is  delightful  irony  in  the  transformation 
of  the   rough  outlaws,  freebooters,   train-robbers  into  chivalrous 


4J2  Southern  Literary  Readings 

knights  who  ride  to  the  rescue  of  the  oppressed  and  captive  damsel 
under  the  leadership  of  their  prince,  Hondo  Bill. 
EXPLANATORY: 

Chaparral.  In  its  general  sense  chaparral  means  an  uncleared 
tract  of  land  covered  with  a  growth  of  dwarf  or  scrubby  oaks, 
mesquite,  prickly  pear,  cactus  plants,  and  the  like.  Specifically, 
in  south  and  southwest  Texas,  a  hardy  shrub  bearing  tough  spiny 
leaves  and  bright  red  berries  of  great  acidity  is  popularly  called 
chaparral.  The  southern  portion  of  Texas  is  locally  known  as  the 
"brush"  or  the  "chaparral  country." 

22.  Grimm.  The  reference  is  to  the  stories  of  Jakob  and 
Wilhelm  Grimm,  the  German  philologists  and  collectors  and  writers 
of  household  fairy  tales. 

46.  Perdenales  River  .  .  .  Fredericksburg.  Locate  these  on 
your  map  of  Texas.  The  facts  given  in  the  story  regarding  the 
German  settlement  in  and  around  Fredericksburg  in  Gillespie 
County,  Texas,  are  almost  literally  correct. 

49.    Pinochle  and  scat.     Games  at  cards. 

58.  Wiener  schnitzel  and  hasenpfeffer.  Wien  is  the  German 
name  of  Vienna.  Wiener  schnitzel  is  a  (Vienna)  veal  cutlet. 
Hasenpfeffer  is  a  dish  made  of  chopped  hare  stewed  with  wine  and 
pepper  and  other  spices. 

73.     Ballinger's.     Probably  the  name  of  some  local  store  or 
post  office  on  the  Fredericksburg  road. 
136.     Dummkopf.     Blockhead. 

139.  Auf  wiedersehen.  Till  we  meet  again :  a  German  expression 
for  good-by. 

150.  Centaurs.  The  «entaur  was  a  fabled  monster  of  classic 
mythology,  half  horse  and  half  man.  The  author  here  pays  a 
compliment  to  the  horsemanship  of  the  robbers. 

155'  Donnerwetter.  A  German  exclamation  of  impatience, 
equivalent  to  the  English  "  Thunderation ! " 

156.  Was  ist?  What's  the  matter?  Notice  that  Fritz  always 
speaks  in  German  when  he  is  excited. 

158.  Dutch.  The  terms  Dutch,  Dutcher,  Dutchman  are  fre- 
quently but  erroneously  applied  to  Germans.  To  what  country 
and  people  do  the  words  properly  apply? 

159.  Stick-up.    Hold-up. 

239.     Spondulicks.    Slang  for  money. 

252.     Off  your  kazip.     Mistaken;  crazy;  a  slang  phrase. 

294.  Ausgespielt  —  nixcumrous.  A  nonsense  expression  used  by 
Hondo  in  imitation  of  Fritz's  foreign  tongue. 

312.  Spiel!  Swei  bier!  Vamoose!  A  nonsense  jumble  of 
German  words  and  English  slang,  used  here  as  a  command  to 
Fritz  to  drive  off  rapidly. 

352.     Gott  in  himmel !    God  in  heaven!     Fritz  is  excited  again. 

375.     Schnapps.    Strong  whisky. 
THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Make  four  headings  covering  the  principal  incidents  of  the 
story,  and  then  complete  the  outline  by  putting  in  the  subtopics. 


The  Notes  473 

(2)  Select  examples  of  local  color.  (Local  color  is  any  word, 
phrase,  or  allusion  which  is  suggestive  of  the  locality  in  which 
the  scene  is  laid.)  (3)  Name  the  characters  of  the  story  in  the 
order  of  their  importance,  dividing  them  into  major  and  minor. 
(4)  Show  how  the  plot  becomes  more  and  more  complicated  as  the 
action  advances.  (5)  Why  is  it  necessary  to  make  the  Quarrymen's 
Hotel  so  dingy,  dirty,  and  unattractive?  Give  some  of  the  details. 
(6)  Describe  Lena's  troubles.  Why  does  the  author  make  her  life 
so  hard?  (7)  What  is  his  purpose  in  making  so  much  of  Grimm 
in  the  beginning  of  the  story?  (8)  Can  you  locate  in  Grimm's 
Fcdry  Tales  any  of  the  characters  referred  to  in  the  fourth  paragraph? 
(9)  How  does  the  last  sentence  in  this  paragraph  suggest  the 
conclusion  of  the  story?  (10)  What  is  the  effect  of  Lena's  letter 
on  the  reader?  Point  out  some  of  the  phrases  which  arouse  your 
sympathy.  (11)  Does  the  letter  sound  very  much  like  a  child's 
letter?  (Remember  that  this  is  the  author's  translation.)  (12) 
What  purpose  do  Tommy  Ryan  and  old  man  Ballinger  serve  in  the 
story?  Are  they  mentioned  again?  (13)  Do  you  get  a  clear  picture 
of  these  characters?  (14)  Why  does  the  author  make  Fritz  so 
greatly  interested  in  Lena  and  her  letter  at  this  point?  (15)  Point 
out  in  Fritz's  speeches  examples  of  faulty  English  due  to  his  mix- 
ture of  German  and  English  idiom.  (16)  Explain  the  thought  and 
comment  on  the  phrasing  of  the  sentence  beginning  "As  the  lion" 
(line  164).  (17)  Point  out  humorous  passages  in  the  conversation 
between  Fritz  and  the  robbers.  (18)  Why  is  Fritz  called  sauerkraut, 
Wienerwurst,  Limhurger,  by  Rogers?  (19)  Why  do  the  robbers  tie 
Fritz  to  the  tree  instead  of  letting  him  go  on  his  way?  (20)  Do  you 
note  any  improbabilities  in  the  story?  (21)  Show  how  Lena  mixes 
fact  and  fairy  tale  in  her  account  of  her  rescue.  (22)  Learn  to 
spell  and  define  the  following  words:  insatiate,  hostelry,  grease, 
analogy,  ogre,  quarries,  ruminations,  centaurs,  perpetrated,  com- 
mensurate, casual,  sinister,  arduous,  assiduously,  villain,  vociferous, 
affably,  confute,  cocoon,  missive,  insinuate,  quirt,  schedule,  meer- 
schaum, exhaustion. 

A  Prairie  Prayer 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  poem,  first  published  in  Sunset  Magazine  in  1909,  was  com- 
posed in  1908,  while  Mr.  Greer  was  on  a  vacation  trip  in  south- 
west Texas.  Eighty  miles  from  a  railroad,  he  spent  an  entire  day 
alone  in  that  vast  but  speaking  solitude,  and  the  broad  visions  and 
sweeping  harmonies  of  the  poem  are  indicative  of  the  poet's  deep 
soul  experiences  as  they  came  welling  forth  under  the  influences 
of  Nature. 

EXPLANATORY: 

The  headpiece  quotation  is  taken  from  Lines  Written  a  Few 
Miles  above  T intern  Abbey,  one  of  Wordsworth's  finest  nature 
poems. 

I.  Crouched,  a-cloistered.  This  is  suggestive  of  the  medieval 
monks  and  religious  enthusiasts  who  thought  that  God  was  pleased 


474  Southern  Literary  Readings 

with  the  maceration  of  the  body  and  with  the  seclusion  of  men  from 
the  world. 

14.     Ungyve.     Unfetter;  take  off  the  gyves.     Pronounced  un-jiv'. 

18.     Thine.     Supply  eye. 

53.  Redolent.  Odorous.  Note  the  double  alliteration  in  this 
line  and  the  next. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  In  what  form  is  the  poem  cast?  See  the  title  and  the  poetical 
headpiece  for  a  suggestion.  (2)  The  poem  is  not  written  in  regular 
stanzas,  but  in  larger  thought  units  or  paragraphs.  Give  the  topic 
of  each  of  these  larger  divisions.  (3)  Why  does  the  poet  wish  to 
stand  rather  than  crouch?  (4)  Explain  the  thought  in  lines  21-26. 
(5)  Explain  the  figure  in  line  26,  and  comment  on  its  quality.  (6) 
How  does  the  poet  impress  upon  the  reader  his  idea  of  the  bound- 
lessness of  the  plains?  (7)  Note  the  use  of  superlatives  in  line  33, 
and  express  your  opinion  of  the  effect  of  the  arrangement  and  the 
form  of  the  words  used.  (8)  What  lesson  does  the  poet  draw 
from  the  apparent  boundlessness  of  the  plains?  (Lines  36-40.) 
(9)  Point  out  a  half  dozen  suggestive  phrases  in  the  last  stanza,  and 
comment  on  their  qualities.  (10)  Point  out  and  explain  three  good 
figures  of  speech  in  this  stanza.  (11)  Study  out  the  rime  scheme  in 
each  division,  making  a  formula  for  each  similar  to  this  for  the  first : 
ahahccaa.  Note  that  the  rimes  sometimes  run  in  couplets,  sometimes 
in  triplets,  while  at  other  times  they  are  more  or  less  widely  separated. 
The  effect  of  this  variety  in  the  rimes  is  decidedly  artistic  and  melo- 
dious. There  is  one  false  rime  near  the  close.  Point  it  out  and 
decide  whether  you  think  it  seriously  mars  the  melody  of  the  poem 
at  this  emphatic  position.*  (12)  The  rhythm  of  the  poem  is  char- 
acteristically iambic,  and  the  meter  is  of  the  five-stress  or  pentameter 
type.  There  are  occasional  shorter  lines  of  three  and  two  stresses 
which  add  a  pleasing  variety  to  the  verse  movement  or  rhyth- 
mic phrasing.  (13)  The  sound  quality  of  this  poem  is  remarkably 
rich  and  mellow,  the  effects  being  brought  out  by  alliteration  and 
assonance,  as  well  as  by  rime.  The  compound  adjectives  and 
alliterative  pairs  are  especially  noteworthy.  Point  out  examples  of 
alliteration.  (14)  The  last  or  the  next  to  the  last  stanza  would  make 
a  good  memory  passage. 

A  Mockbird  Matinee 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  sparkling  little  lyric  was  written  in  1904  and  first  published 
in  the  Houston  Chronicle.  It  was  composed  under  the  inspiration 
of  actual  scenes  and  experiences  around  Pittsburg,  in  northeast 
Texas.  The  mocking  bird  is  in  his  native  haunts  here,  and  the 
description  of  both  the  music  and  the  setting  is  accurate  to  the  last 
detail.  Of  the  many  songs  written  on  the  mocking  bird,  this  one, 
it  seems  to  the  editor,  is  one  of  the  most  purely  lyric  and  richly 
imitative.  The  very  diffuseness  of  the  poem  is  suggestive  of  the 
wild,  free  song  outbursts  of  the  bird.     The  lines  describing  the 


The  Notes  475 

music  of  the  mocking  bird,  especially  those  from  30  to  47,  have 
rarely  been  surpassed  in  Southern  poetry. 

EXPLANATORY: 

2.  Jocund  June.  Lively,  joyous  June.  Note  the  alliterative 
melody  not  only  in  this  line,  but  throughout  the  poem. 

8.  The  verb  is  omitted.     Supply  the  full  expression. 

9.  Arabesques.  A  technical  term  in  architecture,  meaning  the 
fanciful  carvings  of  leaves  and  plants  in  a  certain  type  of  ornamenta- 
tion. (See  note  on  line  123  in  The  Masque  of  the  Red  Deaths 
p.  420.) 

59.  Rune.  A  mystic  symbol;  formerly  an  alphabetic  sign  or 
picture  used  for  a  word.  (See  note  on  line  10  of  The  Bells,  p.  418.) 
THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Give  a  good  topic  for  the  introductory  lines.  (2)  The  opening 
passage  is  somewhat  familiar,  broken,  and  conversational  in  tone. 
Show  how  this  adds  emphasis  to  the  more  purely  lyric  and  song-like 
parts  of  the  poem.  (3)  Show  that  this  lyric  is  composed  of  an  intro- 
ductory impulse,  a,  descriptive  passage  showing  the  forest  setting, 
the  main  description  of  the  bird's  singing,  and  an  after  song  by  way 
of  conclusion.  (4)  Pick  out  and  comment  on  some  of  the  most 
suggestive  and  melodious  lines  in  the  poem.  (5)  Can  you  feel 
distinctly  and  see  clearly  the  forest  picture  which  the  poet  paints? 
(6)  What  is  meant  by  "some  hoary  forest  monk"?  (7)  Explain 
"Fares  he  forth  in  modest  coat."  (8)  Note  how  the  tone  changes 
at  lines  36  and  40  to  show  the  change  in  the  bird's  music.  How 
would  you  read  these  passages  to  bring  out  the  quality?  (9)  What 
effects  of  the  bird  music  upon  the  listener  are  indicated  in  the  last 
lines?  (10)  The  poem  is  written  in  trochaic  four-stress  verse. 
The  last  syllable  in  each  line  is  omitted  because  of  the  rime, 
which  is  uniformly  masculine.  Scan  a  few  lines  under  your  teacher's 
direction,  but  do  not  read  the  poem  in  a  singsong  fashion. 

The  Ranchman's  Ride 

EXPLANATORY: 

3.  Curlews.  The  curlew  is  a  large  prairie  bird,  somewhat  like 
the  plover.  It  flies  high  and  has  a  doleful,  melancholy  cry.  The 
cayote  (or  coyote)  is  a  small  doglike  animal,  also  known  as  the  prairie 
wolf.  Pronounced  ki'ot  here,  as  generally  in  the  Southwest,  but 
more  correctly  ki-o'tS. 

7.  Cinched.  Tightly  secured  or  tied.  The  cinch  is  the  broad, 
flank  girth,  but  the  cowboys  call  any  girth  a  cinch.  The  verb  is 
colloquial  in  Western  slang,  as  is  also  the  derived  meaning  of  cinch, 
a  firm  grip,  a  sure  thing. 

.17.  Divide.  In  the  west  Texas  or  Abilene  country  there  is  a 
range  of  highlands  known  as  the  Callahan  Divide. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  This  lyric  may  be  said  to  be  composed  of  an  initial  impulse 
(the  thought  of  the  wild  ride,  stanza  i),  and  its  emotional  develop- 
ment through  a  series  of  descriptive  stanzas.     Study  out  its  plan  in 


47^  Southern  Literary  Readings 

detail.  (2)  Notice  how  the  rush  of  the  wild,  free  race  across  the 
prairies  is  set  forth  in  the  opening  stanza.  Point  out  some  of  the 
lively  phrases  and  comment  on  the  effect  of  the  word  Hurrah! 
(3)  What  concrete  images  help  to  give  a  vivid  picture  of  the  cow- 
boy's riding  equipment?  (4)  How  does  the  last  line  of  the  third 
stanza  help  to  give  an  emotional  effect?  (5)  What  is  meant  by 
"flowered  Divide"?  (6)  What  line  from  the  first  stanza  is  repeated 
in  the  last?  This  gives  a  distinct  unity  and  finality  or  well- 
rounded  completeness  to  the  lyric.  (7)  Study  the  rime  scheme  of 
this  effective  stanza.  The  first  line  has  no  answering  rime,  but  the 
third  line  makes  up  for  this  loss.  How?  The  formula  for  the  rimes 
may  be  expressed  as  follows: 

c 
a    b  c    b. 

c 
Notice  the  rich  sound  effects  of  this  scheme,  and  see  if  it  is  consist- 
ently followed  throughout  the  poem.  (8)  The  rhythm,  a  mixture 
of  iambic  and  anapaestic  feet,  is  also  decidedly  happy,  giving  a  fine 
imitation  of  the  galloping  movement  of  the  horses.  Compare 
other  famous  poems  on  riding  written  in  similar  rhythms,  as 
Browning's  How  They  Brought  the  Good  News  from  Gheiit  to  Aix. 

Old  Fort  Phantom  Hill 

EXPLANATORY: 

5.  Elm  and  Clear  Fork.  The  names  of  two  creeks  which  unite 
near  Phantom  Hill  in  Jones  County,  Texas,  to  form  one  branch  of 
the  Brazos  River. 

11.  Mesa,  A  small  hill  or  elevated  table-land  in  the  plains. 
Pronounced  ma'sa.       • 

12.  Ruins  of  the  Old  Fort  Phantom  Hill.  Fragments  of  these 
ruins  are  still  to  be  seen. 

13.  The  year  of  fifty-three.  Lee  was  not  sent  to  the  Texas  border 
service  until  1856.  He  had  previously  served  in  the  Mexican  War, 
but  no  mention  is  made  of  his  having  stopped  in  Texas  forts  in  those 
years. 

17.  Northers.  Cold  north  winds  which  sweep  down  across  the 
plains. 

18.  Labrador.     Locate  on  your  map  of  North  America. 

21.  Mesquite.  A  scrubby  pod-bearing  tree  found  commonly 
in  the  plains  of  Texas  and  California,  and  having  beautiful  compound 
pinnate  leaves  that  spread  out  gracefully  over  the  twigs.  Pro- 
nounced mes-ket'. 

22.  Old  McKenzie  Trail.  General  Reginald  Slidell  McKenzie 
was  a  Federal  soldier  who  fought  through  the  Civil  War  and  was 
afterward  stationed  on  the  western  frontier  of  Texas.  He  did 
efficient  service  against  the  hostile  Indians,  and  often  conducted 
parties  across  the  plains  under  his  protection.  The  old  roadway 
across  the  Abilene  country  is  still  known  as  the  McKenzie  Trail. 

26.  Taps.  Taps  is  the  military  signal  on  trumpets  or  drums 
for  lights  to  be  put  out.  Here  the  reference  is  to  the  death  of  the 
heroes  mentioned. 


The  Notes  477 

27.  Lee  and  Johnston,  etc.  Colonel  Robert  E.  Lee  was  sent  to 
the  Texas  border  service  in  1856.  He  established  a  chain  of  military 
forts  on  the  western  frontier  to  check  the  Indians,  the  center  of  his 
activities  being  Fort  Cooper  on  the  Brazos  River.  Colonel  Albert 
Sidney  Johnston  was  Lee's  superior  officer,  but  he  was  soon  called 
into  other  service.  Joseph  E.  Johnston  was  in  this  service,  being 
under  the  command  of  Colonel  E.  V.  Sumner.  Captain  U.  S.  Grant 
was  for  a  while  stationed  at  Jefferson  Barracks  on  the  Texas  border 
service.  Major  Thomas  J.  Jackson,  later  known  as  "Stonewall," 
also  was  in  the  Mexican  War,  as  were  Grant,  Lee,  and  others,  but  so 
far  as  the  editor  knows  it  is  not  recorded  that  Jackson  was  stationed 
at  the  Texas  frontier  forts.  McKenzie  and  Custer,  both  generals 
in  the  Federal  Army,  were  stationed  in  the  Texas  service  later, 
and  they  no  doubt  were  intimately  associated  with  the  fort  at 
Phantom  Hill. 

29.  Blue  and  gray.  A  reference  to  the  Federal  and  the  Con- 
federate uniforms.  Which  three  of  the  men  mentioned  in  line  27 
were  Federal  and  which  three  Confederate  generals? 

32.     This  line  is  quoted  from  Tennyson's  Locksley  Hall. 

35.  Peace  on  earth.     See  Luke,  ii.  14. 

36.  Swords  are  turned  to  ploughshares.     See  Isaiah,  ii.  4. 

THO UGHT  Q UESTIONS  A ND  LITERARY  A NALYSIS: 

(i)  The  three  twelve-line  stanzas  may  be  taken  as  the  basis  of  an 
analysis.  What  does  the  opening  stanza  set  forth?  Notice  the 
repetition  of  where  at  the  beginning  of  every  other  line,  and  the 
concluding  there  with  a  definite  statement  of  the  place.  (2)  What 
topics  do  the  second  and  third  stanzas  develop?  Note  the  narrative 
of  the  supposed  ghost-banquet,  and  the  peaceful  union  of  the  blue 
and  the  gray.  (3)  Point  out  some  of  the  best  images  in  the  descrip- 
tion of  the  prairie  scene.  (4)  What  images  are  brought  out  in  the 
second  stanza  to  increase  the  supernatural  and  weird  effect?  (5) 
Give  brief  sketches  of  the  .leaders  mentioned  in  line  27.  Why 
are  they  supposed  to  gather  at  the  old  fort?  (6)  How  is  the  peace 
now  surrounding  the  old  military  fort  shown?  (7)  Examine  the 
eight-stress  trochaic  meter.  The  last  light  syllable  is  dropped 
uniformly  for  the  sake  of  the  rime.  This  is  an  exact  imitation  -of 
Tennyson's  meter  in  Locksley  Hall,  as  is  evidenced  in  the  direct 
quotation  from  this  poem  in  line  32.  Read  some  or  all  of  Tenny- 
son's poem. 

"Shadow" 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  story  was  published  in  the  Century  Magazine  for  December, 
1906,  having  been  rewritten  from  an  earlier  sketch  called  Vi  etArmis 
which  was  published  in  a  short-lived  Georgia  monthly  about  1890. 
It  is  based  on  fact.  The  Hon.  Sidney  Trapp,  formerly  of  Eatonton, 
Georgia,  was  the  conimissioner ;  the  Hon.  Joseph  F.  Johnston,  now 
United  States  senator  from  Alabama,  was  governor  of  Alabama  at 
the  time;  and  Judge  A.  D.  Sayre  presided  over  the  court  which  the 
three  children  so  successfully  stormed. 


4^8  Southern  Literary  Readings 

EXPLANATORY: 

12.  Coal-mines.  In  northern  Alabama,  near  Birmingham, 
Montevallo,  and  other  cities.  The  state  convicts  are  often  leased  as 
laborers  to  the  owners  of  the  coal  mines. 

34.     Others.    That  is,  companions  such  as  pain,  sorrow,  etc. 

43.  Wetumpka.  Locate  the  town.  It  is  not  far  from  Mont- 
gomery. The  three  children  were  the  daughters  of  the  Hon.  Sidney 
Trapp,  then  Prison  Commissioner  of  Alabama.  They  frequently 
accompanied  their  father  on  his  inspection  "f-ours.  Shadow,  a 
"trusty,"  was  designated  to  take  care  of  and  amuse  the  children 
during  one  of  these  visits  to  Wetumpka,  the  town  in  which  the 
state  convict  farm  and  penitentiary  is  located. 

102.  Terrace  and  portico.  The  historic  capitol  of  Alabama, 
situated  on  Capitol  Hill,  is  reached  by  an  ascending  series  of  terraces 
from  Dexter  Avenue.    What  is  the  portico? 

104.  Jefferson  Davis.  ^  Look  up  the  history  of  the  inauguration 
of  the  first  and  only  President  of  the  Confederate  States  of  America. 

105.  Cradle.  The  city  of  Montgomery  is  called  "the  cradle  of 
the  Confederacy."     Why? 

141.  Judicial  ermine.  The  ermine  is  a  small  weasel-like  animal, 
whose  white  fur  with  black  markings  is  used  as  facings  on  the 
official  robes  of  the  English  judges.  The  word  is  here  used  figura- 
tively for  the  office  of  the  judge. 

158.  ^  Pertinent  and  relevant.  These  are  legal  synonyms  meaning 
pertaining  or  relating  to  the  matter  under  discussion. 

246.     Crenshaw  County.     Look  it  up  in  your  geography. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  picture  do  you  get  from  the  opening  paragraph?  (2) 
Why  is  the  word  awake  put  out  of  its  normal  position?  (3)  How 
does  the  opening  sentence  of  the  second  paragraph  prepare  us  for 
the  conclusion  of  the  story?  Is  your  sympathy  at  once  aroused? 
(4)  How  old  do  you  think  the  convict  is  at  the  opening  of  the  story? 
How  long  has  he  been  in  prison?  (5)  What  accident  has  befallen 
him  in  the  coal  mine?  (See  paragraph  3  for  a  hint.)  (6)  Study 
the  structure  of  the  third  paragraph.  Notice  how  it  opens  with  a 
reversion  to  the  thought  of  the  opening  paragraph,  and  how  the 
explanation  of  what  does  not  keep  him  awake  is  developed  in  a 
cumulative  way  so  as  to  lead  up  to  the  climax,  revealed  in  the  very 
last  word,  of  what  does  keep  him  awake.  Is  this  last  word  effective 
in  arousing  interest  as  to  the  outcome?  (7)  Why  is  the  reference 
to  the  cabin  in  the  far-away  Georgian  hills  effective?  At  what 
point  in  the  story  are  this  and  other  references  in  the  paragraph 
further  developed?  (8)  On  what  principle  does  the  author  choose 
names  for  the  little  girls?  Contrast  their  names  with  the  name 
given  to  the  convict.  (9)  Why  is  Sunshine  always  named  first  and 
why  is  she  given  the  most  prominent  part  iu  the  later  events  of 
the  story?  (10)  What  traits  in  the  negro's  character  are  shown  by 
his  attention  to  the  children?  (11)  What  do  the  children  promise 
Shadow,  and  what  does  he  promise  them?  Is  the  plot  hard  to 
see  through  at  any  time  after  this?     (12)  On  what  day  and  at 


The  Notes  4^^ 

what  hour  is  the  action  of  the  story  supposed  to  open?  Where 
is  this  told?_  (13)  Notice  here  the  second  reference  to  Hope. 
How  does  this  unify  the  thought  of  the  whole  of  the  first  part  of 
the  story?  (14)  Why  is  it  necessary  to  make  a  break  in  the  narra- 
tive at  the  point  where  the  guard  calls  Shadow's  name?  This  is 
technically  called  "reverting  narrative."  At  this  point  the  author 
goes  back  to  tell  all  that  has  happened  which  would  lead  up  to  this 
calling  forth  of  the  convict  from  his  cot  in  the  prison  barracks. 
(15)  Can  you  form  an  idea  from  the  way  he  treats  his  daughters, 
of  what  sort  of  man  the  prison  commissioner  is?  (16)  Relate 
the  various  obstacles  overcome  by  the  little  girls  in  their  efforts 
to  gain  the  attention  of  the  governor.  (17)  How  does  the  governor 
know  so  much  about  the  children's  family?  (The  office  of  commis- 
sioner is  appointive  in  Alabama.)  (18)  What  effect  does  his  refusal 
to  pardon  the  convict  have  on  the  children?  (19)  How  does  the 
governor  finally  put  the  besiegers  off?  How  does  Sunshine  force 
him  to  commit  himself  unconditionally?  (20)  Describe  the  entrance 
of  the  messengers  into  the  crowded  courtroom.  (21)  How  does 
the  judge  comprehend  the  situation?  Why  does  he  laugh?  (22) 
Picture  the  face  of  the  lawyer  for  the  defense  as  he  watches  the 
children.  How  does  he  take  advantage  of  the  situation?  There 
might  be  some  objection  to  this  use  of  sentiment  in  determining 
the  guilt  or  innocence  of  the  defendant,  but  for  artistic  effect  we 
may  presume  that  the  prisoner  is  innocent  of  the  charge  of  murder 
and  deserves  to  go  free.  (23)  Explain  the  pun  uttered  by  the 
governor  when  the  children  return  to  his  office.  What  effect  has 
this  little  touch  of  humor  here  just  after  the  pathos  of  the  scene 
in  the  courtroom?  (24)  Explain  why  Sunshine  forgets  her  manners 
when  she  hands  the  governor  his  pen  the  last  time.  (25)  Who 
delivers  the  message  of  his  freedom  to  Shadow?  Can  you  now 
easily  connect  the  last  scene  with  the  guard's  call  for  Shadow? 
(26)  Why  is  it  necessary  to  explain  the  hour?  Do  you  think 
Shadow  has  ever  doubted  that  his  little  friends  would  keep  their 
promise?     (27)  Whatis  the  chief  lesson  to  be  learned  from  the  story? 

The  Vulture  and  his  Shadow 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  lyric  was  first  published  in  the  Macon  Telegraph.  It  attracted 
immediate  attention,  and  has  been  called  the  most  nearly  perfect 
short  poem  written  in  the  South  in  recent  years.  It  is  a  marvel  of 
imaginative  power  and  lyric  grace. 

EXPLANATORY: 

15.  Eye  of  day.  _  "  'The  eye  of  day'  is,  of  course,  the  sun,  but 
the  picture  in  my  mind  was  the  half -risen  orb,  and  silhouetted  against 
it,  on  an  ocean  plain,  a  floating  speck  (I  have  changed  to  mote  for 
obvious  reasons)." — H.  S.  Edwards. 

U Envoi.  The  conclusion  or  afterthought  which  emphasizes  the 
main  point  of  a  poem  or  makes  some  specific  application  of  the 
thought.  It  is  from  the  French  envoyer,  to  send;  a  sendoff,  as  it 
were. 


^So  Southern  Literary  Readings 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  Who  is  supposed  to  speak  in  the  poem?  (2)  What  single 
thought  seems  to  dominate?  (3)  Find  the  key  word  (or  one  of  its 
derivatives)  in  each  stanza,  and  see  how  this  device  unifies  the  poem. 
(4)  What  devices  of  repetition  are  used?  (5)  What  is  the  result  of 
this  on  the  musical  effect?  (6)  How  do  the  images  in  lines  13  and 
15  connect  with  lines  17-20?  (7)  What  is  suggested  in  lines  21-24? 
(8)  What  imaginative  effect  is  produced  by  the_  "double  circles" 
in  line  27?  (9)  How  does  the  arrangement  of  rimes  differ  in  the 
first  and  second  stanzas  and  in  U Envoi?  (10)  The  rhythm  of  the 
poem  is  typically  iambic,  but  there  are  numerous  anapaestic  substi- 
tutions.    Point  out  some  of  these. 

The  Old  Water-mill 
INTRODUCTORY: 

The  Old  Water-millf  one  of  the  finest  and  most  mature  of  Mr. 
Cawein's  poems,  first  appeared  in  Myih  and  Romance  in  1899.  It 
is  a  nature  poem;  but  it  is  more  too,  for  it  gives  an  almost  complete 
picture  of  country  life  in  northern  Kentucky  and  southern  Indiana 
close  around  Louisville;  and  in  addition  there  is  a  notable  character 
sketch  at  the  close.  The  poem  may  properly  be  classed  as  an  idyl. 
The  tone  is  decidedly  idyllic  and  easeful,^  and  the  style  is  in  perfect 
harmony  with  the  subject-matter.  William  Dean  Howells  admires 
it  above  all  else  that  Mr.  Cawein  has  written.  He  says,  "But  one 
[poem]  which  I  value  more  because  it  is  worthy  of  Wordsworth  or  of 
Tennyson  in  a  Wordsworthian  mood,  is  'The  Old  Mill,'  where,  with 
all  the  wonted  charm  of  his  landscape  art,  Mr.  Cawein  gives  us  a 
strongly  local  andf  novel  piece  of  character  painting."  The  Old 
Water-mill  deserves  to  stand  as  a  classic  beside  Whittier's  Snow- 
bound and  Goldsmith's  Deserted  Village. 

EXPLANATORY: 

19.  Mistfiower.  A  plant  of  the  aster  family  bearing  clusters  of 
blue  flowers.     Explain  "blurs  its  bit  of  heaven." 

20.  Oxeye.  Another  plant  of  the  aster  family,  bearing  heavy 
yellow  flowers;  note  the  poet's  "gloaming  lines  of  bronze  and  gold." 

26.  Lapis-lazuli.  A  rich  blue  conglomerate  mineral  flecked 
with  irregular  golden  streaks.  Chrysoprase  is  a  light  green  variety 
of  chalcedony  or  quartz. 

74.  A  rufous  instant.  The  flash  of  a  red  fox.  Rufous  rr.eans 
of  a  reddish  or  rust  color,  from  the  Latin  rufus,  rust. 

84.     Crepuscular.     Pertaining  to  twilight,  dim,  darlding. 

112.  Curculio.  A  weevil  or  snout-beetle  that  attacks  apples, 
quinces,  and  the  like. 

113.  Codling-moth.    The  moth  that  breeds  the  apple  worm. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  real  description  of  the  old  mill,  beginning  with  line  98, 
comprises  only  twenty-five  lines,  about  one-fifth  of  the  whole 
poem;  but  this  is  the  climax  passage,  and  the  old  mill  is  in  the  poet's 
mind  from  the  very  beginning,  being  the  central  object  in  the 


The  Notes  481 

country  landscape  which  he  depicts.  To  prove  this  point,  let 
the  student  find  in  each  stanza  some  direct  reference  to  the  old 
mill  or  some  object  associated  with  it.  (2)  Make  a  complete  analysis 
in  outline  by  stanzaic  divisions.  (3)  Taking  up  the  first  stanza 
in  detail,  draw  in  your  imagination  pictures  of  the  hills  and  cloud- 
like argosies,  of  the  circling  birds  in  the  sky,  of  the  gurgling  creek 
with  its  minnows  and  kingfishers,  its  trees  and  flowers  and  dragon 
flies  and  cattle,  and  with  it  all  the  sound  of  the  old  water-mill. 
Notice  the  dreamy,  happy,  reminiscent  tone  of  this  beautiful  land- 
scape. (4)  How  does  the  recollection  of  his  childhood's  experiences 
affect  the  poet?  (This  second  stanza  sets  forth  the  Wordsworthian 
doctrine  that  the  child  becomes  a  part  of  the  nature  scenes  of  his 
youth.  Let  the  teacher  here  read  some  of  Wordsworth's  poems, 
such  as  Expostulation,  The  Tables  Turned,  Lines  Written  in  Early 
Spring,  and  parts  of  Tintern  Abbey  and  Intimations  of  Immortality, 
for  comparative  study.)  (5)  Describe  some  of  the  scenes  in  stanza 
3,  particularly  the  blackberry  patches,  the  harvesting,  the  bird 
calls,  the  red  fox,  the  home-coming  holiday  crowds.  (6)  Comment 
on  the  suggestiveness  of  the  word  spilled,  line  80.  (7)  Explain 
the  thought  of  lines  82-85.  (8)  Describe  the  making  of  maple 
sugar  in  the  winter  woods.  (9)  What  is  meant  by  "sleeted  trees 
tossed  arms  of  ice  "?  (10)  Can  you  hear  the  sound  of  the  ice  falling 
on  the  frozen  stream  as  you  read  "Tinkled  the  ringing  creek  with 
icicles"?  (11)  What  is  meant  by  "Thin  as  the  peal  of  Elfland's 
Sabbath  bells"?  In  a  revision  of  the  poem  this  line  was  changed 
to  read  "Thin  as  the  peal  of  far-off  elfin  bells."  Why  is  this  a 
distinct  improvement?  (12)  Have  you  ever  seen  the  interior  of  an 
old  mill?  If  so,  compare  what  you  have  seen  with  the  picture  given 
here.  (13)  What  did  the  neighbors  talk  about  when  they  met  in 
the  old  mill?  Read  in  Goldsmith's  Deserted  Village  a  similar  descrip- 
tion of  a  gossiping  group  at  the  village  inn.  (14)  Describe  fully 
the  old  miller,  giving  your  conception  of  the  kind  of  man  he  was. 
(15)  Explain  the  personification  in  the  last  line.  (16)  The  stanzas 
are  of  irregular  length.  In  fact,  they  are  not  stanzas,  but  divisions 
according  to  topics  much  after  the  manner  of  paragraphs  in  prose. 
The  iambic  five-stress  lines  rime  in  couplets  with  occasional  triplets. 
Locate  five  of  these  triplets  in  the  poem.  (17)  The  poem  is  full  of 
good  words  for  dictionary  study.  Spell  and  define  the  following, 
locating  them  in  the  text:  vistas,  argosies,  placid,  eery,  sycamore, 
coruscating,  raucous,  censers,  tasseling,  insatiate,  rufous,  barbecue,, 
crepuscular,  sugar-kettle,  icicles,  hypothesis,  obliterates. 

Seasons 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  is  one  of  Mr.  Cawein's  later  productions,  included  in  New 
Poems,  published  in  London  in  1909.  It  illustrates  the  finer  formal 
excellence  which  the  poet  has  been  showing  in  his  later  poems. 

EXPLANATORY: 

6.  Touched  lips  with  Song.  That  is,  the  poet's  lips  with  the  music 
of  verse. 

31 


482  Southern  Literary  Readings 

21.  Phantoms  .  .  .  held  tryst.  Ghosts  held  secret  meetings 
or  conferences.     Tryst  is  usually  used  of  the  place  of  meeting. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS:    ■ 

(i)  Study  the  poem  as  to  its  structure,  dividing  it  into  two  main 
divisions,  and  then  subdividing  so  as  to  give  the  appropriate  name 
of  one  of  the  four  seasons  to  each  of  the  four  stanzas.  (2)  Study 
out  the  minute  parallelism  in  the  form  of  the  two  sets  of  stanzas. 

(3)  Why  does  the  poet  speak  of  the  forest's  green  heart?  (4) 
Explain  the  force  of  the  word  dancing.  (5)  Are  the  personifications 
in  stanza  i  appropriate  to  the  season  described?  Explain.  (6) 
Explain  the  references  to  Life,  Truth,  Birth,  in  stanza  2.  (7)  What 
does  the  sigh  in  stanza  3  suggest  to  your  imagination?  (8)  Contrast 
the  mist  and  cold  lips  and  phantoms  of  this  stanza  with  the  birds 
and  flowers  and  fire-filled  beauty  of  stanza  i%  (9)  Why  is  Death 
spoken  of  as  a  relief?  (10)  Explain  why  the  spirit  of  Decay  is 
Earth's  glory  and  its  grief.  (11)  Do  you  think  a  broader  inter- 
pretation of  the  poem  as  a  picture  of  man's  life  from  birth  and  youth 
through  manhood  and  old  age  is  justifiable?  Give  reasons.  (12) 
Determine  the  meter,  rhythm,  and  rime  scheme  of  the  stanza. 
(13)  In  what  tone  should  the  first  two  stanzas  be  read?  The  last 
two?     Indicate  words  that  determine  the  two  tones. 

Sounds  and  Sights 

INTRODUCTORY: 

This  is  another  of  Mr.  Cawein's  later  poems,  appearing  in  the  same 
volume  as  Seasons,  with  which  it  should  be  compared. 

EXPLANATORY.- 

4.  Flight  of  wing.  Referring  to  the  buzz  of  bees.  Compare 
line  8  below. 

9.  Steps  of  Love.  Compare  lines  3  and  7  of  Seasons,  where  the 
same  spirit  of  beauty  in  spring  is  also  called  Love. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  With  the  title  in  mind  analyze  the  thought  of  the  poem, 
dividing  it  into  two  sections  with  two  parts  each.  (2)  Study  the 
perfect  balance  in  thought  and  form,  noting  the  exact  parallelism 
of  sentence  and  word.  Even  the  punctuation  throughout  is  almost 
identical  in  the  balanced  stanzas.  The  second  stanza  is  an  answer 
to  the  first,  and  the  fourth  to  the  third,  and  both  are  unified  on  the 
idea  of  beauty  (loveliness).  Notice  also  how  the  first  and  third 
stanzas  are  sealed  in  perfect  unity  and  compactness  by  the  use  of 
the  words,  "  Little  leaves  .  .  .  little  ears  "  and  "  Little  buds  .  .  . 
little  eyes"  at  the  beginning  and  end  respectively.  (3)  What  is  the 
time  of  year  represented?     Is  it  constant  throughout  the  poem? 

(4)  Why  are  the  comparisons  of  leaves  and  buds  to  ears  and  eyes 
good  ones?  (5)  What  is  the  effect  of  the  epithet  little?  (6)  In 
the  last  stanza  a  military  figure  is  employed.  Point  out  the  military 
terms  used.  (7)  The  poem  is  trochaic  in  rhythm,  and  the  lines  all 
have  four  stresses,  the  light  syllable  being  omitted  in  the  last  foot. 
Scan  the  poem  to  see  if  you  can  find  any  irregularities.     (8)  Study 


The  Notes  48 j 

the  rime  scheme,  noting  particularly  how  the  first  two  and  the 
last  two  stanzas  are  tied  together  by  the  repetition  of  a  rime  sound, 
and  how  the  first  and  last  stanzas  are  also  thus  suggestively  united 
by  repetition  of  sound. 

Zyps  of  Zirl 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  ballad,  or  narrative  poem,  is  based  on  fact.  Maximilian  I, 
Emperor  of  Germany  from  1493  to  15 19,  was  extremely  fond  of 
hunting,  and  on  one  occasion  in  the  Tyrolean  Alps  he  climbed  so 
high  on  the  steep  cliffs  of  Martinswand  in  pursuit  of  his  game  that 
for  three  days  his  life  was  imperiled  because  he  had  reached  a  place 
from  which  he  could  not  possibly  descend.  He  was  finally  rescued, 
after  great  toil  and  hazard,  by  a  mountaineer,  a  bold  and  fearless 
climber.  The  romantic  additions  in  the  story  as  given  in  the  poem 
are  probably  based  on  some  German  or  Swiss  legend.  Mr.  Cawein 
says  of  the  ballad:  "Zyps  attracted  me  when  I  was  a  boy,  and  the 
story  haunted  me  until  I  was  about  eighteen  years  of  age,  when  I 
put  it  into  verse,  laid  it  aside,  rewrote  it  ten  or  fifteen  years  after- 
wards, and  published  it." 

EXPLANATORY: 

I.     Tyrol.     Locate  this  province  in  the  extreme  western  part 
of  Austria. 

3.     Inn's  long  water.     The  Inn  rises  in  Switzerland  and  flows 
in  a  northeasterly  direction,  emptying  into  the  Danube. 

15.  Innsbruck.  The  chief  city  of  the  Austrian  Tyrol,  situated 
in  the  extreme  northern  part  of  the  province. 

26      Abbot  of  Wiltau.     Probably  a  fictitious  name. 

27.  Solstein.  The  massive  Solstein  is  a  stupendous  and  lofty 
rock  belonging  to  the  Martinswand  range. 

36.  Kaiser  Maxmilian.  Emperor  Maximilian  I,  one  of  the 
great  German  emperors  (1493-15 19).  Spelled  Maxmilian  here  for 
the  sake  of  the  meter. 

44.  Eagle's  lair.  A  lair  is  the  den  of  a  wild  animal;  we  usually 
speak  of  an  eagle's  nesting-place  as  an  aerie  (pronounced  S'rl),  but 
by  poetic  license  lair  is  here  used  for  the  sake  of  the  rime. 

49.  House  of  Hapsburg.  A  famous  German  princely  family, 
taking  its  name  from  the  Castle  of  Hapsburg  on  the  Aar.  It  fur- 
nished rulers  for  the  Holy  Roman  Empire  as  well  as  for  many 
European  states. 

58.     Crampons.     Climbing-spurs:  a  French  word. 

61.     Baldrick.    An  ornamental  belt  worn  over  the  shoulders. 

63.  Zirl.  A  little  village  near  Innsbruck.  It  lies  on  the  north 
bank  of  the  Inn,  and  at  a  short  distance  from  it  to  the  northeast 
rises  the  massive  Solstein. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS:  . 

(i)  The  subject-matter  of  a  ballad  or  narrative  poem, may  usually 
be  analyzed  into  a  setting  and  the  several  movements  of  the  action. 
Here  the  setting  is  beautifully  elaborated  in  the  first  eight  stanzas. 
The  first  movement  of  the  narrative  proper  is  Maximilian's  chase 


484  Southern  Literary  Readings 

of  the  chamois  as  observed  by  the  Abbot  of  Wiltau;  the  next  is  the 
emperor's  fall,  with  the  abbot's  prayer.  The  next  distinct  move- 
ment is  the  approach  of  a  mountaineer,  Zyps  of  Zirl,  to  the  rescue. 
The  rescue  proper  may  be  called  the  last  movement  or  climax. 
Follow  this  analysis  through  carefully,  marking  out  just  where  the 
divisions  fall  in  the  poem.  (2)  Reproduce  in  your  own  words  the 
beautiful  Tyrolean  landscape  picture.  (3)  Tell  the  whole  story 
in  a  prose  essay  of  about  three  hundred  words.  (4)  Locate  on  your 
map  the  principal  places  mentioned  in  the  poem.  (5)  Why  is  there 
so  much  Roman  Catholic  coloring  in  the  piece?  (6)  How  did  the 
emperor  commemorate  his  rescue  (see  the  introductory  note),  and 
what  do  you  think  he  should  have  done  for  Zyps?  (7)  This  poem 
is  written  in  ballad  triplets  of  anapaestic  four-stress  verse.  There  are 
a  great  many  iambic  substitutions,  a  license  that  is  perfectly  natural 
and  allowable  in  ballad  measures.  Scan  a  few  lines  to  note  these 
substitutions. 

An  Alabama  Garden 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  is  the  opening  poem  in  Mr.  Peck's  second  volume,  Rings  and 
Love-knots,  published  in  1892. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  What  sounds  are  heard  in  this  garden?  (Stanza  i.)  (2) 
What  flowers  are  most  frequently  seen  there?  (Stanza  2.)  (3) 
What  senses  are  appealed  to  in  stanza  3?  (4)  What  is  the  influ- 
ence of  the  garden  on  the  poet's  mind?  (5)  What  is  his  mood? 
(6)  The  meter  is  iambic  four-stress  triplets,  with  a  three-stress  line 
after  each  of  the  two  triplets  which  make  up  the  body  of  the  stanza. 
Verify  this  analysis.  (7)  Where  are  feminine  rimes  used  in  this 
poem? 


The  Grapevine  Swing 
INTRODUCTORY: 

This  is  one  of  the  finest  and  most  popular  of  all  Mr.  Peck's  songs. 
It  has  been  set  to  music  no  less  than  a  dozen  times  by  as  many 
composers.  There  is  in  the  poem  that  richness  of  local  color,  that 
quaint  and  sincere  sentiment,  and  that  charming  lilt  characteristic 
of  all  Mr.  Peck's  work. 

THOUGHT  QUESTIONS  AND  LITERARY  ANALYSIS: 

(i)  The  first  stanza  is  reminiscent  of  the  poet's  boyhood.  It 
gives  the  locality  or  setting  and  introduces  the  character.  The 
chorus  expresses  a  longing  for  the  happiness  of  the  carefree  life 
of  his  youth,  and  each  succeeding  chorus  repeats  this  longing  in 
slightly  different  words.  The  second  stanza  describes  the  delicious 
sensations  in  the  boy's  heart  as  he  used  to  swing  out  over  the  lilies 
and  back  to  the  moss-grown  tree.  Follow  this  analysis  through  the 
poem.     (2)  Notice  how  each  stanza  ends  with  the  idea  of  swinging 


The  Notes  485 

and  the  image  of  the  grapevine  swing ;  what  is  the  effect  of  the  con- 
stant repetition  of  this  idea  and  the  additional  riming  words  required 
by  the  use  of  swing?  (3)  What  picture  do  you  get,  in  the  first 
stanza,  of  the  setting  in  which  the  swing  is  placed?  What  picture 
of  the  boy?  (4)  What  additional  elements  of  beauty  and  melody 
are  added  in  stanza  2?  (5)  What  is  the  mood  or  tone  of  the  first 
two  stanzas  and  what  contrasted  mood  is  developed  in  the  third 
stanza?  (6)  Determine  the  rhythm  of  this  poem.  (7)  Now  com- 
pare the  song  as  a  whole  with  Simms's  poem  on  the  same  theme,  and 
say  which  one  of  the  two  pleases  you  the  better.  There  is  more  of 
strength,  virility,  and  imagination  in  Simms's  poem,  but  more  of 
grace,  sweetness,  and  charm  in  Peck's.  (8)  Let  some  one  sing  the 
song  in  one  of  the  better  melodies  to  which  it  has  been  set,  and,  if 
possible,  let  the  whole  class  learn  the  poem  and  sing  it  in  concert. 


A  PRONOUNCING  LIST  OP  PROPER 
NAMES   FOUND   IN   THE  TEXT 


Achilles  (d  kll'ez) 

j  Mthra  or   ,  ,,,     .. 

\A-mra       («*'^") 

Aidenn  (a'den) 

Alamo  (a'lamo) 

Anacreon  (d  nak'rfe  on) 

Angostura  (ag'gos  too^rd) 

Apollo  (dp6ro) 

Arcadies  (ar'kd  diz) 

Arcturus  (ark  tu'rws) 

Ashley  (ash'li) 

Atlas  (at'lds) 

Audubon  (o'doo  hon) 

Baccanalian  (bak'd  na'li  on) 

Bonham  (bon'am) 

Bowie  (boo'i) 

Buena  Vista  (bwa'na  ves'ta) 

Buonaparte  (bo'ndpart)* 

Carroll  (kar'wl) 

Chad  (kad) 

Chattahoochee  (chat'd  hoo'^chfe) 

Chilowee  (chil  ow'e) 

Colbury  (korberi) 

Colston  (col'ston) 

Crenshaw  (krSn'shd) 

Dennison  (den'ison) 

Dorchester  (d6r'ches  ter) 

Diana  (dian'd) 

Eggleston  (eg'  'Iz  twn) 

Elysian  (elizh'dn) 

Esten  (gs't'n) 

European  (u'r6pe"an) 

Eutaw  (u't6) 


Falco  Starlen  (farco  starlen) 
Gilead  (giredd) 
Giuseppe  Caponsacchi 

(jdo  sep'pa  ca  pon  sak'ke) 
Golconda  (golkon'dd) 
Goliad  (go'liad'O 
Guido  Franceschina 

(gwe'do  fran'ches  ke"na) 
Habersham  (hab'er  shdm) 
Hapsburg  (haps'burg) 
Hasenpfeffer  (haz'en  pfef  er) 
Helvyn  (helVin) 
Hephcestus  (hefes'tws) 
Hernani  (er  na'ne) 
Herod  (her'wd) 
Houston  (hus'twn) 
Huguenot  (hu'genot) 
Innsbruck  (ms'brook) 
Kildeer  (kil'der'O 
Labrador  (lab'rd  d6r'0 
Lariodendron  Tulipefera 

(lar  e  o  den'dron  tu  lip  i  fer'd) 
Laurens  (16'renz) 
Lazarus  (laz'd  vus) 
Legrand  (le'graN') 
Lenore  (16  nor') 
Magdalen  (mag'ddlen) 
Magi  (ma'ji) 
Manassas  (mdnas'ds) 
Marcellus  (mar  sel'ws) 
Marion  (mar'iun) 
Maximilian  (mak'si  mil"ydn) 
McKenzie  (mdken'zi) 


[486\ 


A  Pronouncing  List  of  Proper  Names 


487 


Melzi  Chancellors 

(merzee  chan'sel  lors) 
Mendoza  (men  do'tha) 
Mesquite  (mesket') 
Miraheau  (me'ra'bo') 
Moultrie  (mortri) 
Mozart  (mo'tsart) 
Natchez  (nach'ez) 
Nebuchadnezzar 

(neb'u  kad  nez"dr) 
Neils  Gade  (ne'els  ga'de) 
Newfoundland  (nu"fund  land') 
Nymph  (nimf) 
Olympus  (6  lim'pzl^s) 
Ossian  (osh'an) 
Pallas  (pal'ds) 
Parnassus  (par  nas'ws) 
Pelham  (pel'am) 
Perdenales  (per  de  nal'es) 
Petrarch  (pe'trark) 
Philantus  (fl  lan'tws) 
Philomel  (fil'6  mel) 
Pluto7iian  (ploo  to'ni  an) 
Pompilio  Comparino 

(pom  pil'e  o   com  par  e'no) 
Porphyrogene  (p&r'fi  r6j''e  ne) 


Prospero  (pros'per  o) 

Rappahannock  (rap'd  han'wk) 

Ringgold  (ring'gold) 

Rutledge  (rut'lej) 

Sachem's  Head  (sa'chems  hed) 

San  Jacinto  (san  ja  sin'to) 

Santee  (san'te") 

Scarahceus  (skar'a  be"ws) 

Sheba  (she'ba) 

Sofronie  (so  fro'ne) 

Solstein  (sol'stin) 

Sumner  (sum'ner) 

Sumter  (sum'ter) 

Swammerdamm  (swam'mer  dam) 

Tampa  (tam'pd) 

Tarentum  (td  ren'twm) 

Tarleton  (tarl'twn) 

Tempe  (tem'pe) 

ThermopylcB  (ther  mop'i  le) 

Thetis  (the'tis) 

Travis  (trav'is) 

Tyrol  (tir'61) 

Wetumpka  (we  tum'kd) 

Wiener  schnitzel  (ve'ner  shnit'sel) 

Wiltau  (wa'to) 

Zyps  of  Zirl  (zips  of  zirl) 


Readers  of  Great  Industrial  and 
Geograpliic  Interest 


THE   STORY   OF   COTTON 

By  E.  C.  Brooks,  Professor  of  Education,  Trinity  College,  Durham,  N.  C. 
Says  Edward  Kone,  Commissioner  of  Agriculture,  Austin,  Texas: 
"The  book  is  an  encyclopedia  of  information  concerning  the  history, 
introduction,  value,  and  manufacture  of  cotton,  and  its  subsequent 
influence  on  the  whole  country.  Its  information  is  accurate,  and  I  do 
not  believe  any  interested  person  will  fail  to  have  at  his  command  a 
copy  of  this  book." 

Illustrated  with  photographs  and  eleven  maps. 
Price,  75  cents. 

ASIA:    A  GEOGRAPHY   READER 

By  Ellsworth  Huntington,  Assistant  Professor  of  Geography, 
Yale  University 
The  first  of  a  new  series  of  geography  readers  —  written  from  life  by 
a  born  story-teller  and  a  thorough  geographer.  As  interesting  as  a  book 
of  travels,  the  descriptions  of  the  life  of  the  people  glow  with  color  and 
charm  the  reader  along  the  way  with  all  the  interest  of  a  well-told  tale. 
To  be  used  with  the'geography  text. 

Illustrated  with  photographs  and  maps. 
Price,  75  cents. 

SOUTH   AMERICA:    A   GEOGRAPHY  READER 

(In  preparation) 
By  Isaiah  Bowman,  Assistant  Professor  of  Geography,  Yale  University. 
The  second  book  of  the  series  of  geography  readers.  This  also  is  by 
an  authority  on  his  subject  —  a  man  who  knows  South  America  from 
Patagonia  to  Colombia.  With  the  opening  of  the  Panama  Canal,  and  the 
prospect  of  new  trade  relations,  this  book  brings  valuable  information  not 
only  to  the  child  but  to  the  general  reader  of  North  America,  who  knows 
far  too  little  about  his  South  American  brothers.  The  Bowman  reader 
will  give  you  some  interesting  surprises. 

Many  maps  and  photographs. 


RAND  MCNALLY  &  COMPANY 

CHICAGO  NEW  YORK 


B    3     1913 


Deacidified  using  the  Bookkeeper  p^cess. 
SLtralizing  agent:  Magnes.umOx,de 

Treatment  Date:  Sept.  2009 

PreservationTechnologies 

Cranberry  TownsNp,  PA  16066 


/79il^  779-2111